This is a modern-English version of The Cruise of the "Cachalot" Round the World After Sperm Whales, originally written by Bullen, Frank Thomas.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
THE CRUISE OF THE "CACHALOT"
ROUND THE WORLD AFTER SPERM WHALES
By Frank T. Bullen, F.R.G.S.
First Mate
To
Miss Emily Hensley
In grateful remembrance of
thirty years' constant friendship and
practical help this work is
affectionately dedicated by her
humble pupil.
PREFACE
In the following pages an attempt has been made—it is believed for the first time—to give an account of the cruise of a South Sea whaler from the seaman's standpoint. Two very useful books have been published—both of them over half a century ago—on the same subject; but, being written by the surgeons of whale-ships for scientific purposes, neither of them was interesting to the general reader. ["Narrative of a Whaling Voyage round the Globe," by F Debell Bennett, F.R.C.S. (2 vols). Bentley, London (1840). "The Sperm Whale Fishery," by Thomas Beale, M.R.C.S. London (1835).] They have both been long out of print; but their value to the student of natural history has been, and still is, very great, Dr. Beale's book, in particular, being still the authority on the sperm whale.
In the following pages, an attempt has been made—it’s believed for the first time—to provide an account of a South Sea whaler's journey from the perspective of the crew. Two very useful books were published—both over fifty years ago—on the same topic; however, since they were written by the surgeons of whale ships for scientific purposes, neither was interesting to the general reader. ["Narrative of a Whaling Voyage round the Globe," by F Debell Bennett, F.R.C.S. (2 vols). Bentley, London (1840). "The Sperm Whale Fishery," by Thomas Beale, M.R.C.S. London (1835).] Both have been out of print for a long time, but their value to students of natural history has been, and still is, significant, with Dr. Beale's book in particular remaining the definitive source on the sperm whale.
This book does not pretend to compete with either of the above valuable works. Its aims is to present to the general reader a simple account of the methods employed, and the dangers met with, in a calling about which the great mass of the public knows absolutely nothing. Pending the advent of some great writer who shall see the wonderful possibilities for literature contained in the world-wide wanderings of the South Sea whale-fishers, the author has endeavoured to summarize his experiences so that they may be read without weariness, and, it is hoped, with profit.
This book doesn't aim to compete with the two valuable works mentioned above. Its goal is to provide a straightforward overview of the methods used and the challenges faced in a profession that most people know very little about. While we wait for a talented writer to explore the incredible stories of the global adventures of South Sea whale-fishers, the author has tried to compile his experiences in a way that’s engaging to read and, hopefully, beneficial.
The manifold shortcomings of the work will not, it is trusted, be laid to the account of the subject, than which none more interesting could well be imagined, but to the limitations of the writer, whose long experience of sea life has done little to foster the literary faculty.
The many shortcomings of this work shouldn't be blamed on the subject, which couldn't be more interesting, but rather on the limitations of the author, whose extensive experience at sea has done little to develop their writing skills.
One claim may be made with perfect confidence—that if the manner be not all that could be wished, the matter is entirely trustworthy, being compiled from actual observation and experience, and in no case at second-hand. An endeavour has also been made to exclude such matter as is easily obtainable elsewhere—matters of common knowledge and "padding" of any sort—the object not being simply the making of a book, but the record of little-known facts.
One thing can be said with complete confidence: even if the style isn’t perfect, the content is completely reliable, drawn from real observation and experience, and never second-hand. There has also been an effort to leave out information that is easily found elsewhere—like common knowledge and any unnecessary fluff—the goal here is not just to create a book, but to document lesser-known facts.
Great care has been taken to use no names either of ships or persons, which could, by being identified, give annoyance or pain to any one, as in many cases strong language has been necessary for the expression of opinions.
Great care has been taken to avoid using names of ships or people that could, if identified, cause annoyance or pain to anyone, as in many cases strong language has been needed to express opinions.
Finally, the author hopes that, although in no sense exclusively a book for boys, the coming generation may find this volume readable and interesting; and with that desire he offers it confidently, though in all humility, to that great impartial jury, the public.
Finally, the author hopes that, while this book isn't just for boys, the upcoming generation will find it enjoyable and engaging. With that wish, he confidently presents it, though with genuine humility, to the great unbiased jury, the public.
F.T.B. Dulwich, July, 1897.
F.T.B. Dulwich, July 1897.
CONTENTS
PREFACE
DETAILED CONTENTS
INTRODUCTION
THE CRUISE OF THE "CACHALOT"
CHAPTER I. OUTWARD BOUND
CHAPTER II. PREPARING FOR ACTION
CHAPTER III. FISHING BEGINS
CHAPTER IV. BAD WEATHER
CHAPTER V. ACTUAL WARFARE. OUR FIRST WHALE
CHAPTER VI. "DIRTY WORK FOR CLEAN MONEY"
CHAPTER VII. GETTING SOUTHWARD
CHAPTER VIII. ABNER'S WHALE
CHAPTER IX. OUR FIRST CALLING-PLACE
CHAPTER X. A VISIT TO SOME STRANGE PLACES
CHAPTER XI. ROUND THE COCOS AND SEYCHELLES
CHAPTER XII. WHICH TREATS OF THE KRAKEN
CHAPTER XIII. OFF TO THE JAPAN GROUNDS
CHAPTER XIV. LIBERTY DAY—AND AFTER
CHAPTER XV. WHICH COMES UNCOMFORTABLY NEAR BEING THE LAST
CHAPTER XVI. "BOWHEAD" FISHING
CHAPTER XVII. VISIT TO HONOLULU
CHAPTER XVIII. ON THE "LINE" GROUNDS
CHAPTER XIX. EDGING SOUTHWARD
CHAPTER XX. "HUMPBACKING" AT VAU VAU
CHAPTER XXI. PROGRESS OF THE "HUMPBACK" SEASON
CHAPTER XXII. FAREWELL TO VAU VAU
CHAPTER XXIII. AT FUTUNA, RECRUITING
CHAPTER XXIV. THE BAY OF ISLANDS AND NEW ZEALAND COAST
CHAPTER XXV. ON THE SOLANDER GROUNDS
CHAPTER XXVI. PADDY'S LATEST EXPLOIT
CHAPTER XXVII. PORT PEGASUS
CHAPTER XXVIII. TO THE BLUFF, AND HOME
CONTENTS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__ HEADING OUT
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__ GETTING READY FOR ACTION
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__ FISHING STARTS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__ ROUGH WEATHER
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__ ACTUAL COMBAT. OUR FIRST WHALE
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__ "DIRTY WORK FOR CLEAN MONEY"
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__ HEADING SOUTH
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__ ABNER'S WHALE
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__ OUR FIRST STOP
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__ VISITING SOME UNUSUAL PLACES
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_14__ ROUND THE COCOS AND SEYCHELLES
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_15__ ABOUT THE KRAKEN
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_16__ OFF TO THE JAPAN GROUNDS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_17__ FREEDOM DAY—AND AFTERWARDS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_18__ WHICH NEARLY ENDS UP BEING THE LAST
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_19__ "BOWHEAD" FISHING
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_20__ VISIT TO HONOLULU
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_21__ ON THE "LINE" GROUNDS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_22__ MOVING SOUTH
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_23__ "HUMPBACKING" AT VAU VAU
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_24__ PROGRESS OF THE "HUMPBACK" SEASON
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_25__ FAREWELL TO VAU VAU
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_26__ RECRUITING AT FUTUNA
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_27__ THE BAY OF ISLANDS AND NEW ZEALAND COAST
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_28__ ON THE SOLANDER GROUNDS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_29__ PADDY'S LATEST ADVENTURE
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_30__ PORT PEGASUS
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_31__ TO THE BLUFF, AND BACK HOME
DETAILED CONTENTS
CHAPTER I—OUTWARD BOUND Adrift in New Bedford—I get a ship—A
motley crowd—"Built by the mile, and cut off as you want 'em"—Mistah
Jones—Greenies—Off to sea.
CHAPTER II—PREPARING FOR ACTION Primitive steering-gear—Strange
drill—Misery below—Short commons—Goliath rigs the
"crow's-nest"—Useful information—Preparing for war—Strange weapons—A
boat-load.
CHAPTER III—FISHING BEGINS The cleanliness of a whale-ship—No
skulking—Porpoise-fishing—Cannibals—Cooking operations—Boat-drill—A
good look-out—"Black-fishing"—Roguery in all trades—Plenty of fresh
beef—The nursery of American whalemen.
CHAPTER IV—BAD WEATHER Nautical routine—The first gale—Comfort
versus speed—A grand sea-boat—The Sargasso Sea—Natural history
pursuits—Dolphin—Unconventional fishing—Rumours of a visit to the
Cape Verdes—Babel below—No allowance, but not "full and plenty"—Queer
washing—Method of sharing rations—The "slop-shop" opened—Our
prospects.
CHAPTER V—ACTUAL WARFARE. OUR FIRST WHALE Premonitions—Discussion
on whaling from unknown premisses—I wake in a fright—Sperm whales
at last—The war begins—Warning—We get fast—and get loose—In
trouble—an uncomfortable situation—No Pity-Only one whale—Rigging the
"cutting-stage"—Securing the whale alongside.
CHAPTER VI—"DIRTY WORK FOR CLEAN MONEY" Goliath in trouble—Commence
"cutting-in"—A heavy head—A tank of spermaceti—Decks running
with oil—A "Patent" mincing-machine—Extensive cooking—Dangerous
work—Three tuns of oil—A horrible mess—A thin-skinned monster—A fine
mouth of teeth.
CHAPTER VII—GETTING SOUTHWARD Captain Slocum's
amenities—Expensive beer—St. Paul's Rocks—"Bonito"—"Showery"
weather—Waterspouts—Calms—A friendly finback—A disquisition on
whales by Mistah Jones—Flying-fishing.
CHAPTER VIII—ABNER'S WHALE Abner in luck—A big "fish" at last—A feat
of endurance—A fighting whale—The sperm whale's food—Ambergris—A
good reception—Hard labour—Abner's reward—"Scrimshaw".
CHAPTER IX—OUR FIRST CALLING-PLACE A forced march—Tristan
d'Acunha—Visitors—Fresh provisions—A warm welcome—Goliath's
turn—a feathered host—Good gear—A rough time—Creeping
north—Uncertainty—"Rule of thumb"—navigation—The Mozambique Channel.
CHAPTER X—A VISIT TO SOME STRANGE PLACES Tropical thunderstorms—A
"record" day's fishing—Cetacean frivolities—Mistah Jones moralizes—A
snug harbour—Wooding and watering—Catching a turtle—Catching a
"Tartar"—A violent death—A crooked jaw—Aldabra Island—Primeval
inhabitants—A strange steed—"Pirate" birds—Good eggs—Green
cocoa-nuts—More turtle—A school of "kogia".
CHAPTER XI—ROUND THE COCOS AND SEYCHELLES We encounter a "cyclone"—A
tremendous gust—a foundering ship—To anchor for repairs—The
Cocos—Repairing damages—Around the Seychelles—A "milk" sea—A
derelict prahu—A ghastly freight—A stagnant sea.
CHAPTER XII—WHICH TREATS OF THE KRAKEN "Eyes and no eyes" at sea—Of
big mollusca—The origin of sea-serpent stories—Rediscovery of the
"Kraken"—A conflict of monsters—"The insatiable nightmares of the
sea"—Spermaceti running to waste—The East Indian maze.
CHAPTER XIII—OFF TO THE JAPAN GROUNDS A whale off Hong Kong—The
skipper and his "'bomb-gun"—Injury to the captain—Unwelcome
visitors—The heathen Chinee—We get safe off—"Death of Portagee
Jim"—The Funeral—The Coast of Japan—Port Lloyd—Meeting of
whale-ships.
CHAPTER XIV—LIBERTY DAY—AND AFTER Liberty day—I foregather with
a "beach-comber"—A big fight—Goliath on the war-path—A
court-martial—Wholesale flogging—a miserable crowd—Quite a fleet of
whale-ships—I "raise" a sperm whale—Severe competition—An unfortunate
stroke—The skipper distinguishes himself.
CHAPTER XV—WHICH COMES UNCOMFORTABLY NEAR BEING THE LAST I come
to grief—Emulating Jonah—Sharing a flurry—A long spell of
sick-leave—The whale's "sixth sense"—Off to the Kuriles—Prepare for
"bowhead" fishing—The Sea of Okhotsk—Abundant salmon—The "daintiness"
of seamen.
CHAPTER XVI—"BOWHEAD" FISHING Difference between whales—Popular ideas
exploded—The gentle mysticetus—Very tame work—Fond of tongue—Goliath
confides in me—An awful affair—Captain Slocum's death—"Not Amurath an
Amurath succeeds"—I am promoted.
CHAPTER XVII—VISIT TO HONOLULU Towards Honolulu—Missionaries and their
critics—The happy Kanaka—Honolulu—A pleasant holiday.
CHAPTER XVIII—ON THE "LINE" GROUNDS I get my opportunity—A
new harpooner—Feats under the skipper's eye—Two whales on one
line—Compliments Heavy towage—A grand haul.
CHAPTER XIX—EDGING SOUTHWARD Monotony—A school of blackfish—A boat
ripped in half—A multitude of sharks—A curious backbone—Christmas
Day—A novel Christmas dinner—A find of ambergris.
CHAPTER XX—"HUMPBACKING" AT VAU VAU "Gamming" again—a
Whitechapel rover—arrive at Vau Vau—Valuable friends—a Sunday
ashore—"Hollingside"—The natives at church—Full-dress—Very
"mishnally"—Idyllic cruising—Wonderful mother-love—A mighty feast.
CHAPTER XXI—PROGRESS OF THE "HUMPBACK" SEASON A fruitless chase—Placid
times—a stirring adventure—a vast cave—Unforeseen company—A night
of terror—We provide a feast for the sharks—the death of Abner—An
impressive ceremony—an invitation to dinner—Kanaka cookery.
CHAPTER XXII—FAREWELL TO VAU VAU Ignorance of the habits of whales—A
terrific encounter—VAE VICTIS—Rewarding our "flems"—We leave Van
Vau—The Outward bounder—Sailors' "homes"—A night of horror—Sudden
death—Futuna.
CHAPTER XXIII—AT FUTUNA, RECRUITING A fleet of nondescripts—"Tui
Tongoa" otherwise Sam—Eager recruits—Devout Catholics—A visit to
Sunday Island—A Crusoe family—Their eviction—Maori cabbage—Fine
fishing—Away for New Zealand—Sight the "Three Kings"—The Bay of
Islands.
CHAPTER XXIV—THE BAY OF ISLANDS AND NEW ZEALAND COAST Sleepy
hollow—Wood and water—liberty day—A plea for the sailors'
recreation—Our picnic—A a whiff of "May"—A delightful excursion—To
the southward again—Wintry weather—Enter Foveaux Straits.
CHAPTER XXV—ON THE SOLANDER GROUNDS Firstfruits of the Solander—An
easy catch—Delights of the Solander—Port William—The
old CHANCE—"Paddy Gilroy"—Barbarians from the East
End—Barracouta-Fishing—Wind-bound—An enormous school of
cachalots—Misfortune—A bursting whale—Back on the Solander
again—Cutting-in at Port William—Studying anatomy—Badly battered
Yankees—Paddy in luck again.
CHAPTER XXVI—PADDY'S LATEST EXPLOIT We try Preservation Inlet—An
astounding feat of Paddy Gilroy's.
CHAPTER XXVII—PORT PEGASUS Port Pegasus—Among old
acquaintances—"Mutton birds"—Skilled auxiliaries—A gratifying
catch—Leave port again—Back to the Solander—A grim escape—Our last
whales—Into Port William again—Paddy's assistance—We part with our
Kanakas—Sam's plans of conquest.
CHAPTER XXVIII—TO THE BLUFF, AND HOME And last—In high-toned
company—Another picnic—Depart from the Bluff—Hey for the Horn!—Among
the icebergs—"Scudding"—Favouring trades—A narrow escape from
collision—Home at last.
CHAPTER I—SETTING SAIL Lost in New Bedford—I find a ship—A
mixed crowd—"Built by the mile, and cut off as needed"—Mister
Jones—Newbies—Off to sea.
CHAPTER II—GETTING READY Basic steering gear—Strange
drills—Misery below deck—Limited supplies—Goliath outfits the
"crow's-nest"—Helpful info—Preparing for battle—Unusual
weapons—A boat-load.
CHAPTER III—FISHING STARTS The cleanliness of a whaling ship—No
hiding out—Porpoise fishing—Cannibals—Cooking tasks—Boat drills—A
good watch—"Black-fishing"—Scams in every trade—Lots of fresh
meat—The training ground for American whalers.
CHAPTER IV—ROUGH WEATHER Nautical routine—The first storm—Comfort
versus speed—A very seaworthy vessel—The Sargasso Sea—Natural history
pursuits—Dolphin—Unusual fishing—Rumors of a
visit to the Cape Verdes—Chaos below—No rationing, but not "full and plenty"—Odd
washing—Method of sharing rations—The "slop-shop" opened—Our
outlook.
CHAPTER V—ACTUAL WHALING. OUR FIRST WHALE Bad feelings—Discussion
about whaling from unknown premises—I wake in a panic—Sperm whales
at last—The fight begins—Warning—We get caught—and break free—In
a bind—an uncomfortable situation—No sympathy—Only one whale—Setting up the
"cutting stage"—Securing the whale alongside.
CHAPTER VI—"DIRTY WORK FOR CLEAN MONEY" Goliath in trouble—Start
"cutting in"—A heavy head—A tank of spermaceti—Decks covered
in oil—A "Patented" mincing machine—Extensive cooking—Dangerous
work—Three tubs of oil—A terrible mess—A thin-skinned monster—A fine
mouth full of teeth.
CHAPTER VII—HEADING SOUTH Captain Slocum's
niceties—Expensive beer—St. Paul's Rocks—"Bonito"—"Showery"
weather—Waterspouts—Calms—A friendly finback—A lecture on
whales by Mister Jones—Flying fishing.
CHAPTER VIII—ABNER'S WHALE Abner got lucky—A big "fish" at last—A test
of endurance—A fighting whale—The sperm whale's food—Ambergris—A
warm welcome—Hard work—Abner's reward—"Scrimshaw".
CHAPTER IX—OUR FIRST STOP A forced march—Tristan
d'Acunha—Visitors—Fresh food—A warm welcome—Goliath's
turn—a flock of birds—Good gear—A rough time—Heading
north—Uncertainty—"Rule of thumb"—navigation—The Mozambique Channel.
CHAPTER X—VISITING STRANGE PLACES Tropical thunderstorms—A
"record" day of fishing—Cetacean antics—Mister Jones gives a moral lesson—A
snug harbor—Wood and water—Catching a turtle—Catching a
"Tartar"—A violent death—A crooked jaw—Aldabra Island—Primitive
inhabitants—An unusual horse—"Pirate" birds—Good eggs—Green
coconuts—More turtle—A pod of "kogia".
CHAPTER XI—AROUND THE COCOS AND SEYCHELLES We face a "cyclone"—A
strong wind—A sinking ship—Anchoring for repairs—The
Cocos—Fixing damages—Around the Seychelles—A "milk" sea—A
derelict prahu—A ghastly load—A still sea.
CHAPTER XII—THE KRAKEN "Eyes and no eyes" at sea—About
big mollusks—The origins of sea monster stories—Rediscovery of the
"Kraken"—A clash of monsters—"The insatiable nightmares of the
sea"—Spermaceti wasted—The East Indian maze.
CHAPTER XIII—OFF TO JAPAN GROUNDS A whale off Hong Kong—The
captain and his "'bomb-gun"—Injury to the captain—Unwelcome
visitors—The heathen Chinese—We get off safely—"Death of Portagee
Jim"—The Funeral—The Coast of Japan—Port Lloyd—Meeting of
whaling ships.
CHAPTER XIV—LIBERTY DAY—AND AFTER Liberty Day—I meet up with
a "beachcomber"—A big fight—Goliath on the attack—A
court-martial—Mass flogging—a miserable crowd—Quite a fleet of
whalers—I "spot" a sperm whale—Fierce competition—An unfortunate
blow—The captain makes a name for himself.
CHAPTER XV—NEARLY THE LAST I face
disaster—Trying to be like Jonah—Sharing a scare—A long stretch of
sick leave—The whale's "sixth sense"—Heading for the Kuriles—Getting ready for
"bowhead" fishing—The Sea of Okhotsk—Plenty of salmon—The "fineness"
of seamen.
CHAPTER XVI—"BOWHEAD" FISHING Differences between whales—Common beliefs
debunked—The gentle mysticetus—Very easy work—Fond of tongues—Goliath
confides in me—A terrible incident—Captain Slocum's death—"Not Amurath an
Amurath succeeds"—I get promoted.
CHAPTER XVII—VISIT TO HONOLULU Heading toward Honolulu—Missionaries and their
critics—The happy Kanaka—Honolulu—A pleasant vacation.
CHAPTER XVIII—ON THE "LINE" GROUNDS I seize my chance—A
new harpooner—Impressive feats under the captain's gaze—Two whales on one
line—Compliments Heavy towing—A huge catch.
CHAPTER XIX—MOVING SOUTH Monotony—A school of blackfish—A boat
torn in half—A multitude of sharks—An intriguing backbone—Christmas
Day—A unique Christmas dinner—A find of ambergris.
CHAPTER XX—"HUMPBACKING" AT VAU VAU "Gamming" again—A
Whitechapel rover—arrive at Vau Vau—Valuable friends—a Sunday
on land—"Hollingside"—The locals at church—Dress up—Very
"mishnally"—Idyllic cruising—Incredible mother-love—A grand feast.
CHAPTER XXI—PROGRESS OF THE "HUMPBACK" SEASON A fruitless chase—Calm
times—A thrilling adventure—A vast cave—Unexpected company—A night
of fear—We provide a feast for the sharks—the death of Abner—A
moving ceremony—an invite to dinner—Kanaka cooking.
CHAPTER XXII—FAREWELL TO VAU VAU Ignorance of whale habits—A
terrifying encounter—VAE VICTIS—Rewarding our "flems"—We leave Van
Vau—The Outward bounder—Sailors' "homes"—A night of fear—Sudden
death—Futuna.
CHAPTER XXIII—AT FUTUNA, RECRUITING A fleet of eccentrics—"Tui
Tongoa" also known as Sam—Eager recruits—Devout Catholics—A visit to
Sunday Island—A Crusoe family—Their eviction—Maori cabbage—Great
fishing—Onward to New Zealand—Spot the "Three Kings"—The Bay of
Islands.
CHAPTER XXIV—THE BAY OF ISLANDS AND NEW ZEALAND COAST Sleepy
hollow—Wood and water—liberty day—A request for the sailors'
recreation—Our picnic—A hint of "May"—A wonderful trip—To
the southward again—Cold weather—Entering Foveaux Straits.
CHAPTER XXV—ON THE SOLANDER GROUNDS First fruits of the Solander—An
easy catch—The pleasures of the Solander—Port William—The
old CHANCE—"Paddy Gilroy"—Barbarians from the East
End—Barracouta fishing—Wind bound—An enormous school of
cachalots—Misfortune—A bursting whale—Back on the Solander
once more—Cutting at Port William—Studying anatomy—Badly battered
Yankees—Paddy lucky again.
CHAPTER XXVI—PADDY'S LATEST EXPLOIT We attempt Preservation Inlet—An
astounding feat by Paddy Gilroy.
CHAPTER XXVII—PORT PEGASUS Port Pegasus—With old
acquaintances—"Mutton birds"—Skilled helpers—A satisfying
catch—Leave port again—Back to the Solander—A narrow escape—Our last
whales—Into Port William once more—Paddy's help—We say goodbye to our
Kanakas—Sam's plans of conquest.
CHAPTER XXVIII—TO THE BLUFF, AND HOME Finally— In great
company—Another picnic—Departing from the Bluff—Hey for the Horn!—Among
the icebergs—"Scudding"—Favorable trades—A narrow escape from
a collision—Home at last.
INTRODUCTION
Without attempting the ambitious task of presenting a comprehensive sketch of the origin, rise, and fall of whale-fishing as a whole, it seems necessary to give a brief outline of that portion of the subject bearing upon the theme of the present book before plunging into the first chapter.
Without trying to take on the huge task of giving a complete overview of the origin, rise, and fall of whale fishing as a whole, it's important to provide a quick outline of the part of the subject that relates to the theme of this book before diving into the first chapter.
This preliminary is the more needed for the reason alluded to in the Preface—the want of knowledge of the subject that is apparent everywhere. The Greenland whale fishery has been so popularized that most people know something about it; the sperm whale fishery still awaits its Scoresby and a like train of imitators and borrowers.
This introduction is especially necessary because, as mentioned in the Preface, there's a clear lack of knowledge about the subject. The Greenland whale fishery has become so well-known that most people are somewhat familiar with it; however, the sperm whale fishery still needs its own Scoresby and followers who will imitate and borrow from it.
Cachalots, or sperm whales, must have been captured on the coasts of Europe in a desultory way from a very early date, by the incidental allusions to the prime products spermaceti and ambergris which are found in so many ancient writers, Shakespeare's reference—"The sovereign'st thing on earth was parmaceti for an inward bruise"—will be familiar to most people, as well as Milton's mention of the delicacies at Satan's feast—"Grisamber steamed"—not to carry quotation any further.
Cachalots, or sperm whales, must have been captured along the coasts of Europe in a scattered manner from a very early time, as suggested by the frequent mentions of key products like spermaceti and ambergris in many ancient texts. Shakespeare's line—"The most valuable thing on earth was spermaceti for an internal bruise"—is likely known to most people, just like Milton's reference to the delicacies at Satan's feast—"Ambergris steamed"—without needing to quote any further.
But in the year 1690 the brave and hardy fishermen of the north-east coasts of North America established that systematic pursuit of the cachalot which has thriven so wonderfully ever since, although it must be confessed that the last few years have witnessed a serious decline in this great branch of trade.
But in 1690, the courageous and resilient fishermen from the north-east coasts of North America started the systematic hunting of the cachalot, which has thrived remarkably ever since. However, it must be acknowledged that the past few years have seen a significant decline in this major trade.
For many years the American colonists completely engrossed this branch of the whale fishery, contentedly leaving to Great Britain and the continental nations the monopoly of the northern or Arctic fisheries, while they cruised the stormy, if milder, seas around their own shores.
For many years, American colonists fully engaged in this part of the whale fishery, happily letting Great Britain and other continental nations control the northern or Arctic fisheries, while they navigated the stormy, though milder, seas along their own coasts.
For the resultant products, their best customer was the mother country, and a lucrative commerce steadily grew up between the two countries. But when the march of events brought the unfortunate and wholly unnecessary War of Independence, this flourishing trade was the first to suffer, and many of the daring fishermen became our fiercest foes on board their own men-of-war.
For the resulting products, their biggest customer was the home country, and a profitable trade steadily developed between the two nations. However, when events led to the unfortunate and completely unnecessary War of Independence, this thriving commerce was the first to take a hit, and many of the bold fishermen became our fiercest enemies aboard their own warships.
The total stoppage of the importation of sperm oil and spermaceti was naturally severely felt in England, for time had not permitted the invention of substitutes. In consequence of this, ten ships were equipped and sent out to the sperm whale fishery from England in 1776, most of them owned by one London firm, the Messrs. Enderby. The next year, in order to encourage the infant enterprise, a Government bounty, graduated from L500 to L1000 per ship, was granted. Under this fostering care the number of ships engaged in the sperm whale fishery progressively increased until 1791, when it attained its maximum.
The complete halt of importing sperm oil and spermaceti hit England hard, as there hadn't been enough time to come up with alternatives. As a result, ten ships were outfitted and sent to the sperm whale fishery from England in 1776, most of them owned by a single London firm, the Messrs. Enderby. The following year, to support this new venture, the government offered a bounty ranging from £500 to £1000 per ship. With this support, the number of ships involved in the sperm whale fishery steadily grew until it peaked in 1791.
This method of whaling being quite new to our whalemen, it was necessary, at great cost, to hire American officers and harpooners to instruct them in the ways of dealing with these highly active and dangerous cetacea. Naturally, it was by-and-by found possible to dispense with the services of these auxiliaries; but it must be confessed that the business never seems to have found such favour, or to have been prosecuted with such smartness, among our whalemen as it has by the Americans.
This method of whaling was pretty new for our whalers, so it was necessary, at great expense, to hire American officers and harpooners to teach them how to handle these highly active and dangerous whales. Eventually, it turned out to be possible to do without these helpers; however, it must be admitted that the business never seemed to be as popular or carried out with the same efficiency among our whalers as it was by the Americans.
Something of an exotic the trade always was among us, although it did attain considerable proportions at one time. At first the fishing was confined to the Atlantic Ocean; nor for many years was it necessary to go farther afield, as abundance of whales could easily be found.
The trade was somewhat exotic for us, even though it did reach significant levels at one point. Initially, the fishing was limited to the Atlantic Ocean; for many years, there was no need to venture farther, as there were plenty of whales readily available.
As, however, the number of ships engaged increased, it was inevitable that the known grounds should become exhausted, and in 1788 Messrs. Enderby's ship, the EMILIA, first ventured round Cape Horn, as the pioneer of a greater trade than ever. The way once pointed out, other ships were not slow to follow, until, in 1819, the British whale-ship SYREN opened up the till then unexplored tract of ocean in the western part of the North Pacific, afterwards familiarly known as the "Coast of Japan." From these teeming waters alone, for many years an average annual catch of 40,000 barrels of oil was taken, which, at the average price of L8 per barrel, will give some idea of the value of the trade generally.
As the number of ships involved increased, it was inevitable that the known areas would become depleted. In 1788, Enderby’s ship, the EMILIA, became the first to venture around Cape Horn, leading to a larger trade than ever before. Once this route was established, other ships quickly followed, until in 1819, the British whaling ship SYREN explored the previously uncharted waters in the western part of the North Pacific, which later became widely known as the "Coast of Japan." From these rich waters alone, an average annual catch of 40,000 barrels of oil was harvested for many years, which, at an average price of £8 per barrel, indicates the overall value of the trade.
The Australian colonists, early in their career, found the sperm whale fishery easy of access from all their coasts, and especially lucrative. At one time they bade fair to establish a whale fishery that should rival the splendid trade of the Americans; but, like the mother country, they permitted the fishery to decline, so that even bounties could not keep it alive.
The Australian colonists, early in their journey, found the sperm whale fishery easily accessible from all their coasts and especially profitable. At one point, they seemed on track to create a whale fishery that could compete with the impressive trade of the Americans; however, like the mother country, they allowed the fishery to decline, so much so that even incentives couldn't keep it going.
Meanwhile, the Americans added to their fleet continually, prospering amazingly. But suddenly the advent of the civil war let loose among those peaceable cruisers the devastating ALABAMA, whose course was marked in some parts of the world by the fires of blazing whale-ships. A great part, of the Geneva award was on this account, although it must be acknowledged that many pseudo-owners were enriched who never owned aught but brazen impudence and influential friends to push their fictitious claims. The real sufferers, seamen especially, in most cases never received any redress whatever.
Meanwhile, the Americans kept adding to their fleet and were thriving unexpectedly. But then, the start of the civil war unleashed the destructive ALABAMA among those peaceful cruisers, whose path was marked in some parts of the world by the fires of burning whaling ships. A significant portion of the Geneva award was due to this, although it must be recognized that many fake owners got rich who never owned anything except for blatant arrogance and well-connected friends to support their false claims. The actual victims, especially the seamen, in most cases never received any compensation at all.
From this crushing blow the American sperm whale fishery has never fully recovered. When the writer was in the trade, some twenty-two years ago, it was credited with a fleet of between three and four hundred sail; now it may be doubted whether the numbers reach an eighth of that amount. A rigid conservatism of method hinders any revival of the industry, which is practically conducted to-day as it was fifty, or even a hundred years ago; and it is probable that another decade will witness the final extinction of what was once one of the most important maritime industries in the world.
The American sperm whale fishery has never fully bounced back from this heavy blow. When I was in the business about twenty-two years ago, it had a fleet of around three to four hundred ships; now, it's questionable if the numbers even reach an eighth of that. Sticking rigidly to old methods prevents any revival of the industry, which is basically run today just like it was fifty, or even a hundred years ago. It's likely that in another decade, we'll see the complete disappearance of what was once one of the most significant maritime industries in the world.
THE CRUISE OF THE "CACHALOT"
CHAPTER I. OUTWARD BOUND
At the age of eighteen, after a sea-experience of six years from the time when I dodged about London streets, a ragged Arab, with wits sharpened by the constant fight for food, I found myself roaming the streets of New Bedford, Massachusetts. How I came to be there, of all places in the world, does not concern this story at all, so I am not going to trouble my readers with it; enough to say that I WAS there, and mighty anxious to get away. Sailor Jack is always hankering for shore when he is at sea, but when he is "outward bound"—that is, when his money is all gone—he is like a cat in the rain there.
At eighteen, after spending six years at sea since I was a scruffy kid navigating the streets of London, I found myself wandering the streets of New Bedford, Massachusetts. How I ended up there, of all places, isn’t relevant to this story, so I won’t bother you with the details; just know that I was there and really wanted to leave. A sailor always longs for land when he’s at sea, but when he’s "outward bound"—meaning when he’s out of money—he feels as lost as a cat caught in the rain.
So as MY money was all gone, I was hungry for a ship; and when a long, keen-looking man with a goat-like beard, and mouth stained with dry tobacco-juice, hailed me one afternoon at the street-corner, I answered very promptly, scenting a berth. "Lookin' fer a ship, stranger?" said he. "Yes; do you want a hand?" said I, anxiously. He made a funny little sound something like a pony's whinny, then answered, "Wall, I should surmise that I want between fifty and sixty hands, ef yew kin lay me onto 'em; but, kem along, every dreep's a drop, an' yew seem likely enough." With that he turned and led the way until we reached a building around which were gathered one of the most nondescript crowds I had ever seen. There certainly did not appear to be a sailor among them. Not so much by their rig, though that is not a great deal to go by, but by their actions and speech. One thing they all had in common, tobacco chewing but as nearly every male I met with in America did that, it was not much to be noticed. I had hardly done reckoning them up when two or three bustling men came out and shepherded us all energetically into a long, low room, where some form of agreement was read out to us. Sailors are naturally and usually careless about the nature of the "articles" they sign, their chief anxiety being to get to sea, and under somebody's charge. But had I been ever so anxious to know what I was going to sign this time, I could not, for the language might as well have been Chinese for all I understood of it. However, I signed and passed on, engaged to go I knew not where, in some ship I did not know even the name of, in which I was to receive I did not know how much, or how little, for my labour, nor how long I was going to be away. "What a young fool!" I hear somebody say. I quite agree, but there were a good many more in that ship, as in most ships that I have ever sailed in.
So since I was out of money, I was eager for a ship; and when a tall, sharp-looking guy with a goat-like beard and a mouth stained with dry tobacco juice called out to me one afternoon at the street corner, I quickly responded, sensing an opportunity. "Looking for a ship, stranger?" he asked. "Yes; do you need a crew member?" I replied anxiously. He made a strange little sound that was kind of like a pony's whinny, then said, "Well, I’d guess I need between fifty and sixty hands, if you can point them out to me; but come along, every drop counts, and you seem promising enough." With that, he turned and led the way until we reached a building surrounded by one of the most mismatched crowds I had ever seen. There definitely didn’t seem to be a sailor among them. Not so much by their clothing, which isn’t much to go by, but by their behavior and speech. One thing they all had in common was chewing tobacco, but since almost every guy I met in America did that, it wasn’t particularly noteworthy. I had barely finished sizing them up when a couple of busy guys came out and hurried us all into a long, low room, where some type of agreement was read to us. Sailors are typically careless about the details of the "articles" they sign; their main concern is getting to sea and being under someone else's supervision. But even if I had been desperate to know what I was signing this time, I wouldn’t have been able to, as the language might as well have been Chinese for all I understood of it. Still, I signed and moved on, committed to going who knows where, on a ship whose name I didn’t even know, for a payment I had no idea of, and for an indefinite length of time. "What a young fool!" I can hear someone say. I completely agree, but there were quite a few more just like me on that ship, as in most ships I’ve ever sailed on.
From the time we signed the articles, we were never left to ourselves. Truculent-looking men accompanied us to our several boarding-houses, paid our debts for us, finally bringing us by boat to a ship lying out in the bay. As we passed under her stern, I read the name CACHALOT, of New Bedford; but as soon as we ranged alongside, I realized that I was booked for the sailor's horror—a cruise in a whaler. Badly as I wanted to get to sea, I had not bargained for this, and would have run some risks to get ashore again; but they took no chances, so we were all soon aboard. Before going forward, I took a comprehensive glance around, and saw that I was on board of a vessel belonging to a type which has almost disappeared off the face of the waters. A more perfect contrast to the trim-built English clipper-ships that I had been accustomed to I could hardly imagine. She was one of a class characterized by sailors as "built by the mile, and cut off in lengths as you want 'em," bow and stern almost alike, masts standing straight as broomsticks, and bowsprit soaring upwards at an angle of about forty-five degrees. She was as old-fashioned in her rig as in her hull; but I must not go into the technical differences between rigs, for fear of making myself tedious. Right in the centre of the deck, occupying a space of about ten feet by eight, was a square erection of brickwork, upon which my wondering gaze rested longest, for I had not the slightest idea what it could be. But I was rudely roused from my meditations by the harsh voice of one of the officers, who shouted, "Naow then, git below an' stow yer dunnage, 'n look lively up agin." I took the broad hint, and shouldering my traps, hurried forward to the fo'lk'sle, which was below deck. Tumbling down the steep ladder, I entered the gloomy den which was to be for so long my home, finding it fairly packed with my shipmates. A motley crowd they were. I had been used in English ships to considerable variety of nationality; but here were gathered, not only the representatives of five or six nations, but 'long-shoremen of all kinds, half of whom had hardly ever set eyes on a ship before! The whole space was undivided by partition, but I saw at once that black men and white had separated themselves, the blacks taking the port side and the whites the starboard. Finding a vacant bunk by the dim glimmer of the ancient teapot lamp that hung amidships, giving out as much smoke as light, I hurriedly shifted my coat for a "jumper" or blouse, put on an old cap, and climbed into the fresh air again. For a double reason, even MY seasoned head was feeling bad with the villainous reek of the place, and I did not want any of those hard-featured officers on deck to have any cause to complain of my "hanging back." On board ship, especially American ships, the first requisite for a sailor who wants to be treated properly is to "show willing," any suspicion of slackness being noted immediately, and the backward one marked accordingly. I had hardly reached the deck when I was confronted by a negro, the biggest I ever saw in, my life. He looked me up and down for a moment, then opening his ebony features in a wide smile, he said, "Great snakes! why, here's a sailor man for sure! Guess thet's so, ain't it, Johnny?" I said "yes" very curtly, for I hardly liked his patronizing air; but he snapped me up short with "yes, SIR, when yew speak to me, yew blank lime-juicer. I'se de fourf mate ob dis yar ship, en my name's Mistah Jones, 'n yew, jest freeze on to dat ar, ef yew want ter lib long'n die happy. See, sonny." I SAW, and answered promptly, "I beg your pardon, sir, I didn't know." "Ob cawse yew didn't know, dat's all right, little Britisher; naow jest skip aloft 'n loose dat fore-taupsle." "Aye, aye, sir," I answered cheerily, springing at once into the fore-rigging and up the ratlines like a monkey, but not too fast to hear him chuckle, "Dat's a smart kiddy, I bet." I had the big sail loose in double quick time, and sung out "All gone, the fore-taupsle," before any of the other sails were adrift. "Loose the to-gantsle and staysles" came up from below in a voice like thunder, and I bounded up higher to my task. On deck I could see a crowd at the windlass heaving up anchor. I said to myself, "They don't waste any time getting this packet away." Evidently they were not anxious to test any of the crew's swimming powers. They were wise, for had she remained at anchor that night I verily believe some of the poor wretches would have tried to escape.
From the moment we signed the articles, we were never left on our own. Tough-looking men escorted us to our various boarding houses, settled our debts for us, and eventually brought us by boat to a ship anchored in the bay. As we passed under her stern, I saw the name CACHALOT from New Bedford; but as soon as we pulled alongside, I realized I was booked for the sailor's nightmare—a cruise on a whaling ship. As much as I wanted to get to sea, I hadn’t signed up for this, and would have taken some risks to get back to shore, but they weren't taking any chances, so we were all soon aboard. Before heading forward, I took a good look around and realized I was on a type of vessel that has nearly vanished from the seas. It was hard to imagine a more perfect contrast to the sleek English clipper-ships I was used to. She belonged to a class described by sailors as "built by the mile, and cut off in lengths as you want 'em," with bow and stern looking almost the same, masts standing straight as broomsticks, and a bowsprit shooting up at about a forty-five degree angle. She was as old-fashioned in her rigging as in her structure; but I won't get into the technical differences between rigs, to avoid sounding boring. Right in the center of the deck, taking up a space of about ten feet by eight, was a square structure of brickwork, my curious gaze resting on it the longest, as I had no idea what it could be. But I was abruptly pulled from my thoughts by the harsh voice of one of the officers shouting, "Now then, get below and stow your gear, and look lively again." I took the hint and, shouldering my things, quickly went forward to the forecastle, which was below deck. Tumbling down the steep ladder, I entered the dim den that was to be my home for a long time, finding it crowded with my shipmates. They were a mixed bunch. I had been used to a good variety of nationalities on English ships, but here were not only representatives from five or six countries, but also dockworkers of all kinds, half of whom had probably never seen a ship before! The space was open, but I noticed right away that black men and white men had separated themselves, with the blacks taking the port side and the whites the starboard. Spotting a vacant bunk by the dim light of the old teapot lamp that hung in the middle, giving off more smoke than light, I quickly changed my coat for a "jumper" or blouse, put on an old cap, and climbed back up into the fresh air. For two reasons, even with my experience, I was feeling queasy from the terrible smell below, and I didn’t want any of those stern officers on deck to think I was slacking off. On a ship, especially American ones, the first thing a sailor needs to do to be treated well is to show eagerness; any hint of laziness is immediately noted, and the sluggish one gets labeled. I had barely reached the deck when I was confronted by a black man, the biggest I had ever seen in my life. He sized me up for a moment, then broke into a wide smile and said, "Great snakes! Why, here's a sailor man for sure! Guess that’s true, isn’t it, Johnny?" I said "yes" very shortly, as I didn’t like his patronizing tone; but he quickly retorted, "Yes, SIR, when you speak to me, you blank lime-juicer. I'm the fourth mate of this ship, and my name's Mister Jones, and you better remember that if you want to live long and die happy. Got it, son?" I GOT it, and quickly replied, "I apologize, sir, I didn’t know." "Of course you didn’t know, that’s all right, little Britisher; now just go aloft and loose that fore-topsail." "Aye, aye, sir," I answered cheerfully, springing into the fore rigging and climbing up the ratlines like a monkey, but not too fast to miss him chuckling, "That’s a smart kid, I bet." I had the big sail loose in no time and shouted, "All gone, the fore-topsail," before any of the other sails were free. "Loose the t'gallant and staysails," came a command from below in a voice like thunder, and I climbed higher to get my task done. On deck, I could see a crowd at the windlass raising the anchor. I thought to myself, "They don’t waste any time getting this ship moving." Clearly, they weren’t keen on testing the crew's swimming abilities. They were wise, because if we had stayed anchored that night, I truly believe some of the poor souls would have tried to escape.
The anchor came aweigh, the sails were sheeted home, and I returned on deck to find the ship gathering way for the heads, fairly started on her long voyage.
The anchor was lifted, the sails were set, and I went back on deck to see the ship picking up speed, officially beginning her long journey.
What a bear-garden the deck was, to be sure! The black portion of the crew—Portuguese natives from the Western and Canary Islands—were doing their work all right in a clumsy fashion; but the farmers, and bakers, and draymen were being driven about mercilessly amid a perfect hurricane of profanity and blows. And right here I must say that, accustomed as I had always been to bad language all my life, what I now heard was a revelation to me. I would not, if I could, attempt to give a sample of it, but it must be understood that it was incessant throughout the voyage. No order could be given without it, under the impression, apparently, that the more curses the more speed.
What a chaotic scene the deck was, for sure! The black part of the crew—Portuguese natives from the Western and Canary Islands—were doing their jobs, albeit clumsily; but the farmers, bakers, and truck drivers were being herded around ruthlessly in a total storm of swearing and hitting. I have to mention that, even though I had always been around bad language, what I heard now was eye-opening. I wouldn't even try to give a sample, but it has to be noted that it was non-stop throughout the journey. No order could be given without it, apparently believing that the more curses, the faster things would go.
Before nightfall we were fairly out to sea, and the ceremony of dividing the crew into watches was gone through. I found myself in the chief mate's or "port" watch (they called it "larboard," a term I had never heard used before, it having long been obsolete in merchant ships), though the huge negro fourth mate seemed none too well pleased that I was not under his command, his being the starboard watch under the second mate.
Before nightfall, we were pretty far out to sea, and the ceremony of dividing the crew into shifts took place. I found myself in the chief mate's or "port" watch (they called it "larboard," a term I had never heard before, as it had long been outdated in merchant ships), although the large Black fourth mate didn’t seem too happy that I wasn’t under his command, since he was in the starboard watch under the second mate.
As night fell, the condition of the "greenies," or non-sailor portion of the crew, was pitiable. Helpless from sea-sickness, not knowing where to go or what to do, bullied relentlessly by the ruthless petty officers—well, I never felt so sorry for a lot of men in my life. Glad enough I was to get below into the fo'lk'sle for supper, and a brief rest and respite from that cruelty on deck. A bit of salt junk and a piece of bread, i.e. biscuit, flinty as a pantile, with a pot of something sweetened with "longlick" (molasses), made an apology for a meal, and I turned in. In a very few minutes oblivion came, making me as happy as any man can be in this world.
As night fell, the condition of the "greenies," or the non-sailor part of the crew, was pitiful. They were helpless from seasickness, not knowing where to go or what to do, and constantly bullied by the cruel petty officers—I've never felt so sorry for a group of men in my life. I was more than ready to head down to the fo'k'sle for dinner and a brief break from the harshness on deck. A bit of salted meat and a piece of hardtack, as tough as a tile, along with a pot of something sweetened with molasses, barely passed for a meal, and I went to bed. Within minutes, I was out cold, feeling as happy as anyone can in this world.
CHAPTER II. PREPARING FOR ACTION
The hideous noise always considered necessary in those ships when calling the watch, roused me effectively at midnight, "eight bells." I hurried on deck, fully aware that no leisurely ten minutes would be allowed here. "Lay aft the watch," saluted me as I emerged into the keen strong air, quickening my pace according to where the mate stood waiting to muster his men. As soon as he saw me, he said, "Can you steer?" in a mocking tone; but when I quietly answered, "Yes, sir," his look of astonishment was delightful to see. He choked it down, however, and merely telling me to take the wheel, turned forrard roaring frantically for his watch. I had no time to chuckle over what I knew was in store for him, getting those poor greenies collected from their several holes and corners, for on taking the wheel I found a machine under my hands such as I never even heard of before.
The terrible noise that was always thought necessary on those ships to wake the crew jolted me awake at midnight, "eight bells." I rushed on deck, fully aware that I wouldn't be given a leisurely ten minutes here. "Lay aft the watch," greeted me as I stepped into the brisk, strong air, speeding up toward where the mate was waiting to gather his men. As soon as he saw me, he asked, "Can you steer?" in a sarcastic tone; but when I calmly replied, "Yes, sir," his look of surprise was a joy to see. He swallowed his reaction, though, and simply told me to take the wheel before he turned forward, yelling loudly for his watch. I didn't have time to laugh at what I knew was coming for him, rounding up those poor newbies from their hiding spots, because once I took the wheel, I found myself handling a machine I had never even heard of before.
The wheel was fixed upon the tiller in such a manner that the whole concern travelled backwards and forwards across the deck in the maddest kind of way. For the first quarter of an hour, in spite of the September chill, the sweat poured off me in streams. And the course—well, if was not steering, it was sculling; the old bumboat was wobbling all around like a drunken tailor with two left legs. I fairly shook with apprehension lest the mate should come and look in the compass. I had been accustomed to hard words if I did not steer within half a point each way; but here was a "gadget" that worked me to death, the result being a wake like a letter S. Gradually I got the hang of the thing, becoming easier in my mind on my own account. Even that was not an unmixed blessing, for I had now some leisure to listen to the goings-on around the deck.
The wheel was attached to the tiller in such a way that the whole setup moved back and forth across the deck in the craziest manner. For the first half hour, despite the September chill, I was sweating buckets. And the course—well, if I wasn’t steering, I was sculling; the old bumboat was swaying all over like a drunken tailor with two left feet. I was really nervous that the mate would come check the compass. I was used to getting an earful if I didn’t steer within half a point either way; but now there was this "gadget" that worked me to exhaustion, leaving a wake like a letter S. Slowly, I started to get the hang of it, feeling more relaxed as I went along. Even that wasn’t all good, because now I had some free time to listen to everything happening around the deck.
Such brutality I never witnessed before. On board of English ships (except men-of-war) there is practically no discipline, which is bad, but this sort of thing was maddening. I knew how desperately ill all those poor wretches were, how helpless and awkward they would be if quite hale and hearty; but there was absolutely no pity for them, the officers seemed to be incapable of any feelings of compassion whatever. My heart sank within me as I thought of what lay before me, although I did not fear that their treatment would also be mine, since I was at least able to do my duty, and willing to work hard to keep out of trouble. Then I began to wonder what sort of voyage I was in for, how long it would last, and what my earnings were likely to be, none of which things I had the faintest idea of.
I had never seen such cruelty before. On English ships (except for warships), there's basically no discipline, which is bad enough, but this kind of behavior was infuriating. I understood how desperately ill those poor souls were, how helpless and clumsy they would be even if they were completely healthy; yet there was absolutely no compassion for them—the officers seemed incapable of feeling any sympathy at all. My heart sank as I considered what was ahead of me, although I didn't fear that I would be treated the same way since I could at least do my job and was ready to work hard to avoid any trouble. Then I started to wonder what kind of journey I was in for, how long it would take, and what my pay would be, none of which I had the faintest clue about.
Fortunately, I was alone in the world. No one, as far as I knew, cared a straw what became of me; so that I was spared any worry on that head. And I had also a very definite and well-established trust in God, which I can now look back and see was as fully justified as I then believed it to be. So, as I could not shut my ears to the cruelties being carried on, nor banish thought by hard work, I looked up to the stately stars, thinking of things not to be talked about without being suspected of cant. So swiftly passed the time that when four bells struck: (two o'clock) I could hardly believe my ears.
Fortunately, I was alone in the world. No one, as far as I knew, cared at all about what happened to me, so I didn’t have to worry about that. I also had a strong and solid trust in God, which I can now look back on and see was as justified as I believed it to be back then. So, since I couldn’t ignore the cruelty happening around me nor escape my thoughts through hard work, I looked up at the majestic stars, contemplating things that shouldn't be talked about without being seen as insincere. Time passed so quickly that when the bells rang at four (two o'clock), I could hardly believe my ears.
I was relieved by one of the Portuguese, and went forward to witness a curious scene. Seven stalwart men were being compelled to march up and down on that tumbling deck, men who had never before trodden anything less solid than the earth.
I was helped by one of the Portuguese and went ahead to see a strange scene. Seven strong men were being forced to walk back and forth on that unstable deck, men who had never before stepped on anything less solid than the ground.
The third mate, a waspish, spiteful little Yankee with a face like an angry cat, strolled about among them, a strand of rope-yarns in his hand, which he wielded constantly, regardless where he struck a man. They fell about, sometimes four or five at once, and his blows flew thick and fast, yet he never seemed to weary of his ill-doing. It made me quite sick, and I longed to be aft at the wheel again. Catching sight of me standing irresolute as to what I had better do, he ordered me on the "look-out," a tiny platform between the "knight heads," just where the bowsprit joins the ship. Gladly I obeyed him, and perched up there looking over the wide sea, the time passed quickly away until eight bells (four o'clock) terminated my watch. I must pass rapidly over the condition of things in the fo'lk'sle, where all the greenies that were allowed below, were groaning in misery from the stifling atmosphere which made their sickness so much worse, while even that dreadful place was preferable to what awaited them on deck. There was a rainbow-coloured halo round the flame of the lamp, showing how very bad the air was; but in spite of that I turned in and slept soundly till seven bells (7.20 a.m.) roused us to breakfast.
The third mate, a bitter and nasty little guy from the States with a face like an angry cat, roamed around among the crew, swinging a length of rope in his hand, striking anyone without considering where his hits landed. People would fall down, sometimes four or five at a time, and he swung his rope repeatedly, never seeming to get tired of his mean behavior. It made me feel pretty sick, and I wished I could return to the wheel. When he spotted me standing there, unsure of what to do, he ordered me to the "look-out," a small platform between the "knight heads," just where the bowsprit connects to the ship. I happily followed his order and perched up there, gazing out over the vast sea. Time flew by until eight bells (four o'clock) signaled the end of my watch. I have to skip over the situation in the fo'lk'sle, where all the newbies allowed below were groaning in misery from the stuffy air, making their nausea even worse, though even that terrible place was better than what they faced on deck. There was a rainbow-colored halo around the lamp's flame, indicating how bad the air was, but despite that, I crawled into my bunk and slept soundly until seven bells (7:20 a.m.) woke us up for breakfast.
American ships generally have an excellent name for the way they feed their crews, but the whalers are a notable exception to that good rule. The food was really worse than that on board any English ship I have ever sailed in, so scanty also in quantity that it kept all the foremast hands at starvation point. But grumbling was dangerous, so I gulped down the dirty mixture mis-named coffee, ate a few fragments of biscuit, and filled up (?) with a smoke, as many better men are doing this morning. As the bell struck I hurried on deck—not one moment too soon—for as I stepped out of the scuttle I saw the third mate coming forward with a glitter in his eye that boded no good to laggards.
American ships usually have a great reputation for how they feed their crews, but whalers are a notable exception to this. The food was actually worse than anything I’ve had on an English ship, and there was so little that it kept all the foremast hands on the brink of starvation. Complaining was risky, so I choked down the awful stuff they called coffee, nibbled on a few bits of biscuit, and filled up with a smoke, just like many better men are doing this morning. As the bell rang, I rushed on deck—not a moment too soon—because as I climbed out of the hatch, I saw the third mate coming forward with a look in his eye that promised trouble for anyone who was late.
Before going any farther I must apologize for using so many capital I's, but up till the present I had been the only available white member of the crew forrard.
Before going any further, I must apologize for using so many capital I's, but until now I had been the only available white member of the forward crew.
The decks were scrubbed spotlessly clean, and everything was neat and tidy as on board a man-of-war, contrary to all usual notions of the condition of a whaler. The mate was in a state of high activity, so I soon found myself very busily engaged in getting up whale-lines, harpoons, and all the varied equipment for the pursuit of whales. The number of officers carried would have been a good crew for the ship, the complete afterguard comprising captain, four mates, four harpooners or boat-steerers, carpenter, cooper, steward and cook. All these worthies were on deck and working with might and main at the preparations, so that the incompetence of the crowd forrard was little hindrance. I was pounced upon by "Mistah" Jones, the fourth mate, whom I heard addressed familiarly as "Goliath" and "Anak" by his brother officers, and ordered to assist him in rigging the "crow's-nest" at the main royal-mast head. It was a simple affair. There were a pair of cross-trees fitted to the mast, upon which was secured a tiny platform about a foot wide on each side of the mast, while above this foothold a couple of padded hoops like a pair of giant spectacles were secured at a little higher than a man's waist. When all was fast one could creep up on the platform, through the hoop, and, resting his arms upon the latter, stand comfortably and gaze around, no matter how vigorously the old barky plunged and kicked beneath him. From that lofty eyrie I had a comprehensive view of the vessel. She was about 350 tons and full ship-rigged, that is to say, she carried square sails on all three masts. Her deck was flush fore and aft, the only obstructions being the brick-built "try-works" in the waist, the galley, and cabin skylight right aft by the taffrail. Her bulwarks were set thickly round with clumsy looking wooden cranes, from which depended five boats. Two more boats were secured bottom up upon a gallows aft, so she seemed to be well supplied in that direction. Mistah Jones, finding I did not presume upon his condescension, gradually unbent and furnished me with many interesting facts about the officers. Captain Slocum, he said, was "de debbil hisself, so jess yew keeps yer lamps trim' fer him, sonny, taint helthy ter rile him." The first officer, or the mate as he is always called PAR EXCELLENCE, was an older man than the captain, but a good seaman, a good whaleman, and a gentleman. Which combination I found to be a fact, although hard to believe possible at the time. The second mate was a Portuguese about forty years of age, with a face like one of Vandyke's cavaliers, but as I now learned, a perfect fiend when angered. He also was a first-class whaleman, but an indifferent seaman. The third mate was nothing much but bad temper—not much sailor, nor much whaler, generally in hot water with the skipper, who hated him because he was an "owner's man." "An de fourf mate," wound up the narrator, straightening his huge bulk, "am de bes' man in de ship, and de bigges'. Dey aint no whalemen in Noo Bedford caynt teach ME nuffin, en ef it comes ter man-handlin'; w'y I jes' pick 'em two't a time 'n crack 'em togerrer like so, see!" and he smote the palms of his great paws against each other, while I nodded complete assent.
The decks were scrubbed spotless, and everything was neat and tidy like on a warship, which was contrary to the usual expectations of a whaler. The mate was highly active, so I soon found myself very busy getting up whale-lines, harpoons, and all the various equipment for hunting whales. The number of officers would have made a good crew for the ship, with the entire afterguard consisting of the captain, four mates, four harpooners or boat-steerers, a carpenter, cooper, steward, and cook. All of them were on deck, working hard on the preparations, so the ineptitude of the crowd in the front was little hindrance. I was approached by "Mistah" Jones, the fourth mate, who was casually referred to as "Goliath" and "Anak" by his fellow officers, and he ordered me to help him set up the "crow's-nest" at the top of the main royal-mast. It was a simple setup. There were cross-trees attached to the mast, on which a small platform about a foot wide on each side was secured, while above this platform were padded hoops resembling a giant pair of spectacles, a little higher than a man's waist. Once everything was secured, one could climb onto the platform, through the hoop, and, resting his arms on it, comfortably stand and look around, regardless of how much the old ship rocked and rolled beneath. From that high lookout, I had a great view of the vessel. She was about 350 tons and fully rigged, meaning she had square sails on all three masts. Her deck was flush from bow to stern, with only a few obstructions: the brick-built "try-works" in the middle, the galley, and the cabin skylight right at the back by the taffrail. Her bulwarks were thickly lined with clumsy wooden cranes, from which hung five boats. Two more boats were secured bottom-up on a gallows at the rear, so she seemed well-equipped in that regard. Mistah Jones, noticing I didn't take his condescension for granted, started to relax and told me many interesting facts about the officers. Captain Slocum, he said, was "the devil himself, so just keep your lamps trimmed for him, sonny; it ain't healthy to rile him." The first officer, or mate as he is known EXCLUSIVELY, was older than the captain but a good seaman, a good whaleman, and a gentleman. I found that to be true, even though it was hard to believe at the time. The second mate was a Portuguese man about forty, with a face like one of Vandyke's cavaliers, but as I learned, he turned into a complete fiend when angry. He was also a great whaleman, but not an impressive seaman. The third mate was mostly just bad-tempered—not much of a sailor or whaler, usually in hot water with the captain, who disliked him because he was an "owner's man." "And the fourth mate," he concluded, straightening his large frame, "is the best man on the ship and the biggest. Ain't no whalemen in New Bedford can teach ME anything, and if it comes to handling men, why, I just pick 'em up two at a time and crack 'em together like this, see!" He clapped his massive hands together, and I nodded in full agreement.
The weather being fine, with a steady N.E. wind blowing, so that the sails required no attention, work proceeded steadily all the morning. The oars were sorted, examined for flaws, and placed in the boats; the whale-line, manilla rope like yellow silk, 1 1/2 inch round, was brought on deck, stretched and coiled down with the greatest care into tubs, holding, some 200 fathoms, and others 100 fathoms each. New harpoons were fitted to poles of rough but heavy wood, without any attempt at neatness, but every attention to strength. The shape of these weapons was not, as is generally thought, that of an arrow, but rather like an arrow with one huge barb, the upper part of which curved out from the shaft. The whole of the barb turned on a stout pivot of steel, but was kept in line with the shaft by a tiny wooden peg which passed through barb and shaft, being then cut off smoothly on both sides. The point of the harpoon had at one side a wedge-shaped edge, ground to razor keenness, the other side was flat. The shaft, about thirty inches long, was of the best malleable iron, so soft that it would tie into a knot and straighten out again without fracture. Three harpoons, or "irons" as they were always called, were placed in each boat, fitted one above the other in the starboard bow, the first for use being always one unused before, Opposite to them in the boat were fitted three lances for the purpose of KILLING whales, the harpoons being only the means by which the boat was attached to a fish, and quite useless to inflict a fatal wound. These lances were slender spears of malleable iron about four feet long, with oval or heart-shaped points of fine steel about two inches broad, their edges kept keen as a surgeon's lancet. By means of a socket at the other end they were attached to neat handles, or "lance-poles," about as long again, the whole weapon being thus about eight feet in length, and furnished with a light line, or "lance-warp," for the purpose of drawing it back again when it had been darted at a whale.
The weather was nice, with a steady northeast wind blowing, so the sails didn't need any attention, and work went on smoothly all morning. The oars were sorted, checked for defects, and placed in the boats; the whale-line, a manila rope like yellow silk, 1.5 inches thick, was brought on deck, stretched, and carefully coiled into tubs that held either 200 fathoms or 100 fathoms each. New harpoons were attached to rough but heavy wooden poles, with a focus on strength rather than neatness. The shape of these weapons wasn't like an arrow, as commonly thought, but more like an arrow with one large barb that curved out from the shaft. The whole barb was mounted on a sturdy steel pivot but was kept in line with the shaft by a small wooden peg that passed through both the barb and the shaft, which was then smoothly cut off on both sides. One side of the harpoon's point had a wedge-shaped edge, sharpened to a razor's edge, while the other side was flat. The shaft, about thirty inches long, was made of the best malleable iron, so soft that it could be tied into a knot and then straightened out again without breaking. Three harpoons, or "irons" as they were always called, were placed in each boat, stacked one on top of another in the starboard bow, with the first one for use always being one that hadn't been used before. Opposite them in the boat were three lances, used for killing whales, since the harpoons were only for attaching the boat to a fish and were not meant to deliver a fatal wound. These lances were slender spears of malleable iron about four feet long, with oval or heart-shaped points made of fine steel that were about two inches wide, their edges kept sharp like a surgeon's scalpel. They were connected at the other end via a socket to neat handles, or "lance-poles," that were about as long again, making the entire weapon about eight feet in length, and equipped with a light line, or "lance-warp," to pull it back after it had been thrown at a whale.
Each boat was fitted with a centre-board, or sliding keel, which was drawn up, when not in use, into a case standing in the boat's middle, very much in the way. But the American whalemen regard these clumsy contrivances as indispensable, so there's an end on't. The other furniture of a boat comprised five oars of varying lengths from sixteen to nine feet, one great steering oar of nineteen feet, a mast and two sails of great area for so small a craft, spritsail shape; two tubs of whale-line containing together 1800 feet, a keg of drinking water, and another long narrow one with a few biscuits, a lantern, candles and matches therein; a bucket and "piggin" for baling, a small spade, a flag or "wheft," a shoulder bomb-gun and ammunition, two knives and two small axes. A rudder hung outside by the stern.
Each boat was equipped with a centerboard, or sliding keel, which could be pulled up into a case in the middle of the boat when not in use, making it pretty cumbersome. However, American whalemen consider these awkward devices essential, so that’s that. The rest of the boat's equipment included five oars ranging from sixteen to nine feet long, one large steering oar measuring nineteen feet, a mast with two large sails suited for such a small vessel, shaped like spritsails; two tubs of whale line totaling 1800 feet, a keg of drinking water, and another narrow keg with a few biscuits, a lantern, candles, and matches; a bucket and a “piggin” for bailing, a small spade, a flag or “wheft,” a shoulder bomb gun and ammo, two knives, and two small axes. A rudder was attached outside at the stern.
With all this gear, although snugly stowed, a boat looked so loaded that I could not help wondering how six men would be able to work in her; but like most "deep-water" sailors, I knew very little about boating. I was going to learn.
With all this gear, even though it was packed tightly, the boat looked so overloaded that I couldn’t help but wonder how six men would manage to work in it; but like most "deep-water" sailors, I knew very little about boating. I was about to learn.
All this work and bustle of preparation was so rapidly carried on, and so interesting, that before supper-time everything was in readiness to commence operations, the time having gone so swiftly that I could hardly believe the bell when it sounded four times, six o'clock.
All the hard work and excitement of getting ready went by so quickly and was so engaging that by the time dinner rolled around, everything was set to start. The hours flew by so fast that I could hardly believe it when the bell rang four times, signaling six o'clock.
CHAPTER III. FISHING BEGINS
During all the bustle of warlike preparation that had been going on, the greenhorns had not suffered from inattention on the part of those appointed to look after them. Happily for them, the wind blew steadily, and the weather, thanks to the balmy influence of the Gulf Stream, was quite mild and genial. The ship was undoubtedly lively, as all good sea-boats are, but her motions were by no means so detestable to a sea-sick man as those of a driving steamer. So, in spite of their treatment, perhaps because of it, some of the poor fellows were beginning to take hold of things "man-fashion," although of course sea legs they had none, their getting about being indeed a pilgrimage of pain. Some of them were beginning to try the dreadful "grub" (I cannot libel "food" by using it in such a connection), thereby showing that their interest in life, even such a life as was now before them, was returning. They had all been allotted places in the various boats, intermixed with the seasoned Portuguese in such a way that the officer and harpooner in charge would not be dependant upon them entirely in case of a sudden emergency. Every endeavour was undoubtedly made to instruct them in their duties, albeit the teachers were all too apt to beat their information in with anything that came to hand, and persuasion found no place in their methods.
During all the hectic preparations for war that had been happening, the newbies hadn't been ignored by those responsible for their care. Luckily for them, the wind blew steadily, and the weather, thanks to the warm influence of the Gulf Stream, was mild and pleasant. The ship was definitely lively, as all good sea boats are, but its movements were not nearly as unbearable for someone who's sea sick as those of a fast-moving steamer. So, despite their treatment, maybe because of it, some of the poor guys were starting to handle things "like men," even though, of course, they didn't have sea legs; moving around was truly a painful struggle for them. A few of them were beginning to try the awful "grub" (I can't call it "food" in this context), showing that their interest in life, even one as challenging as theirs, was coming back. They had all been assigned spots in the various boats, mixed in with the experienced Portuguese in such a way that the officer and harpooner in charge wouldn't be entirely reliant on them in case of an emergency. Every effort was definitely made to teach them their duties, although the instructors were often too quick to hammer in information with whatever they could find, and persuasion had no place in their methods.
The reports I had always heard of the laziness prevailing on board whale-ships were now abundantly falsified. From dawn to dark work went on without cessation. Everything was rubbed and scrubbed and scoured until no speck or soil could be found; indeed, no gentleman's yacht or man-of-war is kept more spotlessly clean than was the CACHALOT.
The stories I always heard about the laziness on whaling ships were completely untrue. From dawn until dusk, work continued non-stop. Everything was rubbed, scrubbed, and scoured until there wasn’t a single speck of dirt to be found; in fact, no gentleman's yacht or warship is kept cleaner than the CACHALOT.
A regular and severe routine of labour was kept up; and, what was most galling to me, instead of a regular four hours' watch on and off, night and day, all hands were kept on deck the whole day long, doing quite unnecessary tasks, apparently with the object of preventing too much leisure and consequent brooding over their unhappy lot. One result of this continual drive and tear was that all these landsmen became rapidly imbued with the virtues of cleanliness, which was extended to the den in which we lived, or I verily believe sickness would have soon thinned us out.
A strict and demanding work routine was enforced; and, what frustrated me the most, instead of having a regular four-hour shift on and off, day and night, everyone stayed on deck all day long, doing completely unnecessary tasks, seemingly to avoid too much free time and the resulting thoughts about their miserable situation. One effect of this constant hustle and bustle was that all these landlubbers quickly adopted the habits of cleanliness, which even extended to the cabin we lived in, or I genuinely believe that illness would have soon reduced our numbers.
On the fourth day after leaving port we were all busy as usual except the four men in the "crow's-nests," when a sudden cry of "Porps! porps!" brought everything to a standstill. A large school of porpoises had just joined us, in their usual clownish fashion, rolling and tumbling around the bows as the old barky wallowed along, surrounded by a wide ellipse of snowy foam. All work was instantly suspended, and active preparations made for securing a few of these frolicsome fellows. A "block," or pulley, was hung out at the bowsprit end, a whale-line passed through it and "bent" (fastened) on to a harpoon. Another line with a running "bowline," or slip-noose, was also passed out to the bowsprit end, being held there by one man in readiness. Then one of the harpooners ran out along the backropes, which keep the jib-boom down, taking his stand beneath the bowsprit with the harpoon ready. Presently he raised his iron and followed the track of a rising porpoise with its point until the creature broke water. At the same instant the weapon left his grasp, apparently without any force behind it; but we on deck, holding the line, soon found that our excited hauling lifted a big vibrating body clean out of the smother beneath. "'Vast hauling!" shouted the mate, while as the porpoise hung dangling, the harpooner slipped the ready bowline over his body, gently closing its grip round the "small" by the broad tail. Then we hauled on the noose-line, slacking away the harpoon, and in a minute had our prize on deck. He was dragged away at once and the operation repeated. Again and again we hauled them in, until the fore part of the deck was alive with the kicking, writhing sea-pigs, at least twenty of them. I had seen an occasional porpoise caught at sea before, but never more than one at a time. Here, however, was a wholesale catch. At last one of the harpooned ones plunged so furiously while being hauled up that he literally tore himself off the iron, falling, streaming with blood, back into the sea.
On the fourth day after we left port, everyone was busy as usual except for the four men in the "crow's nests," when a sudden shout of "Porps! porps!" froze everything. A large school of porpoises had joined us, playfully rolling and tumbling around the front of the ship while it moved along, creating a wide swirl of white foam. All work instantly stopped, and we quickly got ready to catch a few of these lively creatures. A block, or pulley, was hung at the end of the bowsprit, a whale-line was threaded through it and fastened to a harpoon. Another line with a slip-noose was also passed out to the end of the bowsprit, held there by one man. Then one of the harpooners ran along the back ropes that kept the jib-boom down, positioning himself under the bowsprit with the harpoon ready. Soon, he raised his harpoon and aimed it at a porpoise surfacing until the animal broke the surface. At that moment, the harpoon slipped from his grip seemingly without any force behind it; but we on deck, holding the line, found that our eager pulling lifted a large, thrashing body out of the water below. "Stop hauling!" shouted the mate, while the porpoise dangled, and the harpooner slipped the noose over its body, gently tightening it around the tail. We then pulled on the noose line, loosening the harpoon, and in a minute, we had our catch on deck. He was quickly dragged away, and the process was repeated. Again and again we pulled them in, until the front of the deck was alive with kicking, writhing porpoises, at least twenty in total. I had seen an occasional porpoise caught at sea before, but never more than one at a time. Here, though, was a massive haul. Finally, one of the captured ones flailed so violently while being pulled up that it tore itself off the harpoon and fell back into the sea, streaming with blood.
Away went all the school after him, tearing at him with their long well-toothed jaws, some of them leaping high in the air in their eagerness to get their due share of the cannibal feast. Our fishing was over for that time. Meanwhile one of the harpooners had brought out a number of knives, with which all hands were soon busy skinning the blubber from the bodies. Porpoises have no skin, that is hide, the blubber or coating of lard which encases them being covered by a black substance as thin as tissue paper. The porpoise hide of the boot maker is really leather, made from the skin of the BELUGA, or "white whale," which is found only in the far north. The cover was removed from the "tryworks" amidships, revealing two gigantic pots set in a frame of brickwork side by side, capable of holding 200 gallons each. Such a cooking apparatus as might have graced a Brobdingnagian kitchen. Beneath the pots was the very simplest of furnaces, hardly as elaborate as the familiar copper-hole sacred to washing day. Square funnels of sheet-iron were loosely fitted to the flues, more as a protection against the oil boiling over into the fire than to carry away the smoke, of which from the peculiar nature of the fuel there was very little. At one side of the try-works was a large wooden vessel, or "hopper," to contain the raw blubber; at the other, a copper cistern or cooler of about 300 gallons capacity, into which the prepared oil was baled to cool off, preliminary to its being poured into the casks. Beneath the furnaces was a space as large as the whole area of the try-works, about a foot deep, which, when the fires were lighted, was filled with water to prevent the deck from burning.
All the school rushed after him, snapping at him with their long, sharp jaws, some leaping high into the air, eager to grab their share of the feast. Our fishing was done for now. Meanwhile, one of the harpooners pulled out a bunch of knives, and soon everyone was busy skinning the blubber from the bodies. Porpoises don’t have skin; instead, they are covered in a layer of blubber wrapped in a black substance as thin as tissue paper. The porpoise hide used by boot makers is actually leather made from the skin of the BELUGA, or "white whale," which is found only in the far north. The cover over the "tryworks" in the middle was removed, revealing two massive pots set in a brick frame, each capable of holding 200 gallons. It was a cooking setup that could have belonged in a giant's kitchen. Beneath the pots was a very simple furnace, not much more complicated than a regular wash-day copper. Square sheet-iron funnels were loosely attached to the flues, primarily to prevent oil from boiling over into the fire, as there was very little smoke due to the type of fuel used. On one side of the try-works sat a large wooden container, or "hopper," for the raw blubber; on the other side was a copper cistern or cooler with about a 300-gallon capacity, where the prepared oil was pumped to cool before being poured into barrels. Below the furnaces was an area as large as the entire try-works, about a foot deep, which was filled with water when the fires were lit to stop the deck from burning.
It may be imagined that the blubber from our twenty porpoises made but a poor show in one of the pots; nevertheless, we got a barrel of very excellent oil from them. The fires were fed with "scrap," or pieces of blubber from which the oil had been boiled, some of which had been reserved from the previous voyage. They burnt with a fierce and steady blaze, leaving but a trace of ash. I was then informed by one of the harpooners that no other fuel was ever used for boiling blubber at any time, there being always amply sufficient for the purpose.
You might think that the blubber from our twenty porpoises wouldn’t add up to much in one of the pots, but we actually got a barrel of really good oil from them. We used "scrap," or chunks of blubber that had already been boiled for oil, some of which we had saved from the last trip. They burned with a strong and steady flame, leaving very little ash. One of the harpooners told me that no other fuel is ever used for boiling blubber because there’s always more than enough available for that.
The most interesting part of the whole business, though, to us poor half-starved wretches, was the plentiful supply of fresh meat. Porpoise beef is, when decently cooked, fairly good eating to a landsman; judge, then, what it must have been to us. Of course the tit-bits, such as the liver, kidneys, brains, etc., could not possibly fall to our lot; but we did not complain, we were too thankful to get something eatable, and enough of it. Moreover, although few sailors in English ships know it, porpoise beef improves vastly by keeping, getting tenderer every day the longer it hangs, until at last it becomes as tasty a viand as one could wish to dine upon. It was a good job for us that this was the case, for while the porpoises lasted the "harness casks," or salt beef receptacles, were kept locked; so if any man had felt unable to eat porpoise—well, there was no compulsion, he could go hungry.
The most interesting part of the whole situation for us poor, half-starved people was the abundant supply of fresh meat. Porpoise meat is actually pretty good when it’s cooked right, especially for someone used to land food; just imagine how great it was for us. Of course, the choice parts like the liver, kidneys, and brains were never going to be ours, but we didn’t complain—we were just grateful to have something decent to eat and plenty of it. Also, even though most sailors on English ships don’t know this, porpoise meat gets a lot better the longer it’s kept, becoming more tender each day until it becomes as good a meal as you could ask for. It was lucky for us that this was true; while we had porpoises, the "harness casks," or containers for salt beef, were kept locked. So if anyone didn’t want to eat porpoise—well, there was no pressure; they could just go hungry.
We were now in the haunts of the Sperm Whale, or "Cachalot," a brilliant look-out being continually kept for any signs of their appearing. One officer and a foremast hand were continually on watch during the day in the main crow's-nest, one harpooner and a seaman in the fore one. A bounty of ten pounds of tobacco was offered to whoever should first report a whale, should it be secured, consequently there were no sleepy eyes up there. Of course none of those who were inexperienced stood much chance against the eagle-eyed Portuguese; but all tried their best, in the hope of perhaps winning some little favour from their hard taskmasters. Every evening at sunset it was "all hands shorten sail," the constant drill rapidly teaching even these clumsy landsmen how to find their way aloft, and do something else besides hold on to anything like grim death when they got there.
We were now in the territory of the Sperm Whale, or "Cachalot," with a sharp lookout constantly maintained for any signs of their appearance. One officer and a foremast crew member were always on watch during the day in the main crow's-nest, while one harpooner and a sailor kept watch in the fore crow's-nest. A reward of ten pounds of tobacco was offered to whoever first spotted a whale, provided it was caught, so there were no drowsy eyes up there. Of course, those without experience didn’t stand much chance against the sharp-eyed Portuguese; but everyone did their best, hoping to earn some favor from their tough bosses. Every evening at sunset, it was "all hands shorten sail," and the regular drills quickly taught even these clumsy landlubbers how to climb aloft and do more than just cling on for dear life when they got there.
At last, one beautiful day, the boats were lowered and manned, and away went the greenies on their first practical lesson in the business of the voyage. As before noticed, there were two greenies in each boat, they being so arranged that whenever one of them "caught a crab," which of course was about every other stroke, his failure made little difference to the boat's progress. They learned very fast under the terrible imprecations and storm of blows from the iron-fisted and iron-hearted officers, so that before the day was out the skipper was satisfied of our ability to deal with a "fish" should he be lucky enough to "raise" one. I was, in virtue of my experience, placed at the after-oar in the mate's boat, where it was my duty to attend to the "main sheet" when the sail was set, where also I had the benefit of the lightest oar except the small one used by the harpooner in the bow.
At last, on a beautiful day, the boats were lowered and crewed, and off went the newbies on their first practical lesson in the art of sailing. As previously mentioned, there were two newbies in each boat, arranged so that whenever one of them "caught a crab," which happened about every other stroke, his mistake didn't really impact the boat's speed. They picked it up quickly under the harsh criticism and relentless hits from the tough officers, so by the end of the day, the captain felt confident in our ability to handle a "fish" if one happened to come our way. Due to my experience, I was placed at the after-oar in the mate's boat, where I was responsible for managing the "main sheet" when the sail was set, and I also got to use the lightest oar except for the small one used by the harpooner in the front.
The very next day after our first exhaustive boat drill, a school of "Black Fish" was reported from aloft, with great glee the officers prepared for what they considered a rattling day's fun.
The very next day after our first intense boat drill, a school of "Black Fish" was spotted from above, and the officers eagerly got ready for what they thought would be a thrilling day of fun.
The Black Fish (PHOCAENA SP.) is a small toothed whale, not at all unlike a miniature cachalot, except that its head is rounded at the front, while its jaw is not long and straight, but bowed. It is as frolicsome as the porpoise, gambolling about in schools of from twenty to fifty or more, as if really delighted to be alive. Its average size is from ten to twenty feet long, and seven or eight feet in girth, weight from one to three tons. Blubber about three inches thick, while the head is almost all oil, so that a good rich specimen will make between one and two barrels of oil of medium quality.
The Black Fish (PHOCAENA SP.) is a small toothed whale, quite similar to a tiny sperm whale, but its head is rounded at the front, and its jaw is curved instead of long and straight. It's as playful as a porpoise, swimming in groups of twenty to fifty or more, seemingly enjoying life. On average, it ranges from ten to twenty feet in length and seven to eight feet in girth, weighing between one to three tons. Its blubber is about three inches thick, and its head is mostly oil, so a good specimen can yield between one and two barrels of medium-quality oil.
The school we were now in sight of was of middling size and about average weight of individuals, and the officers esteemed it a fortunate circumstance that we should happen across them as a sort of preliminary to our tackling the monarchs of the deep.
The school we could now see was of average size and about the typical weight of the individuals, and the officers considered it a lucky coincidence that we encountered them as a sort of warm-up before we faced the kings of the sea.
All the new harpoons were unshipped from the boats, and a couple of extra "second" irons, as those that have been used are called, were put into each boat for use if wanted. The sails were also left on board. We lowered and left the ship, pulling right towards the school, the noise they were making in their fun effectually preventing them from hearing our approach. It is etiquette to allow the mate's boat first place, unless his crew is so weak as to be unable to hold their own; but as the mate always has first pick of the men this seldom happens. So, as usual, we were first, and soon I heard the order given, "Stand up, Louey, and let 'em have it!" Sure enough, here we were right among them. Louis let drive, "fastening" a whopper about twenty feet long. The injured animal plunged madly forward, accompanied by his fellows, while Louis calmly bent another iron to a "short warp," or piece of whale-line, the loose end of which he made a bowline with around the main line which was fast to the "fish." Then he fastened another "fish," and the queer sight was seen of these two monsters each trying to flee in opposite directions, while the second one ranged about alarmingly as his "bridle" ran along the main line. Another one was secured in the same way, then the game was indeed great. The school had by this time taken the alarm and cleared out, but the other boats were all fast to fish, so that didn't matter. Now, at the rate our "game" were going it would evidently be a long while before they died, although, being so much smaller than a whale proper, a harpoon will often kill them at a stroke. Yet they were now so tangled or "snarled erp," as the mate said, that it was no easy matter to lance them without great danger of cutting the line. However, we hauled up as close to them as we dared, and the harpooner got a good blow in, which gave the biggest of the three "Jesse," as he said, though why "Jesse" was a stumper. Anyhow, it killed him promptly, while almost directly after another one saved further trouble by passing in his own checks. But he sank at the same time, drawing the first one down with him, so that we were in considerable danger of having to cut them adrift or be swamped. The "wheft" was waved thrice as an urgent signal to the ship to come to our assistance with all speed, but in the meantime our interest lay in the surviving Black Fish keeping alive. Should HE die, and, as was most probable, sink, we should certainly have to cut and lose the lot, tools included.
All the new harpoons were taken off the boats, and a couple of extra "second" irons, which is what we call the ones that have been used, were added to each boat for backup. The sails were also left on board. We lowered the boat and headed straight for the school, the fun they were having drowning out our approach. It's customary to let the mate's boat go first, unless his crew is too weak to compete; but since the mate always gets first pick of the men, that rarely happens. So, as usual, we went first, and soon I heard the command, "Stand up, Louey, and let 'em have it!" Sure enough, we were right in the middle of them. Louis took aim, landing a massive one about twenty feet long. The injured creature surged forward wildly, joined by its companions, while Louis calmly prepared another iron with a "short warp," or segment of whale-line, tying a bowline knot around the main line attached to the "fish." Then he secured another "fish," and it was a strange sight to see these two giants trying to escape in opposite directions, while the second one moved around in a panic as its "bridle" slipped along the main line. Another one was captured the same way, and the hunt was on. By this point, the school had panicked and dispersed, but the other boats were all connected to fish, so it didn't matter. At the rate our "game" were moving, it was clear it would take a while for them to die, although, since they were much smaller than a real whale, a harpoon often takes them down in one shot. However, they were so tangled, or "snarled erp," as the mate put it, that it was tricky to lance them without risking cutting the line. We pulled in as close as we could, and the harpooner landed a solid hit, which took down the biggest of the three, "Jesse," as he called it, though why he named it that remained a mystery. Regardless, it killed it quickly, and shortly after another one saved us the trouble by passing out. But it sank at the same time, pulling the first one down with it, which put us in a tough spot—we might have to cut them loose or risk being swamped. The "wheft" was waved three times as an urgent signal for the ship to come help us as fast as possible, but for now, we were focused on keeping the remaining Black Fish alive. If HE died, which was likely, and sank, we would definitely have to cut and lose everything, tools included.
We waited in grim silence while the ship came up, so slowly, apparently, that she hardly seemed to move, but really at a good pace of about four knots an hour, which for her was not at all bad. She got alongside of us at last, and we passed up the bight of our line, our fish all safe, very much pleased with ourselves, especially when we found that the other boats had only five between the three of them.
We waited in tense silence as the ship approached, moving so slowly that it barely seemed to be moving at all, but it was actually making good progress at about four knots an hour, which was pretty decent for her. Finally, she pulled up beside us, and we handed over the loop of our line, our catch all safe, feeling quite proud of ourselves, especially when we realized that the other boats had only five fish combined among the three of them.
The fish secured to the ship, all the boats were hoisted except one, which remained alongside to sling the bodies. During our absence the ship-keepers had been busy rigging one of the cutting falls, an immense fourfold tackle from the main lowermast-head, of four-inch rope through great double blocks, large as those used at dockyards for lifting ships' masts and boilers. Chain-slings were passed around the carcases, which gripped the animal at the "small," being prevented from slipping off by the broad spread of the tail. The end of the "fall," or tackle-rope, was then taken to the windlass, and we hove away cheerily, lifting the monsters right on deck. A mountainous pile they made. A short spell was allowed, when the whole eight were on board, for dinner; then all hands turned to again to "flench" the blubber, and prepare for trying-out. This was a heavy job, keeping all hands busy until it was quite dark, the latter part of the work being carried on by the light of a "cresset," the flames of which were fed with "scrap," which blazed brilliantly, throwing a big glare over all the ship. The last of the carcases was launched overboard by about eight o'clock that evening, but not before some vast junks of beef had been cut off and hung up in the rigging for our food supply.
The fish secured to the ship, all the boats were lifted except one, which stayed alongside to haul the bodies. While we were away, the crew had been busy setting up one of the cutting falls, a huge fourfold tackle from the main lower mast head, using four-inch rope through massive double blocks, similar to those used at shipyards to lift masts and boilers. Chain slings were wrapped around the carcasses, securing the animal at the midsection, with the broad spread of the tail preventing them from slipping off. The end of the fall, or tackle rope, was then taken to the windlass, and we cheerfully hoisted, bringing the monsters right onto the deck. They made a huge pile. After a short break, once all eight were on board, we took a moment for dinner; then everyone went back to work to "flense" the blubber and prepare for rendering it. This was a tough job, keeping the crew busy until it was quite dark, with the latter part of the work carried out by the light of a "cresset," fueled by "scrap," which burned brightly, casting a big glare over the whole ship. The last of the carcasses was thrown overboard by about eight o’clock that evening, but not before some huge chunks of beef were cut off and hung in the rigging for our food supply.
The try-works were started again, "trying-out" going on busily all night, watch and watch taking their turn at keeping the pots supplied with minced blubber. The work was heavy, while the energetic way in which it was carried on made us all glad to take what rest was allowed us, which was scanty enough, as usual.
The try-works were restarted, with "trying-out" happening nonstop all night, taking turns to keep the pots filled with minced blubber. The work was tough, but the lively way it was done made us all happy to get whatever little rest we could, which was usually pretty scarce.
By nightfall the next day the ship had resumed her normal appearance, and we were a tun and a quarter of oil to the good. Black Fish oil is of medium quality, but I learned that, according to the rule of "roguery in all trades," it was the custom to mix quantities such as we had just obtained with better class whale-oil, and thus get a much higher price than it was really worth.
By the next evening, the ship looked normal again, and we had a ton and a quarter of oil to our advantage. Black Fish oil is average quality, but I found out that, following the rule of "trickery in every trade," it was common to mix the amounts we had just collected with higher quality whale oil, allowing us to sell it for a much better price than it actually deserved.
Up till this time we had no sort of an idea as to where our first objective might be, but from scraps of conversation I had overheard among the harpooners, I gathered that we were making for the Cape Verde Islands or the Acores, in the vicinity of which a good number of moderate-sized sperm whales are often to be found. In fact, these islands have long been a nursery for whale-fishers, because the cachalot loves their steep-to shores, and the hardy natives, whenever and wherever they can muster a boat and a little gear, are always ready to sally forth and attack the unwary whale that ventures within their ken. Consequently more than half of the total crews of the American whaling fleet are composed of these islanders. Many of them have risen to the position of captain, and still more are officers and harpooners; but though undoubtedly brave and enterprising, they are cruel and treacherous, and in positions of authority over men of Teutonic or Anglo-Saxon origin, are apt to treat their subordinates with great cruelty.
Until now, we had no idea where our first destination would be, but from bits of conversations I overheard among the harpooners, I figured we were headed for the Cape Verde Islands or the Azores, where a good number of medium-sized sperm whales are often found. In fact, these islands have long been a hotspot for whalers because the cachalot loves their steep shores, and the tough locals, whenever they can get a boat and some gear together, are always ready to head out and hunt any unsuspecting whale that comes their way. As a result, more than half of the crews of the American whaling fleet are made up of these islanders. Many of them have become captains, and even more serve as officers and harpooners; but while they are undoubtedly brave and enterprising, they can also be cruel and deceitful, and when in positions of power over people of German or Anglo-Saxon descent, they tend to treat their subordinates very harshly.
CHAPTER IV. BAD WEATHER
Nautical routine in its essential details is much the same in all ships, whether naval, merchant, or whaling vessels. But while in the ordinary merchantman there are decidedly "no more cats than can catch mice," hardly, indeed, sufficient for all the mousing that should be done, in men-of-war and whaleships the number of hands carried, being far more than are wanted for everyday work, must needs be kept at unnecessary duties in order that they may not grow lazy and discontented.
Nautical routines are pretty much the same on all ships, whether they're naval, merchant, or whaling vessels. However, while regular merchant ships definitely have "no more cats than can catch mice," and often not enough for all the mousing that needs to be done, men-of-war and whaling ships carry many more crew members than are needed for daily tasks. This excess crew has to be assigned unnecessary duties to prevent them from becoming lazy and unhappy.
For instance, in the CACHALOT we carried a crew of thirty-seven all told, of which twenty-four were men before the mast, or common seamen, our tonnage being under 400 tons. Many a splendid clipper-ship carrying an enormous spread of canvas on four masts, and not overloaded with 2500 tons of cargo on board, carries twenty-eight or thirty all told, or even less than that. As far as we were concerned, the result of this was that our landsmen got so thoroughly drilled, that within a week of leaving port they hardly knew themselves for the clumsy clodhoppers they at first appeared to be.
For example, on the CACHALOT, we had a total crew of thirty-seven, including twenty-four sailors or common seamen, with our tonnage being under 400 tons. Many impressive clipper ships, with a massive amount of canvas on four masts and not loaded down with 2500 tons of cargo, carry only twenty-eight or thirty crew members, or even fewer. For us, this meant that our landlubbers became so well-trained that within a week of setting out, they hardly recognized themselves compared to the awkward newcomers they had been at first.
We had now been eight days out, and in our leisurely way were making fair progress across the Atlantic, having had nothing, so far, but steady breezes and fine weather. As it was late autumn the first week in October—I rather wondered at this, for even in my brief experience I had learned to dread a "fall" voyage across the "Western Ocean."
We had been out for eight days, and at our relaxed pace, we were making good progress across the Atlantic, experiencing nothing but steady breezes and nice weather so far. Since it was late autumn in early October, I found this a bit surprising; even with my limited experience, I had learned to be wary of a "fall" voyage across the "Western Ocean."
Gradually the face of the sky changed, and the feel of the air, from balmy and genial, became raw and cheerless. The little wave tops broke short off and blew backwards, apparently against the wind, while the old vessel had an uneasy, unnatural motion, caused by a long, new swell rolling athwart the existing set of the sea. Then the wind became fitful and changeable, backing half round the compass, and veering forward again as much in an hour, until at last in one tremendous squall it settled in the N.W. for a business-like blow, Unlike the hurried merchantman who must needs "hang on" till the last minute, only shortening the sail when absolutely compelled to do so, and at the first sign of the gales relenting, piling it on again, we were all snug long before the storm burst upon us, and now rode comfortably under the tiniest of storm staysails.
Slowly, the sky's appearance shifted, and the air, once warm and pleasant, turned harsh and gloomy. The wave tops crashed down abruptly and blew backward, seemingly against the wind, while the old ship moved uneasily, its motion unnatural due to a long, new swell crossing the existing sea pattern. Then the wind became unpredictable and changeable, shifting half around the compass, veering forward again multiple times in an hour, until finally, in one massive squall, it settled in the northwest for a solid blow. Unlike the frantic merchant ship that has to "hold on" until the last moment, only reducing sail when absolutely necessary and quickly increasing it again at the first sign of the winds easing, we were all secure well before the storm hit us, comfortably riding under the smallest of storm staysails.
We were evidently in for a fair specimen of Western Ocean weather, but the clumsy-looking, old-fashioned CACHALOT made no more fuss over it than one of the long-winged sea-birds that floated around, intent only upon snapping up any stray scraps that might escape from us. Higher rose the wind, heavier rolled the sea, yet never a drop of water did we ship, nor did anything about the deck betoken what a heavy gale was blowing. During the worst of the weather, and just after the wind had shifted back into the N.E., making an uglier cross sea than ever get up, along comes an immense four-masted iron ship homeward bound. She was staggering under a veritable mountain of canvas, fairly burying her bows in the foam at every forward drive, and actually wetting the clews of the upper topsails in the smothering masses of spray, that every few minutes almost hid her hull from sight.
We were clearly in for a classic case of rough Western Ocean weather, but the clunky, old-fashioned CACHALOT handled it with as little fuss as the long-winged sea birds gliding nearby, just looking to grab any stray scraps we might drop. The wind picked up, and the sea rolled heavier, yet we didn't take on any water, nor did anything on deck show that a strong gale was blowing. During the worst of it, right after the wind shifted back to the N.E., creating an even uglier cross sea, a massive four-masted iron ship came our way, heading home. It was struggling under a true mountain of sails, burying its bow in foam with every push forward, and even soaking the clews of the upper topsails in the thick spray that would almost hide its hull from view every few minutes.
It was a splendid picture; but—for the time—I felt glad I was not on board of her. In a very few minutes she was out of our ken, followed by the admiration of all. Then came, from the other direction, a huge steamship, taking no more notice of the gale than as if it were calm. Straight through the sea she rushed, dividing the mighty rollers to the heart, and often bestriding three seas at once, the centre one spreading its many tons of foaming water fore and aft, so that from every orifice spouted the seething brine. Compared with these greyhounds of the wave, we resembled nothing so much as some old lightship bobbing serenely around, as if part and parcel of the mid-Atlantic.
It was a stunning sight; but at that moment, I was glad I wasn't on board. In just a few minutes, it disappeared from our view, leaving everyone in awe. Then, from the other direction, a massive steamship came, ignoring the storm as if it were a calm day. It surged through the waves, cutting through the massive swells with ease, often straddling three waves at once, the middle wave spilling tons of foamy water both forward and backward, creating spray from every opening. Compared to these swift sea giants, we looked like nothing more than an old lightship gently bobbing along, as if we were part of the mid-Atlantic.
Our greenies were getting so well seasoned by this time that even this rough weather did not knock any of them over, and from that time forward they had no more trouble from sea-sickness.
Our newbies were getting so well adjusted by this time that even this rough weather didn’t throw any of them off, and from that point on, they didn’t have any more issues with seasickness.
The gale gradually blew itself out, leaving behind only a long and very heavy swell to denote the deep-reaching disturbance that the ocean had endured. And now we were within the range of the Sargasso Weed, that mysterious FUCUS that makes the ocean look. like some vast hayfield, and keeps the sea from rising, no matter how high the wind. It fell a dead calm, and the harpooners amused themselves by dredging up great masses of the weed, and turning out the many strange creatures abiding therein. What a world of wonderful life the weed is, to be sure! In it the flying fish spawn and the tiny cuttle-fish breed, both of them preparing bounteous provision for the larger denizens of the deep that have no other food. Myriads of tiny crabs and innumerable specimens of less-known shell-fish, small fish of species as yet unclassified in any work on natural history, with jelly-fish of every conceivable and inconceivable shape, form part of this great and populous country in the sea. At one haul there was brought on board a mass of flying-fish spawn, about ten pounds in weight, looking like nothing so much as a pile of ripe white currants, and clinging together in a very similar manner.
The storm gradually died down, leaving behind only a long and heavy swell to indicate the deep disturbance the ocean had undergone. Now we were in the area of the Sargasso Weed, that mysterious FUCUS that makes the ocean look like a vast hayfield and keeps the sea calm, no matter how strong the wind. It fell completely calm, and the harpooners entertained themselves by pulling up large masses of the weed and revealing the many strange creatures living in it. What a world of amazing life the weed holds! In it, flying fish lay their eggs, and tiny cuttlefish breed, both providing abundant food for the larger creatures of the deep that have no other source of nourishment. Myriads of tiny crabs and countless varieties of lesser-known shellfish, along with small fish yet to be classified in any natural history books, and jellyfish of every imaginable shape, make up this great and populous territory in the sea. In one haul, we brought on board a mass of flying fish spawn weighing about ten pounds, looking very much like a pile of ripe white currants, clinging together in a similar way.
Such masses of ova I had often seen cast up among the outlying rocks on the shores of the Caribbean Sea, when as a shipwrecked lad I wandered idly about unburying turtle eggs from their snug beds in the warm sand, and chasing the many-hued coral fish from one hiding-place to another.
Such large masses of eggs I had often seen washed up on the outlying rocks along the shores of the Caribbean Sea, when I was a shipwrecked boy wandering aimlessly, digging turtle eggs out of their cozy nests in the warm sand, and chasing the colorful coral fish from one hiding spot to another.
While loitering in these smooth waters, waiting for the laggard wind, up came a shoal of dolphin, ready as at all times to attach themselves for awhile to the ship. Nothing is more singular than the manner in which deep-sea fish will accompany a vessel that is not going too fast—sometimes for days at a time. Most convenient too, and providing hungry Jack with many a fresh mess he would otherwise have missed. Of all these friendly fish, none is better known than the "dolphin," as from long usage sailors persist in calling them, and will doubtless do so until the end of the chapter. For the true dolphin (DELPHINIDAE) is not a fish at all, but a mammal a warm-blooded creature that suckles its young, and in its most familiar form is known to most people as the porpoise. The sailor's "dolphin," on the other hand, is a veritable fish, with vertical tail fin instead of the horizontal one which distinguishes all the whale family, scales and gills.
While hanging out in these calm waters, waiting for the slow wind, a group of dolphins showed up, always ready to hitch a ride on the ship for a while. It's pretty remarkable how deep-sea fish will follow a vessel that's not moving too fast—sometimes for days at a time. This is really handy, giving hungry Jack plenty of fresh meals he would otherwise have missed. Out of all these friendly fish, none is better known than the "dolphin," as sailors have long referred to them, and they will likely continue to do so indefinitely. However, the true dolphin (DELPHINIDAE) isn't a fish at all; it's a warm-blooded mammal that nurses its young, and in its most familiar form, it's known to most people as the porpoise. The sailor's "dolphin," on the other hand, is a true fish, with a vertical tail fin instead of the horizontal one that characterizes all the whale family, along with scales and gills.
It is well known to literature, under its sea-name, for its marvellous brilliancy of colour, and there are few objects more dazzling than a dolphin leaping out of a calm sea into the sunshine. The beauty of a dying dolphin, however, though sanctioned by many generations of writers, is a delusion, all the glory of the fish departing as soon as he is withdrawn from his native element.
It’s well known in literature, under its sea name, for its amazing vibrancy of color, and there are few sights more stunning than a dolphin jumping out of a calm sea into the sunlight. However, the beauty of a dying dolphin, though endorsed by many generations of writers, is an illusion, as all the glory of the fish fades away as soon as it’s taken out of its natural habitat.
But this habit of digression grows upon one, and I must do my best to check it, or I shall never get through my task.
But this habit of wandering off-topic becomes more ingrained over time, and I really need to do my best to rein it in, or I'll never finish my work.
To resume then: when this school of dolphin (I can't for the life of me call them CORIPHAENA HIPPURIS) came alongside, a rush was made for the "granes"—a sort of five-pronged trident, if I may be allowed a baby bull. It was universally agreed among the fishermen that trying a hook and line was only waste of time and provocative of profanity! since every sailor knows that all the deep-water big fish require a living or apparently living bait. The fish, however, sheered off, and would not be tempted within reach of that deadly fork by any lure. Then did I cover myself with glory. For he who can fish cleverly and luckily may be sure of fairly good times in a whaler, although he may be no great things at any other work. I had a line of my own, and begging one of the small fish that had been hauled up in the Gulf weed, I got permission to go aft and fish over the taffrail. The little fish was carefully secured on the hook, the point of which just protruded near his tail. Then I lowered him into the calm blue waters beneath, and paid out line very gently, until my bait was a silvery spot about a hundred feet astern. Only a very short time, and my hopes rose as I saw one bright gleam after another glide past the keel, heading aft. Then came a gentle drawing at the line, which I suffered to slip slowly through my fingers until I judged it time to try whether I was right or wrong, A long hard pull, and my heart beat fast as I felt the thrill along the line that fishermen love. None of your high art here, but haul in hand over hand, the line being strong enough to land a 250 pound fish. Up he came, the beauty, all silver and scarlet and blue, five feet long if an inch, and weighing 35 pounds. Well, such a lot of astonished men I never saw. They could hardly believe their eyes. That such a daring innovation should be successful was hardly to be believed, even with the vigorous evidence before them. Even grim Captain Slocum came to look and turned upon me as I thought a less lowering brow than usual, while Mr. Count, the mate, fairly chuckled again at the thought of how the little Britisher had wiped the eyes of these veteran fishermen. The captive was cut open, and two recent flying-fish found in his maw, which were utilized for new bait, with the result that there was a cheerful noise of hissing and spluttering in the galley soon after, and a mess of fish for all hands.
To sum it up: when this group of dolphins (I can't for the life of me call them CORIPHAENA HIPPURIS) swam up next to us, everyone rushed for the "granes"—a kind of five-pronged trident, if I may use a casual term. The fishermen all agreed that trying to use a hook and line was just a waste of time and would lead to some swearing! Every sailor knows that all the big deep-water fish need live or seemingly live bait. However, the fish avoided us and wouldn't be tempted by any lure near that deadly fork. Then I really shone. A person who can fish skillfully and with some luck can count on having a good time on a whaler, even if they aren’t great at anything else. I had my own line, and after asking for one of the small fish caught in the Gulf weed, I got permission to go to the back and fish over the railing. I carefully secured the small fish on the hook, with the point just sticking out near its tail. Then I lowered it into the calm blue water below, slowly letting out the line until my bait was a silvery spot about a hundred feet behind the boat. It didn't take long before my hopes rose as I saw bright flashes glide past the hull, heading towards the back. Then I felt a gentle tug on the line, which I let slip slowly through my fingers until I thought it was time to see if I was right or wrong. With a long, hard pull, my heart raced as I felt that familiar thrill along the line that all fishermen love. There was no fancy technique here, just pulling the line in hand over hand, strong enough to land a 250-pound fish. Up came the beauty, all silver, scarlet, and blue, five feet long if it was an inch, weighing 35 pounds. Well, I’ve never seen so many astonished men. They could hardly believe their eyes. That such a bold innovation could be successful was almost unbelievable, even with solid proof right in front of them. Even grim Captain Slocum came over to take a look and seemed to have a less stern expression than usual, while Mr. Count, the mate, couldn't help but chuckle again at how the little Britisher had outdone these veteran fishermen. We cut open the fish and found two recent flying fish in its stomach, which we used for new bait, resulting in a cheerful din of hissing and spluttering from the galley soon after, along with a feast of fish for everyone.
Shortly afterwards a fresh breeze sprang up, which proved to be the beginning of the N.E. trades, and fairly guaranteed us against any very bad weather for some time to come.
Shortly after, a new breeze picked up, which turned out to be the start of the N.E. trades, giving us a solid assurance that we wouldn't face any really bad weather for a while.
Somehow or other it had leaked out that we were to cruise the Cape Verd Islands for a spell before working south, and the knowledge seemed to have quite an enlivening effect upon our Portuguese shipmates.
Somehow, it got out that we were going to cruise the Cape Verde Islands for a while before heading south, and this news seemed to really energize our Portuguese shipmates.
Most of them belonged there, and although there was but the faintest prospect of their getting ashore upon any pretext whatever, the possibility of seeing their island homes again seemed to quite transform them. Hitherto they had been very moody and exclusive, never associating with us on the white side, or attempting to be at all familiar. A mutual atmosphere of suspicion, in fact, seemed to pervade our quarters, making things already uncomfortable enough, still more so. Now, however, they fraternized with us, and in a variety of uncouth ways made havoc of the English tongue, as they tried to impress us with the beauty, fertility and general incomparability of their beloved Cape Verds. Of the eleven white men besides myself in the forecastle, there were a middle-aged German baker, who had bolted from Buffalo; two Hungarians, who looked like noblemen disguised—in dirt; two slab-sided Yankees of about 22 from farms in Vermont; a drayman from New York; a French Canadian from the neighbourhood of Quebec; two Italians from Genoa; and two nondescripts that I never found out the origin of. Imagine, then, the babel of sound, and think—but no, it is impossible to think, what sort of a jargon was compounded of all these varying elements of language.
Most of them belonged there, and even though there was just the slightest chance of them getting ashore for any reason, the idea of seeing their island homes again seemed to completely change them. Until then, they had been quite moody and distant, never mingling with us on the white side or trying to connect at all. There was a shared atmosphere of suspicion that lingered in our space, making things already uncomfortable even worse. Now, however, they started to bond with us and in various awkward ways butchered the English language, trying to impress us with the beauty, richness, and overall uniqueness of their beloved Cape Verds. Among the eleven white men besides me in the forecastle, there was a middle-aged German baker who had escaped from Buffalo; two Hungarians who looked like nobles disguised—in dirt; two robust Yankees around 22 from farms in Vermont; a drayman from New York; a French Canadian from near Quebec; two Italians from Genoa; and two unknowns whose origins I never discovered. So, picture the chaos of sounds, and just think—but no, it’s impossible to imagine what kind of gibberish was created from all these different languages.
One fortunate thing, there was peace below. Indeed, the spirit seemed completely taken out of all of them, and by some devilish ingenuity the afterguard had been able to sow distrust between them all, while treating them like dogs, so that the miseries of their life were never openly discussed. My position among them gave me at times some uneasiness. Though I tried to be helpful to all, and was full of sympathy for their undeserved sufferings, I could not but feel that they would have been more than human had they not envied me my immunity from the kicks and blows they all shared so impartially. However, there was no help for it, so I went on as cheerily as I could.
One good thing was that there was peace below. In fact, the crew seemed completely drained of spirit, and through some clever manipulation, the officers had managed to create distrust among them while treating them like dogs, so the hardships of their lives were never openly discussed. My role among them sometimes made me uneasy. Although I tried to be helpful and empathized with their unjust suffering, I couldn't shake the feeling that they would have been less than human if they didn’t envy my immunity from the kicks and blows they all received so evenly. Still, there was nothing to be done about it, so I tried to carry on as cheerfully as I could.
A peculiarity of all these vessels, as I afterwards learned, was that no stated allowance of anything was made. Even the water was not served out to us, but was kept in a great scuttle-butt by the cabin door, to which every one who needed a drink had to go, and from which none might be carried away. No water was allowed for washing except from the sea; and every one knows, or should know, that neither flesh nor clothes can be cleansed with that. But a cask with a perforated top was lashed by the bowsprit and kept filled with urine, which I was solemnly assured by Goliath was the finest dirt-extractor in the world for clothes. The officers did not avail themselves of its virtues though, but were content with lye, which was furnished in plenty by the ashes from the galley fire, where nothing but wood was used as fuel. Of course when rain fell we might have a good wash, if it was night and no other work was toward; but we were not allowed to store any for washing purposes. Another curious but absolutely necessary custom prevailed in consequence of the short commons under which we lived. When the portion of meat was brought down in its wooden kid, or tub, at dinner-time, it was duly divided as fairly as possible into as many parts as there were mouths. Then one man turned his back on the carver, who holding up each portion, called out, "Who's this for?" Whatever name was mentioned by the arbitrator, that man owning it received the piece, and had perforce to be satisfied therewith. Thus justice was done to all in the only way possible, and without any friction whatever.
A strange thing about all these ships, as I later found out, was that there was no set allowance for anything. Even water wasn’t served to us; it was stored in a big container by the cabin door, and anyone who needed a drink had to go get it themselves, and no one was allowed to take any away. We could only use seawater for washing, and everyone knows, or should know, that you can’t clean either meat or clothes with that. But there was a barrel with a lid full of urine strapped to the bowsprit, and Goliath seriously claimed it was the best dirt remover in the world for clothes. The officers didn’t use it, though; they were fine with lye, which was plentiful thanks to the ashes from the kitchen fire, where only wood was burned. Naturally, when it rained, we could get a decent wash, provided it was nighttime and we didn’t have other work to do; but we weren’t allowed to collect any water for washing. Another odd but absolutely necessary practice developed because of the meager rations we had. When the meat was brought down in its wooden container at dinner, it was divided as fairly as possible among those present. One person had to turn their back on the carver, who would hold up each piece and call out, “Who’s this for?” Whoever’s name was mentioned by the caller would get that portion and had to be okay with it. This way, fairness was maintained for everyone without any conflicts.
As some of us were without clothes except what we stood upright in, when we joined, the "slop chest" was opened, and every applicant received from the steward what Captain Slocum thought fit to let him have, being debited with the cost against such wages as he might afterwards earn. The clothes were certainly of fairly good quality, if the price was high, and exactly suited to our requirements. Soap, matches, and tobacco were likewise supplied on the same terms, but at higher prices than I had ever heard of before for these necessaries. After much careful inquiry I ascertained what, in the event of a successful voyage, we were likely to earn. Each of us were on the two hundredth "lay" or share at $200 per tun, which meant that for every two hundred barrels of oil taken on board, we were entitled to one, which we must sell to the ship at the rate of L40 per tun or L4 per barrel. Truly a magnificent outlook for young men bound to such a business for three or four years.
As some of us had no clothes except for what we were wearing when we joined, the "slop chest" was opened, and each person received whatever Captain Slocum decided to give them, which would be deducted from their wages later on. The clothes were definitely decent quality, even if they were pricey, and perfectly suited our needs. Soap, matches, and tobacco were also provided under the same conditions, but at prices I had never heard of for these essentials. After doing some careful research, I found out what we could expect to earn if the voyage was successful. Each of us was on the two hundredth "lay" or share at $200 per ton, which meant for every two hundred barrels of oil we brought on board, we were entitled to one, which we had to sell to the ship at the rate of £40 per ton or £4 per barrel. It was truly a promising opportunity for young men committed to this line of work for three or four years.
CHAPTER V. ACTUAL WARFARE. OUR FIRST WHALE
Simultaneous ideas occurring to several people, or thought transference, whatever one likes to call the phenomenon is too frequent an occurrence in most of our experience to occasion much surprise. Yet on the occasion to which I am about to refer, the matter was so very marked that few of us who took part in the day's proceedings are ever likely to forget it.
Ideas happening at the same time for different people, or thought transfer—whatever you want to call it—happens often enough in our experiences that it usually doesn't surprise us much. However, on the occasion I’m about to mention, it was so significant that most of us who were involved in that day's events are unlikely to ever forget it.
We were all gathered about the fo'lk'sle scuttle one evening, a few days after the gale referred to in the previous chapter, and the question of whale-fishing came up for discussion. Until that time, strange as it may seem, no word of this, the central idea of all our minds, had been mooted. Every man seemed to shun the subject, although we were in daily expectation of being called upon to take an active part in whale-fighting. Once the ice was broken, nearly all had something to say about it, and very nearly as many addle-headed opinions were ventilated as at a Colney Hatch debating society. For we none of us KNEW anything about it. I was appealed to continually to support this or that theory, but as far as whaling went I could only, like the rest of them, draw upon my imagination for details. How did a whale act, what were the first steps taken, what chance was there of being saved if your boat got smashed, and so on unto infinity. At last, getting very tired of this "Portugee Parliament" of all talkers and no listeners, I went aft to get a drink of water before turning in. The harpooners and other petty officers were grouped in the waist, earnestly discussing the pros and cons of attack upon whales. As I passed I heard the mate's harpooner say, "Feels like whale about. I bet a plug (of tobacco) we raise sperm whale to-morrow." Nobody took his bet, for it appeared that they were mostly of the same mind, and while I was drinking I heard the officers in dignified conclave talking over the same thing. It was Saturday evening, and while at home people were looking forward to a day's respite from work and care, I felt that the coming day, though never taken much notice of on board, was big with the probabilities of strife such as I at least had at present no idea of. So firmly was I possessed by the prevailing feeling.
We were all gathered around the forecastle scuttle one evening, a few days after the storm mentioned in the previous chapter, and the topic of whale fishing came up for discussion. Until that moment, it was strange, but no one had actually talked about this, which was clearly on everyone’s mind. Every man seemed to avoid the subject, even though we were expecting to be called into action for whale fighting any day. Once the ice was broken, almost everyone had something to say, and just as many confused opinions were shared as in a debate club. None of us really KNEW anything about it. I was constantly asked to support different theories, but like the others, I could only rely on my imagination for details about whaling. How does a whale behave? What are the first steps to take? What are the chances of survival if your boat gets wrecked, and so on? Eventually, I got really tired of this "Portugee Parliament" full of talkers and no listeners, so I went to the back to get a drink of water before heading to bed. The harpooners and other junior officers were gathered in the middle of the ship, seriously discussing the pros and cons of attacking whales. As I walked by, I heard the mate's harpooner say, "Feels like there are whales around. I’ll bet a plug of tobacco we see a sperm whale tomorrow." Nobody took his bet because it seemed they all thought the same way. While I was drinking, I overheard the officers in a serious meeting talking about the same thing. It was Saturday evening, and while back home people were looking forward to a day of rest from work and worries, I felt that the upcoming day, although often overlooked on board, was full of the potential for conflict that I didn’t yet understand. I was strongly influenced by this general feeling.
The night was very quiet. A gentle breeze was blowing, and the sky was of the usual "Trade" character, that is, a dome of dark blue fringed at the horizon with peaceful cumulus clouds, almost motionless. I turned in at four a.m. from the middle watch and, as usual, slept like a babe. Suddenly I started wide awake, a long mournful sound sending a thrill to my very heart. As I listened breathlessly other sounds of the same character but in different tones joined in, human voices monotonously intoning in long drawn-out expirations the single word "bl-o-o-o-o-w." Then came a hurricane of noise overhead, and adjurations in no gentle language to the sleepers to "tumble up lively there, no skulking, sperm whales." At last, then, fulfilling all the presentiments of yesterday, the long dreaded moment had arrived. Happily there was no time for hesitation, in less than two minutes we were all on deck, and hurrying to our respective boats. There was no flurry or confusion, and except that orders were given more quietly than usual, with a manifest air of suppressed excitement, there was nothing to show that we were not going for an ordinary course of boat drill. The skipper was in the main crow's-nest with his binoculars presently he shouted, "Naow then, Mr. Count, lower away soon's y'like. Small pod o'cows, an' one'r two bulls layin' off to west'ard of 'em." Down went the boats into the water quietly enough, we all scrambled in and shoved off. A stroke or two of the oars were given to get clear of the ship, and one another, then oars were shipped and up went the sails. As I took my allotted place at the main-sheet, and the beautiful craft started off like some big bird, Mr. Count leant forward, saying impressively to me, "Y'r a smart youngster, an' I've kinder took t'yer; but don't ye look ahead an' get gallied, 'r I'll knock ye stiff wi' th' tiller; y'hear me? N' don't ye dare to make thet sheet fast, 'r ye'll die so sudden y' won't know whar y'r hurted." I said as cheerfully as I could, "All right, sir," trying to look unconcerned, telling myself not to be a coward, and all sorts of things; but the cold truth is that I was scared almost to death because I didn't know what was coming. However, I did the best thing under the circumstances, obeyed orders and looked steadily astern, or up into the bronzed impassive face of my chief, who towered above me, scanning with eagle eyes the sea ahead. The other boats were coming flying along behind us, spreading wider apart as they came, while in the bows of each stood the harpooner with his right hand on his first iron, which lay ready, pointing over the bow in a raised fork of wood called the "crutch."
The night was really quiet. A gentle breeze was blowing, and the sky looked like it usually does during the "Trade" winds, with a dark blue dome fading into peaceful, almost motionless cumulus clouds on the horizon. I turned in at four a.m. after the middle watch and, as usual, slept soundly. Suddenly, I woke up with a start, a long mournful sound sending a chill through me. As I listened intently, other similar sounds in different tones joined in, human voices monotonously chanting the single word "bl-o-o-o-o-w." Then there was a loud commotion overhead, along with some not-so-gentle shouts urging the sleepers to "get up quickly, no slacking, sperm whales." Finally, fulfilling all the ominous feelings from yesterday, the moment we had dreaded had arrived. Fortunately, there was no time to hesitate; in less than two minutes, we were all on deck, rushing to our assigned boats. There was no panic or confusion, and except for the fact that orders were given more quietly than usual, with a clear air of suppressed excitement, nothing indicated we weren’t heading for a typical boat drill. The captain was in the main crow's-nest with his binoculars; he suddenly shouted, "Now then, Mr. Count, lower away whenever you're ready. Small pod of cows, and one or two bulls off to the west of them." The boats went down into the water quietly, we all scrambled in, and pushed off. We took a couple of strokes with the oars to get clear of the ship and each other, then stowed the oars and raised the sails. As I took my place at the main-sheet and the beautiful boat started off like a big bird, Mr. Count leaned forward, saying seriously to me, "You're a smart kid, and I've kinda taken a liking to you; but don’t look ahead and get scared, or I’ll knock you stiff with the tiller; you hear me? And don’t you dare make that sheet fast, or you’ll die so suddenly you won’t know where you got hurt." I replied as cheerfully as I could, "All right, sir," trying to act nonchalant, telling myself not to be a coward, and all sorts of things; but the cold truth is, I was terrified because I had no idea what was about to happen. However, I did the best I could given the circumstances, followed orders, and kept my gaze fixed either astern or on the bronzed, impassive face of my chief, who loomed above me, scanning the sea ahead with sharp eyes. The other boats were coming up fast behind us, spreading wider apart as they moved in, while in the bows of each boat stood the harpooner with his right hand on his first iron, which was ready and pointing over the bow in a wooden fork called the "crutch."
All of a sudden, at a motion of the chief's hand, the peak of our mainsail was dropped, and the boat swung up into the wind, laying "hove to," almost stationary. The centre-board was lowered to stop her drifting to leeward, although I cannot say it made much difference that ever I saw. NOW what's the matter, I thought, when to my amazement the chief addressing me said, "Wonder why we've hauled up, don't ye?" "Yes, sir, I do," said I. "Wall," said he, "the fish hev sounded, an' 'ef we run over 'em, we've seen the last ov'em. So we wait awhile till they rise agin, 'n then we'll prob'ly git thar' 'r thareabonts before they sound agin." With this explanation I had to be content, although if it be no clearer to my readers than it then was to me, I shall have to explain myself more fully later on. Silently we lay, rocking lazily upon the gentle swell, no other word being spoken by any one. At last Louis, the harpooner, gently breathed "blo-o-o-w;" and there, sure enough, not half a mile away on the lee beam, was a little bushy cloud of steam apparently rising from the sea. At almost the same time as we kept away all the other boats did likewise, and just then, catching sight of the ship, the reason for this apparently concerted action was explained. At the main-mast head of the ship was a square blue flag, and the ensign at the peak was being dipped. These were signals well understood and promptly acted upon by those in charge of the boats, who were thus guided from a point of view at least one hundred feet above the sea.
Suddenly, with a wave of the captain's hand, the top of our mainsail was dropped, and the boat turned into the wind, almost coming to a complete stop. The centerboard was lowered to keep us from drifting downwind, though I can't say it made much of a difference that I noticed. "What's going on?" I wondered, when to my surprise, the captain turned to me and said, "Wondering why we've stopped, huh?" "Yes, sir, I am," I replied. "Well," he said, "the fish have sounded, and if we pass over them, we won’t see them again. So we wait a bit until they come up again, and then we’ll probably get there or thereabouts before they sound again." I had to accept this explanation, though if it's not clearer to my readers than it was to me back then, I’ll need to explain myself more thoroughly later. We lay in silence, gently rocking on the calm swells, with no one saying a word. Finally, Louis, the harpooner, quietly said "blo-o-o-w;" and sure enough, not half a mile away on our leeward side, a small, bushy cloud of steam was rising from the sea. Almost at the same time, we changed course, as did all the other boats, and just then, noticing the ship, I understood why this seemingly coordinated action was happening. At the mainmast of the ship was a square blue flag, and the ensign at the top was being dipped. These were signals that were well understood and acted upon promptly by those in charge of the boats, guided from a vantage point at least one hundred feet above the sea.
"Stand up, Louey," the mate murmured softly. I only just stopped myself in time from turning my head to see why the order was given. Suddenly there was a bump, at the same moment the mate yelled, "Give't to him, Louey, give't to him!" and to me, "Haul that main sheet, naow haul, why don't ye?" I hauled it flat aft, and the boat shot up into the wind, rubbing sides as she did so with what to my troubled sight seemed an enormous mass of black india-rubber floating. As we CRAWLED up into the wind, the whale went into convulsions befitting his size and energy. He raised a gigantic tail on high, threshing the water with deafening blows, rolling at the same time from side to side until the surrounding sea was white with froth. I felt in an agony lest we should be crushed under one of those fearful strokes, for Mr. Count appeared to be oblivious of possible danger, although we seemed to be now drifting back on to the writhing leviathan. In the agitated condition of the sea, it was a task of no ordinary difficulty to unship the tall mast, which was of course the first thing to be done. After a desperate struggle, and a narrow escape from falling overboard of one of the men, we got the lone "stick," with the sail bundled around it, down and "fleeted" aft, where it was secured by the simple means of sticking the "heel" under the after thwart, two-thirds of the mast extending out over the stern. Meanwhile, we had certainly been in a position of the greatest danger, our immunity from damage being unquestionably due to anything but precaution taken to avoid it.
"Stand up, Louey," the mate whispered softly. I barely stopped myself from turning my head to see why he gave the order. Suddenly, there was a jolt, and at that moment, the mate shouted, "Give it to him, Louey, give it to him!" Then he turned to me and said, "Haul that main sheet, now haul, why don't you?" I pulled it hard, and the boat shot up into the wind, scraping against what looked to my worried eyes like a huge mass of black rubber floating. As we crawled into the wind, the whale thrashed about with a power that matched its size. It lifted its enormous tail high, slamming the water with thunderous blows, while rolling from side to side until the surrounding sea turned white with foam. I was terrified that we might be crushed by one of those awful strikes, as Mr. Count seemed oblivious to the potential danger, even though we were drifting back toward the writhing giant. With the sea in such turmoil, it was incredibly difficult to remove the tall mast, which was the first thing we needed to do. After a desperate struggle, and a close call where one of the men almost fell overboard, we got the single "stick," with the sail wrapped around it, down and secured it at the back, where we wedged the "heel" under the rear seat, with two-thirds of the mast hanging out over the stern. In the meantime, we had definitely been in a very dangerous position, and our escape from harm was definitely due to sheer luck rather than any precaution we took to avoid it.
By the time the oars were handled, and the mate had exchanged places with the harpooner, our friend the enemy had "sounded," that is, he had gone below for a change of scene, marvelling no doubt what strange thing had befallen him. Agreeably to the accounts which I, like most boys, had read of the whale fishery, I looked for the rushing of the line round the logger-head (a stout wooden post built into the boat aft), to raise a cloud of smoke with occasional bursts of flame; so as it began to slowly surge round the post, I timidly asked the harpooner whether I should throw any water on it. "Wot for?" growled he, as he took a couple more turns with it. Not knowing "what for," and hardly liking to quote my authorities here, I said no more, but waited events. "Hold him up, Louey, bold him up, cain't ye?" shouted the mate, and to my horror, down went the nose of the boat almost under water, while at the mate's order everybody scrambled aft into the elevated stern sheets.
By the time the oars were ready, and the mate had switched places with the harpooner, our friend the enemy had "sounded," which means he had gone below for a change of scenery, probably wondering what strange event had just happened to him. According to the stories I, like most boys, had read about whaling, I expected the line to rush around the logger-head (a solid wooden post at the back of the boat) and create a cloud of smoke with occasional bursts of flame. So, as it began to slowly wrap around the post, I nervously asked the harpooner if I should throw any water on it. "What for?" he grumbled as he took a couple more turns. Not knowing "what for," and not really wanting to reference my sources, I stayed quiet and waited. "Hold him up, Louey, hold him up, can't you?" shouted the mate, and to my shock, the nose of the boat dipped almost underwater, while at the mate's command, everyone scrambled to the back into the raised stern sheets.
The line sang quite a tune as it was grudgingly allowed to surge round the loggerhead, filling one with admiration at the strength shown by such a small rope. This sort of thing went on for about twenty minutes, in which time we quite emptied the large tub and began on the small one. As there was nothing whatever for us to do while this was going on, I had ample leisure for observing the little game that was being played about a quarter of a mile away. Mr. Cruce, the second mate, had got a whale and was doing his best to kill it; but he was severely handicapped by his crew, or rather had been, for two of them were now temporarily incapable of either good or harm. They had gone quite "batchy" with fright, requiring a not too gentle application of the tiller to their heads in order to keep them quiet. The remedy, if rough, was effectual, for "the subsequent proceedings interested them no more." Consequently his manoeuvres were not so well or rapidly executed as he, doubtless, could have wished, although his energy in lancing that whale was something to admire and remember. Hatless, his shirt tail out of the waist of his trousers streaming behind him like a banner, he lunged and thrust at the whale alongside of him, as if possessed of a destroying devil, while his half articulate yells of rage and blasphemy were audible even to us.
The line sang a catchy tune as it was reluctantly allowed to surge around the loggerhead, filling one with admiration for the strength shown by such a small rope. This went on for about twenty minutes, during which we completely emptied the large tub and started on the smaller one. Since there was absolutely nothing for us to do while this was happening, I had plenty of time to observe the little scene that was unfolding about a quarter of a mile away. Mr. Cruce, the second mate, had caught a whale and was doing his best to kill it; but he was severely limited by his crew, or rather had been, because two of them were now temporarily unable to do anything useful. They had completely freaked out with fear, needing a somewhat rough poke to their heads with the tiller to keep them quiet. The remedy, though harsh, was effective, as "the subsequent proceedings interested them no more." As a result, his maneuvers were not executed as well or quickly as he would have liked, though his energy in stabbing that whale was something to admire and remember. Hatless, with his shirt tail hanging out of his trousers streaming behind him like a banner, he lunged and thrust at the whale beside him, as if possessed by a destructive spirit, while his half-coherent yells of rage and curses could even be heard by us.
Suddenly our boat fell backward from her "slantindicular" position with a jerk, and the mate immediately shouted, "Haul line, there! look lively, now, you—so on, etcetera, etcetera" (he seemed to invent new epithets on every occasion). The line came in hand over hand, and was coiled in a wide heap in the stern sheets, for silky as it was, it could not be expected in its wet state to lie very close. As it came flying in the mate kept a close gaze upon the water immediately beneath us, apparently for the first glimpse of our antagonist. When the whale broke water, however, he was some distance off, and apparently as quiet as a lamb. Now, had Mr. Count been a prudent or less ambitious man, our task would doubtless have been an easy one, or comparatively so; but, being a little over-grasping, he got us all into serious trouble. We were hauling up to our whale in order to lance it, and the mate was standing, lance in hand, only waiting to get near enough, when up comes a large whale right alongside of our boat, so close, indeed, that I might have poked my finger in his little eye, if I had chosen. The sight of that whale at liberty, and calmly taking stock of us like that, was too much for the mate. He lifted his lance and hurled it at the visitor, in whose broad flank it sank, like a knife into butter, right up to the pole-hitches. The recipient disappeared like a flash, but before one had time to think, there was an awful crash beneath us, and the mate shot up into the air like a bomb from a mortar. He came down in a sitting posture on the mast-thwart; but as he fell, the whole framework of the boat collapsed like a derelict umbrella. Louis quietly chopped the line and severed our connection with the other whale, while in accordance with our instructions we drew each man his oar across the boat and lashed it firmly down with a piece of line spliced to each thwart for the purpose. This simple operation took but a minute, but before it was completed we were all up to our necks in the sea. Still in the boat, it is true, and therefore not in such danger of drowning as if we were quite adrift; but, considering that the boat was reduced to a mere bundle of loose planks, I, at any rate, was none too comfortable. Now, had he known it, was the whale's golden opportunity; but he, poor wretch, had had quite enough of our company, and cleared off without any delay, wondering, no doubt, what fortunate accident had rid him of our very unpleasant attentions.
Suddenly, our boat lurched backward from its tilted position with a jerk, and the mate immediately yelled, "Haul the line! Move it, you—so on, etcetera, etcetera" (he seemed to come up with new insults all the time). The line came in hand over hand and was piled up loosely in the back of the boat because, despite being smooth, it couldn't be expected to lie flat when wet. As it came in quickly, the mate watched the water right beneath us, apparently waiting for a glimpse of our target. When the whale finally broke the surface, however, it was a good distance away and seemed as calm as a lamb. Now, if Mr. Count had been a more cautious or less ambitious person, our job would have definitely been easier—at least comparatively so; but being a bit greedy, he got us all into serious trouble. We were reeling in toward our whale to stab it, and the mate was standing ready with the lance, just waiting to get close enough, when a large whale suddenly appeared right next to our boat, so close that I could have poked its eye with my finger if I wanted to. Seeing that whale swimming freely and sizing us up was too much for the mate. He raised his lance and threw it at the whale, and it sank into its broad side like a knife through butter, right up to the hilt. The whale vanished in an instant, but before anyone could react, there was a huge crash beneath us, and the mate shot up into the air like a shell from a mortar. He landed sitting on the mast seat, but as he fell, the entire structure of the boat collapsed like a broken umbrella. Louis calmly cut the line, disconnecting us from the other whale, and according to our orders, we each laid our oars across the boat and tied them down securely with a piece of line attached to each seat for that purpose. This simple task took just a minute, but before we finished, we were all up to our necks in water. We were still in the boat, so we weren't in as much immediate danger of drowning as if we were completely adrift; but considering the boat had turned into a pile of loose planks, I, for one, was not feeling too secure. Now, if only the whale had known it, this was his golden opportunity; but he, poor creature, had had more than enough of us and swam away without delay, probably wondering what fortunate accident had freed him from our very unwanted attention.
I was assured that we were all as safe as if we were on board the ship, to which I answered nothing; but, like Jack's parrot, I did some powerful thinking. Every little wave that came along swept clean over our heads, sometimes coming so suddenly as to cut a breath in half. If the wind should increase—but no—I wouldn't face the possibility of such a disagreeable thing. I was cool enough now in a double sense, for although we were in the tropics, we soon got thoroughly chilled.
I was told that we were just as safe as if we were on the ship, to which I didn’t respond; instead, like Jack's parrot, I did a lot of deep thinking. Every little wave that came by splashed right over us, sometimes hitting us so suddenly that it took away our breath. If the wind picked up—but no—I didn't want to consider that unpleasant possibility. I was feeling pretty cool in two ways, because even though we were in the tropics, we quickly got really cold.
By the position of the sun it must have been between ten a.m. and noon, and we, of the crew, had eaten nothing since the previous day at supper, when, as usual, the meal was very light. Therefore, I suppose we felt the chill sooner than the better-nourished mate and harpooner, who looked rather scornfully at our blue faces and chattering teeth.
By the position of the sun, it must have been between ten a.m. and noon, and we, the crew, hadn’t eaten anything since the previous day at dinner, when, as usual, the meal was very light. So, I guess we felt the cold sooner than the better-fed first mate and harpooner, who looked down on our blue faces and chattering teeth with some scorn.
In spite of all assurances to the contrary, I have not the least doubt in my own mind that a very little longer would have relieved us of ALL our burdens finally. Because the heave of the sea had so loosened the shattered planks upon which we stood that they were on the verge of falling all asunder. Had they done so we must have drowned, for we were cramped and stiff with cold and our constrained position. However, unknown to us, a bright look-out upon our movements had been kept from the crow's-nest the whole time. We should have been relieved long before, but that the whale killed by the second mate was being secured, and another boat, the fourth mate's, being picked up, having a hole in her bilge you could put you head through. With all these hindrances, especially securing the whale, we were fortunate to be rescued as soon as we were, since it is well known that whales are of much higher commercial value than men.
Despite all the reassurances we received, I have no doubt in my mind that a little longer would have finally freed us from all our burdens. The rolling of the sea had loosened the broken planks we were standing on to the point that they were about to fall apart. If that happened, we would have drowned, as we were cramped and cold, stuck in a tight position. However, unbeknownst to us, someone in the crow's-nest had been keeping a close watch on us the whole time. We should have been rescued much earlier, but they were busy securing the whale killed by the second mate, and another boat, belonging to the fourth mate, was being retrieved—it had a hole in the hull big enough for your head to fit through. With all these obstacles, especially securing the whale, we were lucky to be saved when we were, as it’s well known that whales are worth much more commercially than men.
However, help came at last, and we were hauled alongside. Long exposure had weakened us to such an extent that it was necessary to hoist us on board, especially the mate, whose "sudden stop," when he returned to us after his little aerial excursion, had shaken his sturdy frame considerably, a state of body which the subsequent soaking had by no means improved. In my innocence I imagined that we should be commiserated for our misfortunes by Captain Slocum, and certainly be relieved from further duties until we were a little recovered from the rough treatment we had just undergone. But I never made a greater mistake. The skipper cursed us all (except the mate, whose sole fault the accident undoubtedly was) with a fluency and vigour that was, to put it mildly, discouraging. Moreover, we were informed that he "wouldn't have no adjective skulking;" we must "turn to" and do something after wasting the ship's time and property in such a blanked manner. There was a limit, however, to our obedience, so although we could not move at all for awhile, his threats were not proceeded with farther than theory.
However, help finally arrived, and we were pulled alongside. Prolonged exposure had weakened us so much that it was necessary to lift us on board, especially the mate, whose “sudden stop,” when he came back to us after his brief flight, had shaken him up quite a bit, a condition that the later soaking definitely didn’t help. In my naivety, I thought Captain Slocum would sympathize with our misfortunes and surely relieve us of our duties until we recovered a bit from the rough treatment we had just gone through. But I couldn’t have been more wrong. The captain cursed us all (except for the mate, who was undoubtedly the only one to blame for the accident) with a fluency and intensity that was, to say the least, discouraging. Furthermore, we were told that he “wouldn’t have any lazy excuses;” we had to “get to work” and do something after wasting the ship's time and resources so recklessly. However, there was a limit to our compliance, so even though we couldn’t move at all for a while, his threats didn’t go beyond mere words.
A couple of slings were passed around the boat, by means of which she was carefully hoisted on board, a mere dilapidated bundle of sticks and raffle of gear. She was at once removed aft out of the way, the business of cutting in the whale claiming precedence over everything else just then. The preliminary proceedings consisted of rigging the "cutting stage." This was composed of two stout planks a foot wide and ten feet long, the inner ends of which were suspended by strong ropes over the ship's side about four feet from the water, while the outer extremities were upheld by tackles from the main rigging, and a small crane abreast the try-works.
A couple of slings were passed around the boat, which were used to carefully lift her on board, just a beaten-up bundle of sticks and gear. She was quickly moved to the back out of the way, since the task of cutting into the whale took priority over everything else at that moment. The initial steps involved setting up the "cutting stage." This consisted of two sturdy planks a foot wide and ten feet long, with the inner ends suspended by strong ropes over the side of the ship about four feet above the water, while the outer ends were held up by tackles from the main rigging and a small crane next to the try-works.
These planks were about thirty feet apart, their two outer ends being connected by a massive plank which was securely bolted to them. A handrail about as high as a man's waist, supported by light iron stanchions, ran the full length of this plank on the side nearest the ship, the whole fabric forming an admirable standing-place from whence the officers might, standing in comparative comfort, cut and carve at the great mass below to their hearts' content.
These planks were about thirty feet apart, with their two outer ends connected by a large plank that was securely bolted to them. A handrail, about waist-high, supported by light iron posts, ran the entire length of this plank on the side closest to the ship, creating a great spot for the officers to stand comfortably while they cut and carved into the massive structure below to their hearts' content.
So far the prize had been simply held alongside by the whale-line, which at death had been "rove" through a hole cut in the solid gristle of the tail; but now it became necessary to secure the carcase to the ship in some more permanent fashion. Therefore, a massive chain like a small ship's cable was brought forward, and in a very ingenious way, by means of a tiny buoy and a hand-lead, passed round the body, one end brought through a ring in the other, and hauled upon until it fitted tight round the "small" or part of the whale next the broad spread of the tail. The free end of the fluke-chain was then passed in through a mooring-pipe forward, firmly secured to a massive bitt at the heel of the bowsprit (the fluke-chain-bitt), and all was ready.
So far, the prize had just been kept alongside by the whale-line, which was threaded through a hole cut in the tough tissue of the tail upon its death; but now, it was necessary to secure the carcass to the ship in a more permanent way. So, a heavy chain similar to a small ship's cable was brought out, and in a clever manner, with the help of a small buoy and a hand-lead, it was passed around the body. One end was fed through a ring on the other end and pulled tight until it fit snugly around the "small," or the part of the whale next to the broad section of its tail. The free end of the fluke-chain was then passed through a mooring-pipe at the front, securely fastened to a heavy bitt at the heel of the bowsprit (the fluke-chain-bitt), and everything was set.
But the subsequent proceedings were sufficiently complicated to demand a fresh chapter.
But the following events were complicated enough to require a new chapter.
CHAPTER VI. "DIRTY WORK FOR CLEAN MONEY"
If in the preceding chapter too much stress has been laid upon the smashing of our own boat and consequent sufferings, while little or no notice was taken of the kindred disaster to Mistah Jones' vessel, my excuse must be that the experience "filled me right up to the chin," as the mate concisely, if inelegantly, put it. Poor Goliath was indeed to be pitied, for his well-known luck and capacity as a whaleman seemed on this occasion to have quite deserted him. Not only had his boat been stove upon first getting on to the whale, but he hadn't even had a run for his money. It appeared that upon striking his whale, a small, lively cow, she had at once "settled," allowing the boat to run over her; but just as they were passing, she rose, gently enough, her pointed hump piercing the thin skin of half-inch cedar as if it had been cardboard. She settled again immediately, leaving a hole behind her a foot long by six inches wide, which effectually put a stop to all further fishing operations on the part of Goliath and his merry men for that day, at any rate. It was all so quiet, and so tame and so stupid, no wonder Mistah Jones felt savage. When Captain Slocum's fluent profanity flickered around him, including vehemently all he might be supposed to have any respect for, he did not even LOOK as if he would like to talk back; he only looked sick and tired of being himself.
If the last chapter focused too much on the destruction of our own boat and the resulting hardships, while barely mentioning the similar disaster that happened to Mistah Jones' vessel, my only excuse is that the experience “filled me right up to the chin,” as the mate put it bluntly. Poor Goliath was truly to be pitied; his usual luck and skills as a whaleman seemed to have completely abandoned him this time. Not only had his boat been wrecked right after they got near the whale, but he hadn’t even had a chance to get anything out of it. When he struck a small, energetic female whale, she immediately "settled," letting the boat glide over her, but just as they passed, she resurfaced, her sharp hump tearing through the half-inch cedar like it was cardboard. She settled again straight away, leaving a hole a foot long and six inches wide, which effectively ended any further fishing attempts by Goliath and his crew for the day. It was all so quiet, so mundane and frustrating; it’s no wonder Mistah Jones felt angry. When Captain Slocum’s colorful curses flew around, aiming at everything he might still care about, he didn’t even seem inclined to respond; he just looked worn out and fed up with himself.
The third mate, again, was of a different category altogether. He had distinguished himself by missing every opportunity of getting near a whale while there was a "loose" one about, and then "saving" the crew of Goliath's boat, who were really in no danger whatever. His iniquity was too great to be dealt with by mere bad language. He crept about like a homeless dog—much, I am afraid, to my secret glee, for I couldn't help remembering his untiring cruelty to the green hands on first leaving port.
The third mate was completely different from the others. He managed to miss every chance to get close to a whale when there was one nearby, and then he took credit for “saving” the crew of Goliath's boat, who were actually never in any danger. His wrongdoing was too serious to be addressed with just insults. He wandered around like a stray dog—much to my hidden delight, because I couldn't help but recall his relentless cruelty to the inexperienced crew when we first set sail.
In consequence of these little drawbacks we were not a very jovial crowd forrard or aft. Not that hilarity was ever particularly noticeable among us, but just now there was a very decided sense of wrong-doing over us all, and a general fear that each of us was about to pay the penalty due to some other delinquent. But fortunately there was work to be done. Oh, blessed work! how many awkward situations you have extricated people from! How many distracted brains have you soothed and restored, by your steady irresistible pressure of duty to be done and brooking of no delay!
Because of these small setbacks, we weren't a very cheerful bunch either in the front or the back. It’s not like we were ever particularly full of laughter, but right now there was a strong feeling of guilt hanging over all of us, along with a common fear that each of us might have to face the consequences for someone else's mistakes. Luckily, though, there was work to be done. Oh, blessed work! How many awkward situations have you helped people out of! How many troubled minds have you calmed and restored with your steady, relentless push to get things done without any delays!
The first thing to be done was to cut the whale's head off. This operation, involving the greatest amount of labour in the whole of the cutting in, was taken in hand by the first and second mates, who, armed with twelve-feet spades, took their station upon the stage, leaned over the handrail to steady themselves, and plunged their weapons vigorously down through the massive neck of the animal—if neck it could be said to have—following a well-defined crease in the blubber. At the same time the other officers passed a heavy chain sling around the long, narrow lower jaw, hooking one of the big cutting tackles into it, the "fall" of which was then taken to the windlass and hove tight, turning the whale on her back. A deep cut was then made on both sides of the rising jaw, the windlass was kept going, and gradually the whole of the throat was raised high enough for a hole to be cut through its mass, into which the strap of the second cutting tackle was inserted and secured by passing a huge toggle of oak through its eye. The second tackle was then hove taut, and the jaw, with a large piece of blubber attached, was cut off from the body with a boarding-knife, a tool not unlike a cutlass blade set into a three-foot-long wooden handle.
The first thing to do was cut off the whale's head. This task, requiring the most effort in the entire cutting process, was undertaken by the first and second mates, who, equipped with twelve-foot spades, positioned themselves on the platform, leaned over the handrail for support, and plunged their tools forcefully down through the massive neck of the creature—if one could even call it a neck—following the clear crease in the blubber. Meanwhile, the other officers wrapped a heavy chain sling around the long, narrow lower jaw, attaching one of the large cutting tackles to it. The "fall" was then taken to the windlass and pulled tight, flipping the whale onto its back. A deep cut was made on both sides of the rising jaw, the windlass kept turning, and gradually the entire throat was lifted high enough for a hole to be cut through its mass. The strap of the second cutting tackle was inserted into this hole and secured by passing a large wooden toggle through its eye. The second tackle was then tightened, and the jaw, along with a large piece of blubber, was sliced off the body using a boarding-knife, a tool similar to a cutlass blade attached to a three-foot-long wooden handle.
Upon being severed the whole piece swung easily inboard and was lowered on deck. The fast tackle was now hove upon while the third mate on the stage cut down diagonally into the blubber on the body, which the purchase ripped off in a broad strip or "blanket" about five feet wide and a foot thick. Meanwhile the other two officers carved away vigorously at the head, varying their labours by cutting a hole right through the snout. This when completed received a heavy chain for the purpose of securing the head. When the blubber had been about half stripped off the body, a halt was called in order that the work of cutting off the head might be finished, for it was a task of incredible difficulty. It was accomplished at last, and the mass floated astern by a stout rope, after which the windlass pawls clattered merrily, the "blankets" rose in quick succession, and were cut off and lowered into the square of the main batch or "blubber-room." A short time sufficed to strip off the whole of the body-blubber, and when at last the tail was reached, the backbone was cut through, the huge mass of flesh floating away to feed the innumerable scavengers of the sea. No sooner was the last of the blubber lowered into the hold than the hatches were put on and the head hauled up alongside. Both tackles were secured to it and all hands took to the windlass levers. This was a small cow whale of about thirty barrels, that is, yielding that amount of oil, so it was just possible to lift the entire head on board; but as it weighed as much as three full-grown elephants, it was indeed a heavy lift for even our united forces, trying our tackle to the utmost. The weather was very fine, and the ship rolled but little; even then, the strain upon the mast was terrific, and right glad was I when at last the immense cube of fat, flesh, and bone was eased inboard and gently lowered on deck.
After being cut away, the whole piece swung easily inboard and was lowered onto the deck. The tackle was then tightened while the third mate on the stage cut diagonally into the blubber on the body, which ripped off in a wide strip, or "blanket," about five feet wide and a foot thick. Meanwhile, the other two officers worked vigorously on the head, occasionally cutting a hole right through the snout. Once that was done, a heavy chain was attached for securing the head. When about half of the blubber was stripped off the body, they paused to finish cutting off the head, which was an incredibly difficult task. They finally accomplished it, and the mass floated behind, secured by a stout rope. After that, the windlass pawls clattered cheerfully, the "blankets" rose quickly in succession, and were cut off and lowered into the main batch or "blubber-room." It didn't take long to strip off all the body-blubber, and when they finally reached the tail, they cut through the backbone, sending the huge mass of flesh floating away to feed the countless scavengers of the sea. As soon as the last of the blubber was lowered into the hold, the hatches were put on, and the head was pulled up alongside. Both tackles were secured to it, and everyone took to the windlass levers. This was a small cow whale, about thirty barrels, meaning it would yield that much oil, so it was possible to lift the entire head on board; however, since it weighed as much as three full-grown elephants, it was indeed a heavy lift for even our combined efforts, testing our tackle to the limit. The weather was really nice, and the ship rolled very little; still, the strain on the mast was enormous, and I was really glad when, at last, the massive block of fat, flesh, and bone was brought inboard and gently lowered onto the deck.
As soon as it was secured the work of dividing it began. From the snout a triangular mass was cut, which was more than half pure spermaceti. This substance was contained in spongy cells held together by layers of dense white fibre, exceedingly tough and elastic, and called by the whalers "white-horse." The whole mass, or "junk" as it is called, was hauled away to the ship's side and firmly lashed to the bulwarks for the time being, so that it might not "take charge" of the deck during the rest of the operations.
As soon as it was secured, the process of dividing it began. From the snout, a triangular piece was cut off, which was more than half pure spermaceti. This substance was housed in spongy cells held together by layers of dense white fiber, which were very tough and elastic, and called "white-horse" by the whalers. The whole mass, known as "junk," was pulled over to the side of the ship and securely tied to the bulwarks for now, so it wouldn’t "take charge" of the deck during the rest of the operations.
The upper part of the head was now slit open lengthwise, disclosing an oblong cistern or "case" full of liquid spermaceti, clear as water. This was baled out with buckets into a tank, concreting as it cooled into a wax-like substance, bland and tasteless. There being now nothing more remaining about the skull of any value, the lashings were loosed, and the first leeward roll sent the great mass plunging overboard with a mighty splash. It sank like a stone, eagerly followed by a few small sharks that were hovering near.
The top part of the head was now sliced open lengthwise, revealing an oblong container or "case" filled with liquid spermaceti, as clear as water. This was scooped out with buckets into a tank, solidifying into a wax-like substance as it cooled, bland and tasteless. Since there was nothing else of value left in the skull, the bindings were loosened, and with the first roll to the leeward, the massive head plunged overboard with a huge splash. It sank like a stone, closely followed by a few small sharks that had been lurking nearby.
As may be imagined, much oil was running about the deck, for so saturated was every part of the creature with it that it really gushed like water during the cutting-up process. None of it was allowed to run to waste, though, for the scupper-holes which drain the deck were all carefully plugged, and as soon as the "junk" had been dissected all the oil was carefully "squeegeed" up and poured into the try-pots.
As you can imagine, a lot of oil was all over the deck, because every part of the creature was so soaked with it that it really spurted out like water during the cutting process. Nothing was wasted, though, since all the scupper holes that drain the deck were carefully blocked, and as soon as the "junk" was cut up, all the oil was meticulously cleaned up and poured into the try pots.
Two men were now told off as "blubber-room men," whose duty it became to go below, and squeezing themselves in as best they could between the greasy masses of fat, cut it up into "horse-pieces" about eighteen inches long and six inches square. Doing this they became perfectly saturated with oil, as if they had taken a bath in a tank of it; for as the vessel rolled it was impossible to maintain a footing, and every fall was upon blubber running with oil. A machine of wonderful construction had been erected on deck in a kind of shallow trough about six feet long by four feet wide and a foot deep. At some remote period of time it had no doubt been looked upon as a triumph of ingenuity, a patent mincing machine. Its action was somewhat like that of a chaff-cutter, except that the knife was not attached to the wheel, and only rose and fell, since it was not required to cut right through the "horse-pieces" with which it was fed. It will be readily understood that in order to get the oil quickly out of the blubber, it needs to be sliced as thin as possible, but for convenience in handling the refuse (which is the only fuel used) it is not chopped up in small pieces, but every "horse-piece" is very deeply scored as it were, leaving a thin strip to hold the slices together. This then was the order of work. Two harpooners attended the try-pots, replenishing them with minced blubber from the hopper at the port side, and baling out the sufficiently boiled oil into the great cooling tank on the starboard. One officer superintended the mincing, another exercised a general supervision over all. There was no man at the wheel and no look-out, for the vessel was "hove-to" under two close-reefed topsails and fore-topmast-staysail, with the wheel lashed hard down. A look-out man was unnecessary, since we could not run anybody down, and if anybody ran us down, it would only be because all hands were asleep, for the glare of our try-works fire, to say nothing of the blazing cresset before mentioned, could have been seen for many miles. So we toiled watch and watch, six hours on and six off, the work never ceasing for an instant night or day. Though the work was hard and dirty, and the discomfort of being so continually wet through with oil great, there was only one thing dangerous about the whole business. That was the job of filling and shifting the huge casks of oil. Some of these were of enormous size, containing 350 gallons when full, and the work of moving them about the greasy deck of a rolling ship was attended with a terrible amount of risk. For only four men at most could get fair hold of a cask, and when she took it into her silly old hull to start rolling, just as we had got one half-way across the deck, with nothing to grip your feet, and the knowledge that one stumbling man would mean a sudden slide of the ton and a half weight, and a little heap of mangled corpses somewhere in the lee scuppers—well one always wanted to be very thankful when the lashings were safely passed.
Two men were now referred to as "blubber-room men," whose job was to go below deck and squeeze themselves in between the greasy lumps of fat to cut it into "horse-pieces" about eighteen inches long and six inches square. While doing this, they became completely drenched in oil, as if they had taken a bath in it; because as the ship rolled, it was impossible to keep their footing, and any fall was onto blubber slick with oil. A complex machine had been set up on deck in a shallow trough measuring about six feet long, four feet wide, and a foot deep. At some point in the past, it had probably been seen as a remarkable invention, a patented mincing machine. Its operation was a bit like a chaff cutter, except the knife wasn't attached to the wheel and only moved up and down since it didn't need to cut all the way through the "horse-pieces" it was fed. It's clear that to get the oil out of the blubber quickly, it needs to be sliced as thin as possible, but for ease of handling the refuse (which was the only fuel used), it wasn't chopped into small pieces. Instead, each "horse-piece" was deeply scored, leaving a thin strip to hold the slices together. This was how the work was organized. Two harpooners managed the try-pots, refilling them with minced blubber from the hopper on the port side and baling out the adequately boiled oil into the large cooling tank on the starboard side. One officer oversaw the mincing, while another had general supervision over everything. There was no one at the wheel and no lookout, as the vessel was "hove-to" with two close-reefed topsails and a fore-topmast staysail, and the wheel was secured down. A lookout wasn't necessary, since we couldn't run anyone down, and if anyone ran into us, it would only be because everyone was asleep, as the light from our try-works fire, not to mention the blazing cresset, could be seen from miles away. So we worked in shifts, six hours on and six hours off, with the labor never stopping for a moment, day or night. Although the work was tough and messy, and the discomfort of being constantly soaked in oil was significant, there was really only one dangerous aspect to the whole operation: filling and moving the huge casks of oil. Some of these casks were massive, holding 350 gallons when full, and moving them around the slippery deck of a rolling ship was extremely risky. Only four men at most could get a decent grip on a cask, and when the ship rolled, just as we had one halfway across the deck—with no grip for our feet—and knowing that if one person stumbled, it would lead to a sudden crash of a ton and a half, resulting in a heap of mangled corpses in the lee scuppers—let's just say everyone was always relieved when the lashings were finally secured.
The whale being a small one, as before noted, the whole business was over within three days, and the decks scrubbed and re-scrubbed until they had quite regained their normal whiteness. The oil was poured by means of a funnel and long canvas hose into the casks stowed in the ground tier at the bottom of the ship, and the gear, all carefully cleaned and neatly "stopped up," stowed snugly away below again.
The whale, being a small one as mentioned earlier, meant everything was wrapped up in just three days. The decks were scrubbed and re-scrubbed until they were back to their usual whiteness. The oil was funneled through a long canvas hose into the barrels stored in the bottom tier of the ship, and all the equipment, cleaned and neatly put away, was stored snugly below again.
This long and elaborate process is quite different from that followed on board the Arctic whaleships, whose voyages are of short duration, and who content themselves with merely cutting the blubber up small and bringing it home to have the oil expressed. But the awful putrid mass discharged from a Greenlander's hold is of very different quality and value, apart from the nature of the substance, to the clear and sweet oil, which after three years in cask is landed from a south-seaman as inoffensive in smell and flavour as the day it was shipped. No attempt is made to separate the oil and spermaceti beyond boiling the "head matter," as it is called, by itself first, and putting it into casks which are not filled up with the body oil. Spermaceti exists in all the oil, especially that from the dorsal hump; but it is left for the refiners ashore to extract and leave the oil quite free from any admixture of the wax-like substance, which causes it to become solid at temperatures considerably above the freezing-point.
This long and complicated process is very different from what's done on the Arctic whaleships, whose trips are short, and they just chop up the blubber and bring it home to get the oil extracted. However, the awful, decaying mass that comes out of a Greenlander's hold is of a completely different quality and value. This is apart from the nature of the substance, compared to the clear and sweet oil, which, after three years in a cask, is delivered by a southern seaman with a smell and taste as mild as the day it was shipped. No effort is made to separate the oil and spermaceti other than boiling the "head matter," as it's called, by itself first, and putting it into casks that aren’t filled up with the body oil. Spermaceti is present in all the oil, especially from the dorsal hump, but it's up to the refiners on land to extract it and leave the oil completely free from any mixture of the waxy substance, which solidifies at temperatures well above freezing.
Uninteresting as the preceding description may be, it is impossible to understand anything of the economy of a south-sea whaler without giving it, and I have felt it the more necessary because of the scanty notice given to it in the only two works published on the subject, both of them highly technical, and written for scientific purposes by medical men. Therefore I hope to be forgiven if I have tried the patience of my readers by any prolixity.
As dull as the previous description might be, you really can't grasp the workings of a South Sea whaler without it. I feel it's even more important to include this information because it was barely mentioned in the only two books published about the topic, both of which are very technical and aimed at a scientific audience by medical professionals. So, I hope my readers will forgive me if I’ve tested their patience with any excessive detail.
It will not, of course, have escaped the reader's notice that I have not hitherto attempted to give any details concerning the structure of the whale just dealt with. The omission is intentional. During this, our first attempt at real whaling, my mind was far too disturbed by the novelty and danger of the position in which I found myself for the first time, for me to pay any intelligent attention to the party of the second part.
It’s probably clear to the reader that I haven’t yet provided any details about the structure of the whale I just discussed. This is deliberate. During this first real whaling experience, my mind was too overwhelmed by the newness and danger of my situation to focus on the other party involved.
But I may safely promise that from the workman's point of view, the habits, manners, and build of the whales shall be faithfully described as I saw them during my long acquaintance with them, earnestly hoping that if my story be not as technical or scientific as that of Drs. Bennett and Beale, it may be found fully as accurate and reliable; and perhaps the reader, being like myself a mere layman, so to speak, may be better able to appreciate description free from scientific formula and nine-jointed words.
But I can confidently promise that, from the worker's perspective, the behaviors, characteristics, and structure of the whales will be accurately described as I observed them during my long experience with them. I sincerely hope that, while my story might not be as technical or scientific as those of Drs. Bennett and Beale, it will still be just as precise and trustworthy. Perhaps the reader, who is also just an everyday person like me, will find it easier to appreciate a description that avoids scientific jargon and complicated terminology.
Two things I did notice on this occasion which I will briefly allude to before closing this chapter. One was the peculiar skin of the whale. It was a bluish-black, and as thin as gold-beater's skin. So thin, indeed, and tender, that it was easily scraped off with the finger-nail. Immediately beneath it, upon the surface of the blubber, was a layer or coating of what for want of a better simile I must call fine short fur, although unlike fur it had no roots or apparently any hold upon the blubber. Neither was it attached to the skin which covered it; in fact, it seemed merely a sort of packing between the skin and the surface of the thick layer of solid fat which covered the whole area of the whale's body. The other matter which impressed me was the peculiarity of the teeth. For up till that time I had held, in common with most seamen, and landsmen, too, for that matter, the prevailing idea that a "whale" lived by "suction" (although I did not at all know what that meant), and that it was impossible for him to swallow a herring. Yet here was a mouth manifestly intended for greater things in the way of gastronomy than herrings; nor did it require more than the most casual glances to satisfy one of so obvious a fact. Then the teeth were heroic in size, protruding some four or five inches from the gum, and solidly set more than that into its firm and compact substance. They were certainly not intended for mastication, being, where thickest, three inches apart, and tapering to a short point, curving slightly backwards. In this specimen, a female, and therefore small as I have said, there were twenty of them on each side, the last three or four near the gullet being barely visible above the gum.
Two things I noticed this time that I want to mention before finishing this chapter. One was the strange skin of the whale. It was bluish-black and as thin as parchment. So thin and delicate, in fact, that it could easily be scraped off with a fingernail. Right below it, on the surface of the blubber, there was a layer that I can only describe as a fine, short fur, although unlike fur, it had no roots or any visible attachment to the blubber. It wasn’t connected to the skin either; it really seemed just to be a sort of padding between the skin and the thick layer of solid fat that covered the entire body of the whale. The other thing that struck me was the nature of the teeth. Until that moment, I had shared the common belief held by most sailors and land-dwellers that a "whale" fed by "suction" (though I didn’t really understand what that meant) and that it couldn't possibly swallow a herring. Yet here was a mouth clearly made for much larger prey than just herring; it took only a quick glance to realize this obvious truth. The teeth were enormous, sticking out about four or five inches from the gums, securely embedded into its tough and solid tissue. They weren’t meant for chewing; the thickest ones were three inches apart, tapering to a short point and curving slightly backward. In this example, a female, and therefore smaller as I mentioned, there were twenty on each side, with the last three or four near the throat barely visible above the gum.
Another most convincing reason why no mastication could have been possible was that there were no teeth visible in the upper jaw. Opposed to each of the teeth was a socket where a tooth should apparently have been, and this was conclusive evidence of the soft and yielding nature of the great creature's food. But there were signs that at some period of the development of the whale it had possessed a double row of teeth, because at the bottom of these upper sockets we found in a few cases what seemed to be an abortive tooth, not one that was growing, because they had no roots, but a survival of teeth that had once been perfect and useful, but from disuse, or lack of necessity for them, had gradually ceased to come to maturity. The interior of the mouth and throat was of a livid white, and the tongue was quite small for so large an animal. It was almost incapable of movement, being somewhat like a fowl's. Certainly it could not have been protruded even from the angle of the mouth, much less have extended along the parapet of that lower mandible, which reminded one of the beak of some mighty albatross or stork.
Another very convincing reason why chewing wouldn’t have been possible is that there were no visible teeth in the upper jaw. Instead of teeth, there were sockets where they should have been, which clearly showed that the large creature’s food was soft and easy to consume. However, there were indications that at some point in the whale's development, it had a double row of teeth, because at the bottoms of these upper sockets, we found in a few cases what looked like rudimentary teeth—not ones that were growing, since they had no roots—but remnants of teeth that had once been fully developed and functional, but had gradually stopped maturing due to lack of use or need. The inside of the mouth and throat was a pale white, and the tongue was quite small for such a large animal. It could hardly move, resembling that of a bird. Without a doubt, it couldn’t be extended even from the corner of the mouth, let alone stretch along the edge of the lower jaw, which reminded one of the beak of a giant albatross or stork.
CHAPTER VII. GETTING SOUTHWARD
Whether our recent experience had altered the captain's plans or not I do not know, but much to the dismay of the Portuguese portion of the crew, we did but sight, dimly and afar off, the outline of the Cape Verde Islands before our course was altered, and we bore away for the southward like any other outward-bounder. That is, as far as our course went; but as to the speed, we still retained the leisurely tactics hitherto pursued, shortening sail every night, and, if the weather was very fine, setting it all again at daybreak.
I don’t know if our recent experience changed the captain's plans, but to the disappointment of the Portuguese crew, we only caught a blurry glimpse of the Cape Verde Islands in the distance before our course changed, and we headed south like any other ship setting out. As for our direction, that was clear, but when it came to speed, we stuck to our relaxed approach, reducing sail every night and, if the weather was nice, putting it all back up at dawn.
The morose and sullen temper of the captain had been, if anything, made worse by recent events, and we were worked as hard as if the success of the voyage depended upon our ceaseless toil of scrubbing, scraping, and polishing. Discipline was indeed maintained at a high pitch of perfection, no man daring to look awry, much less complain of any hardship, however great. Even this humble submissiveness did not satisfy our tyrant, and at last his cruelty took a more active shape. One of the long Yankee farmers from Vermont, Abner Cushing by name, with the ingenuity which seems inbred in his 'cute countrymen, must needs try his hand at making a villainous decoction which he called "beer," the principal ingredients in which were potatoes and molasses. Now potatoes formed no part of our dietary, so Abner set his wits to work to steal sufficient for his purpose, and succeeded so far that he obtained half a dozen. I have very little doubt that one of the Portuguese in the forecastle conveyed the information aft for some reason best known to himself, any more than we white men all had that in a similar manner all our sayings and doings, however trivial, became at once known to the officers. However, the fact that the theft was discovered soon became painfully evident, for we had a visit from the afterguard in force one afternoon, and Abner with his brewage was haled to the quarter-deck. There, in the presence of all hands, he was arraigned, found guilty of stealing the ship's stores, and sentence passed upon him. By means of two small pieces of fishing line he was suspended by his thumbs in the weather rigging, in such a manner that when the ship was upright his toes touched the deck, but when she rolled his whole weight hung from his thumbs. This of itself one would have thought sufficient torture for almost any offence, but in addition to it he received two dozen lashes with an improvised cat-o'-nine-tails, laid on by the brawny arm of one of the harpooners. We were all compelled to witness this, and our feelings may be imagined. When, after what seemed a terribly long time to me (Heaven knows what it must have been to him!), he fainted, although no chicken I nearly fainted too, from conflicting emotions of sympathy and impotent rage.
The captain's gloomy and sullen mood had only gotten worse with recent events, and we were pushed to work as hard as if the success of the voyage depended on our nonstop scrubbing, scraping, and polishing. Discipline was strictly enforced, with no one daring to look out of line, let alone complain about any hardship, no matter how severe. Even our humble submission didn’t appease our tyrant, and eventually, his cruelty escalated. One of the tall farmers from Vermont, named Abner Cushing, with the cleverness that seems to be inborn in his resourceful countrymen, decided to try his hand at making a terrible concoction he called "beer," using potatoes and molasses as the main ingredients. Since potatoes were not part of our diet, Abner figured out a way to steal enough for his project and managed to get his hands on half a dozen. I have little doubt that one of the Portuguese crew members in the forecastle passed the news to the officers for reasons known only to him, just as we white men knew that all our actions and conversations, no matter how trivial, quickly became known to the officers. The discovery of the theft soon became painfully obvious when we had a visit from the afterguard that afternoon, and Abner with his homemade brew was hauled to the quarter-deck. There, in front of everyone, he was accused, found guilty of stealing the ship's supplies, and sentenced. Using two small pieces of fishing line, he was hung by his thumbs in the rigging, so that when the ship was upright, his toes barely touched the deck, but when it rolled, all his weight hung from his thumbs. One would think that this torture alone would be enough punishment for any offense, but on top of that, he received two dozen lashes from a makeshift cat-o'-nine-tails wielded by one of the burly harpooners. We all had to witness this, and we can only imagine how we felt. When, after what seemed like an eternity to me (Heaven knows how long it felt to him!), he fainted, although I’m no coward, I nearly fainted too from the conflicting emotions of sympathy and helpless rage.
He was then released in leisurely fashion, and we were permitted to take him forward and revive him. As soon as he was able to stand on his feet, he was called on deck again, and not allowed to go below till his watch was over. Meanwhile Captain Slocum improved the occasion by giving us a short harangue, the burden of which was that we had now seen a LITTLE of what any of us might expect if we played any "dog's tricks" on him. But you can get used to anything, I suppose: so after the first shock of the atrocity was over, things went on again pretty much as usual.
He was then let go casually, and we were allowed to take him forward and help him recover. As soon as he could stand up, he was called back on deck and wasn’t allowed to go below until his watch was finished. In the meantime, Captain Slocum took the opportunity to give us a brief speech, emphasizing that we had just experienced a small taste of what could happen if any of us played any “dirty tricks” on him. But I guess you can get used to anything; once the initial shock of the situation wore off, things pretty much went back to normal.
For the first and only time in my experience, we sighted St. Paul's Rocks, a tiny group of jagged peaks protruding from the Atlantic nearly on the Equator. Stupendous mountains they must be, rising almost sheer for about four and a half miles from the ocean bed. Although they appear quite insignificant specks upon the vast expanse of water, one could not help thinking how sublime their appearance would be were they visible from the plateau whence they spring. Their chief interest to us at the time arose from the fact that, when within about three miles of them, we were suddenly surrounded by a vast school of bonito, These fish, so-named by the Spaniards from their handsome appearance, are a species of mackerel, a branch of the SCOMBRIDAE family, and attain a size of about two feet long and forty pounds weight, though their average dimensions are somewhat less than half that. They feed entirely upon flying-fish and the small leaping squid or cuttle-fish, but love to follow a ship, playing around her, if her pace be not too great, for days together. Their flesh resembles beef in appearance, and they are warm-blooded; but, from their habitat being mid-ocean, nothing is known with any certainty of their habits of breeding.
For the first and only time in my experience, we spotted St. Paul's Rocks, a tiny group of sharp peaks jutting out of the Atlantic almost on the Equator. They must be incredible mountains, rising almost straight up for about four and a half miles from the ocean floor. Although they seem like tiny dots on the vast ocean, one can't help but think how magnificent they would look from the plateau they rise from. At that moment, their main interest to us came from the fact that when we were about three miles away, we were suddenly surrounded by a huge school of bonito. These fish, named by the Spaniards for their beautiful appearance, are a type of mackerel, part of the SCOMBRIDAE family, and can grow to about two feet long and forty pounds, although most are usually less than half that size. They feed entirely on flying fish and small jumping squid or cuttlefish, but they love to chase after ships, swimming around them for days on end as long as the ship isn't going too fast. Their flesh looks like beef, and they are warm-blooded; however, since they live in the middle of the ocean, not much is known for sure about their breeding habits.
The orthodox method of catching them on board ship is to cover a suitable hook with a piece of white rag a couple of inches long, and attach it to a stout line. The fisherman then takes his seat upon the jibboom end, having first, if he is prudent, secured a sack to the jibstay in such a manner that its mouth gapes wide. Then he unrolls his line, and as the ship forges ahead the line, blowing out, describes a curve, at the end of which the bait, dipping to—the water occasionally, roughly represents a flying-fish. Of course, the faster the ship is going, the better the chance of deceiving the fish, since they have less time to study the appearance of the bait. It is really an exaggerated and clumsy form of fly-fishing, and, as with that elegant pastime, much is due to the skill of the fisherman.
The traditional way to catch them on a ship is to cover a suitable hook with a piece of white cloth a few inches long and attach it to a strong line. The fisherman then sits on the end of the jibboom, making sure to secure a sack to the jibstay so that its opening is wide. He then unrolls his line, and as the ship moves forward, the line, catching the wind, forms a curve, at the end of which the bait dips into the water occasionally, resembling a flying fish. Naturally, the faster the ship goes, the better the chances of tricking the fish, as they have less time to examine the bait. It's really a clumsy and exaggerated version of fly-fishing, and like that refined activity, a lot depends on the skill of the fisherman.
As the bait leaps from crest to crest of the wavelets thrust aside by the advancing ship, a fish more adventurous or hungrier than the rest will leap at it, and in an instant there is a dead, dangling weight of from ten to forty pounds hanging at the end of your line thirty feet below. You haul frantically, for he may be poorly hooked, and you cannot play him. In a minute or two, if all goes well, he is plunged in the sack, and safe. But woe unto you if you have allowed the jeers of your shipmates to dissuade you from taking a sack out with you.
As the bait jumps from crest to crest of the little waves pushed aside by the moving ship, a fish that's more daring or hungrier than the others will jump for it, and in an instant, you’ll have a dead weight of ten to forty pounds hanging at the end of your line, thirty feet below. You pull up quickly, because it might be poorly hooked, and you can’t really play with it. In a minute or two, if everything goes right, it’s in the sack and safe. But woe to you if you let the teasing of your shipmates convince you not to take a sack with you.
The struggles of these fish are marvellous, and a man runs great risk of being shaken off the boom, unless his legs are firmly locked in between the guys. Such is the tremendous vibration that a twenty-pound bonito makes in a man's grip, that it can be felt in the cabin at the other and of the ship; and I have often come in triumphantly with one, having lost all feeling in my arms and a goodly portion of skin off my breast and side, where I have embraced the prize in a grim determination to hold him at all hazards, besides being literally drenched with his blood.
The struggles of these fish are incredible, and a person risks getting thrown off the boom unless their legs are securely locked between the supports. The powerful shaking from a twenty-pound bonito is so intense that it can be felt in the cabin at the other end of the ship. I’ve often come back triumphantly with one, having lost all feeling in my arms and a good amount of skin from my chest and side, where I clung to the prize with fierce determination to keep him at all costs, and I was literally soaked with his blood.
Like all our fishing operations on board the CACHALOT, this day's fishing was conducted on scientific principles, and resulted in twenty-five fine fish being shipped, which were a welcome addition to our scanty allowance. Happily for us, they would not take the salt in that sultry latitude soon enough to preserve them; for, when they can be salted, they become like brine itself, and are quite unfit for food. Yet we should have been compelled to eat salt bonito, or go without meat altogether, if it had been possible to cure them.
Like all our fishing outings on the CACHALOT, this day’s fishing was done based on scientific methods, and we ended up shipping twenty-five nice fish, which was a great addition to our meager supply. Thankfully for us, they wouldn’t take the salt in that hot area fast enough to preserve them; because when they can be salted, they turn to brine and become totally inedible. Still, we would have had to eat salted bonito or go without meat entirely if it had been possible to cure them.
We were now fairly in the "horse latitudes," and, much to our relief, the rain came down in occasional deluges, permitting us to wash well and often. I suppose the rains of the tropics have been often enough described to need no meagre attempts of mine to convey an idea of them; yet I have often wished I could make home-keeping friends understand how far short what they often speak of as a "tropical shower" falls of the genuine article. The nearest I can get to it is the idea of an ocean suspended overhead, out, of which the bottom occasionally falls. Nothing is visible or audible but the glare and roar of falling water, and a ship's deck, despite the many outlets, is full enough to swim about in in a very few minutes. At such times the whole celestial machinery of rain-making may be seen in full working order. Five or six mighty waterspouts in various stages of development were often within easy distance of us; once, indeed, we watched the birth, growth, and death of one less than a mile away. First, a big, black cloud, even among that great assemblage of NIMBI, began to belly downward, until the centre of it tapered into a stem, and the whole mass looked like a vast, irregularly-moulded funnel. Lower and lower it reached, as if feeling for a soil in which to grow, until the sea beneath was agitated sympathetically, rising at last in a sort of pointed mound to meet the descending column. Our nearness enabled us to see that both descending and rising parts were whirling violently in obedience to some invisible force, and when they had joined each other, although the spiral motion did not appear to continue, the upward rush of the water through what was now a long elastic tube was very plainly to be seen. The cloud overhead grew blacker and bigger, until its gloom was terrible. The pipe, or stem, got thinner gradually, until it became a mere thread; nor, although watching closely, could we determine when the connection between sea and sky ceased—one could not call it severed. The point rising from the sea settled almost immediately amidst a small commotion, as of a whirlpool. The tail depending from the cloud slowly shortened, and the mighty reservoir lost the vast bulge which had hung so threateningly above. Just before the final disappearance of the last portion of the tube, a fragment of cloud appeared to break off. It fell near enough to show by its thundering roar what a body of water it must have been, although it looked like a saturated piece of dirty rag in its descent.
We were now pretty deep in the "horse latitudes," and, much to our relief, the rain came down in heavy bursts, allowing us to wash ourselves well and often. I guess the rains of the tropics have been described enough times that I don't need to make weak attempts to convey how they really are; still, I've often wished I could help my friends back home understand how what they call a "tropical shower" falls short of the real thing. The closest I can get to describing it is to imagine an ocean hanging overhead, from which the bottom occasionally drops. All you can see or hear is the blinding glare and deafening roar of the falling water, and a ship's deck, despite having many drains, gets deep enough to swim in just a few minutes. During these moments, you can see the whole heavenly system for making rain in action. Five or six huge waterspouts at various stages of development were often close by; once, we even witnessed the birth, growth, and death of one less than a mile away. First, a big, dark cloud, even among all those other clouds, started to bulge downward until the center became a narrow stem, making the whole thing look like a massive, oddly-shaped funnel. It reached lower and lower, as if searching for a place to grow, until the sea below started to stir in response, finally rising into a sort of pointed mound to meet the descending column. Being so close let us see that both the descending and rising parts were spinning wildly under some invisible force, and when they connected, even though the spiral motion didn’t seem to carry on, the upward rush of water through what was now a long flexible tube was very clear. The cloud above got darker and bigger until it looked terrifying. The pipe or stem thinned out gradually until it became just a tiny thread; and while we watched closely, we couldn't tell when the connection between sea and sky ended—one couldn't say it was cut off. The point rising from the sea settled down almost immediately, causing a little commotion, like a whirlpool. The tail hanging from the cloud slowly got shorter, and the immense reservoir lost the huge bulge that had threatened us from above. Just before the last part of the tube vanished, a piece of cloud seemed to break off. It fell close enough to reveal, with its thundering crash, what a huge body of water it must have been, even though it looked like a soaked piece of dirty rag as it descended.
For whole days and nights together we sometimes lay almost "as idle as a painted ship upon a painted ocean," when the deep blue dome above matched the deep blue plain below, and never a fleck of white appeared in sky or sea. This perfect stop to our progress troubled none, although it aggravates a merchant skipper terribly. As for the objects of our search, they had apparently all migrated other-whither, for never a sign of them did we see. Finbacks, a species of rorqual, were always pretty numerous, and as if they knew how useless they were to us, came and played around like exaggerated porpoises. One in particular kept us company for several days and nights. We knew him well, from a great triangular scar on his right side, near the dorsal fin. Sometimes he would remain motionless by the side of the ship, a few feet below the surface, as distinctly in our sight as a gold-fish in a parlour globe; or he would go under the keel, and gently chafe his broad back to and fro along it, making queer tremors run through the vessel, as if she were scraping over a reef. Whether from superstition or not I cannot tell, but I never saw any creature injured out of pure wantonness, except sharks, while I was on board the CACHALOT. Of course, injuries to men do not count. Had that finback attempted to play about a passenger ship in such a fashion, all the loungers on board would have been popping at him with their revolvers and rifles without ever a thought of compunction; yet here, in a vessel whose errand was whale-fishing, a whale enjoyed perfect immunity. It was very puzzling. At last my curiosity became too great to hear any longer, and I sought my friend Mistah Jones at what I considered a favourable opportunity. I found him very gracious and communicative, and I got such a lecture on the natural history of the cetacea as I have never forgotten—the outcome of a quarter-century's experience of them, and afterwards proved by me to be correct in every detail, which latter is a great deal more than can be said of any written natural history that ever I came across. But I will not go into that now. Leaning over the rail, with the great rorqual laying perfectly still a few feet below, I was told to mark how slender and elegant were his proportions. "Clipper-built," my Mentor termed him. He was full seventy feet long, but his greatest diameter would not reach ten feet. His snout was long and pointed, while both top and bottom of his head were nearly flat. When he came up to breathe, which he did out of the top of his head, he showed us that, instead of teeth, he had a narrow fringe of baleen (whalebone) all around his upper jaws, although "I kaint see whyfor, kase he lib on all sort er fish, s'long's dey ain't too big. I serpose w'en he kaint get nary fish he do de same ez de 'bowhead'—go er siftin eout dem little tings we calls whale-feed wiv dat ar' rangement he carry in his mouf." "But why don't we harpoon him?" I asked. Goliath turned on me a pitying look, as he replied, "Sonny, ef yew wuz ter go on stick iron inter dat ar fish, yew'd fink de hole bottom fell eout kerblunk. W'en I uz young 'n foolish, a finback range 'longside me one day, off de Seychelles. I just done gone miss' a spam whale, and I was kiender mad,—muss ha' bin. Wall, I let him hab it blam 'tween de ribs. If I lib ten tousan year, ain't gwine ter fergit dat ar. Wa'nt no time ter spit, tell ye; eberybody hang ober de side ob de boat. Wiz—poof!—de line all gone. Clar to glory, I neber see it go. Ef it hab ketch anywhar, nobody eber see US too. Fus, I t'ought I jump ober de side—neber face de skipper any mo'. But he uz er good ole man, en he only say, 'Don't be sech blame jackass any more.' En I don't." From which lucid narration I gathered that the finback had himself to thank for his immunity from pursuit. "'Sides," persisted Goliath, "wa' yew gwine do wiv' him? Ain't six inch uv blubber anywhere 'bout his long ugly carkiss; en dat, dirty lill' rag 'er whalebone he got in his mouf, 'taint worf fifty cents. En mor'n dat, we pick up, a dead one when I uz in de ole RAINBOW—done choke hisself, I spec, en we cut him in. He stink fit ter pison de debbil, en, after all, we get eighteen bar'l ob dirty oil out ob him. Wa'nt worf de clean sparm scrap we use ter bile him. G' 'way!" Which emphatic adjuration, addressed not to me, but to the unconscious monster below, closed the lesson for the time.
For whole days and nights, we would sometimes lie around "as idle as a painted ship upon a painted ocean," when the deep blue sky above matched the deep blue sea below, and there was not a single white spot in the sky or water. This complete halt in our journey bothered no one, even though it drove a merchant captain crazy. As for what we were searching for, they had apparently all moved elsewhere, because we never saw any signs of them. Finbacks, a type of rorqual, were always quite common, and as if they knew how useless they were to us, they played around like oversized porpoises. One in particular kept us company for several days and nights. We recognized him by a large triangular scar on his right side, near his dorsal fin. Sometimes he would stay motionless beside the ship, just a few feet below the surface, clearly visible like a goldfish in a bowl; or he would swim under the keel, gently rubbing his broad back back and forth against it, causing strange vibrations to run through the vessel, as if it were scraping over a reef. Whether it was superstition or not, I can’t say, but I never saw any creature hurt just for the sake of it, except for sharks, while I was on board the CACHALOT. Of course, injuries to men don’t count. If that finback had tried to play around a passenger ship like that, all the people lounging on deck would have been shooting at him with their guns and rifles without a second thought; yet here, in a ship that was meant for whale fishing, a whale was completely safe. It was quite puzzling. Finally, my curiosity got the better of me, and I sought out my friend Mistah Jones when I thought it was a good moment. I found him very kind and open, and I received a lecture on the natural history of cetaceans that I’ve never forgotten— the result of twenty-five years of his experience with them, which I later confirmed was accurate in every detail, something that can’t be said for any written natural history I’ve ever come across. But I won’t go into that now. Leaning over the rail, with the great rorqual lying perfectly still a few feet below, I was told to notice how slender and elegant he was. "Clipper-built," my Mentor called him. He was about seventy feet long, but his widest point didn’t reach ten feet. His snout was long and pointed, and both the top and bottom of his head were nearly flat. When he came up to breathe, which he did from the top of his head, he showed us that, instead of teeth, he had a narrow fringe of baleen (whalebone) all around his upper jaws, although "I can’t see why, because he lives on all kinds of fish, as long as they aren’t too big. I suppose when he can’t catch any fish, he does the same as the 'bowhead'—sifts through those little things we call whale feed with that arrangement he has in his mouth." "But why don’t we harpoon him?" I asked. Goliath looked at me with pity as he replied, "Sonny, if you were to stick iron into that fish, you’d think the whole bottom fell out, kerblunk. When I was young and foolish, a finback swam alongside me one day off the Seychelles. I had just missed a sperm whale, and I must have been kind of mad. Well, I let him have it right between the ribs. If I live ten thousand years, I ain’t gonna forget that. There was no time to spit, I tell you; everybody was leaning over the side of the boat. Whoosh—poof!—the line was gone. Clear to glory, I never saw it go. If it caught anywhere, nobody ever saw us again either. First, I thought I’d jump over the side—never face the captain again. But he was a good old man, and he just said, 'Don’t be such a blame jackass anymore.' And I don’t." From that clear story, I gathered that the finback had himself to thank for his protection from being hunted. "Besides," Goliath continued, "what are you gonna do with him? There’s not six inches of blubber anywhere on his long ugly body; and that dirty little piece of whalebone he has in his mouth ain’t worth fifty cents. And more than that, we picked up a dead one when I was on the old RAINBOW—he must have choked himself, and we cut into him. He stank so bad it could poison the devil, and still, we got eighteen barrels of dirty oil out of him. Wasn’t worth the clean sperm scrap we used to boil him. Go away!" Which emphatic statement, directed not at me but at the unconscious monster below, ended the lesson for the moment.
The calm still persisted, and, as usual, fish began to abound, especially flying-fish. At times, disturbed by some hungry bonito or dolphin, a shoal of them would rise—a great wave of silver—and skim through the air, rising and falling for perhaps a couple of hundred yards before they again took to the water; or a solitary one of larger size than usual would suddenly soar into the air, a heavy splash behind him showing by how few inches he had missed the jaws of his pursuer. Away he would go in a long, long curve, and, meeting the ship in his flight, would rise in the air, turn off at right angles to his former direction, and spin away again, the whir of his wing-fins distinctly visible as well as audible. At last he would incline to the water, but just as he was about to enter it there would be an eddy—the enemy was there waiting—and he would rise twenty, thirty feet, almost perpendicularly, and dart away fully a hundred yards on a fresh course before the drying of his wing membranes compelled him to drop. In the face of such a sight as this, which is of everyday occurrence in these latitudes, how trivial and misleading the statements made by the natural history books seem.
The calm still continued, and, as always, fish started to be everywhere, especially flying fish. Sometimes, disturbed by a hungry bonito or dolphin, a school of them would leap up—a huge wave of silver—and glide through the air, rising and falling for maybe a couple of hundred yards before they dived back into the water. Or, a single, larger one would suddenly soar into the sky, a big splash behind it showing how narrowly it had escaped the jaws of its pursuer. Off it would go in a long, sweeping curve, and as it flew by the ship, it would rise up, change direction sharply, and zoom away again, the sound of its wing-fins both visible and audible. Eventually, it would head toward the water, but just as it was about to dive in, there would be an eddy—the predator was waiting—and it would shoot up twenty, thirty feet, almost straight up, and dash away a full hundred yards on a new path before the drying of its wing membranes forced it to drop. In the face of such a spectacle, which is a common occurrence in these waters, how trivial and misleading the claims made by natural history books seem.
They tell their readers that the EXOCETUS VOLITANS "does not fly; does not flutter its wings; can only take a prolonged leap," and so on. The misfortune attendant upon such books seems, to an unlearned sailor like myself, to be that, although posing as authorities, most of the authors are content to take their facts not simply at second-hand, but even unto twenty-second-hand. So the old fables get repeated, and brought up to date, and it is nobody's business to take the trouble to correct them.
They tell their readers that the EXOCETUS VOLITANS "does not fly; does not flutter its wings; can only take a prolonged leap," and so on. It seems to a novice sailor like me that the problem with these books is that, while they present themselves as experts, most of the authors are satisfied to get their information not just second-hand, but even twenty-second-hand. This leads to old myths being repeated and updated, and no one bothers to correct them.
The weather continued calm and clear, and as the flying-fish were about in such immense numbers, I ventured to suggest to Goliath that we might have a try for some of them. I verily believe he thought I was mad. He stared at me for a minute, and then, with an indescribable intonation, said, "How de ol' Satan yew fink yew gwain ter get'm, hey? Ef yew spects ter fool dis chile wiv any dem lime-juice yarns, 'bout lanterns 'n boats at night-time, yew's 'way off." I guessed he meant the fable current among English sailors, that if you hoist a sail on a calm night in a boat where flying-fish abound, and hang a lantern in the middle of it, the fish will fly in shoals at the lantern, strike against the sail, and fall in heaps in the boat. It MAY be true, but I never spoke to anybody who has seen it done, nor is it the method practised in the only place in the world where flying-fishing is followed for a living. So I told Mr. Jones that if we had some circular nets of small mesh made and stretched on wooden hoops, I was sure we should be able to catch some. He caught at the idea, and mentioned it to the mate, who readily gave his permission to use a boat. A couple of "Guineamen" (a very large kind of flying-fish, having four wings) flew on board that night, as if purposely to provide us with the necessary bait.
The weather stayed calm and clear, and since there were a lot of flying fish around, I suggested to Goliath that we should try to catch some. I really think he thought I was crazy. He stared at me for a moment, and then, in a tone I can't describe, said, "How do you think you're going to catch them, huh? If you think you can trick me with those lime juice stories about lanterns and boats at night, you're really off base." I figured he was referring to the tale popular among English sailors that if you set a sail on a calm night in a boat where flying fish are plentiful and hang a lantern in the middle of it, the fish will swarm towards the lantern, hit the sail, and fall in piles into the boat. It might be true, but I've never talked to anyone who's seen it happen, nor is it the method used in the only place in the world where flying fishing is done for a living. So I told Mr. Jones that if we got some circular nets with small mesh made and stretched on wooden hoops, I was sure we could catch some. He liked the idea and mentioned it to the mate, who quickly gave his permission to use a boat. That night, a couple of "Guineamen" (a very large type of flying fish with four wings) flew on board, almost as if they came to provide us with the bait we needed.
Next morning, about four bells, the sea being like a mirror, unruffled by a breath of wind, we lowered and paddled off from the ship about a mile. When far enough away, we commenced operations by squeezing in the water some pieces of fish that had been kept for the purpose until they were rather high-flavoured. The exuding oil from this fish spread a thin film for some distance around the boat, through which, as through a sheet of glass, we could see a long way down. Minute specks of the bait sank slowly through the limpid blue, but for at least an hour there was no sign of life. I was beginning to fear that I should be called to account for misleading all hands, when, to my unbounded delight, an immense shoal of flying-fish came swimming round the boat, eagerly picking up the savoury morsels. We grasped our nets, and, leaning over the gunwale, placed them silently in the water, pressing them downward and in towards the boat at the same time. Our success was great and immediate. We lifted the wanderers by scores, while I whispered imploringly, "Be careful not to scare them; don't make a sound." All hands entered into the spirit of the thing with great eagerness. As for Mistah Jones, his delight was almost more than he could bear. Suddenly one of the men, in lifting his net, slipped on the smooth bottom of the boat, jolting one of the oars. There was a gleam of light below as the school turned—they had all disappeared instanter. We had been so busy that we had not noticed the dimensions of our catch; but now, to our great joy, we found that we had at least eight hundred fish nearly as large as herrings. We at once returned to the ship, having been absent only two hours, during which we had caught sufficient to provide all hands with three good meals. Not one of the crew had ever seen or heard of such fishing before, so my pride and pleasure may be imagined. A little learning may be a dangerous thing at times, but it certainly is often handy to have about you. The habit of taking notice and remembering has often been the means of saving many lives in suddenly-met situations of emergency, at sea perhaps more than anywhere else, and nothing can be more useful to a sailor than the practice of keeping his weather-eye open.
The next morning, around 4 AM, the sea was smooth and calm, without a whisper of wind. We lowered the boat and paddled away from the ship about a mile. Once we were far enough, we started by squeezing some pieces of fish that had been saved for this purpose until they were quite pungent. The oil from the fish created a thin layer around the boat, and through this clear water, we could see deep down. Tiny bits of bait sank slowly through the crystal blue, but for at least an hour, there was no sign of life. I was beginning to worry that I would be held responsible for misleading everyone when, to my immense joy, a huge school of flying fish swam around the boat, eagerly snagging the tasty bits. We grabbed our nets, leaned over the side, and quietly lowered them into the water, pressing them down and inward towards the boat. Our success was immediate and overwhelming. We lifted dozens of fish while I quietly urged everyone, "Be careful not to scare them; don't make a sound." Everyone was eager to get in on it. As for Mr. Jones, his excitement was almost too much to handle. Suddenly, one of the men slipped on the smooth bottom of the boat while lifting his net, jolting one of the oars. As the fish startled and scattered, we lost sight of them in an instant. We had been so focused that we hadn't realized how many we had caught; to our great happiness, we found we had at least eight hundred fish, nearly the size of herrings. We quickly returned to the ship after only two hours away, during which we had caught enough for everyone to enjoy three hearty meals. None of the crew had ever seen or heard of such fishing before, so you can imagine my pride and pleasure. A little knowledge can sometimes be risky, but it often comes in handy. Being observant and remembering things has saved many lives in emergency situations, especially at sea, where keeping a lookout is invaluable for sailors.
In Barbadoes there is established the only regular flying-fishery in the world, and in just the manner I have described, except that the boats are considerably larger, is the whole town supplied with delicious fish at so trifling a cost as to make it a staple food among all classes.
In Barbados, there is the only organized flying fishery in the world, and just like I described, except the boats are much larger, the entire town is supplied with delicious fish at such a low cost that it has become a staple food for everyone.
But I find that I am letting this chapter run to an unconscionable length, and it does not appear as if we were getting at the southward very fast either. Truth to tell, our progress was mighty slow; but we gradually crept across the belt of calms, and a week after our never-to-be-forgotten haul of flying-fish we got the first of the south-east trades, and went away south at a good pace—for us. We made the Island of Trinidada with its strange conical-topped pillar, the Ninepin Rock, but did not make a call, as the skipper was beginning to get fidgety at not seeing any whales, and anxious to get down to where he felt reasonably certain of falling in with them. Life had been very monotonous of late, and much as we dreaded still the prospect of whale-fighting (by "we," of course, I mean the chaps forward), it began to lose much of its terror for us, so greatly did we long for a little change. Keeping, as we did, out of the ordinary track of ships, we hardly ever saw a sail. We had no recreations; fun was out of the question; and had it not been for a Bible, a copy of Shakespeare, and a couple of cheap copies of "David Copperfield" and "Bleak House," all of which were mine, we should have had no books.
But I realize this chapter is getting way too long, and it doesn't seem like we're making much progress south either. Honestly, our progress was really slow; however, we gradually made our way across the calm zone, and a week after that unforgettable catch of flying fish, we finally picked up the first of the southeast trade winds and headed south at a decent pace—for us. We spotted the Island of Trinidad with its unique conical pillar, the Ninepin Rock, but we didn't stop because the captain was getting anxious about not seeing any whales and wanted to get to a spot where he felt more confident about finding them. Life had been really dull lately, and even though we were still pretty apprehensive about the prospect of hunting whales (when I say "we," I mean the guys up front), it started losing a lot of its fear factor since we were just so eager for a change. Since we were keeping out of the usual shipping routes, we rarely saw another ship. We had no leisure activities; fun was not an option, and if it hadn't been for a Bible, a copy of Shakespeare, and a couple of cheap editions of "David Copperfield" and "Bleak House," all of which were mine, we wouldn't have had any books at all.
CHAPTER VIII. ABNER'S WHALE
In a previous chapter I have referred to the fact of a bounty being offered to whoever should first sight a useful whale, payable only in the event of the prize being secured by the ship. In consequence of our ill-success, and to stimulate the watchfulness of all, that bounty was now increased from ten pounds of tobacco to twenty, or fifteen dollars, whichever the winner chose to have. Most of us whites regarded this as quite out of the question for us, whose untrained vision was as the naked eye to a telescope when pitted against the eagle-like sight of the Portuguese. Nevertheless, we all did our little best, and I know, for one, that when I descended from my lofty perch, after a two hours' vigil, my eyes often ached and burned for an hour afterwards from the intensity of my gaze across the shining waste of waters.
In a previous chapter, I mentioned that a bounty was offered to whoever first spotted a useful whale, payable only if the ship successfully secured the prize. Due to our lack of success, and to encourage everyone to stay alert, that bounty was increased from ten pounds of tobacco to twenty, or fifteen dollars, depending on what the winner preferred. Most of us white crew members thought this was pretty unrealistic for us, whose untrained eyes were like the naked eye compared to a telescope when matched against the eagle-like vision of the Portuguese. Still, we all did our best, and I know that when I came down from my high lookout after two hours of watching, my eyes often throbbed and stung for an hour afterwards from straining to see across the shimmering expanse of water.
Judge, then, of the surprise of everybody, when one forenoon watch, three days after we had lost sight of Trinidada, a most extraordinary sound was heard from the fore crow's-nest. I was, at the time, up at the main, in company with Louis, the mate's harpooner, and we stared across to see whatever was the matter, The watchman was unfortunate Abner Cushing, whose trivial offence had been so severely punished a short time before, and he was gesticulating and howling like a madman. Up from below came the deep growl of the skipper, "Foremast head, there, what d'ye say?" "B-b-b-blow, s-s-sir," stammered Abner; "a big whale right in the way of the sun, sir." "See anythin', Louey?" roared the skipper to my companion, just as we had both "raised" the spout almost in the glare cast by the sun. "Yessir," answered Louis; "but I kaint make him eout yet, sir." "All right; keep yer eye on him, and lemme know sharp;" and away he went aft for his glasses.
Imagine the surprise of everyone when, one morning three days after we had lost sight of Trinidada, an incredibly strange sound came from the fore crow's-nest. At that time, I was up at the main with Louis, the mate's harpooner, and we looked across to see what was going on. The watchman was the unfortunate Abner Cushing, whose minor mistake had been harshly punished not long before, and he was waving his arms and shouting like a madman. From below came the deep voice of the skipper, “Foremast head there, what do you see?” “B-b-b-blow, s-s-sir,” stuttered Abner; “a big whale right in the way of the sun, sir.” “See anything, Louey?” the skipper shouted at my companion, just as we both spotted the spout almost in the sunlight's glare. “Yes, sir,” Louis replied; “but I can't make him out yet, sir.” “All right; keep your eye on him, and let me know quickly,” and off he went toward the back for his binoculars.
The course was slightly altered, so that we headed direct for the whale, and in less than a minute afterwards we saw distinctly the great black column of a sperm whale's head rise well above the sea, scattering a circuit of foam before it, and emitting a bushy, tufted burst of vapour into the clear air. "There she white-waters! Ah bl-o-o-o-o-o-w, blow, blow!" sang Louis; and then, in another tone, "Sperm whale, sir; big, 'lone fish, headin' 'beout east-by-nothe." "All right. 'Way down from aloft," answered the skipper, who was already half-way up the main-rigging; and like squirrels we slipped out of our hoops and down the backstays, passing the skipper like a flash as he toiled upwards, bellowing orders as he went. Short as our journey down had been, when we arrived on deck we found all ready for a start. But as the whale was at least seven miles away, and we had a fair wind for him, there was no hurry to lower, so we all stood at attention by our respective boats, waiting for the signal. I found, to my surprise, that, although I was conscious of a much more rapid heart-beat than usual, I was not half so scared as I expected to be—that the excitement was rather pleasant than otherwise. There were a few traces of funk about some of the others still; but as for Abner, he was fairly transformed; I hardly knew the man. He was one of Goliath's boat's crew, and the big darkey was quite proud of him. His eyes sparkled, and he chuckled and smiled constantly, as one who is conscious of having done a grand stroke of business, not only for himself, but for all hands. "Lower away boats!" came pealing down from the skipper's lofty perch, succeeded instantly by the rattle of the patent blocks as the falls flew through them, while the four beautiful craft took the water with an almost simultaneous splash. The ship-keepers had trimmed the yards to the wind and hauled up the courses, so that simply putting the helm down deadened our way, and allowed the boats to run clear without danger of fouling one another. To shove off and hoist sail was the work of a few moments, and with a fine working breeze away we went. As before, our boat, being the chief's, had the post of honour; but there was now only one whale, and I rather wondered why we had all left the ship. According to expectations, down he went when we were within a couple of miles of him, but quietly and with great dignity, elevating his tail perpendicularly in the air, and sinking slowly from our view. Again I found Mr. Count talkative.
The course was slightly changed, so we headed straight for the whale, and less than a minute later we clearly saw the large black shape of a sperm whale's head rise high above the sea, creating a circle of foam around it and releasing a bushy, tufted plume of vapor into the clear air. "There she is! Ah bl-o-o-o-o-o-w, blow, blow!" sang Louis; and then, in another tone, "Sperm whale, sir; big, lone fish, heading out east-by-north." "All right. Head down from above," replied the captain, who was already halfway up the main rigging; and like squirrels, we slid out of our seats and down the backstays, passing the captain quickly as he climbed up, shouting orders all the way. Even though our journey down had been brief, when we reached the deck, everything was ready to go. But since the whale was at least seven miles away, and we had a good wind, there was no rush to lower the boats, so we all stood by our respective boats, waiting for the signal. To my surprise, although I felt my heart racing more than usual, I wasn’t nearly as scared as I thought I’d be—actually, the excitement was more enjoyable than anything. A few of the others still showed signs of fear, but Abner was completely transformed; I barely recognized him. He was part of Goliath's crew, and the big guy was quite proud of him. His eyes sparkled, and he chuckled and smiled constantly, like someone who knows they've just made a great deal, not just for themselves but for everyone. "Lower away boats!" rang out from the captain's high perch, immediately followed by the clatter of the patent blocks as the lines flew through them, while the four beautiful boats splashed into the water almost simultaneously. The ship's crew had adjusted the sails to the wind and pulled up the sails, so simply putting the helm down slowed us down and let the boats clear without risk of colliding. Pushing off and raising the sails took just a few moments, and with a nice steady breeze, we were off. As before, our boat, being the captain's, had the prime position; but now there was only one whale, and I was a bit curious why we had all left the ship. As expected, he dove down when we were within a couple of miles of him, but he did so quietly and with great grace, lifting his tail straight up into the air and slowly disappearing from our sight. Once again, I found Mr. Count chatty.
"Thet whale 'll stay down fifty minutes, I guess," said he, "fer he's every gill ov a hundred en twenty bar'l; and don't yew fergit it." "Do the big whales give much more trouble than the little ones?" I asked, seeing him thus chatty. "Wall, it's jest ez it happens, boy—just ez it happens. I've seen a fifty-bar'l bull make the purtiest fight I ever hearn tell ov—a fight thet lasted twenty hours, stove three boats, 'n killed two men. Then, again, I've seen a hundred 'n fifty bar'l whale lay 'n take his grooel 'thout hardly wunkin 'n eyelid—never moved ten fathom from fust iron till fin eout. So yew may say, boy, that they're like peepul—got thair iudividooal pekyewlyarities, an' thars no countin' on 'em for sartin nary time." I was in great hopes of getting some useful information while his mood lasted; but it was over, and silence reigned. Nor did I dare to ask any more questions; he looked so stern and fierce. The scene was very striking. Overhead, a bright blue sky just fringed with fleecy little clouds; beneath, a deep blue sea with innumerable tiny wavelets dancing and glittering in the blaze of the sun; but all swayed in one direction by a great, solemn swell that slowly rolled from east to west, like the measured breathing of some world-supporting monster. Four little craft in a group, with twenty-four men in them, silently waiting for battle with one of the mightiest of God's creatures—one that was indeed a terrible foe to encounter were he but wise enough to make the best use of his opportunities. Against him we came with our puny weapons, of which I could not help reminding myself that "he laugheth at the shaking of a spear." But when the man's brain was thrown into the scale against the instinct of the brute, the contest looked less unequal than at first sight, for THERE is the secret of success. My musings were very suddenly interrupted. Whether we had overrun our distance, or the whale, who was not "making a passage," but feeding, had changed his course, I do not know; but, anyhow, he broke water close ahead, coming straight for our boat. His great black head, like the broad bow of a dumb barge, driving the waves before it, loomed high and menacing to me, for I was not forbidden to look ahead now. But coolly, as if coming alongside the ship, the mate bent to the big steer-oar, and swung the boat off at right angles to her course, bringing her back again with another broad sheer as the whale passed foaming. This manoeuvre brought us side by side with him before he had time to realize that we were there. Up till that instant he had evidently not seen us, and his surprise was correspondingly great. To see Louis raise his harpoon high above his head, and with a hoarse grunt of satisfaction plunge it into the black, shining mass beside him up to the hitches, was indeed a sight to be remembered. Quick as thought he snatched up a second harpoon, and as the whale rolled from us it flew from his hands, burying itself like the former one, but lower down the body. The great impetus we had when we reached the whale carried us a long way past him, out of all danger from his struggles. No hindrance was experienced from the line by which we were connected with the whale, for it was loosely coiled in a space for the purpose in the boat's bow to the extent of two hundred feet, and this was cast overboard by the harpooner as soon as the fish was fast. He made a fearful to-do over it, rolling completely over several times backward and forward, at the same time smiting the sea with his mighty tail, making an almost deafening noise and pother. But we were comfortable enough, while we unshipped the mast and made ready for action, being sufficiently far away from him to escape the full effect of his gambols. It was impossible to avoid reflecting, however, upon what WOULD happen if, in our unprepared and so far helpless state, he were, instead of simply tumbling about in an aimless, blind sort of fury, to rush at the boat and try to destroy it. Very few indeed would survive such an attack, unless the tactics were radically altered. No doubt they would be, for practices grow up in consequence of the circumstances with which they have to deal.
"The whale will stay down for about fifty minutes, I guess," he said, "since it's every bit of a hundred and twenty barrels; and don't you forget that." "Do the big whales cause a lot more trouble than the little ones?" I asked, seeing he was in a chatty mood. "Well, it just depends, boy—just depends. I’ve seen a fifty-barrel bull put up the prettiest fight I’ve ever heard of—a fight that lasted twenty hours, smashed three boats, and killed two men. Then again, I've seen a hundred and fifty barrel whale just sit there taking its punishment without so much as blinking—never moved ten fathoms from the first strike until it was done. So you could say, boy, that they're like people—got their individual quirks, and there's no counting on them for sure ever." I was really hoping to get some useful information while he was in this mood; but it was over, and silence took over. I didn’t dare ask any more questions; he looked too stern and fierce. The scene was striking. Above us, a bright blue sky just fringed with fluffy little clouds; beneath, a deep blue sea with countless tiny wavelets dancing and sparkling in the sun's blaze; but everything was swayed in one direction by a great, solemn swell that rolled slowly from east to west, like the measured breathing of some world-supporting monster. Four little boats together with twenty-four men in them, silently waiting to battle one of the mightiest of God’s creatures—one that would indeed be a terrifying opponent if he were smart enough to take advantage of his opportunities. Against him, we came with our puny weapons, reminding myself that "he laughs at the shaking of a spear." But when a man’s brain was weighed against the instinct of the beast, the competition looked less uneven than it first appeared, for THERE lies the secret of success. My thoughts were suddenly interrupted. Whether we had passed our distance or the whale, who wasn't "making a passage," but feeding, had changed direction, I don’t know; but suddenly, he broke water right in front of us, coming straight for our boat. His huge black head, like the broad bow of a dumb barge parting the waves, loomed large and threatening to me, since I wasn’t forbidden to look ahead now. But calmly, as if coming alongside the ship, the mate bent to the big steer-oar and swung the boat off at a right angle to her course, bringing her back with another broad sheer as the whale passed by in a foam. This maneuver placed us side by side with him before he had time to realize we were there. Up until that moment, he clearly hadn’t seen us, and his surprise was immense. It was quite a sight to see Louis raise his harpoon high above his head and, with a hoarse grunt of satisfaction, plunge it into the black, shiny mass beside him up to the hitches. Quick as a flash, he grabbed a second harpoon, and as the whale rolled away from us, it flew from his hands, burying itself like the first one, but lower down the body. The momentum we gained when we reached the whale carried us a long way past him, out of any danger from his flailing. We experienced no hindrance from the line connecting us to the whale, as it was loosely coiled in a space designed for it in the front of the boat to the extent of two hundred feet, and was cast overboard by the harpooner as soon as the whale was secured. He made a huge commotion, rolling completely over several times back and forth, while simultaneously thrashing the sea with his powerful tail, creating an almost deafening noise and chaos. But we were comfortable enough as we unshipped the mast and prepared for action, being far enough away from him to avoid the full force of his antics. However, it was impossible not to think about what WOULD happen if, in our unprepared and almost helpless state, he decided to rush at the boat and try to destroy it. Very few would likely survive such an attack, unless the tactics were drastically changed. No doubt they would be, as practices develop in response to the circumstances they face.
After the usual time spent in furious attempts to free himself from our annoyance, he betook himself below, leaving us to await his return, and hasten it as much as possible by keeping a severe strain upon the line. Our efforts in this direction, however, did not seem to have any effect upon him at all. Flake after flake ran out of the tubs, until we were compelled to hand the end of our line to the second mate to splice his own on to. Still it slipped away, and at last it was handed to the third mate, whose two tubs met the same fate. It was now Mistah Jones' turn to "bend on," which he did with many chuckles as of a man who was the last resource of the unfortunate. But his face grew longer and longer as the never-resting line continued to disappear. Soon he signalled us that he was nearly out of line, and two or three minutes after he bent on his "drogue" (a square piece of plank with a rope tail spliced into its centre, and considered to hinder a whale's progress at least as much as four boats), and let go the end. We had each bent on our drogues in the same way, when we passed our ends to one another. So now our friend was getting along somewhere below with 7200 feet of 1 1/2-inch rope, and weight additional equal to the drag of sixteen 30-feet boats.
After a lot of furious attempts to get rid of our annoyance, he went below deck, leaving us to wait for his return and speed things up by keeping a tight pull on the line. However, our efforts didn't seem to affect him at all. Flake after flake came out of the tubs until we had to hand the end of our line to the second mate so he could splice his own onto it. Still, it slipped away, and eventually, we passed it to the third mate, whose two tubs faced the same outcome. It was now Mistah Jones' turn to "bend on," which he did, chuckling like someone who was the last hope of the unfortunate. But his smile faded as the never-ending line kept disappearing. Soon, he signaled that he was almost out of line, and a couple of minutes later, he attached his "drogue" (a square piece of plank with a rope tail connected to its center, designed to slow down a whale as much as four boats would) and released the end. We all attached our drogues in the same way as we passed the ends to each other. So now our friend was down below with 7200 feet of 1 1/2-inch rope, plus the weight equal to that of sixteen 30-foot boats dragging behind.
Of course we knew that, unless he were dead and sinking, he could not possibly remain much longer beneath the surface. The exhibition of endurance we had just been favoured with was a very unusual one, I was told, it being a rare thing for a cachalot to take out two boats' lines before returning to the surface to spout.
Of course we knew that, unless he was dead and sinking, he couldn’t possibly stay underwater for much longer. The display of endurance we had just witnessed was quite unusual, I was told, as it’s rare for a sperm whale to take out two boats' lines before coming back up to breathe.
Therefore, we separated as widely as was thought necessary, in order to be near him on his arrival. It was, as might be imagined, some time before we saw the light of his countenance; but when we did, we had no difficulty in getting alongside of him again. My friend Goliath, much to my delight, got there first, and succeeded in picking up the bight of the line. But having done so, his chance of distinguishing himself was gone. Hampered by the immense quantity of sunken line which was attached to the whale, he could do nothing, and soon received orders to cut the bight of the line and pass the whale's end to us. He had hardly obeyed, with a very bad grace, when the whale started off to windward with us at a tremendous rate. The other boats, having no line, could do nothing to help, so away we went alone, with barely a hundred fathoms of line, in case he should take it into his head to sound again. The speed at which he went made it appear as if a gale of wind was blowing and we flew along the sea surface, leaping from crest to crest of the waves with an incessant succession of cracks like pistol-shots. The flying spray drenched us and prevented us from seeing him, but I fully realized that it was nothing to what we should have to put up with if the wind freshened much. One hand was kept bailing the water out which came so freely over the bows, but all the rest hauled with all their might upon the line, hoping to get a little closer to the flying monster. Inch by inch we gained on him, encouraged by the hoarse objurgations of the mate, whose excitement was intense. After what seemed a terribly long chase, we found his speed slackening, and we redoubled our efforts. Now we were close upon him; now, in obedience to the steersman, the boat sheered out a bit, and we were abreast of his labouring flukes; now the mate hurls his quivering lance with such hearty good-will that every inch of its slender shaft disappears within the huge body. "Layoff! Off with her, Louey!" screamed the mate; and she gave a wide sheer away from the whale, not a second too soon. Up flew that awful tail, descending with a crash upon the water not two feet from us. "Out oars! Pull, two! starn, three!" shouted the mate; and as we obeyed our foe turned to fight. Then might one see how courage and skill were such mighty factors in the apparently unequal contest. The whale's great length made it no easy job for him to turn, while our boat, with two oars a-side, and the great leverage at the stern supplied by the nineteen-foot steer-oar circled, backed, and darted ahead like a living thing animated by the mind of our commander. When the leviathan settled, we gave a wide berth to his probable place of ascent; when he rushed at us, we dodged him; when he paused, if only momentarily, in we flew, and got home a fearful thrust of the deadly lance.
So, we spread out as widely as we thought necessary to be close to him when he arrived. It took a while before we saw his face, but when we did, we had no trouble getting back next to him. My friend Goliath got there first, and I was thrilled when he managed to grab the bight of the line. But once he did that, his chance to show off was gone. Weighed down by the massive amount of sunken line attached to the whale, he couldn't do anything and soon got the order to cut the bight of the line and pass the whale's end to us. He reluctantly obeyed, and just after he did, the whale shot off to windward at an incredible speed. The other boats, without any line, couldn't help, so we took off alone with barely a hundred fathoms of line, just in case he decided to dive again. The speed made it feel like a storm was raging as we sped across the surface of the sea, jumping from wave crest to wave crest with a continuous series of cracks like gunshots. The spray soaked us and made it hard to see him, but I understood that it was nothing compared to what we’d face if the wind picked up a lot. One person was bailing out the water that was pouring over the front, while everyone else pulled with all their strength on the line, hoping to get a bit closer to the fleeing beast. Inch by inch, we began to catch up, driven on by the mate's hoarse shouts, his excitement palpable. After what felt like an eternity of chasing, we noticed his speed slowing down, and we increased our efforts. Now we were right on him; following the steersman's instructions, the boat swung out a bit, bringing us alongside his struggling flukes; the mate threw his trembling lance with such fierce determination that every inch of its slender shaft sunk deep into the massive body. "Lay off! Off with her, Louey!" the mate shouted, and she swerved away from the whale just in time. That enormous tail shot up and crashed down on the water, just two feet from us. "Out oars! Pull, two! Starn, three!" the mate commanded, and as we complied, our opponent turned to face us. You could really see how bravery and skill played huge roles in the seemingly unfair fight. The whale's great length made it hard for him to turn, while our boat, using two oars on each side and the powerful leverage from the nineteen-foot steer-oar at the back, moved in circles, backed up, and darted ahead like a creature alive, guided by our captain's will. When the giant settled down, we kept a safe distance from where we thought he would come up; when he charged at us, we dodged; and when he paused, even for just a moment, we rushed in and landed a brutal thrust with the deadly lance.
All fear was forgotten now—I panted, thirsted for his life. Once, indeed, in a sort of frenzy, when for an instant we lay side by side with him, I drew my sheath-knife, and plunged it repeatedly into the blubber, as if I were assisting is his destruction. Suddenly the mate gave a howl: "Starn all—starn all! oh, starn!" and the oars bent like canes as we obeyed. There was an upheaval of the sea just ahead; then slowly, majestically, the vast body of our foe rose into the air. Up, up it went, while my heart stood still, until the whole of that immense creature hung on high, apparently motionless, and then fell—a hundred tons of solid flesh—back into the sea. On either side of that mountainous mass the waters rose in shining towers of snowy foam, which fell in their turn, whirling and eddying around us as we tossed and fell like a chip in a whirlpool. Blinded by the flying spray, baling for very life to free the boat from the water with which she was nearly full, it was some minutes before I was able to decide whether we were still uninjured or not. Then I saw, at a little distance, the whale lying quietly. As I looked he spouted, and the vapour was red with his blood. "Starn all!" again cried our chief, and we retreated to a considerable distance. The old warrior's practised eye had detected the coming climax of our efforts, the dying agony or "furry" of the great mammal. Turning upon his side, he began to move in a circular direction, slowly at first, then faster and faster, until he was rushing round at tremendous speed, his great head raised quite out of water at times, clashing his enormous jaws. Torrents of blood poured from his spout-hole, accompanied by hoarse bellowings, as of some gigantic bull, but really caused by the labouring breath trying to pass through the clogged air passages. The utmost caution and rapidity of manipulation of the boat was necessary to avoid his maddened rush, but this gigantic energy was short-lived. In a few minutes he subsided slowly in death, his mighty body reclined on one side, the fin uppermost waving limply as he rolled to the swell, while the small waves broke gently over the carcass in a low, monotonous surf, intensifying the profound silence that had succeeded the tumult of our conflict with the late monarch of the deep. Hardly had the flurry ceased, when we hauled up alongside of our hard-won prize, in order to secure a line to him in a better manner than at present for hauling him to the ship. This was effected by cutting a hole through the tough, gristly substance of the flukes with the short "boat-spade," carried for the purpose. The end of the line, cut off from the faithful harpoon that had held it so long, was then passed through this hole and made fast. This done, it was "Smoke-oh!" The luxury of that rest and refreshment was something to be grateful for, coming, as it did, in such complete contrast to our recent violent exertions.
All fear was forgotten now—I was breathing heavily, craving his life. At one point, in a frenzy, when we were lying side by side with him, I pulled out my sheath knife and repeatedly stabbed the blubber, as if I was helping to bring about his end. Suddenly, the mate yelled: "Back row—back row! oh, back!" and the oars bent like canes as we complied. There was a surge of the sea right in front of us; then, slowly and majestically, the massive body of our enemy rose into the air. Up, up it went, while my heart stopped, until the entire immense creature hung above us, seemingly still, and then crashed—a hundred tons of solid flesh—back into the sea. On either side of that gigantic mass, the water surged into towering columns of white foam, which collapsed around us as we tossed and fell like a twig in a whirlpool. Blinded by the spray, bailing for dear life to keep the boat afloat, which was nearly full of water, it took me a while to determine if we were still unharmed. Then I saw a short distance away the whale lying quietly. As I watched, it spouted, and the vapor was tinged red with his blood. "Back row!" our leader shouted again, and we retreated far away. The old warrior's trained eye had spotted the looming end of our efforts, the dying spasms or "fury" of the great mammal. Rolling onto his side, he began to move in a circular motion, slowly at first, then faster and faster, until he was spinning wildly, his massive head sometimes raised high out of the water, clashing his huge jaws. Streams of blood poured from his spout-hole, accompanied by deep roars, like some giant bull, but actually caused by the struggling breath trying to pass through the blocked airways. We had to be extremely cautious and quick with the boat to avoid his wild charge, but this colossal energy was short-lived. In a few minutes, he slowly descended into death, his mighty body lying on one side, the fin above waving limply as he rolled with the swells, while the small waves gently broke over the carcass in a low, monotonous surf, heightening the profound silence that followed the chaos of our battle with the former king of the deep. Hardly had the turbulence subsided when we pulled up alongside our hard-won prize to secure a line to him more effectively for hauling him to the ship. This was done by cutting a hole through the tough, gristly material of the flukes with the short "boat-spade," which we carried for this purpose. The end of the line, cut from the faithful harpoon that held it for so long, was then threaded through this hole and secured. Once this was accomplished, it was time for a "Smoke-oh!" The luxury of that rest and refreshment was something to be thankful for, especially given how starkly it contrasted with our recent intense exertions.
The ship was some three or four miles off to leeward, so we reckoned she would take at least an hour and a half to work up to us. Meanwhile, our part of the performance being over, and well over, we thoroughly enjoyed ourselves, lazily rocking on the gentle swell by the side of a catch worth at least L800. During the conflict I had not noticed what now claimed attention—several great masses of white, semi-transparent-looking substance floating about, of huge size and irregular shape. But one of these curious lumps came floating by as we lay, tugged at by several fish, and I immediately asked the mate if he could tell me what it was and where it came from. He told me that, when dying, the cachalot always ejected the contents of his stomach, which were invariably composed of such masses as we saw before us; that he believed the stuff to be portions of big cuttle-fish, bitten off by the whale for the purpose of swallowing, but he wasn't sure. Anyhow, I could haul this piece alongside now, if I liked, and see. Secretly wondering at the indifference shown by this officer of forty years' whaling experience to such a wonderful fact as appeared to be here presented, I thanked him, and, sticking the boat-hook into the lump, drew it alongside. It was at once evident that it was a massive fragment of cuttle-fish—tentacle or arm—as thick as a stout man's body, and with six or seven sucking-discs or ACETABULA on it. These were about as large as a saucer, and on their inner edge were thickly set with hooks or claws all round the rim, sharp as needles, and almost the shape and size of a tiger's.
The ship was about three or four miles downwind, so we figured it would take at least an hour and a half to reach us. In the meantime, since our part of the job was done and well done, we enjoyed ourselves, lazily bobbing on the gentle swell next to a catch worth at least £800. During the fight, I hadn’t noticed what now drew my attention—several large masses of white, semi-transparent-looking stuff floating around, of huge size and odd shapes. One of these strange lumps floated by as we rested, being tugged at by a few fish, and I immediately asked the mate if he knew what it was and where it came from. He told me that when a sperm whale dies, it always ejects the contents of its stomach, which are usually made up of such masses as we saw before us; he thought the stuff was parts of big cuttlefish, bitten off by the whale to swallow, but he wasn’t sure. Anyway, I could bring this piece alongside now if I wanted to and check it out. Secretly amazed at how indifferent this officer with forty years of whaling experience was to such an incredible fact, I thanked him and, using the boat hook, pulled the lump alongside. It quickly became clear that it was a massive piece of cuttlefish—either a tentacle or an arm—thick as a stout man's body, with six or seven suckers, or ACETABULA, on it. These were about the size of a saucer, and their inner edges were densely packed with hooks or claws all around the rim, sharp as needles, and almost the shape and size of a tiger's.
To what manner of awful monster this portion of limb belonged, I could only faintly imagine; but of course I remembered, as any sailor would, that from my earliest sea-going I had been told that the cuttle-fish was the biggest in the sea, although I never even began to think it might be true until now. I asked the mate if he had ever seen such creatures as this piece belonged to alive and kicking. He answered, languidly, "Wall, I guess so; but I don't take any stock in fish, 'cept for provisions er ile—en that's a fact." It will be readily believed that I vividly recalled this conversation when, many years after, I read an account by the Prince of Monaco of HIS discovery of a gigantic squid, to which his naturalist gave the name of LEPIDOTEUTHIS GRIMALDII! Truly the indifference and apathy manifested by whalers generally to everything except commercial matters is wonderful—hardly to be credited. However, this was a mighty revelation to me. For the first time, it was possible to understand that, contrary to the usual notion of a whale's being unable to swallow a herring, here was a kind of whale that could swallow—well, a block four or five feet square apparently; who lived upon creatures as large as himself, if one might judge of their bulk by the sample to hand; but being unable, from only possessing teeth in one jaw, to masticate his food, was compelled to tear it in sizable pieces, bolt it whole, and leave his commissariat department to do the rest.
I could only vaguely imagine what kind of horrible monster that piece of limb belonged to; but of course, I remembered, as any sailor would, that since my earliest days at sea, I had been told the cuttlefish was the largest creature in the ocean, even though I never really believed it until now. I asked the mate if he had ever seen a live version of whatever creature this piece came from. He lazily responded, "Well, I suppose so; but I don't care about fish, except for food or oil—and that's a fact." It's easy to believe that I vividly recalled this conversation years later when I read about the Prince of Monaco discovering a gigantic squid, which his naturalist named LEPIDOTEUTHIS GRIMALDII! It's truly remarkable how indifferent and apathetic whalers usually are to anything but commercial matters—it’s hard to believe. However, this was a huge revelation for me. For the first time, I could understand that, contrary to the common belief that a whale couldn't swallow a herring, here was a kind of whale that could swallow—well, a block four or five feet square, apparently; who fed on creatures as large as itself, judging by the size of the sample at hand; but because it only had teeth in one jaw, it couldn't chew its food and had to tear it into sizable pieces, swallow it whole, and let its digestive system handle the rest.
While thus ruminating, the mate and Louis began a desultory conversation concerning what they termed "ambergrease." I had never even heard the word before, although I had a notion that Milton, in "Paradise Regained," describing the Satanic banquet, had spoken of something being "grisamber steamed." They could by no means agree as to what this mysterious substance was, how it was produced, or under what conditions. They knew that it was sometimes found floating near the dead body of a sperm whale—the mate, in fact, stated that he had taken it once from the rectum of a cachalot—and they were certain that it was of great value—from one to three guineas per ounce. When I got to know more of the natural history of the sperm whale, and had studied the literature of the subject, I was so longer surprised at their want of agreement, since the learned doctors who have written upon the subject do not seem to have come to definite conclusions either.
While thinking about this, the mate and Louis started a casual conversation about what they called "ambergris." I had never heard the word before, but I suspected that Milton, in "Paradise Regained," mentioned something being "grisamber steamed" when describing the feast of Satan. They couldn’t agree on what this mysterious substance was, how it was made, or under what circumstances it came about. They knew it was sometimes found floating near a dead sperm whale—the mate even said he once retrieved it from the rectum of a cachalot—and they believed it was very valuable—worth between one and three guineas per ounce. Once I learned more about the natural history of sperm whales and studied the literature on the topic, I was no longer surprised by their disagreements, since the knowledgeable experts who have written about it don't seem to have reached any definite conclusions either.
By some it is supposed to be the product of a diseased condition of the creature; others consider that it is merely the excreta, which, normally fluid, has by some means become concreted. It is nearly always found with cuttle-fish beaks imbedded in its substance, showing that these indigestible portions of the sperm whale's food have in some manner become mixed with it during its formation in the bowel. Chemists have analyzed it with scanty results. Its great value is due to its property of intensifying the power of perfumes, although, strange to say, it has little or no odour of its own, a faint trace of musk being perhaps detectable in some cases. The Turks are said to use it for a truly Turkish purpose, which need not be explained here, while the Moors are credited with a taste for it in their cookery. About both these latter statements there is considerable doubt; I only give them for what they are worth, without, committing myself to any definite belief in them.
Some people think it's a result of a sick condition in the creature; others believe it's just waste that, which is usually liquid, has somehow become solidified. It's almost always found with cuttlefish beaks mixed in, indicating that these indigestible parts of the sperm whale's diet became combined with it while forming in the intestines. Chemists have studied it with limited success. Its high value comes from its ability to enhance the potency of perfumes, though oddly, it has little to no scent of its own, with perhaps a faint hint of musk detectable in some cases. It's said that the Turks use it for a distinctly Turkish purpose that doesn't need further explanation, while the Moors are known to enjoy it in their cooking. There is quite a bit of doubt about these latter claims; I'm just sharing them for what they are worth, without committing to any firm belief in them.
The ship now neared us fast, and as soon as she rounded-to, we left the whale and pulled towards her, paying out line as we went. Arriving alongside, the line was handed on board, and in a short time the prize was hauled to the gangway. We met with a very different reception this time. The skipper's grim face actually looked almost pleasant as he contemplated the colossal proportions of the latest addition to our stock. He was indeed a fine catch, being at least seventy feet long, and in splendid condition. As soon as he was secured alongside in the orthodox fashion, all hands were sent to dinner, with an intimation to look sharp over it. Judging from our slight previous experience, there was some heavy labour before us, for this whale was nearly four times as large as the one caught off the Cape Verds. And it was so. Verily those officers toiled like Titans to get that tremendous head off even the skipper taking a hand. In spite of their efforts, it was dark before the heavy job was done. As we were in no danger of bad weather, the head was dropped astern by a hawser until morning, when it would be safer to dissect it. All that night we worked incessantly, ready to drop with fatigue, but not daring to suggest, the possibility of such a thing. Several of the officers and harpooners were allowed a few hours off, as their special duty of dealing with the head at daylight would be so arduous as to need all their energies. When day dawned we were allowed a short rest, while the work of cutting up the head was undertaken by the rested men. At seven bells (7.30) it was "turn to" all hands again. The "junk" was hooked on to both cutting tackles, and the windlass manned by everybody who could get hold. Slowly the enormous mass rose, canting the ship heavily as it came, while every stick and rope aloft complained of the great strain upon them. When at last it was safely shipped, and the tackles cast off, the size of this small portion of a full-grown cachalot's body could be realized, not before.
The ship quickly approached us, and as soon as it turned, we left the whale and rowed towards it, letting out line as we went. When we reached the side, the line was handed on board, and shortly after, the prize was brought up to the gangway. We were greeted much differently this time. The skipper’s stern face actually seemed almost cheerful as he took in the massive size of our latest catch. It was indeed a great find, measuring at least seventy feet long and in excellent condition. Once it was secured alongside in the usual way, everyone was sent to dinner, with a reminder to eat quickly. Given our brief previous experience, we knew there was a lot of hard work ahead of us—this whale was nearly four times larger than the one we caught off the Cape Verds. And it was true. The crew worked tirelessly to remove that enormous head, with the skipper even pitching in. Despite their efforts, it was dark by the time the heavy task was finished. Since we weren’t expecting bad weather, the head was dropped over the back by a rope until morning when it would be safer to cut it up. All night we worked nonstop, exhausted but too afraid to suggest taking a break. Some of the officers and harpooners were given a few hours off, as their special job of handling the head at daylight would require all their strength. When day broke, we got a short rest while the rested crew began cutting up the head. At seven bells (7:30), it was “all hands on deck” again. The “junk” was hooked onto both cutting tackles, and everyone who could grabbed a hold of the windlass. Slowly, the massive weight began to rise, tilting the ship heavily as it came up, while every pole and rope overhead groaned under the strain. When it was finally successfully hoisted, and the tackles were released, we could truly appreciate the size of this small part of a full-grown sperm whale’s body.
It was hauled from the gangway by tackles, and securely lashed to the rail running round beneath the top of the bulwarks for that purpose—the "lash-rail"—where the top of it towered up as high as the third ratline of the main-rigging. Then there was another spell, while the "case" was separated from the skull. This was too large to get on board, so it was lifted half-way out of water by the tackles, one hooked on each side; then they were made fast, and a spar rigged across them at a good height above the top of the case. A small block was lashed to this spar, through which a line was rove. A long, narrow bucket was attached to one end of this rope; the other end on deck was attended by two men. One unfortunate beggar was perched aloft on the above-mentioned spar, where his position, like the main-yard of Marryatt's verbose carpenter was "precarious and not at all permanent." He was provided with a pole, with which he pushed the bucket down through a hole cut in the upper end of the "case," whence it was drawn out by the chaps on deck full of spermaceti. It was a weary, unsatisfactory process, wasting a great deal of the substance being baled out; but no other way was apparently possible. The grease blew about, drenching most of us engaged in an altogether unpleasant fashion, while, to mend matters, the old barky began to roll and tumble about in an aimless, drunken sort of way, the result of a new cross swell rolling up from the south-westward. As the stuff was gained, it was poured into large tanks in the blubber-room, the quantity being too great to be held by the try-pots at once. Twenty-five barrels of this clear, wax-like substance were baled from that case; and when at last it was lowered a little, and cut away from its supports, it was impossible to help thinking that much was still remaining within which we, with such rude means, were unable to save. Then came the task of cutting up the junk. Layer after layer, eight to ten inches thick, was sliced off, cut into suitable pieces, and passed into the tanks. So full was the matter of spermaceti that one could take a piece as large as one's head in the hands, and squeeze it like a sponge, expressing the spermaceti in showers, until nothing remained but a tiny ball of fibre. All this soft, pulpy mass was held together by walls of exceedingly tough, gristly integrument ("white horse"), which was as difficult to cut as gutta-percha, and, but for the peculiar texture, not at all unlike it.
It was pulled from the gangway by pulleys and securely tied to the rail running around just below the top of the bulwarks for this purpose—the "lash-rail"—where it rose as high as the third ratline of the main rigging. Then there was another wait while the "case" was separated from the skull. This was too big to get on board, so it was lifted halfway out of the water by the pulleys, one hooked on each side; then they were secured, and a spar was rigged across them at a good height above the top of the case. A small block was tied to this spar, through which a line was threaded. A long, narrow bucket was attached to one end of this rope; the other end, on deck, was handled by two men. One unfortunate guy was perched on the aforementioned spar, where his position, like the main yard of Marryatt's lengthy carpenter, was "precarious and not at all permanent." He had a pole to push the bucket down through a hole cut in the upper end of the "case," from where it was pulled out by the guys on deck, full of spermaceti. It was a tiring, frustrating process, wasting a lot of the substance being scooped out; but there seemed to be no other way. The grease blew around, drenching most of us in a completely unpleasant manner, while, to make matters worse, the old ship began to roll and tumble about in a chaotic, drunken sort of way, the result of a new cross swell coming up from the southwest. As the substance was gathered, it was poured into large tanks in the blubber room, the quantity being too much to be held by the try-pots at once. Twenty-five barrels of this clear, wax-like substance were scooped from that case; and when it was finally lowered a bit and cut away from its supports, it was hard not to think that much was still left inside that we, with such crude methods, were unable to save. Then came the task of cutting up the junk. Layer after layer, eight to ten inches thick, was sliced off, cut into suitable pieces, and passed into the tanks. The spermaceti was so plentiful that one could take a piece as large as a head in their hands and squeeze it like a sponge, releasing the spermaceti in streams, until nothing remained but a tiny ball of fiber. All this soft, pulpy mass was held together by walls of very tough, gristly skin ("white horse"), which was as difficult to cut as gutta-percha and, except for the unique texture, not at all unlike it.
When we had finished separating the junk, there was nearly a foot of oil on deck in the waist, and uproarious was the laughter when some hapless individual, losing his balance, slid across the deck and sat down with a loud splash in the deepest part of the accumulation.
When we finished clearing out the junk, there was almost a foot of oil on the deck in the middle, and everyone burst into laughter when someone clumsy lost their balance, skidded across the deck, and landed with a big splash in the deepest part of the spill.
The lower jaw of this whale measured exactly nineteen feet in length from the opening of the mouth, or, say the last of the teeth, to the point, and carried twenty-eight teeth on each side. For the time, it was hauled aft out of the way, and secured to the lash-rail. The subsequent proceedings were just the same as before described, only more so. For a whole week our labours continued, and when they were over we had stowed below a hundred and forty-six barrels of mingled oil and spermaceti, or fourteen and a half tuns.
The lower jaw of this whale was exactly nineteen feet long from the mouth opening, or the last tooth, to the tip, and had twenty-eight teeth on each side. For the time being, it was pulled back out of the way and secured to the lash-rail. The following steps were exactly the same as described before, only more intense. We worked for a whole week, and when we were done, we had stored away one hundred and forty-six barrels of mixed oil and spermaceti, or fourteen and a half tons.
It was really a pleasant sight to see Abner receiving as if being invested with an order of merit, the twenty pounds of tobacco to which he was entitled. Poor fellow! he felt as if at last he were going to be thought a little of, and treated a little better. He brought his bounty forrard, and shared it out as far as it would go with the greatest delight and good nature possible. Whatever he might have been thought of aft, certainly, for the time, he was a very important personage forrard; even the Portuguese, who were inclined to be jealous of what they considered an infringement of their rights, were mollified by the generosity shown.
It was a really nice sight to see Abner receiving, almost like he was being awarded for something special, the twenty pounds of tobacco he was entitled to. Poor guy! He felt like people were finally going to think a bit more of him and treat him a bit better. He brought his bounty forward and shared it as far as it would go with the greatest joy and kindness possible. Whatever people might have thought of him before, for that moment, he was a very important person upfront; even the Portuguese, who were often jealous of what they saw as an infringement on their rights, were softened by the generosity displayed.
After every sign of the operations had been cleared away, the jaw was brought out, and the teeth extracted with a small tackle. They were set solidly into a hard white gum, which had to be cut away all around them before they would come out. When cleaned of the gum, they were headed up in a small barrel of brine. The great jaw-pans were sawn off, and placed at the disposal of anybody who wanted pieces of bone for "scrimshaw," or carved work. This is a very favourite pastime on board whalers, though, in ships such as ours, the crew have little opportunity for doing anything, hardly any leisure during daylight being allowed. But our carpenter was a famous workman at "scrimshaw," and he started half a dozen walking-sticks forthwith. A favourite design is to carve the bone into the similitude of a rope, with "worming" of smaller line along its lays. A handle is carved out of a whale's tooth, and insets of baleen, silver, cocoa-tree, or ebony, give variety and finish. The tools used are of the roughest. Some old files, softened in the fire, and filed into grooves something like saw-teeth, are most used; but old knives, sail-needles, and chisels are pressed into service. The work turned out would, in many cases, take a very high place in an exhibition of turnery, though never a lathe was near it. Of course, a long time is taken over it, especially the polishing, which is done with oil and whiting, if it can be got—powdered pumice if it cannot. I once had an elaborate pastry-cutter carved out of six whale's teeth, which I purchased for a pound of tobacco from a seaman of the CORAL whaler, and afterwards sold in Dunedin, New Zealand, for L2 10s., the purchaser being decidedly of opinion that he had a bargain.
After all the signs of the operations had been cleared away, the jaw was taken out, and the teeth were pulled out with a small tackle. They were firmly set into a hard white gum, which had to be cut away all around before they would come out. Once cleaned of the gum, they were stored in a small barrel of brine. The large jaw sections were sawed off and made available to anyone who wanted pieces of bone for "scrimshaw," or carved work. This is a very popular hobby on board whalers, although in ships like ours, the crew hardly has any chance to do anything, with very little leisure allowed during the day. But our carpenter was a talented "scrimshaw" artist, and he immediately started on half a dozen walking sticks. A common design is to carve the bone to look like a rope, with "worming" of thinner line along its strands. A handle is carved out of a whale's tooth, and inlays of baleen, silver, cocoa wood, or ebony add variety and style. The tools used are quite basic. Some old files, softened in the fire and shaped into grooves like saw teeth, are used the most, but old knives, sail needles, and chisels also come into play. The finished pieces could easily rank highly in a woodturning exhibition, even though no lathe was involved. Naturally, it takes a long time, especially for polishing, which is done with oil and whiting when available—powdered pumice if not. I once got an intricate pastry cutter carved from six whale teeth, which I traded for a pound of tobacco from a crew member of the CORAL whaler, and later sold it in Dunedin, New Zealand, for £2 10s., with the buyer feeling quite sure he got a great deal.
CHAPTER IX. OUR FIRST CALLING-PLACE
Perhaps it may hastily be assumed, from the large space already devoted to fishing operations of various kinds, that the subject will not bear much more dealing with, if my story is to avoid being monotonous. But I beg to assure you, dear reader, that while of course I have most to say in connection with the business of the voyage, nothing is farther from my plan than to neglect the very interesting portion of our cruise which relates to visiting strange, out-of-the-way corners of the world. If—which I earnestly deprecate—the description hitherto given of sperm whale-fishing and its adjuncts be found not so interesting as could be wished, I cry you mercy. I have been induced to give more space to it because it has been systematically avoided in the works upon whale-fishing before mentioned, which, as I have said, were not intended for popular reading. True, neither may my humble tome become popular either; but, if it does not, no one will be so disappointed as the author.
You might quickly think, based on the extensive coverage already given to various fishing activities, that this topic won't hold much more interest if I want to keep my story engaging. But I assure you, dear reader, that while I do have a lot to discuss regarding the voyage itself, I have no intention of overlooking the fascinating parts of our journey that involve exploring unusual, remote places in the world. If—though I sincerely hope not—the account of sperm whale fishing so far isn’t as compelling as you’d like, I apologize. I chose to focus more on this topic because it has been largely ignored in previous works on whale fishing, which, as I mentioned, weren't meant for general readers. It’s true that my modest book might not gain popularity either; but if it doesn’t, no one will be more disappointed than I am.
We had made but little progress during the week of oil manufacture, very little attention being paid to the sails while that work was about; but, as the south-east trades blew steadily, we did not remain stationary altogether. So that the following week saw us on the south side of the tropic of Capricorn, the south-east trade done, and the dirty weather and variable squalls, which nearly always precede the "westerlies," making our lives a burden to us. Here, however, we were better off than in an ordinary merchantman, where doldrums are enough to drive you mad. The one object being to get along, it is incessant "pully-hauly," setting and taking in sail, in order, on the one hand, to lose no time, and, on the other, to lose no sails. Now, with us, whenever the weather was doubtful or squally-looking, we shortened sail, and kept it fast till better weather came along, being quite careless whether we made one mile a day or one hundred. But just because nobody took any notice of our progress as the days passed, we were occasionally startled to find how far we had really got. This was certainly the case with all of us forward, even to me who had some experience, so well used had I now become to the leisurely way of getting along. To the laziest of ships, however, there comes occasionally a time when the bustling, hurrying wind will take no denial, and you've got to "git up an' git," as the Yanks put it. Such a time succeeded our "batterfanging" about, after losing the trades. We got hold of a westerly wind that, commencing quietly, gently, steadily, taking two or three days before it gathered force and volume, strengthened at last into a stern, settled gale that would brook no denial, to face which would have been misery indeed. To vessels bound east it came as a boon and blessing, for it would be a crawler that could not reel off her two hundred and fifty miles a day before the push of such a breeze. Even the CACHALOT did her one hundred and fifty, pounding and bruising the ill-used sea in her path, and spreading before her broad bows a far-reaching area of snowy foam, while her wake was as wide as any two ordinary ships ought to make. Five or six times a day the flying East India or colonial-bound English ships, under every stitch of square sail, would appear as tiny specks on the horizon astern, come up with us, pass like a flash, and fade away ahead, going at least two knots to our one. I could not help feeling a bit home-sick and tired of my present surroundings, in spite of their interest, when I saw those beautiful ocean-flyers devouring the distance which lay before them, and reflected that in little more than one month most of them would be discharging in Melbourne, Sydney, Calcutta, or some other equally distant port, while we should probably be dodging about in our present latitude a little farther east.
We hadn't made much progress during the week of oil production, since we barely paid attention to the sails while that was going on. However, because the southeast trades were blowing steadily, we weren’t completely stationary. By the next week, we found ourselves on the south side of the tropic of Capricorn, the southeast trade was gone, and we were dealing with dirty weather and unpredictable squalls that usually come before the "westerlies," making life tough for us. Still, we were better off than on a typical merchant ship, where the doldrums could drive you crazy. The main goal was just to keep moving, which meant constant "pully-hauly," setting and taking in sail, to avoid wasting time and losing sails. With us, whenever the weather looked questionable or stormy, we would reduce our sail and keep it that way until the weather improved, not caring if we traveled one mile a day or one hundred. But since no one paid attention to our progress as the days went by, we were sometimes surprised by how far we had actually come. This was true for all of us onboard, even for me, who had some experience, as I had grown so accustomed to this laid-back pace. However, every lazy ship experiences moments when the suddenly strong wind can't be ignored, and you've got to "git up an' git," as they say in the U.S. Such a time came after we had been drifting about following the loss of the trades. We caught a westerly wind that started off gently and steadily, taking a couple of days to build strength and finally turning into a strong, persistent gale that we couldn't ignore; facing it would have been unbearable. For ships headed east, this wind was a blessing, as it would take a slow vessel to fail to cover two hundred and fifty miles a day with such a breeze. Even the CACHALOT managed her one hundred and fifty, thumping and battering the rough seas ahead, creating a wide area of white foam in front of her, with a wake as broad as what any two normal ships would leave. Five or six times a day, fast East India or colonial-bound ships, with all their sails set, would appear as tiny dots on the horizon behind us, catch up, rush past like a flash, and disappear ahead, traveling at least two knots for every one of ours. I couldn’t help feeling a bit homesick and weary of my surroundings, despite their intrigue, when I watched those beautiful ocean-flyers racing through the distance, and realized that in just over a month, most of them would be unloading in Melbourne, Sydney, Calcutta, or some other distant port, while we would likely be wandering around in our current latitude a bit further east.
After a few days of our present furious rate of speed, I came on deck one morning, and instantly recognized an old acquaintance. Right ahead, looking nearer than I had ever seen it before, rose the towering mass of Tristan d'Acunha, while farther away, but still visible, lay Nightingale and Inaccessible Islands. Their aspect was familiar, for I had sighted them on nearly every voyage I had made round the Cape, but I had never seen them so near as this. There was a good deal of excitement among us, and no wonder. Such a break in the monotony of our lives as we were about to have was enough to turn our heads. Afterwards, we learned to view these matters in a more philosophic light; but now, being new and galled by the yoke, it was a different thing. Near as the island seemed, it was six hours before we got near enough to distinguish objects on shore. I have seen the top of Tristan peeping through a cloud nearly a hundred miles away, for its height is tremendous. St. Helena looks a towering, scowling mass when you approach it closely but Tristan d'Acunha is far more imposing, its savage-looking cliffs seeming to sternly forbid the venturesome voyager any nearer familiarity with their frowning fastnesses. Long before we came within working distance of the settlement, we were continually passing broad patches of kelp (FUCUS GIGANTEA), whose great leaves and cable-laid stems made quite reef-like breaks in the heaving waste of restless sea. Very different indeed were these patches of marine growth from the elegant wreaths of the Gulf-weed with which parts of the North Atlantic are so thickly covered. Their colour was deep brown, almost black is some cases, and the size of many of the leaves amazing, being four to five feet long, by a foot wide, with stalks as thick as one's arm. They have their origin around these storm-beaten rocks, which lie scattered thinly over the immense area of the Southern Ocean, whence they are torn, in masses like those we saw, by every gale, and sent wandering round the world.
After a few days of our current fast pace, I went on deck one morning and immediately recognized a familiar sight. Right ahead, looking closer than ever before, was the towering mass of Tristan d'Acunha, with Nightingale and Inaccessible Islands visible farther away. They looked familiar because I had seen them on nearly every trip I made around the Cape, but I'd never seen them this close. There was a lot of excitement among us, and it was easy to understand why. Something as different as this in our monotonous lives was enough to get us all worked up. Later, we learned to look at these things with a more philosophical perspective, but at that moment, feeling the weight of boredom, everything felt different. Even though the island looked so close, it took us six hours to get close enough to make out objects on shore. I had seen the top of Tristan peeking through clouds nearly a hundred miles away because it's so tall. St. Helena seems like a huge, imposing mass when you approach it closely, but Tristan d'Acunha is even more impressive, with its rugged cliffs seeming to sternly warn adventurous travelers to stay away from its intimidating shores. Long before we got to a point where we could actually reach the settlement, we kept passing wide patches of kelp (FUCUS GIGANTEA), with their large leaves and sturdy stems creating break-like formations in the rolling, restless sea. These marine growth patches were very different from the delicate strands of Gulf weed that cover some parts of the North Atlantic. Their color was a deep brown, nearly black in some spots, and many of the leaves were surprisingly large, measuring four to five feet long and one foot wide, with stalks as thick as a person's arm. They originate around these storm-tossed rocks scattered over the vast expanse of the Southern Ocean, where they get torn away by gales in large clumps like the ones we saw, and are sent drifting around the world.
When we arrived within about three miles of the landing-place, we saw a boat coming off, so we immediately hove-to and awaited her arrival. There was no question of anchoring; indeed, there seldom is in these vessels, unless they are going to make a long stay, for they are past masters in the art of "standing off and on." The boat came alongside—a big, substantially-built craft of the whale-boat type, but twice the size—manned by ten sturdy-looking fellows, as unkempt and wild-looking as any pirates. They were evidently put to great straits for clothes, many curious makeshifts being noticeable in their rig, while it was so patched with every conceivable kind of material that it was impossible to say which was the original or "standing part." They brought with them potatoes, onions, a few stunted cabbages, some fowls, and a couple of good-sized pigs, at the sight of which good things our eyes glistened and our mouths watered. Alas! none of the cargo of that boat ever reached OUR hungry stomachs. We were not surprised, having anticipated that every bit of provision would be monopolized by our masters; but of course we had no means of altering such a state of things.
When we were about three miles from the landing spot, we saw a boat coming towards us, so we quickly stopped and waited for her to arrive. There was no question of anchoring; in fact, that rarely happens with these vessels unless they plan to stay for a long time because they are experts at "standing off and on." The boat pulled alongside—a large, sturdy craft similar to a whale boat but twice as big—manned by ten rugged-looking guys, as scruffy and wild-looking as pirates. They were clearly in need of clothes, with many creative alternatives visible in their outfits, and it was so patched together with all sorts of materials that it was impossible to tell which part was original or the "standing part." They brought with them potatoes, onions, a few small cabbages, some chickens, and a couple of good-sized pigs, which made our eyes sparkle and our mouths water at the sight of such delicious goods. Unfortunately, none of the cargo from that boat ever made it to OUR hungry stomachs. We weren’t surprised, having expected that all the provisions would be taken by our superiors; but of course, we had no way to change that situation.
The visitors had the same tale to tell that seems universal—bad trade, hard times, nothing doing. How very familiar it seemed, to be sure. Nevertheless, it could not be denied that their sole means of communication with the outer world, as well as market for their goods, the calling whale-ships, were getting fewer and fewer every year; so that their outlook was not, it must be confessed, particularly bright. But their wants are few, beyond such as they can themselves supply. Groceries and clothes, the latter especially, as the winters are very severe, are almost the only needs they require to be supplied with from without. They spoke of the "Cape" as if it were only across the way, the distance separating them from that wonderful place being over thirteen hundred miles in reality. Very occasionally a schooner from Capetown does visit them; but, as the seals are almost exterminated, there is less and less inducement to make the voyage.
The visitors had the same story to share that feels universal—bad trade, tough times, nothing happening. It seemed so familiar, for sure. However, it couldn’t be ignored that their only connection to the outside world, as well as the market for their goods, the whaling ships, were becoming fewer every year; so their outlook was, to be honest, not particularly bright. But their needs are few, mostly just what they can provide for themselves. Groceries and clothes, especially since winters are very harsh, are almost the only things they need from outside. They talked about the "Cape" as if it was just across the way, even though it was actually over thirteen hundred miles away. Occasionally, a schooner from Capetown does visit them; but, since the seals are nearly wiped out, there's less and less reason to make the trip.
Like almost all the southern islets, this group has been in its time the scene of a wonderfully productive seal-fishery. It used to be customary for whaling and sealing vessels to land a portion of their crews, and leave them to accumulate a store of seal-skins and oil, while the ships cruised the surrounding seas for whales, which were exceedingly numerous, both "right" and sperm varieties. In those days there was no monotony of existence in these islands, ships were continually coming and going, and the islanders prospered exceedingly. When they increased beyond the capacity of the islands to entertain them, a portion migrated to the Cape, while many of the men took service in the whale-ships, for which they were eminently suited.
Like nearly all the southern islands, this group was once the site of a highly productive seal fishery. It was common for whaling and sealing ships to drop off part of their crews to gather a stockpile of seal skins and oil while the ships searched the surrounding waters for whales, which were incredibly plentiful, both "right" and sperm whales. Back then, life on these islands was anything but boring; ships were always arriving and leaving, and the islanders thrived. As their numbers grew beyond what the islands could support, some moved to the Cape, while many of the men joined the whaling ships, as they were particularly well suited for that work.
They are, as might be expected, a hybrid lot, the women all mulattoes, but intensely English in their views and loyalty. Since the visit of H.M.S. GALATEA, in August, 1867, with the Duke of Edinburgh on board, this sentiment had been intensified, and the little collection of thatched cottages, nameless till then, was called Edinburgh, in honour of the illustrious voyager. They breed cattle, a few sheep, and pigs, although the sheep thrive but indifferently for some reason or another. Poultry they have in large numbers, so that, could they commend a market, they would do very well.
They are, as you might expect, a mixed group, with all the women being of mixed race but fiercely English in their beliefs and loyalty. Since the visit of H.M.S. GALATEA in August 1867, with the Duke of Edinburgh on board, this feeling has grown stronger, and the small cluster of thatched cottages, which had no name until then, was named Edinburgh in honor of the famous traveler. They raise cattle, a few sheep, and pigs, although the sheep don’t seem to do very well for some reason. They have a lot of poultry, so if they could tap into a market, they would do quite well.
The steep cliffs, rising from the sea for nearly a thousand feet, often keep their vicinity in absolute calm, although a heavy gale may be raging on the other side of the island, and it would be highly dangerous for any navigator not accustomed to such a neighbourhood to get too near them. The immense rollers setting inshore, and the absence of wind combined, would soon carry a vessel up against the beetling crags, and letting go an anchor would not be of the slightest use, since the bottom, being of massive boulders, affords no holding ground at all. All round the island the kelp grows thickly, so thickly indeed as to make a boat's progress through it difficult. This, however, is very useful in one way here, as we found. Wanting more supplies, which were to be had cheap, we lowered a couple of boats, and went ashore after them. On approaching the black, pebbly beach which formed the only landing-place, it appeared as if getting ashore would be a task of no ordinary danger and difficulty. The swell seemed to culminate as we neared the beach, lifting the boats at one moment high in air, and at the next lowering them into a green valley, from whence nothing could be seen but the surrounding watery summits. Suddenly we entered the belt of kelp, which extended for perhaps a quarter of a mile seaward, and, lo! a transformation indeed. Those loose, waving fronds of flexible weed, though swayed hither and thither by every ripple, were able to arrest the devastating rush of the gigantic swell, so that the task of landing, which had looked so terrible, was one of the easiest. Once in among the kelp, although we could hardly use the oars, the water was quite smooth and tranquil. The islanders collected on the beach, and guided us to the best spot for landing, the huge boulders, heaped in many places, being ugly impediments to a boat.
The steep cliffs, rising from the sea nearly a thousand feet, often keep the area around them completely calm, even when a strong storm is raging on the other side of the island. It would be extremely dangerous for any navigator unfamiliar with this area to get too close. The massive waves crashing onto the shore, combined with the lack of wind, would quickly push a vessel against the sheer rocks, and dropping an anchor wouldn't help at all since the seabed is made up of large boulders, providing no grip. All around the island, kelp grows densely, making it hard for a boat to move through it. However, this is actually quite helpful, as we discovered. Needing more supplies that were cheap, we lowered a couple of boats and headed ashore to get them. As we approached the black, pebbly beach—the only place to land—it looked like getting ashore would be a risky and difficult task. The waves seemed to peak as we neared the beach, lifting the boats high one moment and then dropping them into a green valley the next, where we could see nothing but the surrounding water peaks. Suddenly, we entered the kelp area, extending perhaps a quarter of a mile out to sea, and it was a remarkable change. Those loose, swaying fronds of flexible seaweed, although moved by every ripple, managed to soften the impact of the giant waves, making the landing, which had seemed so daunting, surprisingly easy. Once we got into the kelp, even though we could barely use the oars, the water was calm and peaceful. The islanders gathered on the beach and showed us the best spot to land, as the huge boulders piled up in various places were tricky obstacles for a boat.
We were as warmly welcomed as if we had been old friends, and hospitable attentions were showered upon us from every side. The people were noticeably well-behaved, and, although there was something Crusoe-like in their way of living, their manners and conversation were distinctly good. A rude plenty was evident, there being no lack of good food—fish, fowl, and vegetables. The grassy plateau on which the village stands is a sort of shelf jutting out from the mountain-side, the mountain being really the whole island. Steep roads were hewn out of the solid rock, leading, as we were told, to the cultivated terraces above. These reached an elevation of about a thousand feet. Above all towered the great, dominating peak, the summit lost in the clouds eight or nine thousand feet above. The rock-hewn roads and cultivated land certainly gave the settlement an old-established appearance, which was not surprising seeing that it has been inhabited for more than a hundred years. I shall always bear a grateful recollection of the place, because my host gave me what I had long been a stranger to—a good, old-fashioned English dinner of roast beef and baked potatoes. He apologized for having no plum-pudding to crown the feast. "But, you see," he said, "we kaint grow no corn hyar, and we'm clean run out ov flour; hev ter make out on taters 's best we kin." I sincerely sympathized with him on the lack of bread-stuff among them, and wondered no longer at the avidity with which they had munched our flinty biscuits on first coming aboard. His wife, a buxom, motherly woman of about fifty, of dark, olive complexion, but good features, was kindness itself; and their three youngest children, who were at home, could not, in spite of repeated warnings and threats, keep their eyes off me, as if I had been some strange animal dropped from the moon. I felt very unwilling to leave them so soon, but time was pressing, the stores we had come for were all ready to ship, and I had to tear myself away from these kindly entertainers. I declare, it seemed like parting with old friends; yet our acquaintance might have been measured by minutes, so brief it had been. The mate had purchased a fine bullock, which had been slaughtered and cut up for us with great celerity, four or five dozen fowls (alive), four or five sacks of potatoes, eggs, etc., so that we were heavily laden for the return journey to the ship. My friend had kindly given me a large piece of splendid cheese, for which I was unable to make him any return, being simply clad in a shirt and pair of trousers, neither of which necessary garments could be spared.
We were welcomed as warmly as if we were old friends, and we were showered with hospitality from every direction. The people were remarkably well-behaved, and even though their way of living was a bit primitive, their manners and conversation were really good. There was an abundance of food—fish, poultry, and vegetables. The grassy plateau where the village sits is like a shelf that juts out from the mountainside, which is actually the entire island. Steep paths were carved from the solid rock, leading, as we were told, to the cultivated terraces above, which reached about a thousand feet in elevation. Towering above everything was a massive peak, its summit lost in the clouds at around eight or nine thousand feet. The rock-cut roads and cultivated fields gave the settlement a long-established look, which made sense since it had been inhabited for over a hundred years. I will always remember this place with gratitude because my host treated me to something I hadn’t had in a long time—a good old-fashioned English dinner of roast beef and baked potatoes. He apologized for not having any plum pudding to finish off the meal. “But you see,” he said, “we can’t grow corn here, and we’ve completely run out of flour; we have to make do with potatoes as best as we can.” I genuinely felt for him about the lack of bread, and I finally understood why they had eagerly devoured our tough biscuits when we first came aboard. His wife, a plump, motherly woman around fifty, with a dark olive complexion but pleasant features, was incredibly kind, and their three youngest children, who were at home, couldn’t keep their eyes off me despite being warned several times, as if I were some strange creature that had fallen from the moon. I really didn’t want to leave them so soon, but time was running out, our supplies were ready to be loaded, and I had to pull myself away from these warm-hearted hosts. Honestly, it felt like parting from old friends, even though our acquaintance had lasted mere minutes. The mate had bought a fine bull, which had been slaughtered and processed quickly for us, along with four or five dozen live chickens, four or five sacks of potatoes, eggs, etc., so we were heavily loaded for the journey back to the ship. My friend had also generously given me a large piece of excellent cheese, which I couldn't repay him for, as I was simply dressed in a shirt and pants, and I couldn't spare either item.
With hearty cheers from the whole population, we shoved off and ploughed through the kelp seaweed again. When we got clear of it, we found the swell heavier than when we had come, and a rough journey back to the ship was the result. But, to such boatmen as we were, that was a trifle hardly worth mentioning, and after an hour's hard pull we got alongside again, and transhipped our precious cargo. The weather being threatening, we at once hauled off the land and out to sea, as night was falling and we did not wish to be in so dangerous a vicinity any longer than could be helped in stormy weather. Altogether, a most enjoyable day, and one that I have ever since had a pleasant recollection of.
With loud cheers from the entire crowd, we set off and navigated through the kelp seaweed again. Once we got past it, we found the swell was stronger than when we arrived, making for a rough trip back to the ship. However, for experienced boatmen like us, that was a minor detail hardly worth mentioning, and after an hour of hard paddling, we reached the ship again and transferred our valuable cargo. With the weather looking bad, we quickly pulled away from the shore and headed out to sea, as night was falling and we wanted to avoid being in such a dangerous area longer than necessary during stormy weather. Overall, it was a very enjoyable day, one that I've since remembered fondly.
By daybreak next morning the islands were out of sight, for the wind had risen to a gale, which, although we carried little sail, drove us along before it some seven or eight knots an hour.
By dawn the next morning, the islands were gone from view, as the wind had picked up to a strong gale, which, even though we had very little sail up, pushed us along at about seven or eight knots an hour.
Two days afterwards we caught another whale of medium size, making us fifty-four barrels of oil. As nothing out of the ordinary course marked the capture, it is unnecessary to do more than allude to it in passing, except to note that the honours were all with Goliath. He happened to be close to the whale when it rose, and immediately got fast. So dexterous and swift were his actions that before any of the other boats could "chip in" he had his fish "fin out," the whole affair from start to finish only occupying a couple of hours. We were now in the chosen haunts of the great albatross, Cape pigeons, and Cape hens, but never in my life had I imagined such a concourse of them as now gathered around us. When we lowered there might have been perhaps a couple of dozen birds in sight, but no sooner was the whale dead than from out of the great void around they began to drift towards us. Before we had got him fast alongside, the numbers of that feathered host were incalculable. They surrounded us until the sea surface was like a plain of snow, and their discordant cries were deafening. With the exception of one peculiar-looking bird, which has received from whalemen the inelegant name of "stinker," none of them attempted to alight upon the body of the dead monster. This bird, however, somewhat like a small albatross, but of dirty-grey colour, and with a peculiar excrescence on his beak, boldly took his precarious place upon the carcase, and at once began to dig into the blubber. He did not seem to make much impression, but he certainly tried hard.
Two days later, we caught another whale of medium size, bringing our total to fifty-four barrels of oil. Since nothing out of the ordinary happened during the capture, it’s just worth mentioning that Goliath took the lead. He was closest to the whale when it surfaced and quickly got attached. His actions were so skillful and fast that before any of the other boats could join in, he had the whale secured, and the whole process took only a couple of hours. We were now in the prime territories of great albatrosses, Cape pigeons, and Cape hens, but I had never imagined such a crowd of them gathering around us. When we lowered the line, there were probably a couple dozen birds in sight, but as soon as the whale was dead, they started drifting toward us from the vast emptiness around. Before we even had the whale alongside, the number of birds was overwhelming. They surrounded us until the sea looked like a blanket of snow, and their chaotic cries were deafening. Except for one odd-looking bird, which whalers have inaccurately named "stinker," none of them attempted to land on the dead whale. This bird, somewhat similar to a small albatross but dirty grey, with a strange growth on its beak, boldly took its risky spot on the carcass and immediately began to peck at the blubber. While it didn’t seem to make much progress, it definitely tried hard.
It was dark before we got our prize secured by the fluke-chain, so that we could not commence operations before morning. That night it blew hard, and we got an idea of the strain these vessels are sometimes subjected to. Sometimes the ship rolled one way and the whale another, being divided by a big sea, the wrench at the fluke-chain, as the two masses fell apart down different hollows, making the vessel quiver from truck to keelson as if she was being torn asunder. Then we would come together again with a crash and a shock that almost threw everybody out of their bunks. Many an earnest prayer did I breathe that the chain would prove staunch, for what sort of a job it would be to go after that whale during the night, should he break loose, I could only faintly imagine. But all our gear was of the very best; no thieving ship-chandler had any hand in supplying our outfit with shoddy rope and faulty chain, only made to sell, and ready at the first call made upon it to carry away and destroy half a dozen valuable lives. There was one coil of rope on board which the skipper had bought for cordage on the previous voyage from a homeward-bound English ship, and it was the butt of all the officers' scurrilous remarks about Britishers and their gear. It was never used but for rope-yarns, being cut up in lengths, and untwisted for the ignominious purpose of tying things up—"hardly good enough for that," was the verdict upon it.
It was dark by the time we secured our catch with the fluke-chain, so we couldn’t get started until morning. That night, the wind picked up, and we got a taste of the pressure these vessels can endure. Sometimes the ship tilted one way while the whale swayed the other, separated by a large wave. The strain on the fluke-chain as the two masses moved apart in different troughs made the ship shake from top to bottom, as if it were being ripped apart. Then we’d crash together again with a jolt that nearly threw everyone out of their bunks. I whispered countless prayers that the chain would hold, because I could only imagine what a hassle it would be to chase after that whale in the dark if it broke free. But all our gear was top-notch; no shady ship supplier had outfitted us with cheap rope and faulty chain that would give way at the worst moment and endanger lives. There was one spool of rope on board that the captain had bought on the last trip from a homeward-bound British ship, and it was the target of all the officers' jokes about Brits and their equipment. It was only used for rope-yarns, cut into pieces and untwisted for the embarrassing task of tying things up—“not even good enough for that,” was the consensus on it.
Tired as we all were, very little sleep came to us that night—we were barely seasoned yet to the exigencies of a whaler's life—but afterwards I believe nothing short of dismasting or running the ship ashore would wake us, once we got to sleep. In the morning we commenced operations in a howling gale of wind, which placed the lives of the officers on the "cutting in" stage in great danger. The wonderful seaworthy qualities of our old ship shone brilliantly now. When an ordinary modern-built sailing-ship would have been making such weather of it as not only to drown anybody about the deck, but making it impossible to keep your footing anywhere without holding on, we were enabled to cut in this whale. True, the work was terribly exhausting and decidedly dangerous, but it was not impossible, for it was done. By great care and constant attention, the whole work of cutting in and trying out was got through without a single accident; but had another whale turned up to continue the trying time, I am fully persuaded that some of us would have gone under from sheer fatigue. For there was no mercy shown. All that I have ever read of "putting the slaves through for all they were worth" on the plantations was fully realized here, and our worthy skipper must have been a lineal descendent of the doughty Simon Legree.
Tired as we all were, we hardly got any sleep that night—we weren’t used to the demands of a whaler's life yet—but afterward, I believe nothing short of losing the mast or running the ship aground would wake us once we fell asleep. In the morning, we started working in a howling gale, which put the lives of the officers on the "cutting in" stage at serious risk. The amazing seaworthiness of our old ship really showed now. While a typical modern sailing ship would have struggled so much in this weather that it would have been nearly impossible to stay on deck, let alone keep your balance without holding on, we managed to cut in this whale. It’s true, the work was incredibly exhausting and definitely dangerous, but it was possible, and we got it done. With great care and constant focus, we completed the whole process of cutting in and trying out without a single accident; however, if another whale had shown up to prolong the tough task, I’m convinced that some of us would have collapsed from sheer exhaustion. There was no mercy shown. Everything I’ve read about “putting the slaves through for all they were worth” on the plantations was fully realized here, and our capable captain must have been a direct descendant of the fierce Simon Legree.
The men were afraid to go on to the sick-list. Nothing short of total inability to continue would have prevented them from working, such was the terror with which that man had inspired us all. It may be said that we were a pack of cowards, who, without the courage to demand better treatment, deserved all we got. While admitting that such a conclusion is quite a natural one at which to arrive, I must deny its truth. There were men in that forecastle as good citizens and as brave fellows as you would wish to meet—men who in their own sphere would have commanded and obtained respect. But under the painful and abnormal circumstances in which they found themselves—beaten and driven like dogs while in the throes of sea-sickness, half starved and hopeless, their spirit had been so broken, and they were so kept down to that sad level by the display of force, aided by deadly weapons aft, that no other condition could be expected for them but that of broken-hearted slaves. My own case was many degrees better than that of the other whites, as I have before noted; but I was perfectly well aware that the slightest attempt on my part to show that I resented our common treatment would meet with the most brutal repression, and, in addition, I might look for a dreadful time of it for the rest of the voyage.
The men were scared to go on the sick-list. Nothing less than being completely unable to continue would have stopped them from working, such was the fear this man had instilled in all of us. You could say we were a bunch of cowards who, lacking the courage to demand better treatment, deserved everything we got. While I acknowledge that it’s a natural conclusion, I have to reject its accuracy. There were men in that forecastle who were as good citizens and as brave as you could hope to find—men who, in any other situation, would have commanded respect. But given the painful and abnormal circumstances they found themselves in—beaten and driven like dogs while struggling with seasickness, half-starved and hopeless—their spirits were completely crushed, and they were kept down at that miserable level by the display of force, further supported by deadly weapons behind them. It was no surprise that they had become broken-hearted slaves. My own situation was much better than that of the other white men, as I have mentioned before; however, I was fully aware that even the slightest attempt to show my dissatisfaction with our shared treatment would be met with brutal repression, and I could also expect a dreadful rest of the journey.
The memory of that week of misery is so strong upon me even now that my hand trembles almost to preventing me from writing about it. Weak and feeble do the words seem as I look at them, making me wish for the fire and force of Carlyle or Macaulay to portray our unnecessary sufferings.
The memory of that week of misery is still so vivid for me that my hand trembles, almost stopping me from writing about it. The words feel weak and inadequate as I look at them, making me wish for the passion and power of Carlyle or Macaulay to express our pointless suffering.
Like all other earthly ills, however, they came to an end, at least for a time, and I was delighted to note that we were getting to the northward again. In making the outward passage round the Cape, it is necessary to go well south, in order to avoid the great westerly set of the Agulhas current, which for ever sweeps steadily round the southern extremity of the African continent at an average rate of three or four miles an hour. To homeward-bound ships this is a great boon. No matter what the weather may be—a stark calm or a gale of wind right on end in your teeth—that vast, silent river in the sea steadily bears you on at the same rate in the direction of home. It is perfectly true that with a gale blowing across the set of this great current, one of the very ugliest combinations of broken waves is raised; but who cares for that, when he knows that, as long as the ship holds together, some seventy or eighty miles per day nearer home must be placed to her credit? In like manner, it is of the deepest comfort to know that, storm or calm, fair or foul, the current of time, unhasting, unresting, bears us on to the goal that we shall surely reach—the haven of unbroken rest.
Like all other problems we face, they eventually came to an end, at least for a while, and I was happy to see that we were heading north again. When making the outbound journey around the Cape, it’s necessary to go far south to avoid the strong westerly flow of the Agulhas current, which continuously sweeps around the southern tip of Africa at an average speed of three to four miles an hour. For ships headed home, this is a huge advantage. No matter what the weather is like—a complete calm or a fierce wind right in your face—that huge, silent river in the sea keeps pushing you toward home at the same pace. It’s true that when there’s a strong wind against this powerful current, it creates some of the roughest waves possible; but who cares about that, knowing that as long as the ship stays intact, we’re getting closer to home by seventy or eighty miles a day? Similarly, it’s incredibly comforting to know that, whether there’s a storm or calm, fair weather or foul, time’s current, steady and relentless, carries us toward the destination we will surely reach—the place of everlasting peace.
Not the least of the minor troubles on board the CACHALOT was the uncertainty of our destination; we never knew where we were going. It may seem a small point, but it is really not so unimportant as a landsman might imagine. On an ordinary passage, certain well-known signs are as easily read by the seaman as if the ship's position were given out to him every day. Every alteration of the course signifies some point of the journey reached, some well-known track entered upon, and every landfall made becomes a new departure from whence to base one's calculations, which, rough as they are, rarely err more than a few days.
One of the smaller issues on board the CACHALOT was not knowing our destination; we never had a clue about where we were headed. It might seem minor, but it's actually more significant than a landlubber might think. On a typical voyage, certain familiar signs are as easy to read for seamen as if they received their location updates every day. Every change in course indicates a milestone in the journey, a well-known route being followed, and every landfall becomes a new starting point to base our estimates on, which, while rough, usually only miss by a few days.
Say, for instance, you are bound for Calcutta. The first of the north-east trades will give a fair idea of your latitude being about the edge of the tropics somewhere, or say from 20deg. to 25deg. N., whether you have sighted any of the islands or not. Then away you go before the wind down towards the Equator, the approach to which is notified by the loss of the trade and the dirty, changeable weather of the "doldrums." That weary bit of work over, along come the south-east trades, making you brace "sharp up," and sometimes driving you uncomfortably near the Brazilian coast. Presently more "doldrums," with a good deal more wind in them than in the "wariables" of the line latitude. The brave "westerly" will come along by-and-by and release you, and, with a staggering press of sail carried to the reliable gale, away you go for the long stretch of a hundred degrees or so eastward. You will very likely sight Tristan d'Acunha or Gough Island; but, if not, the course will keep you fairly well informed of your longitude, since most ships make more or less of a great circle track. Instead of steering due East for the whole distance, they make for some southerly latitude by running along the arc of a great circle, THEN run due east for a thousand miles or so before gradually working north again. These alterations in the courses tell the foremast hand nearly all he wants to know, slight as they are. You will most probably sight Amsterdam Island or St. Paul's in about 77deg. E.; but whether you do or not, the big change made in the course, to say nothing of the difference in the weather and temperature, say loudly that your long easterly run is over, and you are bound to the northward again. Soon the south-east trades will take you gently in hand, and waft you pleasurably upward to the line again, unless you should be so unfortunate as to meet one of the devastating meteors known as "cyclones" in its gyration across the Indian Ocean. After losing the trade, which signals your approach to the line once more, your guides fluctuate muchly with the time of year. But it may be broadly put that the change of the monsoon in the Bay of Bengal is beastliness unadulterated, and the south-west monsoon itself, though a fair wind for getting to your destination, is worse, if possible. Still, having got that far, you are able to judge pretty nearly when, in the ordinary course of events, you will arrive at Saugor, and get a tug for the rest of the journey.
Say you're headed to Calcutta. The first of the northeast trades will give you a good idea of your latitude, which is probably around the edge of the tropics, say between 20° and 25° N, whether you've seen any of the islands or not. Then you breeze down toward the Equator, which you can tell is coming up when the trade winds die down and you hit the unpredictable weather of the "doldrums." Once that exhausting stretch is behind you, the southeast trades will pick up, forcing you to adjust your course sharply and sometimes pushing you uncomfortably close to the Brazilian coast. Soon you’ll find yourself back in the doldrums, but these will have a lot more wind than the "variables" around the equator. Eventually, a strong westerly wind will come along and free you, and with a lot of sail up to catch that reliable gale, you'll set off on a long journey of about a hundred degrees east. You might catch a glimpse of Tristan da Cunha or Gough Island; however, if you miss them, your course should still keep you reasonably aware of your longitude, since most ships follow a great circle route. Instead of heading straight east the whole way, they aim for a southern latitude by traveling along the arc of a great circle, then go directly east for about a thousand miles before gradually curving north again. These changes in your route give the foremast hand nearly all the information he needs, no matter how subtle. You’ll likely see Amsterdam Island or St. Paul’s around 77° E; but whether you do or not, the significant shift in your course, not to mention the changes in weather and temperature, clearly indicates that your long run east is finished, and you’re heading north again. Soon, the southeast trades will gently guide you back up toward the equator, unless you’re unlucky enough to encounter one of those destructive storms known as "cyclones" swirling across the Indian Ocean. After losing the trade winds, which signal your approach to the equator once more, your navigational tips will vary quite a bit with the season. However, it’s safe to say that the change of the monsoon in the Bay of Bengal is downright unpleasant, and the southwest monsoon itself, while decent for reaching your destination, is even worse if that's possible. Still, having made it that far, you can pretty much estimate when you’ll arrive at Saugor and get a tug for the final leg of your journey.
But on this strange voyage I was quite as much in the dark concerning our approximate position as any of the chaps who had never seen salt water before they viewed it from the bad eminence of the CACHALOT's deck. Of course, it was evident that we were bound eastward, but whether to the Indian seas or to the South Pacific, none knew but the skipper, and perhaps the mate. I say "perhaps" advisedly. In any well-regulated merchant ship there is an invariable routine of observations performed by both captain and chief officer, except in very big vessels, where the second mate is appointed navigating officer. The two men work out their reckoning independently of each other, and compare the result, so that an excellent check upon the accuracy of the positions found is thereby afforded. Here, however, there might not have been, as far as appearances went, a navigator in the ship except the captain, if it be not a misuse of terms to call him a navigator. If the test be ability to take a ship round the world, poking into every undescribed, out-of-the-way corner you can think of, and return home again without damage to the ship of any kind except by the unavoidable perils of the sea, then doubtless he WAS a navigator, and a ripe, good one. But anything cruder than the "rule-of-thumb" way in which he found his positions, or more out of date than his "hog-yoke," or quadrant, I have never seen. I suppose we carried a chronometer, though I never saw it or heard the cry of "stop," which usually accompanies a.m. or p.m. "sights" taken for longitude. He used sometimes to make a deliberate sort of haste below after taking a sight, when he may have been looking at a chronometer perhaps. What I do know about his procedure is, that he always used a very rough method of equal altitudes, which would make a mathematician stare and gasp; that his nautical almanac was a ten-cent one published by some speculative optician is New York; that he never worked up a "dead reckoning;" and that the extreme limit of time that he took to work out his observations was ten minutes. In fact, all our operations in seamanship or navigation were run on the same happy-go-lucky principle. If it was required to "tack" ship, there was no formal parade and preparation for the manoeuvre, not even as much as would be made in a Goole billy-boy. Without any previous intimation, the helm would be put down, and round she would come, the yards being trimmed by whoever happened to be nearest to the braces. The old tub seemed to like it that way, for she never missed stays or exhibited any of that unwillingness to do what she was required that is such a frequent characteristic of merchantmen. Even getting under way or coming to an anchor was unattended by any of the fuss and bother from which those important evolutions ordinarily appear inseparable.
But on this strange journey, I was just as clueless about our approximate location as any of the guys who had never seen the ocean before they looked at it from the high deck of the CACHALOT. It was clear that we were headed east, but whether we were going to the Indian Ocean or the South Pacific, only the captain and maybe the first mate knew for sure. I say "maybe" with caution. In a well-run merchant ship, there's a standard routine of observations performed by both the captain and the chief officer, except on very large vessels, where the second mate acts as the navigating officer. The two of them independently figure out their positions and then compare results, which provides a solid check on the accuracy of the locations found. However, here, it seemed like there might not be a navigator aboard other than the captain, if it’s not a stretch to call him a navigator. If being able to take a ship around the world, exploring every hidden and obscure spot you can think of, and return home safely, except for the unavoidable dangers of the sea, qualifies him as a navigator, then undoubtedly he WAS a navigator, and a skilled one at that. But the method he used to determine his positions was more like "rule-of-thumb," and his tools like the "hog-yoke" or quadrant were outdated. I suppose we had a chronometer, though I never saw it or heard the call of "stop," which typically accompanies a.m. or p.m. "sights" taken for figuring longitude. Sometimes, he would rush below deck after taking a sight, where he might have been checking a chronometer. What I do know about his technique is that he always used a very rough method of equal altitudes that would shock a mathematician; his nautical almanac was a ten-cent version published by some New York optician; he never calculated a "dead reckoning," and the maximum time he took to work out his observations was ten minutes. In fact, all our sailing and navigation operations were run on the same carefree principle. If we needed to "tack" the ship, there was no formal preparation or ceremony for the maneuver, not even as much as would be made for a Goole billy-boy. Without any advance notice, the helm would be turned, and she would come about, with the sails adjusted by whoever was closest to the lines. The old ship seemed to prefer it that way, as she never missed stays or showed any reluctance to do what was needed, which is often a common issue with merchant ships. Even getting underway or dropping anchor happened without the usual chaos and fuss that typically accompany those important maneuvers.
To my great relief we saw no more whales of the kind we were after during our passage round the Cape. The weather we were having was splendid for making a passage, but to be dodging about among those immense rollers, or towed athwart them by a wounded whale in so small a craft as one of our whale-boats, did not have any attractions for me. There was little doubt in any of our minds that, if whales were seen, off we must go while daylight lasted, let the weather be what it might. So when one morning I went to the wheel, to find the course N.N.E. instead of E. by N., it may be taken for granted that the change was a considerable relief to me. It was now manifest that we were bound up into the Indian Ocean, although of course I knew nothing of the position of the districts where whales were to be looked for. Gradually we crept northward, the weather improving every day as we left the "roaring forties" astern. While thus making northing we had several fine catches of porpoises, and saw many rorquals, but sperm whales appeared to have left the locality. However, the "old man" evidently knew what he was about, as we were not now cruising, but making a direct passage for some definite place.
To my great relief, we didn’t spot any more whales of the type we were after during our passage around the Cape. The weather was perfect for traveling, but the idea of navigating those huge waves or being towed across them by a wounded whale in one of our small whaleboats didn’t appeal to me at all. Everyone agreed that if any whales were seen, we’d have to go after them while there was still daylight, no matter the weather. So, when one morning I took the wheel and noticed we were heading N.N.E. instead of E. by N., it was a big relief for me. It was clear we were making our way into the Indian Ocean, even though I had no idea where the best spots for whale watching were. Gradually, we drifted northward, and the weather got better each day as we left the "roaring forties" behind. While heading north, we had several good catches of porpoises and spotted many rorquals, but it seemed like the sperm whales had moved on. However, the "old man" clearly had a plan, as we weren’t just cruising anymore; we were on a direct course to a specific destination.
At last we sighted land, which, from the course which we had been steering, might have been somewhere on the east coast of Africa, but for the fact that it was right ahead, while we were pointing at the time about N.N.W. By-and-by I came to the conclusion that it must be the southern extremity of Madagascar, Cape St. Mary, and, by dint of the closest, attention to every word I heard uttered while at the wheel by the officers, found that my surmise was correct. We skirted this point pretty closely, heading to the westward, and, when well clear of it, bore up to the northward, again for the Mozambique Channel. Another surprise. The very idea of WHALING in the Mozambique Channel seemed too ridiculous to mention; yet here we were, guided by a commander who, whatever his faults, was certainly most keen in his attention to business, and the unlikeliest man imaginable to take the ship anywhere unless he anticipated a profitable return for his visit.
Finally, we spotted land, which, based on our course, could have been somewhere along the eastern coast of Africa, but it was right in front of us while we were heading about N.N.W. Gradually, I figured it must be the southern tip of Madagascar, Cape St. Mary, and by paying close attention to everything I heard from the officers while I was at the wheel, I confirmed my guess was correct. We sailed pretty close to this point, heading westward, and when we were clear of it, we turned north again toward the Mozambique Channel. Another surprise. The thought of WHALING in the Mozambique Channel seemed too absurd to mention; yet here we were, led by a captain who, despite his flaws, was definitely sharp when it came to business, and the least likely person to bring the ship anywhere unless he expected to make a profit from the trip.
CHAPTER X. A VISIT TO SOME STRANGE PLACES
We had now entered upon what promised to be the most interesting part of our voyage. As a commercial speculation, I have to admit that the voyage was to me a matter of absolute indifference. Never, from the first week of my being on board, had I cherished any illusions upon that score, for it was most forcibly impressed on my mind that, whatever might be the measure of success attending our operations, no one of the crew forward could hope to benefit by it. The share of profits was so small, and the time taken to earn it so long, such a number of clothes were worn out and destroyed by us, only to be replaced from the ship's slop-chest at high prices, that I had quite resigned myself to the prospect of leaving the vessel in debt, whenever that desirable event might happen. Since, therefore, I had never made it a practice to repine at the inevitable, and make myself unhappy by the contemplation of misfortunes I was powerless to prevent, I tried to interest myself as far as was possible in gathering information, although at that time I had no idea, beyond a general thirst for knowledge, that what I was now learning would ever be of any service to me. Yet I had been dull indeed not to have seen how unique were the opportunities I was now enjoying for observation of some of the least known and understood aspects of the ocean world and its wonderful inhabitants, to say nothing of visits to places unvisited, except by such free lances as we were, and about which so little is really known.
We had now entered what promised to be the most fascinating part of our journey. As a business venture, I have to admit that the voyage meant absolutely nothing to me. From the first week of being on board, I never had any illusions about that because it was quite clear to me that, no matter how successful our operations might be, none of us in the crew would benefit from it. The share of the profits was so minimal, and the time taken to earn it was so long, that the number of clothes we wore out and had to replace from the ship's supply at high prices made it seem inevitable that I would leave the vessel in debt whenever that longed-for moment happened. Therefore, since I never made it a habit to complain about the inevitable or make myself miserable over misfortunes I couldn't change, I tried to engage myself as much as possible in gathering information. At that time, I had no idea, aside from a general desire for knowledge, that what I was learning would ever be useful to me. Still, it would have been quite dull not to have recognized how unique my opportunities were for observing some of the least known and understood aspects of the ocean world and its incredible inhabitants, not to mention visits to places that had only been explored by adventurers like us, and about which so little is really known.
The weather of the Mozambique Channel was fairly good, although subject to electric storms of the most terrible aspect, but perfectly harmless. On the second evening after rounding Cape St. Mary, we were proceeding, as usual, under very scanty sail, rather enjoying the mild, balmy air, scent-laden, from Madagascar. The moon was shining in tropical splendour, paling the lustre of the attendant stars, and making the glorious Milky Way but a faint shadow of its usual resplendent road. Gradually from the westward there arose a murky mass of cloud, fringed at its upper edges with curious tinted tufts of violet, orange, and crimson. These colours were not brilliant, but plainly visible against the deep blue sky. Slowly and solemnly the intruding gloom overspread the sweet splendour of the shining sky, creeping like a death-shadow over a dear face, and making the most talkative feel strangely quiet and ill at ease. As the pall of thick darkness blotted out the cool light, it seemed to descend until at last we were completely over-canopied by a dome of velvety black, seemingly low enough to touch the mast-heads. A belated sea-bird's shrill scream but emphasized the deep silence which lent itself befittingly to the solemnity of nature. Presently thin suggestions of light, variously tinted, began to thread the inky mass. These grew brighter and more vivid, until at last, in fantastic contortions, they appeared to rend the swart concave asunder, revealing through the jagged clefts a lurid waste of the most intensely glowing fire. The coming and going of these amazing brightnesses, combined with the Egyptian dark between, was completely blinding. So loaded was the still air with electricity that from every point aloft pale flames streamed upward, giving the ship the appearance of a huge candelabrum with innumerable branches. One of the hands, who had been ordered aloft on some errand of securing a loose end, presented a curious sight. He was bareheaded, and from his hair the all pervading fluid arose, lighting up his features, which were ghastly beyond description. When he lifted his hand, each separate finger became at once an additional point from which light streamed. There was no thunder, but a low hissing and a crackling which did not amount to noise, although distinctly audible to all. Sensations most unpleasant of pricking and general irritation were felt by every one, according to their degree of susceptibility.
The weather in the Mozambique Channel was pretty good, although there were intense electrical storms that looked terrifying but were actually harmless. On the second evening after we passed Cape St. Mary, we were sailing as usual with very little canvas up, enjoying the mild, fragrant air coming from Madagascar. The moon was shining brilliantly, outshining the surrounding stars and making the beautiful Milky Way look like a faint shadow of its usual glowing path. Gradually, a dark mass of clouds began to rise from the west, with upper edges highlighted by strange shades of violet, orange, and crimson. These colors weren’t bright, but they were clearly visible against the deep blue sky. Slowly and solemnly, the encroaching darkness spread over the lovely brightness of the clear sky, creeping like a shadow of death over a beloved face, making even the most talkative feel oddly quiet and uneasy. As the thick darkness blotted out the cool light, it felt like it was descending until we were completely covered by a dome of velvety black, seeming low enough to touch the tops of the masts. The shrill scream of a late sea bird only highlighted the deep silence that suited the solemnity of nature. Soon, thin threads of light, in various hues, began weaving through the dark mass. These lights grew brighter and more vivid, until finally, in fantastic shapes, they seemed to tear the dark canopy apart, revealing a glowing expanse of the brightest fire. The flashing lights and the pitch-black space between them were completely blinding. The still air was so charged with electricity that faint flames shot up from every point above, making the ship look like a giant candelabrum with countless branches. One of the crew members, who had been sent up to secure a loose end, looked curious. He was bareheaded, and the pervasive electricity lit up his features, which were shockingly pale. When he raised his hand, each finger instantly became another point from which light shone. There was no thunder, just a low hissing and crackling that wasn’t exactly loud, but was clearly audible to everyone. Everyone felt intensely unpleasant sensations of prickling and irritation, depending on their sensitivity.
After about an hour of this state of things, a low moaning of thunder was heard, immediately followed by a few drops of rain large as dollars. The mutterings and grumblings increased until, with one peal that made the ship tremble as though she had just struck a rock at full speed, down came the rain. The windows of heaven were opened, and no man might stand against the steaming flood that descended by thousands of tons per minute. How long it continued, I cannot say; probably, in its utmost fierceness, not more than half an hour. Then it slowly abated, clearing away as it did so the accumulation of gloom overhead, until, before midnight had struck, all the heavenly host were shedding their beautiful brilliancy upon us again with apparently increased glory, while the freshness and invigorating feel of the air was inexpressibly delightful.
After about an hour of this situation, a low rumble of thunder was heard, quickly followed by a few drops of rain as big as dollars. The rumbling grew louder until, with one clap that shook the ship as if she had just hit a rock at full speed, the rain poured down. The floodgates of heaven opened, and no one could withstand the torrent dumping thousands of tons of rain per minute. I can't say how long it lasted; probably, at its most intense, not more than half an hour. Then it gradually eased up, clearing away the gloom above, until, before midnight struck, all the stars were shining down on us again with what seemed like even more brilliance, while the fresh, invigorating air felt incredibly refreshing.
We did not court danger by hugging too closely any of the ugly reefs and banks that abound in this notably difficult strait, but gave them all a respectfully wide berth. It was a feature of our navigation that, unless we had occasion to go near any island or reef for fishing or landing purposes, we always kept a safe margin of distance away, which probably accounts for our continued immunity from accident while in tortuous waters. Our anchors and cables were, however, always kept ready for use now, in case of an unsuspected current or sudden storm; but beyond that precaution, I could see little or no difference in the manner of our primitive navigation.
We didn’t take risks by getting too close to the dangerous reefs and banks that are common in this tricky strait; instead, we made sure to keep a safe distance from them. When navigating, unless we needed to approach an island or reef for fishing or landing, we always maintained a safe margin, which probably explains why we avoided accidents in these challenging waters. Our anchors and cables were always prepared for use in case of an unexpected current or sudden storm; aside from that precaution, I noticed little change in how we navigated.
We met with no "luck" for some time, and the faces of the harpooners grew daily longer, the great heat of those sultry waters trying all tempers sorely. But Captain Slocum knew his business, and his scowling, impassive face showed no signs of disappointment, or indeed any other emotion, as day by day we crept farther north. At last we sighted the stupendous peak of Comoro mountain, which towers to nearly nine thousand feet from the little island which gives its name to the Comoro group of four. On that same day a school of medium-sized sperm whales were sighted, which appeared to be almost of a different race to those with which we had hitherto had dealings. They were exceedingly fat and lazy, moving with the greatest deliberation, and, when we rushed in among them, appeared utterly bewildered and panic-stricken, knowing not which way to flee. Like a flock of frightened sheep they huddled together, aimlessly wallowing in each other's way, while we harpooned them with the greatest ease and impunity. Even the "old man" himself lowered the fifth boat, leaving the ship to the carpenter, cooper, cook, and steward, and coming on the scene as if determined to make a field-day of the occasion. He was no "slouch" at the business either. Not that there was much occasion or opportunity to exhibit any prowess. The record of the day's proceedings would be as tame as to read of a day's work in a slaughter-house. Suffice it to say, that we actually killed six whales, none of whom were less than fifty barrels, no boat ran out more than one hundred fathoms of line, neither was a bomb-lance used. Not the slightest casualty occurred to any of the boats, and the whole work of destruction was over in less than four hours.
We hadn't had any "luck" for a while, and the faces of the harpooners grew longer each day, with the intense heat of those sultry waters testing everyone's patience. But Captain Slocum knew what he was doing, and his scowling, expressionless face showed no signs of disappointment or any other feelings as we slowly headed further north each day. Finally, we spotted the massive peak of Comoro Mountain, which rises to nearly nine thousand feet from the small island that gives its name to the Comoro group of four. On that same day, we saw a school of medium-sized sperm whales that seemed almost different from those we had dealt with before. They were incredibly fat and lazy, moving extremely slowly, and when we rushed in among them, they looked completely confused and panicked, not knowing which way to escape. Like a bunch of frightened sheep, they huddled together, aimlessly getting in each other's way while we easily harpooned them without any trouble. Even the "old man" himself lowered the fifth boat, leaving the ship to the carpenter, cooper, cook, and steward, and came to the scene ready to make the most of it. He wasn't inexperienced at this either. Not that there was much of a chance to show off any skills. The record of the day's events was about as exciting as reading a report from a slaughterhouse. To sum it up, we actually killed six whales, each of which yielded at least fifty barrels, no boat let out more than one hundred fathoms of line, and not a single bomb-lance was used. There were no casualties among any of the boats, and the entire operation was wrapped up in less than four hours.
Then came the trouble. The fish were, of course somewhat widely separated when they died, and the task of collecting all those immense carcasses was one of no ordinary magnitude. Had it not been for the wonderfully skilful handling of the ship, the task would, I should think, have been impossible, but the way in which she was worked compelled the admiration of anybody who knew what handling a ship meant. Still, with all the ability manifested, it was five hours after the last whale died before we had gathered them all alongside, bringing us to four o'clock in the afternoon.
Then the trouble began. The fish were, of course, pretty spread out when they died, and collecting all those massive carcasses was no small task. If it hadn't been for the incredibly skilled handling of the ship, I think the job would have been impossible, but the way she was operated earned the admiration of anyone who understood what it meant to handle a ship. Still, despite all the skill displayed, it took us five hours after the last whale died to get them all alongside, which brought us to four o'clock in the afternoon.
A complete day under that fierce blaze of the tropical sun, without other refreshment than an occasional furtive drink of tepid water, had reduced us to a pitiable condition of weakness, so much so that the skipper judged it prudent, as soon as the fluke-chains were passed, to give us a couple of hours' rest. As soon as the sun had set we were all turned to again, three cressets were prepared, and by their blaze we toiled the whole night through. Truth compels me to state, though, that none of us foremast hands had nearly such heavy work as the officers on the stage. What they had to do demanded special knowledge and skill; but it was also terribly hard work, constant and unremitting, while we at the windlass had many a short spell between the lifting of the pieces. Even the skipper took a hand, for the first time, and right manfully did he do his share.
After a whole day under the intense heat of the tropical sun, with nothing to drink except for the occasional sip of lukewarm water, we were left in a pretty bad state of exhaustion. The skipper thought it was wise to let us rest for a couple of hours as soon as the fluke-chains were passed. Once the sun went down, we all got back to work. Three torches were lit, and by their light, we labored all night long. I have to admit, though, that none of us on the foremast had nearly as much heavy lifting as the officers on the lookout. Their tasks required specific knowledge and skill, and they were incredibly demanding, constant, and relentless, while we at the windlass enjoyed many short breaks in between the heavy lifting. Even the skipper joined in for the first time, and he did his part commendably.
By the first streak of dawn, three of the whales had been stripped of their blubber, and five heads were bobbing astern at the ends of as many hawsers. The sea all round presented a wonderful sight. There must have been thousands of sharks gathered to the feast, and their incessant incursions through the phosphorescent water wove a dazzling network of brilliant tracks which made the eyes ache to look upon. A short halt was called for breakfast, which was greatly needed, and, thanks to the cook, was a thoroughly good one. He—blessings on him!—had been busy fishing, as we drifted slowly, with savoury pieces of whale-beef for bait, and the result was a mess of fish which would have gladdened the heart of an epicure. Our hunger appeased, it was "turn to" again, for there was now no time to be lost. The fierce heat soon acts upon the carcass of a dead whale, generating an immense volume of gas within it, which, in a wonderfully short space of time, turns the flesh putrid and renders the blubber so rotten that it cannot be lifted, nor, if it could, would it be of any value. So it was no wonder that our haste was great, or that the august arbiter of our destinies himself condescended to take his place among the toilers. By nightfall the whole of our catch was on board, excepting such toll as the hungry hordes of sharks had levied upon it in transit. A goodly number of them had paid the penalty of their rapacity with their lives, for often one would wriggle his way right up on to the reeking carcass, and, seizing a huge fragment of blubber, strive with might and main to tear it away. Then the lethal spade would drop upon his soft crown, cleaving it to the jaws, and with one flap of his big tail he would loose his grip, roll over and over, and sink, surrounded by a writhing crowd of his fellows, by whom he was speedily reduced into digestible fragments.
By the first light of dawn, three of the whales had been stripped of their blubber, and five heads were bobbing behind the boat on the ends of as many ropes. The sea around us was a fantastic sight. There must have been thousands of sharks gathered for the feast, and their constant movements through the glowing water created a stunning network of bright trails that made your eyes hurt to look at. We took a short break for breakfast, which was much needed, and thanks to the cook, it was really good. He—bless him!—had been busy fishing while we drifted slowly, using tasty chunks of whale meat as bait, and the result was a catch of fish that would have delighted any food lover. Once we satisfied our hunger, it was time to get back to work, as we had no time to waste. The intense heat soon affects the carcass of a dead whale, generating a huge amount of gas inside it, which quickly turns the flesh rotten and makes the blubber so spoiled that it can't be lifted, and even if it could, it wouldn't be worth anything. So it was no surprise that we were in such a hurry, or that the important leader of our group himself decided to join the workers. By nightfall, we had loaded all of our catch on board, except for what the hungry sharks had taken during transport. A good number of them had paid the price for their greed with their lives, as often one would squirm right up onto the decaying carcass and, grabbing a large piece of blubber, would struggle hard to tear it away. Then, a sharp blade would drop onto his soft head, splitting it open, and with one flick of his large tail, he would lose his grip, roll over and over, and sink, surrounded by a writhing mass of his fellow sharks, who quickly reduced him to digestible pieces.
The condition of the CACHALOT's deck was now somewhat akin to chaos. From the cabin door to the tryworks there was hardly an inch of available space, and the oozing oil kept some of us continually baling it up, lest it should leak out through the interstices in the bulwarks. In order to avoid a breakdown, it became necessary to divide the crew into six-hour watches, as although the work was exceedingly urgent on account of the weather, there were evident signs that some of the crew were perilously near giving in. So we got rest none too soon, and the good effects of it were soon apparent. The work went on with much more celerity than one would have thought possible, and soon the lumbered-up decks began to resume their normal appearance.
The CACHALOT's deck was in complete chaos. From the cabin door to the tryworks, there was barely an inch of free space, and the leaking oil had some of us constantly baling it out to prevent it from spilling through the gaps in the bulwarks. To avoid a breakdown, we had to split the crew into six-hour shifts. Even though the work was urgent due to the weather, it was clear that some crew members were close to giving up. Luckily, we got some rest just in time, and it quickly showed. The work progressed much faster than we expected, and soon the cluttered decks started to look normal again.
As if to exasperate the "old man" beyond measure on the third day of our operations a great school of sperm whales appeared, disporting all around the ship, apparently conscious of our helplessness to interfere with them. Notwithstanding our extraordinary haul, Captain Slocum went black with impotent rage, and, after glowering at the sportive monsters, beat a retreat below, unable to bear the sight any longer. During his absence we had a rare treat. The whole school surrounded the ship, and performed some of the strangest evolutions imaginable. As if instigated by one common impulse, they all elevated their massive heads above the surface of the sea, and remained for some time in that position, solemnly bobbing up and down amid the glittering wavelets like movable boulders of black rock. Then, all suddenly reversed themselves, and, elevating their broad flukes in the air, commenced to beat them slowly and rhythmically upon the water, like so many machines. Being almost a perfect calm, every movement of the great mammals could be plainly seen; some of them even passed so near to us that we could see how the lower jaw hung down, while the animal was swimming in a normal position.
As if to frustrate the "old man" beyond belief, on the third day of our operations, a large school of sperm whales showed up, frolicking all around the ship, seemingly aware that we couldn't do anything to interfere with them. Despite our impressive catch, Captain Slocum turned dark with powerless anger and, after glaring at the playful giants, retreated below deck, unable to watch any longer. During his absence, we enjoyed a rare spectacle. The entire school surrounded the ship and performed some of the strangest maneuvers imaginable. It was as if they were driven by a single impulse, all lifting their massive heads above the water's surface and staying that way for some time, solemnly bobbing up and down among the sparkling waves like moving boulders of black rock. Then, all at once, they flipped over, raising their broad tails into the air, and began to beat them slowly and rhythmically on the water like a well-oiled machine. With almost perfect calm, every movement of the great mammals was clearly visible; some even came so close to us that we could see how their lower jaws hung down while the animals swam normally.
For over an hour they thus paraded around us, and then, as if startled by some hidden danger, suddenly headed off to the westward, and in a few minutes were out of our sight.
For more than an hour, they marched around us, and then, as if alarmed by some unseen threat, they abruptly turned west and were out of our view in just a few minutes.
We cruised in the vicinity of the Comoro Islands for two months, never quite out of sight of the mountain while the weather was clear. During the whole of that time we were never clear of oil on deck, one catch always succeeding another before there had been time to get cleared up. Eight hundred barrels of oil were added to our cargo, making the undisciplined hearts of all to whom whaling was a novel employment beat high with hopes of a speedy completion of the cargo, and consequent return. Poor innocents that we were! How could we know any better? According to Goliath, with whom I often had a friendly chat, this was quite out of the ordinary run to have such luck in the "Channel."
We cruised around the Comoro Islands for two months, never really out of sight of the mountain when the weather was clear. During that entire time, we were constantly dealing with oil on deck, with one catch following another before we could clean up. We added eight hundred barrels of oil to our cargo, making the excitement of everyone new to whaling skyrocket with hopes of quickly finishing the cargo and heading home. Poor fools that we were! How could we have known any better? According to Goliath, with whom I often had friendly chats, it was quite unusual to have such luck in the “Channel.”
"'Way back in de dark ages, w'en de whaleships war de pi'neers ob commerce, 'n day wan't no worryin', poofity-plukity steamboats a-poundin' along, 'nough ter galley ebery whale clean eout ob dere skin, dey war plenty whaleships fill up in twelve, fifteen, twenty monf' after leabin' home. 'N er man bed his pick er places, too—didn' hab ter go moseyin erroun' like some ol' hobo lookin' fer day's work, 'n prayin' de good Lord not ter let um fine it. No, sah; roun yer China Sea, coas' Japan, on de line, off shore, Vasquez, 'mong de islan's, ohmos' anywhar, you couldn' hardly git way from 'em. Neow, I clar ter glory I kaint imagine WAR dey all gone ter, dough we bin eout only six seven monf' 'n got over tousan bar'l below. But I bin two year on er voy'ge and doan hardly SEE a sparm while, much less catch one. But"—and here he whispered mysteriously—"dish yer ole man's de bery debbil's own chile, 'n his farder lookin' after him well—dat's my 'pinion. Only yew keep yer head tight shut, an' nebber say er word, but keep er lookin', 'n sure's death you'll see." This conversation made a deep and lasting impression upon me, for I had not before heard even so much as a murmur from an officer against the tyranny of the skipper. Some of the harpooners were fluent enough, too.
"Way back in the dark ages, when the whaling ships were the pioneers of commerce, and there weren't any steamboats pounding along, there were plenty of whalers that could fill up in twelve, fifteen, or even twenty months after leaving home. And a man could pick his spots, too—didn't have to roam around like some old hobo looking for a day's work, praying that the good Lord wouldn’t let him find it. No, sir; around the China Sea, off the coast of Japan, along the line, offshore, Vasquez, among the islands, almost anywhere, you could hardly get away from them. Now, I swear I can't imagine where they've all gone to, though we've been out only six or seven months and have over a thousand barrels below. But I've been on a voyage for two years and hardly seen a sperm whale at all, much less caught one. But"—and here he whispered mysteriously—"this old man is the very devil's own child, and his father is looking after him well—that's my opinion. Just keep your mouth shut, and never say a word, but keep looking, and sure as death you'll see." This conversation left a deep and lasting impression on me, as I had never before heard even a whisper from an officer against the tyranny of the captain. Some of the harpooners were quite talkative too.
Yet I had often thought that his treatment of them, considering the strenuous nature of their toil, and the willingness with which they worked as long as they had an ounce of energy left, was worth at least a little kindness and courtesy on his part.
Yet I had often thought that his treatment of them, given how hard they worked and how eager they were to keep going as long as they had any energy left, deserved at least some kindness and courtesy from him.
What the period may have been during which whales were plentiful here, I do not know, but it was now May, and for the last few days we had not seen a solitary spout of any kind. Preparations, very slight it is true, were made for departure; but before we left those parts we made an interesting call for water at Mohilla, one of the Comoro group, which brought out, in unmistakable fashion, the wonderful fund of local knowledge possessed by these men. At the larger ports of Johanna and Mayotte there is a regular tariff of port charges, which are somewhat heavy, and no whaleman would be so reckless as to incur these unless driven thereto by the necessity of obtaining provisions; otherwise, the islands offer great inducements to whaling captains to call, since none but men hopelessly mad would venture to desert in such places. That qualification is the chief one for any port to possess in the eyes of a whaling captain.
I’m not sure what the period was like when whales were abundant here, but it was now May, and for the last few days, we hadn’t seen a single spout. We made some slight preparations for departure, but before we left the area, we made a noteworthy stop for water at Mohilla, one of the Comoro islands, which highlighted the incredible local knowledge these men had. At the larger ports of Johanna and Mayotte, there’s a standard set of port fees, which are pretty high, and no whaleman would be reckless enough to pay them unless they absolutely needed supplies; otherwise, the islands have great incentives for whaling captains to stop by, since only someone completely insane would try to desert in such places. That factor is the main reason a port appeals to a whaling captain.
Our skipper, however, saw no necessity for entering any port. Running up under the lee of Mohilla, we followed the land along until we came to a tiny bight on the western side of the island, an insignificant inlet which no mariner in charge of a vessel like ours could be expected even to notice, unless he were surveying. The approaches to this tiny harbour (save the mark) were very forbidding. Ugly-looking rocks showed up here and there, the surf over them frequently blinding the whole entry. But we came along, in our usual leisurely fashion, under two topsails, spanker, and fore-topmast staysail, and took that ugly passage like a sailing barge entering the Medway. There was barely room to turn round when we got inside, but all sail had been taken off her except the spanker, so that her way was almost stopped by the time she was fairly within the harbour. Down went the anchor, and she was fast—anchored for the first time since leaving New Bedford seven months before. Here we were shut out entirely from the outer world, for I doubt greatly whether even a passing dhow could have seen us from seaward. We were not here for rest, however, but wood and water; so while one party was supplied with well-sharpened axes, and sent on shore to cut down such small trees as would serve our turn, another party was busily employed getting out a number of big casks for the serious business of watering. The cooper knocked off the second or quarter hoops from each of these casks, and drove them on again with two "beckets" or loops of rope firmly jammed under each of them in such a manner that the loops were in line with each other on each side of the bunghole. They were then lowered overboard, and a long rope rove through all the beckets. When this was done, the whole number of casks floated end to end, upright and secure. We towed them ashore to where, by the skipper's directions, at about fifty yards from high-water mark, a spring of beautiful water bubbled out of the side of a mass of rock, losing itself in a deep crevice below. Lovely ferns, rare orchids, and trailing plants of many kinds surrounded this fairy-like spot in the wildest profusion, making a tangle of greenery that we had considerable trouble to clear away. Having done so, we led a long canvas hose from the spot whence the water flowed down to the shore where the casks floated. The chief officer, with great ingenuity, rigged up an arrangement whereby the hose, which had a square month about a foot wide, was held up to the rock, saving us the labour of bailing and filling by hand. So we were able to rest and admire at our ease the wonderful variety of beautiful plants which grew here so lavishly, unseen by mortal eye from one year's end to another. I have somewhere read that the Creator has delight in the beautiful work of His will, wherever it may be; and that while our egotism wonders at the waste of beauty, as we call it, there is no waste at all, since the Infinite Intelligence can dwell with complacency upon the glories of His handiwork, perfectly fulfilling their appointed ends.
Our captain, however, saw no need to stop at any port. Sailing close to the shore of Mohilla, we followed the land until we reached a small bay on the western side of the island, an unremarkable inlet that no sailor in charge of a vessel like ours would likely notice, unless they were surveying. The entrances to this tiny harbor (save the mark) looked pretty daunting. Ugly rocks appeared here and there, with waves crashing over them often obscuring the entire entrance. But we approached, as usual, leisurely, under two topsails, a spanker, and a fore-topmast staysail, and navigated that tricky passage like a barge entering the Medway. There was barely enough room to turn around once we got inside, but we had taken down all sails except the spanker, so our speed was almost halted by the time we were fully within the harbor. Down went the anchor, and we were secure—anchored for the first time since leaving New Bedford seven months ago. Here we were completely cut off from the outside world; I doubt that even a passing dhow could have spotted us from the sea. However, we weren't here to rest; we needed wood and water. So while one group took well-sharpened axes and went ashore to chop down some small trees, another group was busy getting large barrels ready for the important task of retrieving water. The cooper took off the second or quarter hoops from each barrel and nailed them back on with two loops of rope tightly jammed underneath each one, positioning the loops in line with each other on both sides of the bunghole. They were then lowered overboard, and a long rope was passed through all the loops. Once that was done, all the barrels floated end to end, upright and secure. We towed them ashore to where, according to the captain's instructions, about fifty yards from the high-water mark, a spring of clear water flowed out of the side of a rock formation, disappearing into a deep crevice below. Beautiful ferns, rare orchids, and various trailing plants surrounded this enchanting spot in wild abundance, creating a tangle of greenery that we had a hard time clearing away. After doing so, we led a long canvas hose from the water source down to the shore where the barrels floated. The chief officer cleverly set up a system that held the hose, which had a square mouth about a foot wide, up to the rock, saving us the trouble of bailing and filling by hand. This allowed us to relax and enjoy the stunning variety of beautiful plants that grew here so profusely, unseen by human eyes year-round. I’ve read somewhere that the Creator takes pleasure in the beautiful work of His will, wherever it may be; and while our egotism questions the perceived waste of beauty, there really is no waste at all, since the Infinite Intelligence can take satisfaction in the splendor of His creation, perfectly fulfilling its intended purposes.
All too soon the pleasant occupation came to an end. The long row of casks, filled to the brim and tightly bunged, were towed off by us to the ship, and ranged alongside. A tackle and pair of "can-hooks" was overhauled to the water and hooked to a cask. "Hoist away!" And as the cask rose, the beckets that had held it to the mother-rope were cut, setting it quite free to come on board, but leaving all the others still secure. In this way we took in several thousand gallons of water in a few hours, with a small expenditure of labour, free of cost; whereas, had we gone into Mayotte or Johanna, the water would have been bad, the price high, the labour great, with the chances of a bad visitation of fever in the bargain.
Before long, the enjoyable task came to an end. We towed the long line of barrels, filled to the top and tightly sealed, to the ship and positioned them alongside. A tackle and a pair of "can-hooks" were lowered to the water and attached to a barrel. "Hoist away!" As the barrel rose, the loops that had held it to the main rope were cut, allowing it to come on board while leaving the others still secured. This way, we took in several thousand gallons of water in just a few hours with minimal effort and at no cost; if we had gone to Mayotte or Johanna, the water would have been poor quality, the price high, the labor intense, and we might have faced a serious risk of contracting fever as well.
The woodmen had a much more arduous task. The only wood they could find, without cutting down big trees, which would have involved far too much labour in cutting up, was a kind of iron-wood, which, besides being very heavy, was so hard as to take pieces clean out of their axe-edges, when a blow was struck directly across the grain. As none of them were experts, the condition of their tools soon made their work very hard. But that they had taken several axes in reserve, it is doubtful whether they would have been able to get sufficient fuel for our purpose. When they pitched the wood off the rocks into the harbour, it sank immediately, giving them a great deal of trouble to fish it up again. Neither could they raft it as intended, but were compelled to load it into the boats and make several journeys to and fro before all they had cut was shipped. Altogether, I was glad that the wooding had not fallen to my share. On board the ship fishing had been going on steadily most of the day by a few hands told off for the purpose. The result of their sport was splendid, over two hundred-weight of fine fish of various sorts, but all eatable, having been gathered in.
The woodworkers had a much tougher job. The only wood they could find without cutting down big trees, which would have required way too much effort, was a type of iron-wood. This wood was not only very heavy but also so hard that it would chip their axes if they struck it across the grain. Since none of them were experts, their tools degraded quickly, making their work even harder. If they hadn't brought several spare axes, it’s doubtful they would have been able to gather enough fuel for our needs. When they tossed the wood off the rocks into the harbor, it sank right away, causing them a lot of trouble trying to fish it out again. They couldn't raft the wood as planned, so they had to load it into the boats and make several trips back and forth before they transported all they had cut. Overall, I was glad that I didn’t have to deal with the wood gathering. On the ship, a few crew members had been steadily fishing all day. They had a great catch, bringing in over two hundred pounds of various types of delicious fish.
We lay snugly anchored all night, keeping a bright look-out for any unwelcome visitors either from land or sea, for the natives are not to be trusted, neither do the Arab mongrels who cruise about those waters in their dhows bear any too good a reputation. We saw none, however, and at daylight we weighed and towed the ship out to sea with the boats, there being no wind. While busy at this uninteresting pastime, one of the boats slipped away, returning presently with a fine turtle, which they had surprised during his morning's nap. One of the amphibious Portuguese slipped over the boat's side as she neared the sleeping SPHARGA, and, diving deep, came up underneath him, seizing with crossed hands the two hind flippers, and, with a sudden, dexterous twist, turned the astonished creature over on his back. Thus rendered helpless, the turtle lay on the surface feebly waving his flippers, while his captor, gently treading water, held him in that position till the boat reached the pair and took them on board. It was a clever feat, neatly executed, as unlike the clumsy efforts I had before seen made with the same object as anything could possibly be.
We stayed securely anchored all night, keeping a close watch for any unwanted visitors from land or sea, since the locals can’t be trusted, and neither do the Arab mongrels sailing around in their dhows have a great reputation. However, we didn’t see anyone, and at dawn, we weighed anchor and towed the ship out to sea with the boats, as there was no wind. While we were busy with this tedious task, one of the boats slipped away and soon returned with a fine turtle that they had caught during its morning nap. One of the agile Portuguese crew members climbed over the side of the boat as they got close to the sleeping turtle and, diving deep, surfaced underneath it. He grabbed the turtle’s hind flippers with crossed hands and, with a quick, skillful twist, turned the surprised creature onto its back. Now helpless, the turtle lay on the surface, weakly flapping its flippers, while the captor gently treaded water, keeping it in that position until the boat arrived to take both of them aboard. It was a clever move, executed smoothly, completely unlike the clumsy attempts I had seen before to accomplish the same thing.
After an hour's tow, we had got a good offing, and a light air springing up, we returned on board, hoisted the boats, and made sail to the northward again.
After an hour of towing, we had a good distance from shore, and with a light breeze picking up, we went back on board, lifted the boats, and set sail north again.
With the exception of the numerous native dhows that crept lazily about, we saw no vessels as we gradually drew out of the Mozambique Channel and stood away towards the Line. The part of the Indian Ocean in which we now found ourselves is much dreaded by merchantmen, who give it a wide berth on account of the numerous banks, islets, and dangerous currents with which it abounds. We, however, seemed quite at home here, pursuing the even tenor of our usual way without any special precautions being taken. A bright look-out, we always kept, of course—none of your drowsy lolling about such as is all too common on the "fo'lk'sle head" of many a fine ship, when, with lights half trimmed or not shown at all, she is ploughing along blindly at twelve knots or so an hour. No; while we were under way during daylight, four pairs of keen eyes kept incessant vigil a hundred feet above the deck, noting everything, even to a shoal of small fish, that crossed within the range of vision. At night we scarcely moved, but still a vigilant lookout was always kept both fore and aft, so that it would have been difficult for us to drift upon a reef unknowingly.
Aside from the many native dhows that casually floated around, we saw no other vessels as we gradually left the Mozambique Channel and headed towards the Equator. The part of the Indian Ocean where we found ourselves is feared by merchants, who avoid it because of the numerous sandbanks, islets, and dangerous currents that are found there. However, we felt right at home here, following our usual routine without taking any special precautions. We always kept a sharp lookout—none of that lazy hanging around you often see on the "forecastle" of many fine ships, when, with lights dimmed or not lit at all, they’re racing along blindly at about twelve knots an hour. No; while we were sailing during the day, four pairs of sharp eyes maintained a constant watch a hundred feet above the deck, spotting everything, even small schools of fish, that came into view. At night, we hardly moved, but we still maintained a vigilant watch both at the front and back, making it almost impossible for us to unknowingly drift onto a reef.
Creeping steadily northward, we passed the Cosmoledo group of atolls without paying them a visit, which was strange, as, from their appearance, no better fishing-ground would be likely to come in our way. They are little known, except to the wandering fishermen from Reunion and Rodriguez, who roam about these islets and reefs, seeking anything that may be turned into coin, from wrecks to turtle, and in nowise particular as to rights of ownership. When between the Cosmoledos and Astove, the next island to the northward, we sighted a "solitary" cachalot one morning just as the day dawned. It was the first for some time—nearly three weeks—and being all well seasoned to the work now, we obeyed the call to arms with great alacrity. Our friend was making a passage, turning neither to the right hand nor the left as he went. His risings and number of spouts while up, as well as the time he remained below, were as regular as the progress of a clock, and could be counted upon with quite as much certainty.
Creeping steadily northward, we passed the Cosmoledo atolls without stopping for a visit, which was odd since, by their look, we wouldn’t likely find a better fishing spot. They are mostly unknown, except to the wandering fishermen from Reunion and Rodriguez, who roam these islets and reefs, looking for anything that can be turned into cash, from shipwrecks to turtles, without caring much about ownership rights. While we were between the Cosmoledos and Astove, the next island to the north, we spotted a "solitary" sperm whale one morning just as dawn broke. It was the first one we'd seen in nearly three weeks, and since we were all well-prepared for the task, we sprang into action eagerly. Our friend was traveling in a straight line, neither veering to the right nor the left. His surfacings and spout counts, as well as the duration he stayed underwater, were as regular as clockwork, and could be predicted with just as much certainty.
Bearing in mind, I suppose, the general character of the whales we had recently met with, only two boats were lowered to attack the new-comer, who, all unconscious of our coming, pursued his leisurely course unheeding.
Considering, I guess, the usual behavior of the whales we had encountered recently, only two boats were sent out to engage the newcomer, who, completely unaware of our approach, continued on its slow path without a care.
We got a good weather gage of him, and came flying on as usual getting two irons planted in fine style. But a surprise awaited us. As we sheered up into the wind away from him, Louis shouted, "Fightin' whale, sir; look out for de rush!" Look out, indeed? Small use in looking out when, hampered as we always were at first with the unshipping of the mast, we could do next to nothing to avoid him. Without any of the desperate flounderings generally indulged in on first feeling the iron, he turned upon us, and had it not been that he caught sight of the second mate's boat, which had just arrived, and turned his attentions to her, there would have been scant chance of any escape for us. Leaping half out of water, he made direct for our comrades with a vigour and ferocity marvellous to see, making it a no easy matter for them to avoid his tremendous rush. Our actions, at no time slow, were considerably hastened by this display of valour, so that before he could turn his attentions in our direction we were ready for him. Then ensued a really big fight, the first, in fact, of my experience, for none of the other whales had shown any serious determination to do us an injury, but had devoted all their energies to attempts at escape. So quick were the evolutions, and so savage the appearance of this fellow, that even our veteran mate looked anxious as to the possible result. Without attempting to "sound," the furious monster kept mostly below the surface; but whenever he rose, it was either to deliver a fearful blow with his tail, or, with jaws widespread, to try and bite one of our boats in half. Well was it for us that he was severely handicapped by a malformation of the lower jaw. At a short distance from the throat it turned off nearly at right angles to his body, the part that thus protruded sideways being deeply fringed with barnacles, and plated with big limpets.
We had a good position on him and were moving fast as usual, managing to get two harpoons in him pretty well. But then we were surprised. As we turned up into the wind, moving away from him, Louis shouted, "Fighting whale, sir; watch out for the charge!" Watch out, really? There wasn't much point in looking out when we were always hindered at first by the mast coming loose, leaving us almost powerless to avoid him. Instead of the usual frantic flailing you’d expect when he first felt the harpoon, he charged at us, and if he hadn’t spotted the second mate's boat, which had just arrived, and redirected his focus to it, we would have had little chance of escaping. He leaped partially out of the water and went straight for our friends with incredible energy and rage, making it really tough for them to dodge his massive charge. Our movements, which were never slow, picked up speed in response to this fierce display, so by the time he shifted his focus back to us, we were ready for him. Then a true battle broke out, the first one I had ever experienced, since none of the other whales had shown any real desire to hurt us, focusing instead on getting away. The movements were so fast and the anger of this whale so intimidating that even our seasoned mate looked worried about what might happen. Without trying to dive deeply, the furious creature mostly stayed below the surface; but whenever he surfaced, it was either to strike with his tail or to try and bite one of our boats in half with his wide-open jaws. We were fortunate that he was significantly hindered by a deformity in his lower jaw. A short distance from his throat, it turned almost at a right angle to his body, with the part that stuck out being heavily covered in barnacles and plated with large limpets.
Had it not been for this impediment, I verily believe he would have beaten us altogether. As it was, he worked us nearly to death with his ugly rushes. Once he delivered a sidelong blow with his tail, which, as we spun round, shore off the two oars on that side as if they had been carrots. At last the second mate got fast to him, and then the character of the game changed again. Apparently unwearied by his previous exertions, he now started off to windward at top speed, with the two boats sheering broadly out upon either side of his foaming wake. Doubtless because he himself was much fatigued, the mate allowed him to run at his will, without for the time attempting to haul any closer to him, and very grateful the short rest was to us. But he had not gone a couple of miles before he turned a complete somersault in the water, coming up BEHIND us to rush off again in the opposite direction at undiminished speed. This move was a startler. For the moment it seemed as if both boats would be smashed like egg-shells against each other, or else that some of us would be impaled upon the long lances with which each boat's bow bristled. By what looked like a handbreadth, we cleared each other, and the race continued. Up till now we had not succeeded in getting home a single lance, the foe was becoming warier, while the strain was certainly telling upon our nerves. So Mr. Count got out his bomb-gun, shouting at the same time to Mr. Cruce to do the same. They both hated these weapons, nor ever used them if they could help it; but what was to be done?
If it hadn't been for this obstacle, I truly believe he would have taken us down completely. As it was, he pushed us to our limits with his aggressive attacks. Once, he swung his tail sideways, and as we spun around, it cleanly chopped off the two oars on that side as if they were made of carrots. Finally, the second mate got a hold of him, and then the nature of the chase changed again. Seemingly unaffected by his earlier efforts, he took off windward at full speed, with the two boats veering wide on either side of his foamy wake. Probably because he was quite exhausted, the mate let him go for the time being, without trying to get closer, and we were quite thankful for the brief break. But he hadn't gone a couple of miles before he did a complete flip in the water, coming up BEHIND us to take off again in the opposite direction at full speed. This maneuver was shocking. For a moment, it seemed like both boats would crash into each other like fragile egg shells, or that some of us would get skewered by the long spikes on each boat's bow. By what seemed like a hair's breadth, we just missed each other, and the chase continued. Up until now, we hadn't managed to land a single spear; our opponent was getting more cautious, and the pressure was definitely getting to us. So Mr. Count pulled out his bomb-gun, shouting for Mr. Cruce to do the same. They both disliked these weapons and avoided using them if possible; but what else could be done?
Our chief had hardly got his gun ready, before we came to almost a dead stop. All was silent for just a moment; then, with a roar like a cataract, up sprang the huge creature, head out, jaw wide open, coming direct for us. As coolly as if on the quarter-deck, the mate raised his gun, firing the bomb directly down the great livid cavern of a throat fronting him. Down went that mountainous head not six inches from us, but with a perfectly indescribable motion, a tremendous writhe, in fact; up flew the broad tail in air, and a blow which might have sufficed to stave in the side of the ship struck the second mate's boat fairly amidships. It was right before my eyes, not sixty feet away, and the sight will haunt me to my death. The tub oarsman was the poor German baker, about whom I have hitherto said nothing, except to note that he was one of the crew. That awful blow put an end summarily to all his earthly anxieties. As it shore obliquely through the centre of the boat, it drove his poor body right through her timbers—an undistinguishable bundle of what was an instant before a human being. The other members of the crew escaped the blow, and the harpooner managed to cut the line, so that for the present they were safe enough, clinging to the remains of their boat, unless the whale should choose to rush across them.
Our captain had barely gotten his gun ready when we came to almost a complete stop. It was silent for just a moment; then, with a roar like a waterfall, the massive creature leaped up, head out, jaw wide open, coming straight for us. Calmly, as if on the bridge of a ship, the mate raised his gun and fired directly down the gaping throat in front of him. That gigantic head came crashing down just inches from us, moving in a way that's hard to describe—an incredible writhe, really; the broad tail shot up into the air, and a blow powerful enough to crush the side of the ship struck the second mate's boat squarely in the middle. It was right before my eyes, less than sixty feet away, and the scene will haunt me for the rest of my life. The oarsman was the unfortunate German baker, whom I hadn’t mentioned before, except to say he was part of the crew. That terrible blow ended all his earthly worries in an instant. As it sliced through the center of the boat, it drove his poor body right through the wooden boards—a shapeless mass of what was just a moment before a human being. The other crew members avoided the blow, and the harpooner managed to cut the line, so for now, they were safe, clinging to the remains of their boat, unless the whale decided to rush over them.
Happily, his rushing was almost over. The bomb fired by Mr. Count, with such fatal result to poor Bamberger, must have exploded right in the whale's throat. Whether his previous titanic efforts had completely exhausted him, or whether the bomb had broken his massive backbone, I do not know, of course, but he went into no flurry, dying as peacefully as his course had been furious. For the first time in my life, I had been face to face with a violent death, and I was quite stunned with the awfulness of the experience. Mechanically, as it seemed to me, we obeyed such orders as were given, but every man's thoughts were with the shipmate so suddenly dashed from amongst us. We never saw sign of him again.
Happily, his rushing was almost over. The bomb fired by Mr. Count, with such a deadly outcome for poor Bamberger, must have exploded right in the whale's throat. Whether his previous gigantic efforts had completely worn him out, or whether the bomb had shattered his massive backbone, I don’t know, but he didn’t thrash about, dying as peacefully as he had lived fiercely. For the first time in my life, I had come face to face with a violent death, and I was completely shocked by the horror of the experience. It felt mechanical as we followed the orders given, but every man’s thoughts were with the shipmate who had been so suddenly taken from us. We never saw any sign of him again.
While the ship was running down to us, another boat had gone to rescue the clinging crew of the shattered boat, for the whole drama had been witnessed from the ship, although they were not aware of the death of the poor German. When the sad news was told on board, there was a deep silence, all work being carried on so quietly that we seemed like a crew of dumb men. With a sentiment for which I should not have given our grim skipper credit, the stars and stripes were hoisted half-mast, telling the silent sky and moaning sea, sole witnesses besides ourselves, of the sudden departure from among us of our poor shipmate. We got the whale cut in as usual without any incident worth mentioning, except that the peculiar shape of the jaw made it an object of great curiosity to all of us who were new to the whale-fishing. Such malformations are not very rare. They are generally thought to occur when the animal is young, and its bones soft; but whether done in fighting with one another, or in some more mysterious way, nobody knows. Cases have been known, I believe, where the deformed whale does not appear to have suffered from lack of food in consequence of his disability; but in each of the three instances which have come under my own notice, such was certainly not the case. These whales were what is termed by the whalers "dry-skins;" that is, they were in poor condition, the blubber yielding less than half the usual quantity of oil. The absence of oil makes it very hard to cut up, and there is more work in one whale of this kind than in two whose blubber is rich and soft. Another thing which I have also noticed is, that these whales were much more difficult to tackle than others, for each of them gave us something special to remember them by. But I must not get ahead of my yarn.
While the ship was approaching us, another boat had gone to rescue the crew clinging to the wrecked boat, as the whole scene had been observed from the ship, although they were unaware of the poor German’s death. When the sad news reached the ship, a deep silence fell over us, and all tasks were carried out so quietly that we felt like a crew of mute men. With a sentiment that would have surprised our stern captain, the stars and stripes were raised to half-mast, signaling to the silent sky and the moaning sea, our only witnesses besides ourselves, about the sudden loss of our shipmate. We got the whale processed as usual without any notable incidents, except that the unusual shape of the jaw drew great curiosity from all of us who were new to whaling. Such deformities are not very rare. They are generally believed to happen when the animal is young and its bones are still soft; however, whether these occur from fighting each other or through some other unknown cause remains unclear. There have been instances where, I believe, the deformed whale did not appear to suffer from a lack of food due to its condition; but in all three cases I’ve personally encountered, that was definitely not the situation. These whales were what whalers call "dry-skins," meaning they were in poor condition, with the blubber yielding less than half the usual amount of oil. The absence of oil makes them very difficult to process, and one of these whales requires more work than two whose blubber is rich and soft. I also noticed that these whales were much harder to handle than others, as each of them left us with something unique to remember them by. But I shouldn't rush ahead in my story.
The end of the week brought us up to the Aldabra Islands, one of the puzzles of the world. For here, in these tiny pieces of earth, surrounded by thousands of miles of sea, the nearest land a group of islets like unto them, is found the gigantic tortoise, and in only one other place in the wide world, the Galapagos group of islands in the South Pacific. How, or by what strange freak of Dame Nature these curious reptiles, sole survivals of another age, should come to be found in this lonely spot, is a deep mystery, and one not likely to be unfolded now. At any rate, there they are, looking as if some of them might be coeval with Noah, so venerable and storm-beaten do they appear.
The end of the week brought us to the Aldabra Islands, one of the world's mysteries. Here, in these small patches of land surrounded by thousands of miles of ocean, the nearest land being a group of islets like them, you can find the gigantic tortoise, and in only one other place in the world, the Galapagos Islands in the South Pacific. How or why these unusual reptiles, the last survivors of another era, ended up in this remote location is a deep mystery, and probably one that won't be solved anytime soon. Regardless, there they are, looking as if some of them could have lived alongside Noah, so ancient and weathered do they seem.
We made the island early on a Sunday morning, and, with the usual celerity, worked the vessel into the fine harbour, called, from one of the exploring ships, Euphrates Bay or Harbour. The anchor down, and everything made snug below and aloft, we were actually allowed a run ashore free from restraint. I could hardly believe my ears. We had got so accustomed to our slavery that liberty was become a mere name; we hardly knew what to do with it when we got it. However, we soon got used (in a very limited sense) to being our own masters, and, each following the bent of his inclinations, set out for a ramble. My companion and I had not gone far, when we thought we saw one of the boulders, with which the island was liberally besprinkled, on the move. Running up to examine it with all the eagerness of children let out of school, we found it to be one of the inhabitants, a monstrous tortoise. I had some big turtle around the cays of the Gulf of Mexico, but this creature dwarfed them all. We had no means of actually measuring him, and had to keep clear of his formidable-looking jaws, but roughly, and within the mark, he was four feet long by two feet six inches wide. Of course he was much more dome-shaped than the turtle are, and consequently looked a great deal bigger than a turtle of the same measurement would, besides being much thicker through. As he was loth to stay with us, we made up our minds to go with him, for he was evidently making for some definite spot, by the tracks he was following, which showed plainly how many years that same road had been used. Well, I mounted on his back, keeping well astern, out of the reach of that serious-looking head, which having rather a long neck, looked as if it might be able to reach round and take a piece out of a fellow without any trouble. He was perfectly amicable, continuing his journey as if nothing had happened, and really getting over the ground at a good rate, considering the bulk and shape of him. Except for the novelty of the thing, this sort of ride had nothing to recommend it; so I soon tired of it, and let him waddle along in peace. By following the tracks aforesaid, we arrived at a fine stream of water sparkling out of a hillside, and running down a little ravine. The sides of this gully were worn quite smooth by the innumerable feet of the tortoises, about a dozen of which were now quietly crouching at the water's edge, filling themselves up with the cooling fluid. I did not see the patriarch upon whom a sailor once reported that he had read the legend carved, "The Ark, Captain Noah, Ararat for orders"; perhaps he had at last closed his peaceful career. But strange, and quaint as this exhibition of ancient reptiles was, we had other and better employment for the limited time at our disposal. There were innumerable curious things to see, and, unless we were to run the risk of going on board again and stopping there, dinner must be obtained. Eggs of various kinds were exceedingly plentiful; in many places the flats were almost impassable for sitting birds, mostly "boobies."
We arrived at the island early on a Sunday morning and quickly maneuvered the boat into the beautiful harbor, which was named Euphrates Bay or Harbour after one of the exploring ships. Once the anchor was down and everything was secured below and above, we were finally free to go ashore without restrictions. I could hardly believe it. We had grown so used to our confinement that freedom had become just a word; we barely knew what to do with it when we had it. However, we soon got somewhat used to being our own bosses and, each following our interests, set off for a stroll. My companion and I hadn’t gone far when we thought we spotted one of the boulders scattered across the island moving. Running over to check it out with the excitement of kids released from school, we discovered it was one of the locals, a huge tortoise. I had seen some large turtles around the cays of the Gulf of Mexico, but this one dwarfed them all. We had no way to actually measure him and had to keep a safe distance from his impressive-looking jaws, but roughly speaking, he was about four feet long and two and a half feet wide. He was definitely much more dome-shaped than typical turtles, making him look much larger than a turtle of the same size, as well as being much thicker. Since he was reluctant to stay with us, we decided to follow him, as he was clearly headed toward a specific spot, judging by the well-worn tracks he was following. I hopped onto his back, keeping well behind him to avoid that serious-looking head, which had a long neck and looked like it could easily reach around and take a bite out of someone. He was completely friendly, continuing on his way as if nothing was happening and actually moving at a decent pace considering his size and shape. After a while, I got bored with the novelty of the ride and let him go on his way peacefully. By following those tracks, we came to a lovely stream of water sparkling from a hillside, flowing down a small ravine. The sides of this gully were smoothed out by the countless feet of the tortoises, around a dozen of which were now quietly gathered at the water's edge, drinking in the cool water. I didn’t spot the legendary tortoise that a sailor once claimed had the inscription, "The Ark, Captain Noah, Ararat for orders," perhaps he had finally ended his peaceful life. But as strange and unusual as this display of ancient reptiles was, we had other, more interesting things to do with the limited time we had. There were countless fascinating sights to see, and if we didn't want to risk going back on board and staying there, we needed to find some dinner. Eggs of various kinds were plentiful; in many areas, the flats were nearly impassable because of the sitting birds, mostly “boobies.”
But previous experience of boobies' eggs in other places had not disposed me to seek them where others were to be obtained, and as I had seen many of the well-known frigate or man-o'-war birds hovering about, we set out to the other side of the island in search of the breeding-place.
But my past experience with boobies' eggs in other locations hadn’t made me eager to look for them where they could be found, and since I had seen many of the familiar frigate or man-o'-war birds flying around, we headed to the other side of the island to search for their breeding ground.
These peculiar birds are, I think, misnamed. They should be called pirate or buccaneer birds, from their marauding habits. Seldom or never do they condescend to fish for themselves, preferring to hover high in the blue, their tails opening and closing like a pair of scissors as they hang poised above the sea. Presently booby—like some honest housewife who has been a-marketing—comes flapping noisily home, her maw laden with fish for the chicks. Down comes the black watcher from above with a swoop like an eagle. Booby puts all she knows into her flight, but vainly; escape is impossible, so with a despairing shriek she drops her load. Before it has touched the water the graceful thief has intercepted it, and soared slowly aloft again, to repeat the performance as occasion serves.
These strange birds, in my opinion, have the wrong name. They should be called pirate or buccaneer birds because of their thieving ways. They rarely, if ever, fish for themselves, instead hovering high in the sky, their tails opening and closing like scissors as they hover above the ocean. Soon, a booby—like a hardworking housewife returning from shopping—flaps noisily home, her beak full of fish for her chicks. The black watcher swoops down from above like an eagle. The booby puts all her effort into her flight, but it’s useless; escape isn’t possible, so with a desperate cry, she drops her catch. Before it even hits the water, the graceful thief has snatched it up and soared back into the air to repeat the act whenever the opportunity arises.
When we arrived on the outer shore of the island, we found a large breeding-place of these birds, but totally different to the haunt of the boobies. The nests, if they might be so called, being at best a few twigs, were mostly in the hollows of the rocks, the number of eggs being two to a nest, on an average. The eggs were nearly as large as a turkey's. But I am reminded of the range of size among turkeys' eggs, so I must say they were considerably larger than a small turkey's egg. Their flavour was most delicate, as much so as the eggs of a moor-fed fowl. We saw no birds sitting, but here and there the gaunt skeleton forms of birds, who by reason of sickness or old age were unable to provide for themselves, and so sat waiting for death, appealed most mournfully to us. We went up to some of these poor creatures, and ended their long agony; but there were many of them that we were obliged to leave to Nature.
When we got to the outer shore of the island, we discovered a large nesting site for these birds, which was completely different from where the boobies hung out. The nests, if you could call them that, were mainly just a few twigs tucked into the hollows of the rocks, with an average of two eggs per nest. The eggs were nearly as big as a turkey's, but considering the range in size among turkey eggs, I should say they were definitely bigger than small turkey eggs. Their taste was very delicate, similar to that of eggs from moor-fed birds. We didn't see any birds sitting on nests, but here and there we noticed the thin, skeletal forms of birds that, due to sickness or old age, couldn't take care of themselves and were just waiting for death. It was truly heartbreaking. We approached some of these poor creatures and ended their suffering, but there were many more that we had to leave to Nature.
We saw no animals larger than a rat, but there were a great many of those eerie-looking land-crabs, that seemed as if almost humanly intelligent as they scampered about over the sand or through the undergrowth, busy about goodness knows what. The beautiful cocoa-nut palm was plentiful, so much so that I wondered why there were no settlers to collect "copra," or dried cocoa-nut, for oil. My West Indian experience came in handy now, for I was able to climb a lofty tree in native fashion, and cut down a grand bunch of green nuts, which form one of the most refreshing and nutritious of foods, as well as a cool and delicious drink. We had no line with us, so we took off our belts, which, securely joined together, answered my purpose very well. With them I made a loop round the tree and myself; then as I climbed I pushed the loop up with me, so that whenever I wanted a rest, I had only to lean back in it, keeping my knees against the trunk, and I was almost as comfortable as if on the ground.
We didn’t see any animals bigger than a rat, but there were plenty of those creepy-looking land crabs that almost seemed to have human-like intelligence as they scuttled around on the sand or through the underbrush, busy with who knows what. The beautiful coconut palms were everywhere, so much so that I wondered why there weren’t any settlers to collect "copra," or dried coconut, for oil. My West Indian experience came in handy now, as I was able to climb a tall tree like a local and cut down a big bunch of green nuts, which are one of the most refreshing and nutritious foods, as well as a cool and tasty drink. We didn’t have any rope, so we took off our belts, which, when securely joined together, worked just fine. I made a loop around the tree and myself, and as I climbed, I pushed the loop up with me, so that whenever I needed a break, I just leaned back in it, keeping my knees against the trunk, and it felt almost as comfortable as being on the ground.
After getting the nuts, we made a fire and roasted some of our eggs, which, with a biscuit or two, made a delightful meal. Then we fell asleep under a shady tree, upon some soft moss; nor did we wake again until nearly time to go on board. A most enjoyable swim terminated our day's outing, and we returned to the beach abreast of the ship very pleased with the excursion.
After gathering the nuts, we built a fire and roasted some of our eggs, which, along with a couple of biscuits, made for a delicious meal. Then we drifted off to sleep under a shady tree on some soft moss; we didn’t wake up until it was almost time to board. A wonderfully refreshing swim wrapped up our day, and we returned to the beach next to the ship, feeling very satisfied with the trip.
We had no adventures, found no hidden treasure or ferocious animals, but none the less we thoroughly enjoyed ourselves. While we sat waiting for the boat to come and fetch us off, we saw a couple of good-sized turtle come ashore quite close to us. We kept perfectly still until we were sure of being able to intercept them. As soon as they had got far enough away from their native element, we rushed upon them, and captured them both, so that when the boat arrived we were not empty-handed. We had also a "jumper," or blouse, full of eggs, and a couple of immense bunches of cocoa-nuts. When we got on board we felt quite happy, and, for the first time since leaving America, we had a little singing. Shall I be laughed at when I confess that our musical efforts were confined to Sankey's hymns? Maybe, but I do not care. Cheap and clap-trap as the music may be, it tasted "real good," as Abner said, and I am quite sure that that Sunday night was the best that any of us had spent for a very long time.
We didn’t have any adventures, didn’t find any hidden treasure or wild animals, but we still had a great time. While we were waiting for the boat to come and pick us up, we saw a couple of good-sized turtles come ashore really close to us. We stayed perfectly still until we were sure we could catch them. As soon as they were far enough away from the water, we rushed at them and caught both, so when the boat arrived, we weren’t empty-handed. We also had a "jumper," or blouse, full of eggs, and a couple of huge bunches of coconuts. Once we got on board, we felt really happy, and for the first time since leaving America, we sang a little. Will people laugh at me for admitting that our musical efforts were only Sankey’s hymns? Maybe, but I don’t care. Cheap and cheesy as the music may be, it felt “really good,” as Abner said, and I’m pretty sure that Sunday night was the best any of us had had in a long time.
A long, sound sleep was terminated at dawn, when we weighed and stood out through a narrow passage by East Island, which was quite covered with fine trees—of what kind I do not know, but they presented a beautiful sight. Myriads of birds hovered about, busy fishing from the countless schools that rippled the placid sea. Beneath us, at twenty fathoms, the wonderful architecture of the coral was plainly visible through the brilliantly-clear sea, while, wherever the tiny builders had raised their fairy domain near the surface, an occasional roller would crown it with a snowy garland of foam—a dazzling patch of white against the sapphire sea. Altogether, such a panorama was spread out at our feet, as we stood gazing from the lofty crow's-nest, as was worth a year or two of city life to witness. I could not help pitying my companion, one of the Portuguese harpooners, who stolidly munched his quid with no eyes for any of these glorious pictures, no thought of anything but a possible whale in sight.
A long, deep sleep was interrupted at dawn when we set sail through a narrow passage by East Island, which was filled with beautiful trees—I'm not sure what kind, but they looked stunning. Countless birds flitted around, busy catching fish from the many schools that rippled the calm sea. Below us, at twenty fathoms, the amazing structure of the coral was clearly visible through the crystal-clear water, and where the tiny builders had created their enchanting habitat near the surface, occasional waves crowned it with a snowy foam—a bright splash of white against the blue sea. All in all, the view spread out before us from the high crow's-nest was worth a year or two of city life to see. I couldn't help feeling sorry for my companion, a Portuguese harpooner, who stoically chewed his tobacco with no eyes for any of these beautiful scenes, focused solely on the possibility of spotting a whale.
My silent rhapsodies were rudely interrupted by something far away on the horizon. Hardly daring to breathe, I strained my eyes, and—yes, it was—"Ah blow-w-w-w!" I bellowed at the top of my lung-power, never before had I had the opportunity of thus distinguishing myself, and I felt a bit sore about it.
My quiet musings were abruptly interrupted by something in the distance on the horizon. Holding my breath, I focused my eyes, and—yes, it was—"Ah blow-w-w-w!" I shouted at the top of my lungs, I had never had the chance to stand out like this before, and I felt a bit annoyed about it.
There was a little obliquity about the direction of the spout that made me hopeful, for the cachalot alone sends his spout diagonally upward, all the others spout vertically. It was but a school of kogia, or "short-headed" cachalots; but as we secured five of them, averaging seven barrels each, with scarcely any trouble, I felt quite pleased with myself. We had quite an exciting bit of sport with them, they were so lively; but as for danger—well, they only seemed like big "black fish" to us now, and we quite enjoyed the fun. They were, in all respects, miniature sperm whales, except that the head was much shorter and smaller in proportion to the body than their big relations.
There was a slight angle to the direction of the spout that filled me with hope, because only the cachalot sends its spout diagonally upward; all the others spout straight up. It turned out to be just a group of kogia, or "short-headed" cachalots; but since we managed to catch five of them, averaging seven barrels each, with barely any effort, I felt pretty proud of myself. We had a thrilling time with them; they were so energetic. As for danger—well, they just seemed like big "black fish" to us now, and we really enjoyed the excitement. They were, in every way, miniature sperm whales, except that their heads were much shorter and smaller in proportion to their bodies than those of their larger relatives.
CHAPTER XI. ROUND THE COCOS AND SEYCHELLES
Hitherto, with the exception of a couple of gales in the North and South Atlantic, we had been singularly fortunate in our weather. It does happen so sometimes.
Until now, except for a couple of storms in the North and South Atlantic, we had been unusually lucky with our weather. It happens that way sometimes.
I remember once making a round voyage from Cardiff to Hong Kong and the Philippines, back to London, in ten months, and during the whole of that time we did not have a downright gale. The worst weather we encountered was between Beachy Head and Portland, going round from London to Cardiff.
I remember once taking a trip from Cardiff to Hong Kong and the Philippines, then back to London, over ten months, and during that entire time, we didn't experience a real storm. The worst weather we faced was between Beachy Head and Portland while traveling from London to Cardiff.
And I once spoke the barque LUTTERWORTH, a companion ship to us from Portland, Oregon to Falmouth, whose mate informed me that they carried their royals from port to port without ever furling them once, except to shift the suit of sails. But now a change was evidently imminent. Of course, we forward had no access to the barometer; not that we should have understood its indications if we had seen it, but we all knew that something was going to be radically wrong with the weather. For instead of the lovely blue of the sky we had been so long accustomed to by day and night, a nasty, greasy shade had come over the heavens, which, reflected in the sea, made that look dirty and stale also. That well-known appearance of the waves before a storm was also very marked, which consists of an undecided sort of break in their tops. Instead of running regularly, they seemed to hunch themselves up in little heaps, and throw off a tiny flutter of spray, which generally fell in the opposite direction to what little wind there was. The pigs and fowls felt the approaching change keenly, and manifested the greatest uneasiness, leaving their food and acting strangely. We were making scarcely any headway, so that the storm was longer making its appearance than it would have been had we been a swift clipper ship running down the Indian Ocean. For two days we were kept in suspense; but on the second night the gloom began to deepen, the wind to moan, and a very uncomfortable "jobble" of a sea got up. Extra "gaskets" were put upon the sails, and everything movable about the decks was made as secure as it could be. Only the two close-reefed topsails and two storm stay-sails were carried, so that we were in excellent trim for fighting the bad weather when it did come. The sky gradually darkened and assumed a livid green tint, the effect of which was most peculiar.
And I once spoke with the ship LUTTERWORTH, a companion vessel traveling with us from Portland, Oregon to Falmouth. Its first mate told me that they kept their royals up from port to port without ever furling them, except when changing sails. But a change was clearly on the horizon. We up front had no access to the barometer; not that we would have understood its readings if we saw it, but we all sensed that something was about to go seriously wrong with the weather. Instead of the beautiful blue skies we had become accustomed to day and night, a nasty, grimy hue had overtaken the heavens, which, reflected in the sea, made it look dirty and stale as well. The familiar sign of waves before a storm was very apparent, with an uncertain break at their tops. Instead of rolling smoothly, they seemed to bunch up into little heaps and throw off tiny sprays that generally blew in the opposite direction of the little wind we had. The pigs and chickens felt the impending change deeply; they left their food and acted strangely. We were barely making any headway, which meant the storm was taking longer to arrive than it would have if we were a fast clipper ship sailing down the Indian Ocean. For two days we waited in suspense; but on the second night, the darkness grew heavier, the wind began to moan, and an uncomfortable "jobble" of sea rose. Extra “gaskets” were added to the sails, and everything movable on deck was secured as best as possible. Only the two close-reefed topsails and two storm staysails were flying, putting us in great shape to handle the bad weather when it finally hit. The sky gradually darkened to a sickly green hue, which was a very strange sight.
The wind blew fitfully in short, gusts, veering continually back and forth over about a quarter of the compass. Although it was still light, it kept up an incessant mournful moan not to be accounted for in any way. Darker and darker grew the heavens, although no clouds were visible, only a general pall of darkness. Glimmering lightnings played continually about the eastern horizon, but not brilliant enough to show us the approaching storm-cloud. And so came the morning of the third day from the beginning of the change. But for the clock we should hardly have known that day had broken, so gloomy and dark was the sky. At last light came in the east, but such a light as no one would wish to see. It was a lurid glare, such as may be seen playing over a cupola of Bessemer steel when the speigeleisen is added, only on such an extensive scale that its brilliancy was dulled into horror. Then, beneath it we saw the mountainous clouds fringed with dull violet and with jagged sabres of lightning darting from their solid black bosoms. The wind began to rise steadily but rapidly, so that by eight a.m. it was blowing a furious gale from E.N.E. In direction it was still unsteady, the ship coming up and falling off to it several points. Now, great masses of torn, ragged cloud hurtled past us above, so low down as almost to touch the mastheads. Still the wind increased, still the sea rose, till at last the skipper judged it well to haul down the tiny triangle of storm stay-sail still set (the topsail and fore stay-sail had been furled long before), and let her drift under bare poles, except for three square feet of stout canvas in the weather mizen-rigging. The roar of the wind now dominated every sound, so that it might have been thundering furiously, but we should not have heard it. The ship still maintained her splendid character as a sea-boat, hardly shipping a drop of water; but she lay over at a most distressing angle, her deck sloping off fully thirty-five to forty degrees. Fortunately she did not roll to windward. It may have been raining in perfect torrents, but the tempest tore off the surface of the sea, and sent it in massive sheets continually flying over us, so that we could not possibly have distinguished between fresh water and salt.
The wind blew fitfully in short gusts, constantly shifting back and forth across about a quarter of the compass. Even though it was still light out, it produced an endless, mournful moan that couldn’t be explained. The sky grew darker and darker, even though there were no visible clouds, just a general gloom. Flickering lightning danced continually along the eastern horizon, but it wasn’t bright enough to reveal the approaching storm cloud. And so, morning arrived on the third day since the change began. If it weren’t for the clock, we would hardly have known that day had broken due to how gloomy and dark the sky was. Finally, light appeared in the east, but it was a harsh glare no one would want to see. It resembled the eerie glow seen on a Bessemer steel dome when speigeleisen is added, but on such a large scale that its brightness turned into horror. Below, we saw towering clouds edged with dull violet and jagged streaks of lightning shooting from their solid black centers. The wind began to pick up steadily but quickly, so that by 8 a.m. it was howling a furious gale from the E.N.E. It was still unpredictable in direction, causing the ship to constantly rise and fall. Great masses of torn, ragged clouds rushed past us overhead, so low they almost brushed against the mastheads. The wind continued to grow stronger, and the sea rose until the captain decided it was best to bring down the small triangle of storm stay-sail that was still set (the topsail and fore stay-sail had been furled long ago) and let the ship drift under bare poles, except for three square feet of sturdy canvas in the weather mizen-rigging. The roar of the wind now overshadowed every other sound, making it seem like the thunder was raging, but we wouldn’t have heard it. The ship still proved her worth as a sea boat, barely taking on a drop of water; however, she leaned at a very uncomfortable angle, her deck sloping approximately thirty-five to forty degrees. Luckily, she didn’t roll to windward. It may have been pouring rain, but the storm ripped the surface of the sea, sending huge sheets of water flying over us, so we couldn’t possibly tell the difference between fresh and saltwater.
The chief anxiety was for the safety of the boats. Early on the second day of warning they had been hoisted to the topmost notch of the cranes, and secured as thoroughly as experience could suggest; but at every lee lurch we gave it seemed as if we must dip them under water, while the wind threatened to stave the weather ones in by its actual solid weight. It was now blowing a furious cyclone, the force of which has never been accurately gauged (even by the present elaborate instruments of various kinds in use). That force is, however, not to be imagined by any one who has not witnessed it, except that one notable instance is on record by which mathematicians may get an approximate estimate.
The main concern was the safety of the boats. Early on the second day of warnings, they were lifted to the highest point of the cranes and secured as well as experience allowed. However, with every lean to the side, it felt like they might submerge, while the wind threatened to smash the ones on the windward side with its sheer force. It was now blowing a raging cyclone, the strength of which has never been accurately measured (even with the modern instruments we have today). That force can’t really be understood by anyone who hasn’t seen it, although there's one notable instance recorded that mathematicians can use for an approximate estimate.
Captain Toynbee, the late highly respected and admired Marine Superintendent of the British Meteorological Office, has told us how, during a cyclone which he rode out in the HOTSPUR at Sandheads, the mouth of the Hooghly, the three naked topgallant-masts of his ship, though of well-tested timber a foot in diameter, and supported by all the usual network of stays, and without the yards, were snapped off and carried away solely by the violence of the wind. It must, of course, have been an extreme gust, which did not last many seconds, for no cable that was ever forged would have held the ship against such a cataclysm as that. This gentleman's integrity is above suspicion, so that no exaggeration could be charged against him, and he had the additional testimony of his officers and men to this otherwise incredible fact.
Captain Toynbee, the late highly respected Marine Superintendent of the British Meteorological Office, has shared how, during a cyclone he experienced while on the HOTSPUR at Sandheads, the mouth of the Hooghly, the three tall topgallant masts of his ship—made of well-tested timber about a foot in diameter and supported by the usual network of stays—snapped off and were carried away solely by the force of the wind. It must have been an extreme gust that lasted only a few seconds, as no cable ever made could have held the ship against such a powerful event. This man's integrity is beyond question, so no exaggeration can be attributed to him, and he also had the support of his officers and crew to back up this otherwise unbelievable account.
The terrible day wore on, without any lightening of the tempest, till noon, when the wind suddenly fell to a calm. Until that time, the sea, although heavy, was not vicious or irregular, and we had not shipped any heavy water at all. But when the force of the wind was suddenly withdrawn, such a sea arose as I have never seen before or since. Inky mountains of water raised their savage heads in wildest confusion, smashing one another in whirlpools of foam. It was like a picture of the primeval deep out of which arose the new-born world. Suddenly out of the whirling blackness overhead the moon appeared, nearly in the zenith, sending down through the apex of a dome of torn and madly gyrating cloud a flood of brilliant light. Illumined by that startling radiance, our staunch and seaworthy ship was tossed and twirled in the hideous vortex of mad sea until her motion was distracting. It was quite impossible to loose one's hold and attempt to do anything without running the imminent risk of being dashed to pieces. Our decks were full of water now, for it tumbled on board at all points; but as yet no serious weight of a sea had fallen upon us, nor had any damage been done. Such a miracle as that could not be expected to continue for long. Suddenly a warning shout rang out from somewhere—"Hold on all, for your lives!" Out of the hideous turmoil around arose, like some black, fantastic ruin, an awful heap of water. Higher and higher it towered, until it was level with our lower yards, then it broke and fell upon us. All was blank. Beneath that mass every thought, every feeling, fled but one—"How long shall I be able to hold my breath?" After what seemed a never-ending time, we emerged from the wave more dead than alive, but with the good ship still staunch underneath us, and Hope's lamp burning brightly. The moon had been momentarily obscured, but now shone out again, lighting up brilliantly our bravely-battling ship. But, alas for others!—men, like ourselves, whose hopes were gone. Quite near us was the battered remainder of what had been a splendid ship. Her masts were gone, not even the stumps being visible, and it seemed to our eager eyes as if she was settling down. It was even so, for as we looked, unmindful of our own danger, she quietly disappeared—swallowed up with her human freight in a moment, like a pebble dropped into a pond.
The terrible day dragged on, still stormy, until noon when the wind suddenly calmed. Until then, the sea, while heavy, wasn’t violent or chaotic, and we hadn’t taken on any serious water. But once the wind ceased, a sea like I’ve never seen before or since arose. Dark mountains of water reared their savage heads in wild confusion, crashing into each other in whirlpools of foam. It was like a scene from the primordial deep, the birthplace of a new world. Suddenly, out of the swirling blackness above, the moon appeared, almost directly overhead, sending down a flood of brilliant light through a dome of torn, wildly spinning clouds. Illuminated by that startling brightness, our sturdy ship was tossed and twisted in the monstrous chaos of the sea until her movements became disorienting. It was impossible to let go and try to do anything without risking being thrown to the ground. Our decks were now filled with water, pouring in from every direction; yet, miraculously, no significant waves had crashed over us, nor had we sustained any damage. Such a miracle couldn’t last long. Suddenly, a warning shout rang out from somewhere—“Hold on for your lives!” From the hideous chaos, like some dark, fantastical ruin, an enormous wave surged. It climbed higher and higher until it reached our lower sails, then it broke and crashed onto us. Everything went blank. Beneath that mass, every thought and feeling vanished except for one—“How long can I hold my breath?” After what felt like an eternity, we surfaced from the wave more dead than alive, but with our sturdy ship still beneath us, and Hope's light shining bright. The moon had been momentarily hidden but now shone again, brilliantly lighting our struggling ship. But, alas for others!—men like us, whose hopes had been dashed. Not far from us was the battered remains of what had once been a glorious ship. Her masts were gone, not even the stumps visible, and to our anxious eyes, it seemed she was sinking. And so she was, for as we looked, unmindful of our own peril, she quietly disappeared—swallowed up with her human cargo in an instant, like a pebble dropped into a pond.
While we looked with hardly beating hearts at the place where she had sunk, all was blotted out in thick darkness again. With a roar, as of a thousand thunders, the tempest came once more, but from the opposite direction now. As we were under no sail, we ran little risk of being caught aback; but, even had we, nothing could have been done, the vessel being utterly out of control, besides the impossibility of getting about. It so happened, however, that when the storm burst upon us again, we were stern on to it, and we drove steadily for a few moments until we had time to haul to the wind again. Great heavens! how it blew! Surely, I thought, this cannot last long—just as we sometimes say of the rain when it is extra heavy. It did last, however, for what seemed an interminable time, although any one could see that the sky was getting kindlier. Gradually, imperceptibly, it took off, the sky cleared, and the tumult ceased, until a new day broke in untellable beauty over a revivified world.
As we stared anxiously at the spot where she had disappeared, everything was swallowed up by thick darkness again. With a deafening roar, like a thousand crashes of thunder, the storm came back, but this time from the other direction. Since we had no sails up, we were at little risk of being caught off guard; however, even if we had been, nothing could have been done, as the ship was completely out of control, and turning around was impossible. Fortunately, when the storm hit us again, we were facing it, and we managed to push forward for a few moments until we could adjust our sails. My goodness! The wind was fierce! I thought, surely this won't last long—just like we sometimes say about a heavy downpour. But it did last for what felt like forever, even though anyone could see the sky becoming friendlier. Gradually, without us really noticing, it eased up, the sky cleared, and the chaos stopped, until a new day broke in indescribable beauty over a revitalized world.
Years afterwards I read, in one of the hand-books treating of hurricanes and cyclones, that "in the centre of these revolving storms the sea is so violent that few ships can pass through it and live." That is true talk. I have been there, and bear witness that but for the build and sea-kindliness of the CACHALOT, she could not have come out of that horrible cauldron again, but would have joined that nameless unfortunate whom we saw succumb, "never again heard of." As it was, we found two of the boats stove in, whether by breaking sea or crushing wind nobody knows. Most of the planking of the bulwarks was also gone, burst outward by the weight of the water on deck. Only the normal quantity of water was found in the well on sounding, and not even a rope-yarn was gone from aloft. Altogether, we came out of the ordeal triumphantly, where many a gallant vessel met her fate, and the behaviour of the grand old tub gave me a positive affection for her, such as I have never felt for a ship before or since.
Years later, I read in one of the guides about hurricanes and cyclones that "in the center of these swirling storms, the sea is so violent that few ships can pass through it and survive." That's true. I've been there, and I can attest that if it weren't for the sturdy design and seaworthiness of the CACHALOT, she wouldn't have made it out of that terrifying situation and would have joined that nameless unfortunate we saw go down, "never to be heard from again." As it turned out, we found two of the boats damaged, though it’s unclear whether from breaking waves or crushing winds. Most of the bulwarks' planking was also torn away, pushed out by the weight of the water on deck. Only the usual amount of water was found in the well when we sounded it, and not even a single rope was missing from above. Overall, we emerged from the ordeal victorious, while many brave vessels met their end. The way the old boat handled everything made me feel a genuine affection for her, unlike anything I’ve felt for any other ship before or since.
There was now a big heap of work for the carpenter, so the skipper decided to run in for the Cocos or Keeling islands, in order to lay quietly and refit. We had now only three boats sound, the one smashed when poor Bamberger died being still unfinished—of course, the repairs had practically amounted to rebuilding. Therefore we kept away for this strange assemblage of reefs and islets, arriving off them early the next day.
There was a lot of work for the carpenter, so the captain decided to head to the Cocos or Keeling Islands to take some time to repair the ship. We only had three boats that were still usable; the one that got damaged when poor Bamberger died was still not fixed—essentially, the repairs had turned into a complete rebuild. So, we made our way to this unusual cluster of reefs and islets, arriving there early the next day.
They consist of a true "atoll," or basin, whose rim is of coral reefs, culminating occasionally in sandy islands or cays formed by the accumulated debris washed up from the reef below, and then clothed upon with all sorts of plants by the agency of birds and waves.
They consist of a real "atoll," or basin, surrounded by coral reefs, sometimes topped off with sandy islands or cays created from debris washed up from the reef below, which are then covered with various types of plants carried there by birds and waves.
These islands have lately been so fully described in many different journals, that I shall not burden the reader with any twice-told tales about them, but merely chronicle the fact that for a week we lay at anchor off one of the outlying cays, toiling continuously to get the vessel again in fighting trim.
These islands have recently been described in numerous journals, so I won’t repeat what’s already been said. Instead, I’ll just note that we spent a week anchored off one of the outlying cays, working tirelessly to get the ship back in shape.
At last the overworked carpenter and his crew got through their heavy task, and the order was given to "man the windlass." Up came the anchor, and away we went again towards what used to be a noted haunt of the sperm whale, the Seychelle Archipelego. Before the French, whose flag flies over these islands, had with their usual short-sighted policy, clapped on prohibitive port charges, Mahe was a specially favoured place of call for the whalers. But when whale-ships find that it does not pay to visit a place, being under no compulsion as regards time, they soon find other harbours that serve their turn. We, of course, had no need to visit any port for some time to come, having made such good use of our opportunities at the Cocos.
Finally, the exhausted carpenter and his crew finished their tough job, and the order was given to "man the windlass." Up went the anchor, and we set off again towards what was once a famous spot for sperm whales, the Seychelles Archipelago. Before the French, who have their flag over these islands, imposed prohibitive port fees with their usual short-sightedness, Mahé was a favored stop for whalers. But when whale ships realize it’s not worth it to visit a place, and they’re not pressed for time, they quickly find other ports that meet their needs. We, of course, didn’t need to stop at any port for a while since we had made such good use of our time at the Cocos.
We found whales scarce and small, so, although we cruised in this vicinity for nearly two months, six small cow cachalots were all we were able to add to our stock, representing less then two hundred barrels of oil. This was hardly good enough for Captain Slocum. Therefore, we gradually drew away from this beautiful cluster of islands, and crept across the Indian Ocean towards the Straits of Malacca. On the way, we one night encountered that strange phenomenon, a "milk" sea. It was a lovely night, with scarcely any wind, the stars trying to make up for the absence of the moon by shining with intense brightness. The water had been more phosphorescent than usual, so that every little fish left a track of light behind him, greatly disproportionate to his size. As the night wore on, the sea grew brighter and brighter, until by midnight we appeared to be sailing on an ocean of lambent flames. Every little wave that broke against the ship's side sent up a shower of diamond-like spray, wonderfully beautiful to see, while a passing school of porpoises fairly set the sea blazing as they leaped and gambolled in its glowing waters. Looking up from sea to sky, the latter seemed quite black instead of blue, and the lustre of the stars was diminished till they only looked like points of polished steel, having quite lost for the time their radiant sparkle. In that shining flood the blackness of the ship stood out in startling contrast, and when we looked over the side our faces were strangely lit up by the brilliant glow.
We found whales to be rare and small, so, even though we spent almost two months in this area, the only additions to our catch were six small cow cachalots, which amounted to less than two hundred barrels of oil. This was far from satisfactory for Captain Slocum. So, we gradually moved away from this beautiful group of islands and made our way across the Indian Ocean toward the Straits of Malacca. One night, we encountered that strange phenomenon known as a "milk" sea. It was a lovely night, with barely any wind, and the stars were trying to compensate for the absence of the moon by shining intensely. The water was more phosphorescent than usual, so every small fish left a trail of light behind them, much larger than their size would suggest. As the night progressed, the sea grew brighter and brighter, until by midnight it felt like we were sailing on an ocean of glowing flames. Every little wave that crashed against the ship sent up a shower of diamond-like spray, strikingly beautiful, while a passing school of porpoises lit up the sea as they jumped and played in the glowing waters. Looking up from the sea to the sky, it appeared quite black instead of blue, and the brightness of the stars was reduced until they looked like points of polished steel, losing their radiant sparkle for the time being. In that shining expanse, the dark silhouette of the ship stood out sharply, and when we looked over the side, our faces were illuminated by the brilliant glow.
For several hours this beautiful appearance persisted, fading away at last as gradually as it came. No satisfactory explanation of this curious phenomenon has ever been given, nor does it appear to portend any change of weather. It cannot be called a rare occurrence, although I have only seen it thrice myself—once in the Bay of Cavite, in the Philippine Islands; once in the Pacific, near the Solomon Islands; and on this occasion of which I now write. But no one who had ever witnessed it could forget so wonderful a sight.
For several hours, this beautiful sight lasted, slowly fading away just as gradually as it appeared. There has never been a satisfactory explanation for this strange phenomenon, nor does it seem to signal any change in the weather. It can't be considered a rare occurrence, even though I've only seen it three times myself—once in the Bay of Cavite in the Philippines; once in the Pacific near the Solomon Islands; and on this occasion I'm writing about now. But anyone who has ever witnessed it would never forget such a remarkable sight.
One morning, a week after are had taken our departure from the Seychelles, the officer at the main crow's-nest reported a vessel of some sort about five miles to the windward. Something strange in her appearance made the skipper haul up to intercept her. As we drew nearer, we made her out to be a Malay "prahu;" but, by the look of her, she was deserted. The big three-cornered sail that had been set, hung in tattered festoons from the long, slender yard, which, without any gear to steady it, swung heavily to and fro as the vessel rolled to the long swell. We drew closer and closer, but no sign of life was visible on board, so the captain ordered a boat to go and investigate.
One morning, a week after we left the Seychelles, the officer in the crow's nest reported a ship about five miles to the windward. There was something unusual about its appearance that made the captain decide to approach it. As we got closer, we recognized it as a Malay "prahu," but it looked abandoned. The large triangular sail that had been up hung in tattered strips from the long, thin yard, which swayed heavily back and forth without any rigging to keep it steady as the boat rolled with the swell. We moved in closer, but there was no sign of life on board, so the captain ordered a boat to go and check it out.
In two minutes we were speeding away towards her, and, making a sweep round her stern, prepared to board her. But we were met by a stench so awful that Mr. Count would not proceed, and at once returned to the ship. The boat was quickly hoisted again, and the ship manoeuvred to pass close to windward of the derelict. Then, from our mast-head, a horrible sight became visible. Lying about the weather-beaten deck, in various postures, were thirteen corpses, all far advanced in decay, which horrible fact fully accounted for the intolerable stench that had driven us away. It is, perhaps, hardly necessary to say that we promptly hauled our wind, and placed a good distance between us and that awful load of death as soon as possible. Poor wretches! What terrible calamity had befallen them, we could not guess; whatever it was, it had been complete; nor would any sane man falling across them run the risk of closer examination into details than we had done. It was a great pity that we were not able to sink the prahu with her ghastly cargo, and so free the air from that poisonous foetor that was a deadly danger to any vessel getting under her lee.
In two minutes, we were speeding towards her, and, after circling around her rear, we got ready to board. But we were hit by a stench so bad that Mr. Count wouldn't go on and immediately turned back to the ship. The boat was quickly lifted back up, and the ship maneuvered to pass close to the windward side of the derelict. From our masthead, a horrifying sight came into view. Lying all over the weather-beaten deck in different positions were thirteen corpses, all significantly decomposed, which fully explained the unbearable stench that had driven us away. It’s probably unnecessary to say that we quickly adjusted our sails and put as much distance as possible between us and that dreadful pile of death. Poor souls! We couldn't imagine what terrible disaster had befallen them; whatever it was, it had been absolute. No sane person who stumbled upon them would risk a closer inspection than we had done. It was a real shame we couldn’t sink the prahu with its ghastly cargo, thus clearing the air of that toxic odor which posed a serious threat to any ship passing nearby.
Next day, and for a whole week after, we had a stark calm such a calm as one realizes who reads sympathetically that magical piece of work, the "Ancient Mariner." What an amazing instance of the triumph of the human imagination! For Coleridge certainly never witnessed such a scene as he there describes with an accuracy of detail that is astounding. Very few sailors have noticed the sickening condition of the ocean when the life-giving breeze totally fails for any length of time, or, if they have, they have said but little about it. Of course, some parts of the sea show the evil effects of stagnation much sooner than others; but, generally speaking, want of wind at sea, if long continued, produces a condition of things dangerous to the health of any land near by. Whale-ships, penetrating as they do to parts carefully avoided by ordinary trading vessels, often afford their crews an opportunity of seeing things mostly hidden from the sight of man, when, actuated by some mysterious impulse, the uncanny denizens of the middle depths of the ocean rise to higher levels, and show their weird shapes to the sun.
The next day, and for an entire week afterward, we experienced an intense calm, like what you realize when you read with appreciation that magical piece of work, the "Ancient Mariner." What an incredible example of the triumph of human imagination! Coleridge clearly never witnessed a scene like the one he describes with such astonishing detail. Very few sailors have noticed the sickening state of the ocean when the life-giving breeze completely disappears for a long time, and if they have, they haven’t talked much about it. Of course, some areas of the sea show the harmful effects of stagnation more quickly than others; but generally speaking, a lack of wind at sea, if it lasts too long, creates conditions that are dangerous to the health of any nearby land. Whale ships, venturing into areas usually avoided by regular trading vessels, often give their crews a chance to see things mostly hidden from human view, when, driven by some mysterious impulse, the strange inhabitants of the ocean’s depths rise to shallower waters and reveal their eerie shapes to the sunlight.
CHAPTER XII. WHICH TREATS OF THE KRAKEN
It has often been a matter for considerable surprise to me, that while the urban population of Great Britain is periodically agitated over the great sea-serpent question, sailors, as a class, have very little to say on the subject. During a considerable sea experience in all classes of vessels, except men-of-war, and in most positions, I have heard a fairly comprehensive catalogue of subjects brought under dog-watch discussion; but the sea-serpent has never, within my recollection, been one of them.
It has often surprised me that while the city population of Great Britain gets worked up over the sea-serpent debate, sailors, as a group, rarely talk about it. Throughout my extensive time at sea on various types of ships, except military ones, and in many roles, I've heard quite a range of topics come up during late-night discussions. Yet, the sea-serpent has never, to my knowledge, been one of them.
The reasons for this abstinence may vary a great deal, but chief among them is—sailors, as a class, "don't believe in no such a pusson." More than that, they do believe that the mythical sea-serpent is "boomed" at certain periods, in the lack of other subjects, which may not be far from the fact. But there is also another reason, involving a disagreeable, although strictly accurate, statement. Sailors are, again taken as a class, the least observant of men. They will talk by the hour of trivialities about which they know nothing; they will spin interminable "cuffers" of debaucheries ashore all over the world; pick to pieces the reputation of all the officers with whom they have ever sailed; but of the glories, marvels, and mysteries of the mighty deep you will hear not a word. I can never forget when on my first voyage to the West Indies, at the age of twelve, I was one night smitten with awe and wonder at the sight of a vast halo round the moon, some thirty or forty degrees in diameter. Turning to the man at the wheel, I asked him earnestly "what THAT was." He looked up with an uninterested eye for an instant in the direction of my finger, then listlessly informed me, "That's what they call a sarcle." For a long time I wondered what he could mean, but it gradually dawned upon me that it was his Norfolk pronunciation of the word "circle." The definition was a typical one, no worse than would be given by the great majority of seamen of most of the natural phenomena they witness daily. Very few seamen could distinguish between one whale and another of a different species, or give an intelligible account of the most ordinary and often-seen denizens of the sea. Whalers are especially to be blamed for their blindness. "Eyes and no Eyes; or the Art of Seeing" has evidently been little heard of among them. To this day I can conceive of no more delightful journey for a naturalist to take than a voyage in a southern whaler, especially if he were allowed to examine at his leisure such creatures as were caught. But on board the CACHALOT I could get no information at all upon the habits of the strange creatures we met with, except whales, and very little about them.
The reasons for this abstinence can vary quite a bit, but the main one is that sailors, as a group, "don't believe in no such person." Moreover, they do think that the mythical sea serpent is "boomed" during certain times when there aren’t other topics to discuss, which might not be too far from the truth. However, there's also another reason related to an unpleasant, though completely accurate, observation. Sailors, again as a class, are the least observant people. They can talk endlessly about trivial things they know nothing about; they can share endless tales of their debaucheries ashore all over the world; and they can tear apart the reputations of every officer they’ve ever sailed with. Yet, when it comes to the glories, marvels, and mysteries of the vast ocean, you won't hear a single word. I will never forget my first voyage to the West Indies when I was twelve years old. One night, I was struck with awe and wonder at the sight of a huge halo around the moon, about thirty or forty degrees in diameter. I turned to the man at the wheel and earnestly asked him, "What is THAT?" He glanced up with a disinterested look for a moment towards where I was pointing, then casually told me, "That's what they call a sarcle." For a long time, I wondered what he meant, but it slowly occurred to me that it was his Norfolk accent pronouncing the word "circle." His definition was quite typical, no worse than what most seamen would offer about the natural phenomena they see every day. Very few sailors could tell one type of whale from another of a different species or give a clear account of the most ordinary and frequently seen creatures of the sea. Whalers are especially guilty of this lack of awareness. "Eyes and no Eyes; or the Art of Seeing" seems to be a concept they've hardly heard of. Even today, I can't think of a more delightful journey for a naturalist than a voyage on a southern whaler, especially if they were allowed to examine at their leisure the creatures that were caught. But on board the CACHALOT, I could get no information at all about the habits of the strange creatures we encountered, aside from whales, and very little about them.
I have before referred to the great molluscs upon which the sperm whale feeds, portions of which I so frequently saw ejected from the stomach of dying whales. Great as my curiosity naturally was to know more of these immense organisms, all my inquiries on the subject were fruitless. These veterans of the whale-fishery knew that the sperm whale lived on big cuttlefish; but they neither knew, nor cared to know, anything more about these marvellous molluscs. Yet, from the earliest dawn of history, observant men have been striving to learn something definite about the marine monsters of which all old legends of the sea have something to say.
I have previously mentioned the large mollusks that the sperm whale feeds on, chunks of which I often saw ejected from the stomachs of dying whales. Despite my strong curiosity to learn more about these massive organisms, all my inquiries about them were unproductive. The seasoned whale hunters knew that the sperm whale primarily fed on large cuttlefish, but they neither knew nor cared to learn anything further about these incredible mollusks. Yet, since the earliest beginnings of history, observant individuals have been trying to figure out something concrete about the sea creatures that old legends of the ocean often reference.
As I mentioned in the last chapter, we were gradually edging across the Indian Ocean towards Sumatra, but had been checked in our course by a calm lasting a whole week. A light breeze then sprang up, aided by which we crept around Achin Head, the northern point of the great island of Sumatra. Like some gigantic beacon, the enormous mass of the Golden Mountain dominated the peaceful scene. Pulo Way, or Water Island, looked very inviting, and I should have been glad to visit a place so well known to seamen by sight, but so little known by actual touching at. Our recent stay at the Cocos, however, had settled the question of our calling anywhere else for some time decidedly in the negative, unless we might be compelled by accident; moreover, even in these days of law and order, it is not wise to go poking about among the islands of the Malayan seas unless you are prepared to fight. Our mission being to fight whales, we were averse to running any risks, except in the lawful and necessary exercise of our calling.
As I mentioned in the last chapter, we were slowly making our way across the Indian Ocean toward Sumatra, but we had been held up by a calm that lasted a whole week. Then a light breeze picked up, allowing us to drift around Achin Head, the northern point of the big island of Sumatra. The massive Golden Mountain loomed over the peaceful scene like a giant beacon. Pulo Way, or Water Island, looked very inviting, and I would have loved to visit a place so familiar to sailors by sight, but so little known from actual experience. However, our recent stay at the Cocos had definitely ruled out any other stops for a while, unless we were forced to by circumstance; besides, even in these times of law and order, it's not smart to wander around the islands of the Malayan seas unless you're ready to fight. Our goal was to hunt whales, so we weren’t willing to take any risks beyond the legal and necessary ones for our mission.
It would at first sight appear strange that, in view of the enormous traffic of steamships through the Malacca Straits, so easily "gallied" a creature as the cachalot should care to frequent its waters; indeed, I should certainly think that a great reduction in the numbers of whales found there must have taken place. But it must also be remembered, that in modern steam navigation certain well-defined courses are laid down, which vessels follow from point to point with hardly any deviation therefrom, and that consequently little disturbance of the sea by their panting propellers takes place, except upon these marine pathways; as, for instance, in the Red Sea, where the examination of thousands of log-books proved conclusively that, except upon straight lines drawn from point to point between Suez to Perim, the sea is practically unused to-day.
At first glance, it might seem odd that, given the heavy traffic of steamships in the Malacca Straits, a creature as delicate as the cachalot would choose to swim in its waters; in fact, I would definitely think that the number of whales found there has significantly decreased. However, it's important to remember that in modern steam navigation, specific routes are established that vessels follow closely from point to point with minimal deviation. As a result, there’s little disturbance to the sea from their churning propellers, except along these designated marine pathways. For example, in the Red Sea, the analysis of thousands of logbooks clearly showed that outside the straight lines drawn between Suez and Perim, the sea is largely untouched today.
The few Arab dhows and loitering surveying ships hardly count in this connection, of course. At any rate, we had not entered the straits, but were cruising between Car Nicobar and Junkseylon, when we "met up" with a full-grown cachalot, as ugly a customer as one could wish. From nine a.m. till dusk the battle raged—for I have often noticed that unless you kill your whale pretty soon, he gets so wary, as well as fierce, that you stand a gaudy chance of being worn down yourselves before you settle accounts with your adversary. This affair certainly looked at one time as if such would be the case with us; but along about five p.m., to our great joy, we got him killed. The ejected food was in masses of enormous size, larger than any we had yet seen on the voyage, some of them being estimated to be of the size of our hatch-house, viz. 8 feet x 6 feet x 6 feet. The whale having been secured alongside, all hands were sent below, as they were worn out with the day's work. The third mate being ill, I had been invested with the questionable honour of standing his watch, on account of my sea experience and growing favour with the chief. Very bitterly did I resent the privilege at the time, I remember, being so tired and sleepy that I knew not how to keep awake. I did not imagine that anything would happen to make me prize that night's experience for the rest of my life, or I should have taken matters with a far better grace.
The few Arab sailing ships and lingering survey vessels don’t really matter in this context. Anyway, we hadn’t entered the straits yet; we were cruising between Car Nicobar and Junkseylon when we encountered a full-grown sperm whale, quite an ugly sight. From nine a.m. until dusk, the struggle went on—I've often noticed that if you don’t kill your whale quickly, it becomes increasingly cautious and aggressive, making it very likely you’ll wear yourselves out before you finally take it down. At one point, it seemed like this might happen to us; but around five p.m., to our immense relief, we managed to kill it. The expelled food was massive, larger than anything we'd seen so far on the trip, with some pieces estimated to be the size of our hatch-house—about 8 feet by 6 feet by 6 feet. Once the whale was secured alongside, everyone was sent below deck since they were exhausted from the day's work. The third mate was unwell, so I was given the rather dubious honor of taking his watch, thanks to my sea experience and growing rapport with the chief. I remember feeling very resentful about this privilege at the time, being so tired and sleepy that I didn’t know how to stay awake. I had no idea that something would happen that would make me cherish that night’s experience for the rest of my life; otherwise, I would have approached it with a much better attitude.
At about eleven p.m. I was leaning over the lee rail, grazing steadily at the bright surface of the sea, where the intense radiance of the tropical moon made a broad path like a pavement of burnished silver. Eyes that saw not, mind only confusedly conscious of my surroundings, were mine; but suddenly I started to my feet with an exclamation, and stared with all my might at the strangest sight I ever saw. There was a violent commotion in the sea right where the moon's rays were concentrated, so great that, remembering our position, I was at first inclined to alarm all hands; for I had often heard of volcanic islands suddenly lifting their heads from the depths below, or disappearing in a moment, and, with Sumatra's chain of active volcanoes so near, I felt doubtful indeed of what was now happening. Getting the night-glasses out of the cabin scuttle, where they were always hung in readiness, I focussed them on the troubled spot, perfectly satisfied by a short examination that neither volcano nor earthquake had anything to do with what was going on; yet so vast were the forces engaged that I might well have been excused for my first supposition. A very large sperm whale was locked in deadly conflict with a cuttle-fish or squid, almost as large as himself, whose interminable tentacles seemed to enlace the whole of his great body. The head of the whale especially seemed a perfect net-work of writhing arms—naturally I suppose, for it appeared as if the whale had the tail part of the mollusc in his jaws, and, in a business-like, methodical way, was sawing through it. By the side of the black columnar head of the whale appeared the head of the great squid, as awful an object as one could well imagine even in a fevered dream. Judging as carefully as possible, I estimated it to be at least as large as one of our pipes, which contained three hundred and fifty gallons; but it may have been, and probably was, a good deal larger. The eyes were very remarkable from their size and blackness, which, contrasted with the livid whiteness of the head, made their appearance all the more striking. They were, at least, a foot in diameter, and, seen under such conditions, looked decidedly eerie and hobgoblin-like. All around the combatants were numerous sharks, like jackals round a lion, ready to share the feast, and apparently assisting in the destruction of the huge cephalopod. So the titanic struggle went on, in perfect silence as far as we were concerned, because, even had there been any noise, our distance from the scene of conflict would not have permitted us to hear it.
At around eleven p.m., I was leaning over the side of the boat, staring intently at the shimmering surface of the ocean, where the bright tropical moon created a wide path that looked like a paved road of polished silver. My eyes couldn’t see, and my mind was only vaguely aware of my surroundings; but suddenly, I jumped to my feet with an exclamation and stared with all my intensity at the strangest sight I had ever seen. There was a huge disturbance in the sea right where the moon’s rays were focused, so intense that, considering our location, I initially thought about alerting the crew; I had often heard stories of volcanic islands suddenly surfacing from the depths or disappearing in an instant, and with the nearby chain of active volcanoes in Sumatra, I felt uncertain about what was happening. Grabbing the night binoculars from the cabin where they were always kept, I focused them on the chaotic scene, quickly confirming through a brief observation that neither a volcano nor an earthquake was responsible for the commotion; yet the scale of the forces involved could certainly have justified my initial assumption. A massive sperm whale was engaged in a fierce battle with a cuttlefish or squid nearly as large as itself, whose endless tentacles appeared to entwine its entire body. The whale's head looked like a complete tangle of thrashing arms—naturally, I suppose, since it seemed as if the whale had the back end of the mollusk in its mouth and, in a systematic way, was sawing through it. Next to the whale's dark, column-like head was the head of the enormous squid, as terrifying an image as one could imagine even in a fevered dream. Estimating as carefully as I could, I thought it was at least the size of one of our tanks, which holds three hundred and fifty gallons; but it might have been, and likely was, considerably larger. Its eyes were striking due to their size and dark color, which, when contrasted with the pale whiteness of the head, made them look even more impressive. Each eye was at least a foot in diameter, and viewed in such conditions, they appeared quite eerie and ghostly. Surrounding the fighters were numerous sharks, like jackals circling a lion, poised to share in the feast and seemingly helping in the destruction of the massive cephalopod. Thus, the titanic struggle continued, in perfect silence as far as we were concerned, because even if there was any noise, the distance from the scene of the conflict would have prevented us from hearing it.
Thinking that such a sight ought not to be missed by the captain, I overcame my dread of him sufficiently to call him, and tell him of what was taking place. He met my remarks with such a furious burst of anger at my daring to disturb him for such a cause, that I fled precipitately on deck again, having the remainder of the vision to myself, for none of the others cared sufficiently for such things to lose five minutes' sleep in witnessing them. The conflict ceased, the sea resumed its placid calm, and nothing remained to tell of the fight but a strong odour of fish, as of a bank of seaweed left by the tide in the blazing sun. Eight bells struck, and I went below to a troubled sleep, wherein all the awful monsters that an over-excited brain could conjure up pursued me through the gloomy caves of ocean, or mocked my pigmy efforts to escape.
Thinking that the captain should see this, I managed to overcome my fear of him enough to call him over and tell him what was happening. He reacted with such intense anger at my audacity to interrupt him for this reason that I quickly ran back on deck, leaving the rest of the sight for myself, as none of the others cared enough about it to sacrifice five minutes of sleep for a look. The fight ended, the sea returned to its calm state, and all that was left of the struggle was a strong smell of fish, like a patch of seaweed left behind by the tide in the glaring sun. Eight bells rang, and I went below to a restless sleep, filled with all the terrifying monsters that an overactive imagination could dream up, chasing me through the dark depths of the ocean, or taunting my small attempts to escape.
The occasions upon which these gigantic cuttle-fish appear at the sea surface must, I think, be very rare. From their construction, they appear fitted only to grope among the rocks at the bottom of the ocean. Their mode of progression is backward, by the forcible ejection of a jet of water from an orifice in the neck, beside the rectum or cloaca. Consequently their normal position is head-downward, and with tentacles spread out like the ribs of an umbrella—eight of them at least; the two long ones, like the antennae of an insect, rove unceasingly around, seeking prey.
The times when these huge cuttlefish come to the surface of the sea must be really rare. Their design seems to make them suited only for exploring the rocks at the bottom of the ocean. They move backward by forcefully shooting a jet of water from a hole in their neck, located next to their rectum or cloaca. As a result, their usual position is head-down, with their tentacles spread out like the ribs of an umbrella—at least eight of them; the two long ones, similar to insect antennae, constantly search for food.
The imagination can hardly picture a more terrible object than one of these huge monsters brooding in the ocean depths, the gloom of his surroundings increased by the inky fluid (sepia) which he secretes in copious quantities, every cup-shaped disc, of the hundreds with which the restless tentacles are furnished, ready at the slightest touch to grip whatever is near, not only by suction, but by the great claws set all round within its circle. And in the centre of this net-work of living traps is the chasm-like mouth, with its enormous parrot-beak, ready to rend piecemeal whatever is held by the tentaculae. The very thought of it makes one's flesh crawl. Well did Michelet term them "the insatiable nightmares of the sea."
The imagination can hardly envision a more horrifying sight than one of these huge monsters lurking in the depths of the ocean, with the darkness of its surroundings intensified by the thick, inky fluid it releases in large amounts. Each cup-shaped disc on its numerous restless tentacles is prepared to latch onto anything nearby at the slightest touch, not just by suction, but with the massive claws positioned all around its perimeter. And at the center of this network of living traps is a gaping mouth, featuring a huge parrot-like beak, ready to tear apart anything caught by its tentacles. Just thinking about it makes your skin crawl. Michelet aptly called them "the insatiable nightmares of the sea."
Yet, but for them, how would such great creatures as the sperm whale be fed? Unable, from their bulk, to capture small fish except by accident, and, by the absence of a sieve of baleen, precluded from subsisting upon the tiny crustacea, which support the MYSTICETAE, the cachalots seem to be confined for their diet to cuttle-fish, and, from their point of view, the bigger the latter are the better. How big they may become in the depths of the sea, no man knoweth; but it is unlikely that even the vast specimens seen are full-sized, since they have only come to the surface under abnormal conditions, like the one I have attempted to describe, who had evidently been dragged up by his relentless foe.
Yet, without them, how would such massive creatures as the sperm whale find food? They can't catch small fish because of their size, and without baleen, they're unable to feed on the tiny crustaceans that sustain the MYSTICETAE. It seems that sperm whales are limited to eating cuttlefish, and from their perspective, the bigger the cuttlefish, the better. No one knows how large these creatures might get in the depths of the ocean, but it's unlikely that even the enormous specimens we've seen are fully grown, as they’ve only surfaced under unusual circumstances, like the one I've described, which clearly had been pulled up by its relentless enemy.
Creatures like these, who inhabit deep waters, and do not need to come to the surface by the exigencies of their existence, necessarily present many obstacles to accurate investigation of their structure and habits; but, from the few specimens that have been obtained of late years, fairly comprehensive details have been compiled, and may be studied in various French and German works, of which the Natural History Museum at South Kensington possesses copies. These, through the courtesy of the authorities in charge, are easily accessible to students who wish to prosecute the study of this wonderful branch of the great mollusca family.
Creatures like these, which live in deep waters and don’t need to come to the surface to survive, create many challenges for accurately studying their structure and behavior. However, from the few specimens that have been collected in recent years, fairly comprehensive information has been compiled and can be found in various French and German publications, which the Natural History Museum at South Kensington holds copies of. Thanks to the generosity of the museum staff, these resources are readily available to students who want to delve deeper into this fascinating area of the mollusca family.
When we commenced to cut in our whale next morning, the sea was fairly alive with fish of innumerable kinds, while a vast host of sea-birds, as usual, waited impatiently for the breaking-up of the huge carcass, which they knew would afford them no end of a feast. An untoward accident, which happened soon after the work was started, gave the waiting myriads immense satisfaction, although the unfortunate second mate, whose slip of the spade was responsible, came in for a hurricane of vituperation from the enraged skipper. It was in detaching the case from the head—always a work of difficulty, and requiring great precision of aim. Just as Mr. Cruce made a powerful thrust with his keen tool, the vessel rolled, and the blow, missing the score in which he was cutting, fell upon the case instead, piercing its side. For a few minutes the result was unnoticed amidst the wash of the ragged edges of the cut, but presently a long streak of white, wax-like pieces floating astern, and a tremendous commotion among the birds, told the story. The liquid spermaceti was leaking rapidly from the case, turning solid as it got into the cool water. Nothing could be done to stop the waste, which, as it was a large whale, was not less than twenty barrels, or about two tuns of pure spermaceti. An accident of this kind never failed to make our skipper almost unbearable in his temper for some days afterwards; and, to do him justice, he did not discriminate very carefully as to who felt his resentment besides its immediate cause.
When we started to cut into our whale the next morning, the sea was bustling with fish of all sorts, while a huge flock of seabirds waited eagerly for the massive carcass to break apart, knowing it would provide them with a huge feast. An unfortunate accident that happened soon after we began gave the waiting birds immense satisfaction, although the poor second mate, whose slip of the spade caused it, faced a storm of angry complaints from the furious skipper. The mishap occurred when trying to detach the case from the head—a task that is always tricky and requires precise aim. Just as Mr. Cruce made a strong thrust with his sharp tool, the vessel rolled, and instead of hitting the score where he was cutting, the blow struck the case, piercing its side. For a few minutes, the result went unnoticed amidst the rough edges of the cut, but soon a long streak of white, waxy pieces floated behind us, and the birds went into a frenzy. The liquid spermaceti was quickly leaking from the case and turning solid as it hit the cool water. There was nothing we could do to stop the loss, which, since it was a large whale, amounted to at least twenty barrels, or about two tuns of pure spermaceti. An accident like this would always put our skipper in a foul mood for several days afterward, and to be fair, he didn't really discriminate much about who bore the brunt of his frustration beyond the immediate culprit.
Therefore we had all a rough time of it while his angry fit lasted, which was a whole week, or until all was shipshape again. Meanwhile we were edging gradually through the Malacca Straits and around the big island of Borneo, never going very near the land on account of the great and numerous dangers attendant upon coasting in those localities to any but those continually engaged in such a business.
So, we all had a tough time while he was in that angry mood, which lasted a whole week, until everything was back to normal. In the meantime, we were slowly making our way through the Malacca Straits and around the large island of Borneo, staying far from the shore because of the many dangers of sailing close to the coast in those areas, which is only safe for those who are always doing that kind of work.
Indeed, all navigation in those seas to sailing vessels is dangerous, and requires the greatest care. Often we were obliged at a minute's notice to let go the anchor, although out of sight of land, some rapid current being found carrying us swiftly towards a shoal or race, where we might come to grief. Yet there was no fuss or hurry, the same leisurely old system was continued, and worked as well as ever. But it was not apparent why we were threading the tortuous and difficult waters of the Indian Archipelago. No whales of any kind were seen for at least a month, although, from our leisurely mode of sailing, it was evident that they were looked for.
Indeed, navigating those seas with sailing vessels is risky and requires a lot of caution. Often, we had to drop anchor on a moment's notice, even when we were out of sight of land, because a strong current would suddenly push us toward a shallow area or rapids, where we could get into trouble. Despite this, there was no panic or rush; we continued with our usual slow pace, and it worked just as well as before. However, it wasn’t clear why we were making our way through the complicated and challenging waters of the Indian Archipelago. We hadn’t seen any whales for at least a month, although it was obvious from our laid-back sailing that we were hoping to spot some.
An occasional native craft came alongside, desirous of bartering fish, which we did not want, being able to catch all we needed as readily almost as they were. Fruit and vegetables we could not get at such distances from land, for the small canoes that lie in wait for passing ships do not of course venture far from home.
Now and then, a local boat would come alongside, eager to trade fish, which we didn't need since we could catch all we wanted just about as easily as they could. We couldn't get fruit and vegetables at such distances from shore because the small canoes that wait for passing ships obviously don't go far from home.
CHAPTER XIII. OFF TO THE JAPAN GROUNDS
Very tedious and trying was our passage northward, although every effort was made by the skipper to expedite it. Nothing of advantage to our cargo was seen for a long time, which, although apparently what was to be expected, did not improve Captain Slocum's temper. But, to the surprise of all, when we had arrived off the beautiful island of Hong Kong, to which we approached closely, we "raised" a grand sperm whale.
Our journey north was really long and challenging, even though the captain did his best to speed things up. For a long while, we didn’t see anything that would benefit our cargo, which, while it was pretty much what we expected, didn’t help Captain Slocum’s mood at all. However, to everyone’s surprise, when we reached the stunning island of Hong Kong and got close to it, we spotted a huge sperm whale.
Many fishing-junks were in sight, busily plying their trade, and at any other time we should have been much interested in the quaint and cunning devices by which the patient, wily Chinaman succeeds so admirably as a fisherman. Our own fishing, for the time being, absorbed all our attention—the more, perhaps, that we had for so long been unable to do anything in that line. After the usual preliminaries, we were successful in getting fast to the great creature, who immediately showed fight. So skilful and wary did he prove that Captain Slocum, growing impatient at our manoeuvring with no result, himself took the field, arriving on the scene with the air of one who comes to see and conquer without more delay. He brought with him a weapon which I have not hitherto mentioned, because none of the harpooners could be induced to use it, and consequently it had not been much in evidence. Theoretically, it was as ideal tool for such work, its chief drawback being its cumbrousness. It was known as "Pierce's darting gun," being a combination of bomb-gun and harpoon, capable of being darted at the whale like a plain harpoon. Its construction was simple; indeed, the patent was a very old one. A tube of brass, thickening towards the butt, at which was a square chamber firmly welded to a socket for receiving the pole, formed the gun itself. Within the chamber aforesaid a nipple protruded from the base of the tube, and in line with it. The trigger was simply a flat bit of steel, like a piece of clock spring, which was held down by the hooked end of a steel rod long enough to stick out beyond the muzzle of the gun three or four inches, and held in position by two flanges at the butt and muzzle of the barrel. On the opposite side of the tube were two more flanges, close together, into the holes of which was inserted the end of a specially made harpoon, having an eye twisted in its shank through which the whale line was spliced. The whole machine was fitted to a neat pole, and strongly secured to it by means of a "gun warp," or short piece of thin line, by which it could be hauled back into the boat after being darted at a whale. To prepare this weapon for use, the barrel was loaded with a charge of powder and a bomb similar to those used in the shoulder-guns, the point of which just protruded from the muzzle. An ordinary percussion cap was placed upon the nipple, and the trigger cocked by placing the trigger-rod in position. The harpoon, with the line attached, was firmly set into the socketed flanges prepared for it, and the whole arrangement was then ready to be darted at the whale in the usual way.
Many fishing boats were visible, busy at work, and normally we would have been quite intrigued by the clever and intricate methods that the patient, clever fishermen used to catch fish so effectively. But our own fishing efforts took all our focus—more so since we hadn’t been able to do anything in that regard for a long time. After the usual preparations, we successfully hooked the large creature, who immediately put up a fight. It turned out to be so skilled and cautious that Captain Slocum, growing impatient with our ineffective attempts, decided to take charge himself, arriving with the confidence of someone ready to see and conquer without delay. He brought with him a tool that I hadn’t mentioned before, as none of the harpooners would use it, so it hadn’t been much in evidence. Theoretically, it was an ideal tool for this job, its main drawback being its bulkiness. It was called "Pierce's darting gun," a mix of a bomb gun and a harpoon, capable of being thrown at the whale just like a regular harpoon. Its construction was straightforward; in fact, the patent was quite old. The gun itself consisted of a brass tube that thickened towards the end, which had a square chamber firmly welded to a socket for holding the pole. Inside that chamber, a nipple extended from the base of the tube, aligned with it. The trigger was simply a flat piece of steel, like a clock spring, held down by the hooked end of a steel rod long enough to stick out a few inches beyond the muzzle of the gun. This was held in place by two flanges at the back and front of the barrel. On the other side of the tube, there were two more flanges, close together, where the end of a specially designed harpoon was inserted, with an eye twisted into its shaft through which the whale line was secured. The whole setup was attached to a neat pole and firmly secured with a "gun warp," or a short piece of thin line, allowing it to be pulled back into the boat after being thrown at a whale. To prepare this weapon for use, the barrel was loaded with a charge of powder and a bomb like those used in shoulder guns, with the tip just poking out of the muzzle. An ordinary percussion cap was placed on the nipple, and the trigger was cocked by positioning the trigger rod in place. The harpoon, with the line attached, was firmly set into the prepared socket flanges, and everything was ready to be launched at the whale in the usual manner.
Supposing the aim to be good and the force sufficient, the harpoon would penetrate the blubber until the end of the trigger-rod was driven backwards by striking the blubber, releasing the trigger and firing the gun. Thus the whale would be harpooned and bomb-lanced at the same time, and, supposing everything to work satisfactorily, very little more could be needed to finish him. But the weapon was so cumbersome and awkward, and the harpooners stood in such awe of it, that in the majority of cases the whale was either missed altogether or the harpoon got such slight hold that the gun did not go off, the result being generally disastrous.
If the goal was good and the force strong enough, the harpoon would go through the blubber until the end of the trigger-rod was pushed back by hitting the blubber, which would release the trigger and fire the gun. This way, the whale would be harpooned and bombed at the same time, and if everything went well, not much else would be needed to finish it off. However, the weapon was really heavy and awkward, and the harpooners were so intimidated by it that most of the time, they either completely missed the whale or the harpoon didn't get a good grip, so the gun didn’t fire, usually leading to disastrous results.
In the present case, however, the "Pierce" gun was in the hands of a man by no means nervous, and above criticism or blame in case of failure. So when he sailed in to the attack, and delivered his "swashing blow," the report of the gun was immediately heard, proving conclusively that a successful stroke had been made.
In this case, though, the "Pierce" gun was in the hands of a man who was not at all nervous and beyond reproach if things went wrong. So when he charged in for the attack and delivered his powerful blow, the sound of the gun was immediately heard, clearly indicating that a successful hit had been achieved.
It had an instantaneous and astonishing effect. The sorely wounded monster, with one tremendous expiration, rolled over and over swift as thought towards his aggressor, literally burying the boat beneath his vast bulk. Now, one would have thought surely, upon seeing this, that none of that boat's crew would ever have been seen again. Nevertheless, strange as it may appear, out of that seething lather of foam, all six heads emerged again in an instant, but on the OTHER side of the great creature. How any of them escaped instant violent death was, and from the nature of the case must, ever remain, an unravelled mystery, for the boat was crumbled into innumerable fragments, and the three hundred fathoms of line, in a perfect maze of entanglement, appeared to be wrapped about the writhing trunk of the whale. Happily, there were two boats disengaged, so that they were able very promptly to rescue the sufferers from their perilous position in the boiling vortex of foam by which they were surrounded. Meanwhile, the remaining boat had an easy task. The shot delivered by the captain had taken deadly effect, the bomb having entered the creature's side low down, directly abaft the pectoral fin. It must have exploded within the cavity of the bowels, from its position, causing such extensive injuries as to make even that vast animal's death but a matter of a few moments. Therefore, we did not run any unnecessary risks, but hauled off to a safe distance and quietly watched the death-throes. They were so brief, that in less than ten minutes from the time of the accident we were busy securing the line through the flukes of our prize.
It had an immediate and shocking impact. The badly injured monster, with one massive exhale, rolled over and over as quickly as thought toward its attacker, literally burying the boat beneath its enormous weight. One would have thought that none of the boat's crew would ever be seen again after that. However, strangely enough, all six heads popped up again in an instant, but on the OTHER side of the giant creature. How any of them escaped instant death is, and will always be, a mystery, since the boat was shattered into countless pieces, and the three hundred fathoms of line were tangled in a perfect mess around the thrashing body of the whale. Fortunately, there were two boats available, so they were able to quickly rescue the crew from their dangerous position in the swirling foam that surrounded them. Meanwhile, the remaining boat had an easy job. The shot fired by the captain had done its job, with the bomb entering the creature's side low down, right behind the pectoral fin. It must have exploded inside the creature's body, causing such severe injuries that its death was just a matter of minutes. Therefore, we didn’t take any unnecessary risks; we pulled back to a safe distance and calmly watched the creature’s death throes. They were so quick that in less than ten minutes from the time of the incident, we were busy securing the line through the tail flukes of our prize.
The vessel was an unusually long time working up to us, so slow, in fact, that Mr Count remarked, critically, "Shouldn't wonder if th' ole man ain't hurt; they're taking things so all-fired easy." By the time she had reached us, we had a good few visitors around us from the fishing fleet, who caused us no little anxiety, The Chinese have no prejudices; they would just as soon steal a whale as a herring, if the conveyance could be effected without, more trouble or risk to their own yellow skins. If it involved the killing of a few foreign devils—well, so much to the good. The ship, however, arrived before the fishermen had decided upon any active steps, and we got our catch alongside without any delay. The truth of Mr. Count's forecast was verified to the hilt, for we found that the captain was so badly bruised about the body that he was unable to move, while one of the hands, a Portuguese, was injured internally, and seemed very bad indeed. Had any one told us that morning that we should be sorry to see Captain Slocum with sore bones, we should have scoffed at the notion, and some of us would probably have said that we should like to have the opportunity of making him smart. But under the present circumstances, with some hundreds of perfectly ruthless wretches hovering around us, looking with longing eyes at the treasure we had alongside, we could not help remembering the courage and resource so often shown by the skipper, and wished with all our hearts that we could have the benefit of them now. As soon as dinner was over, we all "turned to" with a will to get the whale cut in. None of us required to be told that to lay all night with that whale alongside would be extremely unhealthy for us, great doubt existing as to whether any of us would see morning dawn again. There was, too, just a possibility that when the carcass, stripped of its blubber, was cut adrift, those ravenous crowds would fasten upon it, and let us go in peace.
The boat took an unusually long time to reach us, so slowly that Mr. Count remarked, "Wouldn't be surprised if the old man got hurt; they’re taking things way too easy." By the time it arrived, we had gathered quite a few visitors from the fishing fleet, which made us quite anxious. The Chinese have no prejudices; they would just as soon steal a whale as a herring if they could do it without much trouble or risk to themselves. If it meant taking out a few foreigners—well, that was just a bonus. Luckily, the ship arrived before the fishermen decided to take any action, and we got our catch alongside without any delay. Mr. Count's prediction was spot on, as we found the captain badly bruised and unable to move, while one of the crew, a Portuguese man, had serious internal injuries and looked really bad. If anyone had told us that morning we would regret seeing Captain Slocum hurt, we would have laughed it off, and some of us might have even wanted to make him pay for it. But given the circumstances, with hundreds of ruthless individuals surrounding us, eyeing the treasure we had on board, we couldn't help but remember the courage and resourcefulness the skipper had shown so many times before, and we wished we could benefit from it now. As soon as dinner was over, we all got to work to get the whale processed. None of us needed to be reminded that staying alongside that whale all night would be extremely unhealthy, with the real fear that we might not see the morning. There was also a chance that once the carcass was stripped of its blubber and cut loose, those hungry crowds would go after it and leave us alone.
All hands, therefore, worked like Trojans. There was no need to drive us, nor was a single harsh word spoken. Nothing was heard but the almost incessant clatter of the windlass pawls, abrupt monosyllabic orders, and the occasional melancholy wail of a gannet overhead. No word had been spoken on the subject among us, yet somehow we all realized that we were working for a large stake no less than our lives. What! says somebody, within a few miles of Hong Kong? Oh yes; and even within Hong Kong harbour itself, if opportunity offers. Let any man go down the wharf at Hong Kong after sunset, and hail a sampan from the hundreds there that are waiting to be hired. Hardly will the summons have left his lips before a white policeman will be at his side, note-book in hand, inquiring his name and ship, and taking a note of the sampan's number, with the time of his leaving the wharf. Nothing perfunctory about the job either. Let but these precautions be omitted, and the chances that the passenger (if he have aught of value about him) will ever arrive at his destination are almost nil.
Everyone was working hard. There was no need for anyone to push us, and not a single harsh word was spoken. The only sounds were the almost constant clattering of the windlass pawls, quick one-word commands, and the occasional sad cry of a gannet flying overhead. We hadn’t discussed it, but somehow we all understood that we were working for something really important—our lives. What? Someone asks, just a few miles from Hong Kong? Oh yes; and even right in Hong Kong harbor, if the chance arises. If a person goes down to the wharf in Hong Kong after sunset and calls for a sampan from the hundreds waiting to be hired, it won’t be long before a white policeman is at his side, notebook in hand, asking for his name and ship, and noting the sampan's number along with the time he leaves the wharf. There's nothing casual about this process either. Skip these precautions, and the chances that the passenger (if he has anything valuable on him) will ever reach his destination are almost zero.
So good was the progress made that by five p.m. we were busy at the head, while the last few turns of the windlass were being taken to complete the skinning of the body. With a long pent-up shout that last piece was severed and swung inboard, as the huge mass of reeking flesh floated slowly astern. As it drifted away we saw the patient watchers who had been waiting converging upon it from all quarters, and our hopes rose high. But there was no slackening of our efforts to get in the head. By the time it was dark we managed to get the junk on board, and by the most extraordinary efforts lifted the whole remainder of the head high enough to make sail and stand off to sea. The wind was off the land, the water smooth, and no swell on, so we took no damage from that tremendous weight surging by our side, though, had the worst come to the worst, we could have cut it adrift.
The progress we made was so good that by five p.m. we were busy with the head, while the final turns of the windlass were being done to finish skinning the body. With a long-awaited shout, that last piece was cut and swung onboard, while the huge mass of stinking flesh floated slowly away behind us. As it drifted off, we saw the patient watchers who had been waiting rushing towards it from all directions, and our hopes soared. But we didn't let up in our efforts to get the head onboard. By the time it got dark, we managed to pull the junk on board, and with extraordinary effort lifted the rest of the head high enough to set sail and head out to sea. The wind was coming from the land, the water was smooth, and there was no swell, so we didn't take any damage from that massive weight surging beside us. If things had gotten really bad, we could have cut it loose.
When morning dawned we hove-to, the land being only dimly visible astern, and finished taking on board our "head matter" without further incident. The danger past, we were all well pleased that the captain was below, for the work proceeded quite pleasantly under the genial rule of the mate. Since leaving port we had not felt so comfortable, the work, with all its disagreeables, seeming as nothing now that we could do it without fear and trembling. Alas for poor Jemmy!—as we always persisted in calling him from inability to pronounce his proper name—his case was evidently hopeless. His fellows did their poor best to comfort his fast-fleeting hours, one after another murmuring to him the prayers of the Church, which, although they did not understand them, they evidently believed most firmly to have some marvellous power to open the gates of paradise and cleanse the sinner. Notwithstanding the grim fact that their worship was almost pure superstition, it was far more in accordance with the fitness of things for a dying man's surroundings than such scenes as I have witnessed in the forecastles of merchant ships when poor sailors lay a-dying. I remember well once, when I was second officer of a large passenger ship, going in the forecastle as she lay at anchor at St. Helena, to see a sick man. Half the crew were drunk, and the beastly kennel in which they lived was in a thick fog of tobacco-smoke and the stale stench of rum. Ribald songs, quarrelling, and blasphemy made a veritable pandemonium of the place. I passed quietly through it to the sick man's bunk, and found him—dead! He had passed away in the midst of that, but the horror of it did not seem to impress his bemused shipmates much.
When morning came, we slowed down, the land barely visible behind us, and finished taking on our "head matter" without any further issues. With the danger behind us, we were all relieved that the captain was below deck, as everything went smoothly under the friendly guidance of the mate. Since leaving port, we hadn’t felt this comfortable; the work, with all its downsides, felt like nothing now that we could do it without fear and anxiety. Poor Jemmy’s situation was clearly hopeless—though we persistently called him that because we couldn’t pronounce his real name. His shipmates did their best to support him in his final moments, softly murmuring the Church's prayers, which they didn’t really understand but firmly believed had some miraculous power to open the gates of paradise and cleanse the sinner. Despite the fact that their worship was mostly superstition, it felt much more fitting for a dying man’s surroundings than the scenes I’ve witnessed in the forecastles of merchant ships when sailors were dying. I remember, once when I was the second officer on a large passenger ship anchored at St. Helena, going into the forecastle to check on a sick man. Half the crew was drunk, and the filthy space they lived in was filled with heavy tobacco smoke and the stale smell of rum. Crude songs, arguments, and curses created a complete chaos in there. I quietly made my way through to the sick man’s bunk, only to find him—dead! He had passed away amidst all that madness, but the horror of it didn’t seem to bother his dazed shipmates at all.
Here, at any rate, there was quiet and decorum, while all that could be done for the poor sufferer (not much, from ignorance of how he was injured) was done. He was released from his pain in the afternoon of the second day after the accident, the end coming suddenly and peacefully. The same evening, at sunset, the body, neatly sewn up in canvas, with a big lump of sandstone secured to the feet, was brought on deck, laid on a hatch at the gangway, and covered with the blue, star-spangled American Jack. Then all hands were mustered in the waist, the ship's bell was tolled, and the ensign run up halfway.
Here, at least, there was some peace and respect, while everything possible was done for the poor victim (not much, due to ignorance of how he was hurt). He was freed from his pain in the afternoon of the second day after the accident, the end coming suddenly and peacefully. That same evening, at sunset, the body, neatly wrapped in canvas with a heavy piece of sandstone tied to the feet, was brought on deck, placed on a hatch at the gangway, and covered with the blue, star-spangled American flag. Then everyone was gathered in the middle of the ship, the ship's bell was rung, and the flag was hoisted halfway up the mast.
The captain was still too ill to be moved, so the mate stepped forward with a rusty old Common Prayer-book in his hands, whereon my vagrant fancy immediately fastened in frantic endeavour to imagine how it came to be there. The silence of death was over all. True, the man was but a unit of no special note among us, but death had conferred upon him a brevet rank, in virtue of which be dominated every thought. It seemed strange to me that we who faced death so often and variously, until natural fear had become deadened by custom, should, now that one of our number lay a rapidly-corrupting husk before us, be so tremendously impressed by the simple, inevitable fact. I suppose it was because none of us were able to realize the immanence of Death until we saw his handiwork. Mr. Count opened the book, fumbling nervously among the unfamiliar leaves. Then he suddenly looked up, his weather-scarred face glowing a dull brick-red, and said, in a low voice, "This thing's too many fer me; kin any of ye do it? Ef not, I guess we'll hev ter take it as read." There was no response for a moment; then I stepped forward, reaching out my hand for the book. Its contents were familiar enough to me, for in happy pre-arab days I had been a chorister in the old Lock Chapel, Harrow Road, and had borne my part in the service so often that I think even now I could repeat the greater part of it MEMORITER. Mr. Count gave it me without a word, and, trembling like a leaf, I turned to the "Burial Service," and began the majestic sentences, "I am the Resurrection and the Life, saith the Lord." I did not know my own voice as the wonderful words sounded clearly in the still air; but if ever a small body of soul-hardened men FELT the power of God, it was then. At the words, "We therefore commit his body to the deep," I paused, and, the mate making a sign, two of the harpooners tilted the hatch, from which the remains slid off into the unknown depths with a dull splash. Several of the dead man's compatriots covered their faces, and murmured prayers for the repose of his soul, while the tears trickled through their horny fingers. But matters soon resumed their normal course; the tension over, back came the strings of life into position again, to play the same old tunes and discords once more.
The captain was still too sick to be moved, so the mate stepped forward holding a rusty old Common Prayer-book, and my wandering thoughts immediately rushed to figure out how it ended up there. A suffocating silence hung over everything. Sure, the man was just one of us without any special distinction, but death had given him an unexpected importance, overshadowing every thought. It struck me as odd that we, who often faced death in many ways until fear became just a part of life, were now so deeply affected by the simple, undeniable reality of it now that one of our own lay before us, a rapidly decaying body. I guess it was because we couldn't truly grasp the closeness of death until we witnessed its effects firsthand. Mr. Count opened the book, fumbling nervously through the unfamiliar pages. Then he suddenly looked up, his sunburned face turning a dull brick-red, and said in a low voice, "This is too much for me; can any of you do it? If not, I guess we'll have to take it as read." There was silence for a moment, and then I stepped forward, reaching out for the book. Its contents were familiar enough to me since, in better days, I had been a choir member at the old Lock Chapel on Harrow Road, participating in the service so often that I think I could still recite most of it from memory. Mr. Count handed it to me without a word, and, trembling like a leaf, I turned to the "Burial Service" and began the powerful lines, "I am the Resurrection and the Life, saith the Lord." I barely recognized my own voice as the beautiful words filled the still air; but if ever a small group of hardened men felt the presence of God, it was then. When I got to the words, "We therefore commit his body to the deep," I paused. At Mr. Count’s signal, two of the harpooners tilted the hatch, and the body slipped into the depths with a dull splash. Several of the deceased man's shipmates covered their faces and murmured prayers for his soul as tears streamed through their calloused fingers. But soon things returned to normal; the tension eased, and life resumed its usual rhythm, playing the same old tunes and dissonances once more.
The captured whale made an addition to our cargo of one hundred and ten barrels—a very fair haul indeed. The harpooners were disposed to regard this capture as auspicious upon opening the North Pacific, where, in spite of the time we had spent, and the fair luck we had experienced in the Indian Ocean, we expected to make the chief portion of our cargo.
The captured whale added to our cargo of one hundred and ten barrels—a really great haul. The harpooners saw this catch as a good sign for opening up the North Pacific, where, despite the time we had spent and the decent luck we had in the Indian Ocean, we expected to get the bulk of our cargo.
Our next cruising-ground is known to whalemen as the "Coast of Japan" ground, and has certainly proved in the past the most prolific fishery of sperm whales in the whole world. I am inclined now to believe that there are more and larger cachalots to be found in the Southern Hemisphere, between the parallels of 33deg. and 50deg. South; but there the drawback of heavy weather and mountainous seas severely handicaps the fishermen.
Our next cruising area is known to whalers as the "Coast of Japan" and has definitely been the most productive sperm whale fishery in the world in the past. I now suspect that there are more and bigger cachalots in the Southern Hemisphere, between the latitudes of 33° and 50° South; however, the downside is that harsh weather and rough seas make it really tough for the fishermen.
It is somewhat of a misnomer to call the Coast of Japan ground by that name, since to be successful you should not sight Japan at all, but keep out of range of the cold current that sweeps right across the Pacific, skirting the Philippines, along the coasts of the Japanese islands as far as the Kuriles, and then returns to the eastward again to the southward of the Aleutian Archipelago. The greatest number of whales are always found in the vicinity of the Bonin and Volcano groups of islands, which lie in the eddy formed by the northward bend of the mighty current before mentioned. This wonderful ground was first cruised by a London whale-ship, the SYREN, in 1819, when the English branch of the sperm whale-fishery was in its prime, and London skippers were proud of the fact that one of their number, in the EMILIA, had thirty-one years before first ventured around Cape Horn in pursuit of the cachalot.
It's a bit misleading to refer to the Coast of Japan by that name since to be successful, you should actually avoid seeing Japan entirely. You need to stay clear of the cold current that flows across the Pacific, brushing past the Philippines and along the shores of the Japanese islands all the way to the Kuriles, before turning back eastward and south of the Aleutian Islands. The highest concentration of whales is typically found near the Bonin and Volcano island groups, which sit in the eddy created by the northward curve of that powerful current. This incredible area was first explored by a London whale ship, the SYREN, in 1819, when the English sperm whale fishery was at its peak. London captains took pride in the fact that one of their own, aboard the EMILIA, had been the first to brave the journey around Cape Horn in search of the sperm whale thirty-one years earlier.
After the advent of the SYREN, the Bonins became the favourite fishing-ground for both Americans and British, and for many years the catch of oil taken from these teeming waters averaged four thousand tuns annually. That the value of the fishery was maintained at so high a level for over a quarter of a century was doubtless due to the fact that there was a long, self-imposed close season, during which the whales were quite unmolested. Nothing in the migratory habits of this whale, so far as has ever been observed, would have prevented a profitable fishing all the year round; but custom, stronger even than profit, ordained that whale-ships should never stay too long upon one fishing-ground, but move on farther until the usual round had been made, unless the vessel were filled in the mean time.
After the arrival of the SYREN, the Bonins became the top fishing spot for both Americans and British, and for many years, the catch of oil from these rich waters averaged around four thousand tuns each year. The fishery's value remained high for over twenty-five years, likely because there was a long, self-imposed close season when whales were completely undisturbed. Nothing in this whale's migratory patterns, as far as anyone has seen, would have stopped profitable fishing all year round; however, tradition, which was stronger than profit, dictated that whaling ships should not stay too long in one fishing area but instead move on until the usual route was completed, unless the ship got filled up in the meantime.
Of course, there are whales whose habits lead them at certain seasons, for breeding purposes, to frequent various groups of islands, but the cachalot seems to be quite impartial in his preferences; if he "uses" around certain waters, he is just as likely to be found there in July as January.
Of course, there are whales that, during certain seasons for breeding, tend to visit different island groups, but the sperm whale seems to have no strong preferences; if he’s around certain waters, he’s just as likely to be found there in July as in January.
The Bonins, too, form an ideal calling-place, from the whaling captain's point of view. Peel Island, the principal one of the cluster, has a perfect harbour in Port Lloyd, where a vessel can not only lie in comfort, sheltered from almost every wind that blows, but where provisions, wood, and water are plentiful. There is no inducement, or indeed room, for desertion, and the place is healthy. It is colonized by Japs from the kingdom so easily reached to the westward, and the busy little people, after their manner, make a short stay very agreeable.
The Bonin Islands are also an ideal spot for whaling captains. Peel Island, the main one in the group, has a perfect harbor in Port Lloyd, where a ship can rest comfortably, protected from nearly every wind. Plus, it's easy to find food, wood, and water there. There's no temptation to desert or even enough space for it, and the area is healthy. It's populated by Japanese people from the nearby kingdom to the west, and these industrious folks make a short visit quite enjoyable.
Once clear of the southern end of Formosa we had quite a rapid run to the Bonins, carrying a press of sail day and night, as the skipper was anxious to arrive there on account of his recent injuries. He was still very lame, and he feared that some damage might have been done to him of which he was ignorant. Besides, it was easy to see that he did not altogether like anybody else being in charge of his ship, no matter how good they were. Such was the expedition we made that we arrived at Port Lloyd twelve days after clearing up our last whale. Very beautiful indeed the islands, appeared, with their bold, steep sides clad in richest green, or, where no vegetation appeared, worn into a thousand fantastic shapes by the sea, or the mountain torrents carving away the lava of which they were all composed. For the whole of the islands were volcanic, and Port Lloyd itself is nothing more than the crater of a vast volcano, which in some tremendous convulsion of nature has sunk from its former high estate low enough to become a haven for ships.
Once we cleared the southern end of Formosa, we quickly raced to the Bonins, sailing hard day and night because the captain wanted to get there due to his recent injuries. He was still pretty lame and worried that he might have sustained some damage he wasn't aware of. It was also clear that he didn't really trust anyone else to be in charge of his ship, no matter how competent they were. We made good time, arriving at Port Lloyd twelve days after finishing our last whale. The islands were incredibly beautiful, with their steep sides covered in lush green or, in the areas without vegetation, shaped into a thousand unique formations by the sea or by mountain streams eroding the lava they were made of. All the islands were volcanic, and Port Lloyd itself is just the crater of a massive volcano that has sunk down from its former height to become a safe harbor for ships.
I have said that it was a perfect harbour, but there is no doubt that getting in or out requires plenty of nerve as well as seamanship. There was so little room, and the eddying flows of wind under the high land were so baffling, that at various times during our passage in it appeared as if nothing could prevent us from getting stuck upon some of the adjacent hungry-looking coral reefs. Nothing of the kind happened, however, and we came comfortably to an anchor near three other whale-ships which were already there. They were the DIEGO RAMIREZ, of Nantucket; the CORONEL, of Providence, Rhode Island; and the GRAMPUS, of New Bedford. These were the first whale-ships we had yet seen, and it may be imagined how anxious we felt to meet men with whom we could compare notes and exchange yarns. It might be, too, that we should get some news of that world which, as far as we were concerned, might as well have been at the other extremity of the solar system for the last year, so completely isolated had we been.
I mentioned that it was a perfect harbor, but it's clear that getting in or out takes a lot of courage and skill. There was barely any space, and the swirling winds under the high land were so confusing that at times during our journey, it felt like we might get stuck on one of the nearby ominous-looking coral reefs. Thankfully, that didn’t happen, and we dropped anchor comfortably near three other whaling ships that were already there. They were the DIEGO RAMIREZ from Nantucket; the CORONEL from Providence, Rhode Island; and the GRAMPUS from New Bedford. These were the first whaling ships we had seen, and you can imagine how eager we were to meet people with whom we could share stories and compare experiences. We might even get some news from the outside world, which, as far as we were concerned, felt like it could have been at the far end of the solar system over the past year since we were so completely isolated.
The sails were hardly fast before a boat from each of the ships was alongside with their respective skippers on board. The extra exertion necessary to pilot the ship in had knocked the old man up, in his present weak state, and he had gone below for a short rest; so the three visitors dived down into the stuffy cabin, all anxious to interview the latest comer. Considerate always, Mr. Count allowed us to have the remainder of the day to ourselves, so we set about entertaining our company. It was no joke twelve of them coming upon us all at once, and babel ensued for a short time. They knew the system too well to expect refreshments, so we had not to apologize for having nothing to set before them. They had not come, however, for meat and drink, but for talk. And talk we did, sometimes altogether, sometimes rationally; but I doubt whether any of us had ever enjoyed talking so much before.
The sails were barely set when a boat from each of the ships pulled up alongside, with their skippers on board. The extra effort it took to maneuver the ship had worn the old man out in his weakened state, so he went below for a short rest. The three visitors quickly headed down into the cramped cabin, eager to catch up with the newcomers. Always thoughtful, Mr. Count gave us the rest of the day to ourselves, so we started entertaining our guests. It was no small task having twelve of them show up all at once, and chaos broke out for a little while. They knew the routine well enough not to expect snacks, so we didn’t have to apologize for not having anything to offer. They hadn't come for food and drinks anyway, but for conversation. And talk we did, sometimes all at once, sometimes more calmly; but I doubt any of us had ever enjoyed a conversation as much as we did then.
CHAPTER XIV. LIBERTY DAY—AND AFTER
There is generally current among seamen a notion that all masters of ships are bound by law to give their crews twenty-four hours' liberty and a portion of their wages to spend every three months, if they are in port. I have never heard any authority quoted for this, and do not know what foundation there is for such a belief, although the practice is usually adhered to in English ships. But American whale-ships apparently know no law, except the will of their commanders, whose convenience is always the first consideration. Thus, we had now been afloat for well over a year, during which time, except for our foraging excursions at the Cocos and Aldabra, we had certainly known no liberty for a whole day.
There’s a common belief among sailors that captains are legally required to give their crews twenty-four hours of time off and some of their wages to spend every three months while in port. I’ve never heard any official source mentioned for this, nor do I know what the basis for such a belief is, even though it’s often followed on English ships. However, American whaling ships apparently operate by a different law—only that of their captains, whose needs always come first. As a result, we had been at sea for over a year, and aside from our supply trips to the Cocos and Aldabra, we hadn’t had a full day of freedom.
Our present port being one where it was impossible to desert without the certainty of prompt recapture, with subsequent suffering altogether disproportionate to the offence, we were told that one watch at a time would be allowed their liberty for a day. So we of the port watch made our simple preparations, received twenty-five cents each, and were turned adrift on the beach to enjoy ourselves. We had our liberty, but we didn't know what to do with it. There was a native town and a couple of low groggeries kept by Chinamen, where some of my shipmates promptly invested a portion of their wealth in some horrible liquor, the smell of which was enough to make an ordinary individual sick. There was no place apparently where one could get a meal, so that the prospect of our stay ashore lasting a day did not seem very great. I was fortunate enough, however, to foregather with a Scotchman who was a beach-comber, and consequently "knew the ropes." I dare say he was an unmitigated blackguard whenever he got the chance, but he was certainly on his best behaviour with me. He took me into the country a bit to see the sights, which were such as most of the Pacific islands afford. Wonderful indeed were the fantastic rocks, twisted into innumerable grotesque shapes, and, along the shores, hollowed out into caverns of all sizes, some large enough to shelter an army. He was quite familiar with the natives, understanding enough of their queer lingo to get along. By his friendly aid we got some food—yams, and fish cooked in native fashion, i.e. in heated holes in the ground, for which the friendly Kanakas would take no payment, although they looked murderous enough to be cannibals. It does not do to go by looks always.
Our current port was one where it was impossible to desert without the certainty of being quickly recaptured, leading to punishment that was way too harsh for what we did. We were informed that one watch at a time would be allowed a day of liberty. So, we from the port watch made our simple plans, received twenty-five cents each, and were let loose on the beach to enjoy ourselves. We had our freedom, but we didn’t know how to make the most of it. There was a local town and a couple of low dive bars run by Chinese, where some of my shipmates quickly spent part of their money on some terrible liquor that smelled bad enough to make anyone feel sick. There didn’t seem to be any place to get a meal, so the chance of our time on land lasting a day didn’t look good. However, I was lucky enough to run into a Scottish beachcomber who “knew the ropes.” I’m sure he was a complete rogue whenever he could be, but he was definitely on his best behavior with me. He took me a bit into the countryside to see the sights, which were typical for most Pacific islands. The amazing rocks were twisted into countless bizarre shapes, and along the shores, they formed caverns of all sizes, some big enough to shelter an army. He was quite familiar with the locals and spoke enough of their strange language to get by. Thanks to his help, we got some food—yams and fish cooked in the traditional way, i.e. in heated holes in the ground, for which the friendly locals didn’t ask for any payment, even though they looked fierce enough to be cannibals. It turns out, you can’t always judge by appearances.
Well, after a long ramble, the Scotchman and I laid our weary bodies down in the shade of a big rock, and had a grand sleep, waking up again a little before sunset. We hastened down to the beach off the town, where all my watchmates were sitting in a row, like lost sheep, waiting to be taken on board again. They had had enough of liberty; indeed, such liberty as that was hardly worth having. It seems hardly credible, but we were actually glad to get on board again, it was so miserable ashore, The natives were most unsociable at the port, and we could not make ourselves understood, so there was not much fun to be had. Even those who were inclined to drink had too little for a spree, which I was not sorry for, since doubtless a very unpleasant reception would have awaited them had they come on board drunk.
Well, after a long chat, the Scotsman and I finally lay down in the shade of a big rock and had a great sleep, waking up just before sunset. We hurried down to the beach near the town, where all my shipmates were sitting in a row, like lost sheep, waiting to be taken back on board. They had had enough of freedom; honestly, that kind of freedom wasn’t worth much. It seems hard to believe, but we were actually glad to get on board again since it was so miserable on land. The locals were really unfriendly at the port, and we couldn’t communicate, so there wasn’t much fun to be had. Even those who wanted to drink had too little for a party, which I didn’t mind, as they would have received a very unpleasant welcome if they had come on board drunk.
Next day the starboard watch went on liberty, while we who had received our share were told off to spend the day wooding and watering. In this most pleasant of occupations (when the weather is fine) I passed a much more satisfactory time than when wandering about with no objective, an empty pocket, and a hungry belly. No foremast hand has ever enjoyed his opportunities of making the acquaintance of his various visiting places more than I have; but the circumstances attendant upon one's leave must be a little favourable, or I would much rather stay aboard and fish. Our task was over for the day, a goodly store of wood and casks of water having been shipped. We were sitting down to supper, when, in answer to a hail from the beach, we were ordered to fetch the liberty men. When we got to them, there was a pretty how-d'ye-do. All of them were more or less drunk, some exceedingly quarrelsome. Now, Mistah Jones was steering our boat, looking as little like a man to take sauce from a drunken sailor as you could imagine. Most of the transformed crowd ya-hooing on the beach had felt the weight of his shoulder-of-mutton fist, yet so utterly had prudence forsaken them that, before we came near them, they were abusing him through all the varied gamut of filthy language they possessed. My democratic sentiments are deeply seated, but I do believe in authority, and respect for it being rigidly enforced, so this uncalled-for scene upset me, making me feel anxious that the gibbering fools might get a lesson. They got one.
The next day, the starboard crew went on leave, while those of us who had gotten our turn were assigned to spend the day gathering wood and fetching water. In this pleasant task (when the weather is nice), I had a much better time than when I was wandering around aimlessly, with an empty pocket and a hungry stomach. No foremast sailor has enjoyed the chance to explore different places more than I have; but the conditions for leave need to be somewhat favorable, or I’d rather just stay on the ship and fish. Our job for the day was done, having loaded a good supply of wood and casks of water. We were settling down for supper when, in response to a shout from the beach, we were ordered to bring back the liberty crew. Once we reached them, it was quite the scene. Most of them were quite drunk, some extremely confrontational. Now, Mr. Jones was steering our boat, looking as unfit as a man can be to take nonsense from a drunken sailor. Most of the raucous group shouting on the beach had felt the impact of his solid fist, yet so completely had common sense left them that, before we got close, they were hurling insults at him with all the nasty language they could muster. I have a strong belief in democracy, but I also believe in authority and think it should be strictly respected, so this unwarranted display upset me, making me worry that these babbling fools might need a lesson. They got one.
Goliath stood like a tower, his eyes alone betraying the fierce anger boiling within. When we touched the beach, his voice was mild end gentle as a child's, his movements calm and deliberate. As soon as we had beached the boat he stepped ashore, and in two strides was in the middle of the snarling group. Further parley ceased at once. Snatching the loudest of them by the breast of his shirt with his right hand, another one by the collar with his left, he flung himself backwards towards the boat, knocking the interveners right and left. But a protruding fragment of rock caught his heel, bringing him with his captives to the ground in a writhing mass. The rest, maddened beyond restraint of fear, flung themselves upon the prostrate man, the glimmer of more than one knife-blade appearing. Two of us from the boat—one with the tiller, the other brandishing a paddle—rushed to the rescue; but before we arrived the giant had heaved off his assailants, and, with no other weapons than his bare hands, was doing terrific execution among them. Not knowing, I suppose, whether we were friendly to him or not, he shouted to us to keep away, nor dare to interfere. There was no need. Disregarding such trifles as a few superficial cuts—not feeling them perhaps—he so unmercifully mauled that crowd that they howled again for mercy. The battle was brief and bloody. Before hostilities had lasted five minutes, six of the aggressors were stretched insensible; the rest, comprising as many more, were pleading for mercy, completely sober. Such prowess on the part of one man against twelve seems hardly credible; but it must be remembered that Goliath fought, with all the moral force of the ship's officers behind him, against a disorganized crowd without backbone, who would never have dared to face him but for the temporary mania induced by the stuff they had drunk. It was a conflict between a lion and a troop of jackals, whereof the issue was never in doubt as long as lethal weapons were wanting.
Goliath stood like a giant, his eyes revealing the intense anger building inside him. When we reached the beach, his voice was soft and gentle, like a child's, and his movements were steady and purposeful. As soon as we got the boat ashore, he stepped out and, in just two strides, was in the middle of the snarling group. The talking stopped immediately. Grabbing the loudest one by the front of his shirt with his right hand and another by the collar with his left, he pulled them back toward the boat, knocking aside anyone who got in his way. However, a sharp rock caught his heel, causing him and his captives to tumble to the ground in a tangled heap. The others, driven mad by fear, rushed at the downed man, and I could see more than one knife shining. Two of us from the boat—one holding the tiller and the other swinging a paddle—ran to help; but before we could reach him, the giant had thrown off his attackers and, with nothing but his bare hands, was devastating them. Not knowing if we were on his side or not, he yelled at us to stay back and not interfere. There was no need. Ignoring a few superficial cuts—probably not even feeling them—he brutalized that crowd until they cried out for mercy. The fight was quick and violent. In less than five minutes, six of the attackers were knocked out cold, while the rest—another six—were begging for mercy, completely sober. It's hard to believe one man could take on twelve, but it’s essential to remember that Goliath had the moral support of the ship's officers behind him, facing a disorganized mob without any courage, who would never have dared to confront him without the temporary madness sparked by what they had drunk. It was a clash between a lion and a pack of jackals, and the outcome was never in doubt as long as they didn't have real weapons.
Standing erect among the cowering creatures, the great negro looked every inch a mediaeval hero. In a stern voice he bade his subjugated enemies to get into the boat, assisting those to do so who were too badly hurt to rise. Then we shoved off for the ship—a sorrowful gang indeed.
Standing tall among the frightened creatures, the strong Black man looked just like a medieval hero. In a firm voice, he ordered his defeated enemies to get into the boat, helping those who were too injured to move. Then we pushed off toward the ship—a truly sorrowful group.
As I bent to my oar, I felt very sorry for what had happened. Here were half the crew guilty of an act of violence upon an officer, which, according to the severe code under which we lived, merited punishment as painful as could be inflicted, and lasting for the rest of the voyage. Whatever form that punishment might take, those of us who were innocent would be almost equal sufferers with the others, because discrimination in the treatment between watch and watch is always difficult, and in our case it was certain that it would not be attempted. Except as regarded physical violence, we might all expect to share alike. Undoubtedly things looked very unpleasant. My gloomy cogitations were abruptly terminated by the order to "unrow"—we were alongside. Somehow or other all hands managed to scramble on board, and assist in hoisting the boat up.
As I leaned on my oar, I felt really bad about what had happened. Half the crew was guilty of attacking an officer, which, based on the strict rules we followed, deserved punishment as harsh as possible and lasting for the rest of the journey. No matter what that punishment looked like, those of us who were innocent would suffer just as much as the others, because it's always hard to treat different groups differently, and in our case, it was clear that wouldn't even be attempted. Apart from physical violence, we all expected to share the consequences equally. Things definitely looked very grim. My gloomy thoughts were suddenly interrupted by the command to "unrow"—we had reached our destination. Somehow, everyone managed to scramble on board and help lift the boat up.
As soon as she was secured we slunk away forward, but we had hardly got below before a tremendous summons from Goliath brought us all aft again at the double quick. Most of the fracas had been witnessed from the ship, so that but a minute or two was needed to explain how or why it begun. Directly that explanation had been supplied by Mistah Jones, the order was issued for the culprits to appear.
As soon as she was secured, we quietly moved forward, but we had barely gotten below when a huge summons from Goliath had us all rushing back to the aft. Most of the commotion had been seen from the ship, so it only took a minute or two to explain how or why it started. Once Mistah Jones provided that explanation, the order was given for the culprits to show up.
I have before noticed how little love was lost between the skipper and his officers, Goliath having even once gone so far as to give me a very emphatic opinion of his about the "old man" of a most unflattering nature. And had such a state of things existed on board an English ship, the crew would simply have taken charge, for they would have seen the junior officers flouted, snubbed, and jeered at; and, of course, what they saw the captain do, they would not be slow to improve on. Many a promising young officer's career has been blighted in this way by the feminine spite of a foolish man unable to see that if the captain shows no respect to his officers, neither will the crew, nor obedience either.
I've noticed how little love there was between the captain and his officers. Goliath once even gave me a very strong opinion about the "old man" that was quite unflattering. If this kind of situation had happened on an English ship, the crew would have taken charge, seeing the junior officers being disrespected, mocked, and ridiculed. Naturally, they would quickly follow the captain's example. Many promising young officers have had their careers ruined by the petty spite of a foolish man who couldn’t understand that if the captain doesn’t respect his officers, neither will the crew—nor will they obey.
But in an American ship, so long as an officer remains an officer, he must be treated as such by every man, under pain of prompt punishment. Yankee skippers have far too much NOUS to allow their hands to grow saucy in consequence of division among the after-guard. So now a sort of court-martial was held upon the unfortunates who had dared to attack Goliath, at which that sable hero might have been the apple of Captain Slocum's eye, so solicitous was he of Mistah Jones' honour and the reparation to be made.
But on an American ship, as long as an officer holds that position, he must be treated as such by everyone, or face immediate punishment. Yankee captains are too smart to let their crew get cocky because of disagreements among the officers. So now, a kind of court-martial was conducted for those unfortunate souls who had dared to confront Goliath, at which that dark hero might have been the apple of Captain Slocum's eye, as he was very concerned about Mr. Jones' honor and the reparations that needed to be made.
This sort of thing was right in his line. Naturally cruel, he seemed to thoroughly enjoy himself in the prospect of making human beings twist and writhe in pain. Nor would he be baulked of a jot of his pleasure.
This kind of thing was right up his alley. Naturally cruel, he seemed to genuinely relish the idea of making people twist and writhe in pain. And he wouldn’t let anything stand in the way of his enjoyment.
Goliath approached him, and muttered a few words, meant, I felt sure, to appease him by letting him know how much they had suffered at his strong hands; but he turned upon the negro with a savage curse, bidding him be silent. Then every one of the culprits was stripped, and secured to the lash-rail by the wrists; scourges were made of cotton fish-line, knotted at intervals, and secured to a stout handle; the harpooners were told off as executioners, and the flogging began. Perhaps it was necessary for the maintenance of discipline—certainly it was trivial compared with the practice, till recently, in our own army and navy; but I am glad to say that, compelled to witness it, I felt quite sick—physically sick—trembling so in every limb that my legs would not support me. It was not fear, for I had nothing to fear had I been ever such a coward. Whatever it was, I am not sorry either to have felt it or to own it, even while I fully admit that for some forms of wickedness nothing but the lash seems adequate punishment.
Goliath walked up to him and whispered a few words, which I was sure were meant to calm him by letting him know how much they had suffered at his hands; but he turned on the black man with a vicious curse, telling him to shut up. Then every one of the offenders was stripped and tied to the lash-rail by their wrists; whips were made of cotton fish-line, knotted at intervals, and attached to a sturdy handle; the harpooners were assigned as executioners, and the whipping began. Maybe it was necessary to keep order—certainly it was minor compared to the practices, until recently, in our own military; but I’m glad to say that, forced to watch it, I felt completely sick—physically ill—trembling so much in every part of my body that my legs could barely hold me up. It wasn't fear, because I had nothing to fear even if I were the biggest coward. Whatever it was, I don’t regret feeling it or admitting it, even while I completely agree that for some kinds of evil, nothing but the whip seems like fitting punishment.
Some of the victims fainted, not being in the best condition at the outset for undergoing so severe a trial; but all were treated alike, buckets of salt water being flung over them. This drastic reviver, while adding to their pain, brought them all into a state of sufficient activity to get forward when they were released. Smarting and degraded, all their temporary bravado effectually banished, they were indeed pitiable objects, their deplorable state all the harder to bear from its contrast to our recent pleasure when we entertained the visiting crews.
Some of the victims fainted, not being in the best shape to handle such a harsh ordeal; but they were all treated the same, with buckets of salt water splashed on them. This harsh method, while adding to their suffering, revived them enough to move forward when they were set free. Stinging and humiliated, all their temporary bravado completely gone, they were truly pitiful figures, their terrible condition even harder to endure because it contrasted so starkly with the enjoyment we had recently when we hosted the visiting crews.
Having completed our quantum of wood, water, and fresh provisions for the officers, we got under way again for the fishing grounds. I did not see how we could hope for a successful season, knowing the utterly despondent state of the crew, which even affected the officers, who, not so callous or cruel as the skipper, seemed to be getting rather tired of the constant drive and kick, now the normal condition of affairs. But the skipper's vigilance was great. Whether he noted any sign of slackness or indifference on the part of his coadjutors or not, of course I cannot say, but he certainly seemed to put more vigour into his attentions than had been his wont, and so kept everybody up to the mark.
Having gathered our supply of wood, water, and fresh food for the officers, we set off again for the fishing grounds. I couldn’t see how we could expect a successful season, knowing how hopeless the crew felt, which even influenced the officers. They, not being as heartless or mean as the captain, seemed to be getting pretty tired of the constant pressure and harsh treatment, which had become the norm. But the captain was very watchful. Whether he noticed any signs of laziness or indifference from his crew or not, I can’t say, but he definitely seemed to put more energy into his oversight than usual, keeping everyone on their toes.
Hitherto we had always had our fishing to ourselves; we were now to see something of the ways of other men employed in the same manner. For though the general idea or plan of campaign against the whales is the same in all American whalers, every ship has some individual peculiarity of tactics, which, needless to say, are always far superior to those of any other ship. When we commenced our cruise on this new ground, there were seven whalers in sight, all quite as keen on the chase as ourselves, so that I anticipated considerable sport of the liveliest kind should we "raise" whales with such a fleet close at hand.
Until now, we had always had our fishing spots to ourselves; we were about to see how other people worked in the same way. While the overall strategy for hunting whales is similar among all American whalers, each ship has its own specific tactics that, of course, are always considered better than those of any other ship. When we started our journey in this new area, there were seven whalers visible, all just as eager for the chase as we were, so I expected a lot of exciting action if we spotted whales with such a fleet nearby.
But for a whole week we saw nothing but a grampus or so, a few loitering finbacks, and an occasional lean humpback bull certainly not worth chasing. On the seventh afternoon, however, I was in the main crow's-nest with the chief, when I noticed a ship to windward of us alter her course, keeping away three or four points on an angle that would presently bring her across our bows a good way ahead. I was getting pretty well versed in the tricks of the trade now, so I kept mum, but strained my eyes in the direction for which the other ship was steering. The chief was looking astern at some finbacks, the look-out men forward were both staring to leeward, thus for a minute or so I had a small arc of the horizon to myself. The time was short, but it sufficed, and for the first time that voyage I had the privilege of "raising" a sperm whale. My voice quivered with excitement as I uttered the war-whoop, "Ah blo-o-o-o-w!" Round spun the mate on his heel, while the hands clustered like bees roused from their hive. "Where away—where?" gasped the mate. And I pointed to a spot about half a point on the lee bow, at the same time calling his attention to the fact that the stranger to windward was keeping away. In answer to the skipper's hurried queries from below, Mr. Count gave him the general outline of affairs, to which he replied by crowding every stitch of canvas on the vessel that was available.
But for a whole week, we saw nothing but a grampus or two, a few lazy finbacks, and an occasional thin humpback bull that definitely wasn't worth chasing. On the seventh afternoon, though, I was in the main crow's-nest with the chief when I noticed a ship to windward change her course, veering away three or four points on an angle that would soon bring her across our path a good way ahead. I was getting pretty familiar with the tricks of the trade, so I stayed quiet but strained my eyes in the direction the other ship was headed. The chief was looking back at some finbacks, and the look-out men forward were both staring to leeward, so for a minute or so, I had a small slice of the horizon all to myself. The time was short, but it was enough, and for the first time on this voyage, I got to "spot" a sperm whale. My voice shook with excitement as I shouted, "Ah blo-o-o-o-w!" The mate spun around on his heel, and the crew gathered like bees disturbed from their hive. "Where away—where?" the mate gasped. I pointed to a spot about half a point on the lee bow, while also calling his attention to the fact that the stranger to windward was moving away. In response to the captain’s hurried questions from below, Mr. Count quickly gave him the general situation, and the captain replied by hoisting every available piece of sail on the vessel.
The spout I had seen was a good ten miles off, and, for the present, seemed to belong to a "lone" whale, as it was the only one visible. There was a good breeze blowing, as much, in fact, as we could carry all sail to, the old barky making a tremendous commotion as she blundered along under the unusual press of canvas. In the excitement of the race all our woes were forgotten; we only thought of the possibility of the ship getting there first. We drew gradually nearer to the stranger, who, like us, was carrying all the sail he had got, but, being able to go a point or two free, was outsailing us.
The spout I saw was a good ten miles away and, for now, seemed to belong to a "lone" whale, as it was the only one in sight. There was a nice breeze blowing, as much as we could handle with all sails out, the old ship making a huge racket as it clumsily moved along under the extra canvas. In the excitement of the race, we forgot all our problems; we only thought about the possibility of reaching it first. We gradually got closer to the whale, which, like us, was using all the sail it had, but since it could sail a point or two freer, it was pulling ahead of us.
It was anybody's race as yet, though, when we heard the skipper's hail, "'Way down from aloft!" as he came up to take our place, The whale had sounded, apparently heading to leeward, so that the weather-gage held by our rival was not much advantage to him now. We ran on for another two miles, then shortened sail, and stood by to lower away the moment he should re-appear, Meanwhile another ship was working up from to leeward, having evidently noted our movements, or else, like the albatross, "smelt whale," no great distance to windward of him. Waiting for that whale to rise was one of the most exciting experiences we had gone through as yet, with two other ships so near. Everybody's nerves seemed strung up to concert pitch, and it was quite a relief when from half a dozen throats at once burst the cry, "There she white-waters! Ah blo-o-o-o-w!" Not a mile away, dead to leeward of us, quietly beating the water with the flat of his flukes, as if there was no such thing in the watery world as a whale-ship. Splash! almost simultaneously went the four boats. Out we shot from the ship, all on our mettle; for was not the skipper's eye upon us from his lofty eyrie, as well as the crew of the other ship, now not more than a mile away! We seemed a terrible time getting the sails up, but the officers dared not risk our willingness to pull while they could be independent of us.
It was still anyone's race when we heard the captain shout, "'Way down from aloft!" as he came up to take our place. The whale had gone deep, seemingly heading downwind, so the advantage our rival had was less significant now. We continued for another two miles, then reduced our sails and prepared to lower them the moment the whale resurfaced. Meanwhile, another ship was moving up from downwind, clearly having noticed what we were doing, or maybe like the albatross, had "smelled whale" from not too far away. Waiting for that whale to rise was one of the most thrilling experiences we had gone through so far, with two other ships so close. Everyone's nerves seemed to be at a breaking point, and it was such a relief when a chorus of voices erupted, "There she is! Ah blo-o-o-o-w!" Not even a mile away, directly downwind from us, the whale was calmly beating the water with its tail, as if there wasn’t a whale ship in sight. Splash! Almost at the same time, the four boats went out. We shot away from the ship, all focused and ready; after all, the captain was watching us from his high perch, along with the crew of the other ship, now just about a mile away! It felt like we took forever getting the sails up, but the officers didn’t want to risk our eagerness to pull while they could still manage without us.
By the time we were fairly off, the other ship's boats were coming like the wind, so that eight boats were now converging upon the unconscious monster. We fairly flew over the short, choppy sea, getting drenched with the flying spray, but looking out far more keenly at the other boats than at the whale. Up we came to him, Mr. Count's boat to the left, the other mate's boat to the right. Almost at the same moment the irons flew from the hands of the rival harpooners; but while ours was buried to the hitches in the whale's side, the other man's just ploughed up the skin on the animal's back, as it passed over him and pierced our boat close behind the harpooner's leg. Not seeing what had happened to his iron, or knowing that we were fast, the other harpooner promptly hurled his second iron, which struck solidly. It was a very pretty tangle, but our position was rather bad. The whale between us was tearing the bowels of the deep up in his rage and fear; we were struggling frantically to get our sail down; and at any moment that wretched iron through our upper strake might tear a plank out of us. Our chief, foaming at the mouth with rage and excitement, was screeching inarticulate blasphemy at the other mate, who, not knowing what was the matter, was yelling back all his copious vocabulary of abuse. I felt very glad the whale was between us, or there would surely have been murder done. At last, out drops the iron, leaving a jagged hole you could put your arm through. Wasn't Mr. Count mad? I really thought he would split with rage, for it was impossible for us to go on with that hole in our bilge. The second mate came alongside and took our line as the whale was just commencing to sound, thus setting us free. We made at once for the other ship's "fast" boat, and the compliments that had gone before were just casual conversation to what filled the air with dislocated language now. Presently both the champions cooled down a bit from want of breath, and we got our case stated. It was received with a yell of derision from the other side as a splendid effort of lying on our part; because the first ship fast claims the whale, and such a prize as this one we were quarrelling about was not to be tamely yielded.
By the time we had gotten away, the other ship's boats were racing over, so that eight boats were now heading toward the unconscious whale. We tore across the short, choppy sea, getting soaked with the spray, but focusing much more on the other boats than on the whale. We approached him, Mr. Count's boat to the left, the other mate's boat to the right. Almost simultaneously, the harpooners launched their harpoons; ours sank deep into the whale's side, while the other one just scraped the skin on its back and struck our boat right behind the harpooner's leg. The other harpooner, not realizing what had happened to his harpoon or knowing we were attached, quickly threw his second harpoon, which hit solidly. It turned into quite a mess, but our situation was pretty bad. The whale thrashing between us was churning up the ocean in its rage and fear; we were frantically trying to lower our sail; and at any moment, that unfortunate harpoon could rip a plank from our ship. Our leader, furious and excited, was shouting incoherent curses at the other mate, who, not understanding what was going on, was shouting back his own barrage of insults. I was really thankful the whale was between us; otherwise, it would have definitely turned violent. Finally, the harpoon came loose, creating a jagged hole big enough to fit your arm through. Wasn't Mr. Count furious? I honestly thought he would explode with rage because there was no way we could continue with that gaping hole in our hull. The second mate came alongside and took our line just as the whale started to dive, freeing us. We immediately headed for the other ship's "fast" boat, and the insults flying around now were just a casual warm-up compared to what followed. Eventually, both sides calmed down a bit from exhaustion, and we explained our case. It was met with a yell of mockery from the other side as a brilliant display of lying on our part; the first ship to secure the whale claims it, and a catch like this one we were arguing over wasn’t going to be given up easily.
However, as reason asserted her sway over Mr. Count, he quieted down, knowing full well that the state of the line belonging to his rival would reveal the truth when the whale rose again. Therefore we returned to the ship, leaving our three boats busy waiting the whale's pleasure to rise again. When the skipper heard what had happened, he had his own boat manned, proceeding himself to the battle-field in expectation of complications presently. By the time he arrived upon the scene there were two more boats lying by, which had come up from the third ship, mentioned as working up from to leeward. "Pretty fine ground this's got ter be!" growled the old man. "Caint strike whale 'thout bein' crowded eout uv yer own propputty by a gang bunco steerers like this. Shall hev ter quit it, en keep a pawnshop."
However, as reason took control over Mr. Count, he calmed down, fully aware that the condition of his rival's line would reveal the truth when the whale surfaced again. So we went back to the ship, leaving our three boats busy waiting for the whale to show itself once more. When the skipper learned what had happened, he had his own boat crewed and went to the battle scene, anticipating complications soon. By the time he arrived, two more boats from the third ship had joined, coming up from downwind. "This is going to be a mess!" grumbled the old man. "Can't catch a whale without getting pushed out of your own territory by a bunch of con artists like this. Might as well quit and open a pawn shop."
And still the whale kept going steadily down, down, down. Already he was on the second boat's lines, and taking them out faster than ever. Had we been alone, this persistence on his part, though annoying, would not have mattered much; but, with so many others in company, the possibilities of complication, should we need to slip our end, were numerous. The ship kept near, and Mr. Count, seeing how matters were going, had hastily patched his boat, returning at once with another tub of line. He was but just in time to bend on, when to our great delight we saw the end slip from our rival's boat. This in no wise terminated his lien on the whale, supposing he could prove that he struck first, but it got him out of the way for the time.
And still the whale kept diving deeper and deeper. He was already on the second boat's lines, pulling them out faster than ever. If we had been alone, his persistence, though frustrating, wouldn't have mattered much; but with so many others around, the risks of complications, if we needed to cut our end, were high. The ship stayed close, and Mr. Count, seeing how things were unfolding, quickly fixed his boat and returned with another coil of line. He arrived just in time to attach it when, to our great relief, we saw the end slide from our competitor's boat. This didn't end his claim on the whale, assuming he could prove that he struck first, but it got him out of the way for now.
Meanwhile we were running line faster than ever. There was an enormous length attached to the animal now—some twelve thousand feet—the weight of which was very great, to say nothing of the many "drogues" or "stopwaters" attached to it at intervals. Judge, then, of my surprise when a shout of "Blo-o-o-w!" called my attention to the whale himself just breaking water about half a mile away. It was an awkward predicament; for if we let go our end, the others would be on the whale immediately; if we held on, we should certainly be dragged below in a twinkling; and our disengaged boats could do nothing, for they had no line. But the difficulty soon settled itself. Out ran our end, leaving us bare of line as pleasure skiffs. The newcomer, who had been prowling near, keeping a close watch upon us, saw our boat jump up when released from the weight. Off he flew like an arrow to the labouring leviathan, now a "free fish," except for such claims as the two first-comers had upon it, which claims are legally assessed, where no dispute arises. In its disabled condition, dragging so enormous a weight of line, it was but a few minutes before the fresh boat was fast, while we looked on helplessly, boiling with impotent rage. All that we could now hope for was the salvage of some of our line, a mile and a half of which, inextricably mixed up with about the same length of our rival's, was towing astern of the fast-expiring cachalot.
Meanwhile, we were running the line faster than ever. There was an enormous length attached to the animal now—about twelve thousand feet—which was incredibly heavy, not to mention the many "drogues" or "stopwaters" attached at intervals. Imagine my surprise when a shout of "Blo-o-o-w!" caught my attention, and I saw the whale just breaking water about half a mile away. It was an awkward situation; if we let go of our end, the others would be on the whale immediately. If we held on, we would definitely be dragged under in an instant, and our disengaged boats could do nothing because they had no line. But the problem soon resolved itself. Our end ran out, leaving us without any line like pleasure skiffs. The newcomer, who had been lurking nearby and keeping a close watch on us, saw our boat jump up when released from the weight. Off he shot like an arrow to the struggling leviathan, now a "free fish," except for the claims that the first two boats had on it, which are legally assessed when there are no disputes. In its disabled state, dragging such an enormous weight of line, it was only a few minutes before the fresh boat was fast, while we looked on helplessly, seething with impotent rage. All we could hope for now was to salvage some of our line, a mile and a half of which was hopelessly tangled up with about the same length of our rival's, trailing behind the almost-dead cachalot.
So great had been the strain upon that hardly-used animal that he did not go into his usual "flurry," but calmly expired without the faintest struggle. In the mean time two of our boats had been sent on board again to work the ship, while the skipper proceeded to try his luck in the recovery of his gear. On arriving at the dead whale, however, we found that he had rolled over and over beneath the water so many times that the line was fairly frapped round him, and the present possessors were in no mood to allow us the privilege of unrolling it.
The strain on that rarely-used animal was so intense that it didn’t go into its usual "flurry," but instead just quietly died without any struggle. In the meantime, two of our boats had been sent back on board to operate the ship, while the captain went to try to recover his gear. However, when we reached the dead whale, we discovered that it had rolled around in the water so many times that the line was tightly wrapped around it, and the current owners weren't willing to let us untangle it.
During the conversation we had drawn very near the carcass, so near, in fact, that one hand was holding the boat alongside the whale's "small" by a bight of the line. I suppose the skipper's eagle eye must have caught sight of the trailing part of the line streaming beneath, for suddenly he plunged overboard, reappearing almost immediately with the line in his hand. He scrambled into the boat with it, cutting it from the whale at once, and starting his boat's crew hauling in.
During our conversation, we had gotten very close to the carcass, so close that one hand was holding the boat next to the whale’s "small" with a loop of the line. I guess the skipper’s sharp eye must have spotted the trailing part of the line underneath, because suddenly he jumped overboard and popped up almost immediately with the line in his hand. He scrambled back into the boat with it, cutting it from the whale right away and getting his crew to start hauling it in.
Then there was a hubbub again. The captain of the NARRAGANSETT, our first rival, protested vigorously against our monopoly of the line; but in grim silence our skipper kept on, taking no notice of him, while we steadily hauled. Unless he of the NARRAGANSETT choose to fight for what he considered his rights, there was no help for him. And there was something in our old man's appearance eminently calculated to discourage aggression of any kind.
Then there was a commotion again. The captain of the NARRAGANSETT, our first rival, protested loudly against our control of the route; but our skipper kept going in grim silence, ignoring him, while we steadily pulled. Unless the captain of the NARRAGANSETT decided to fight for what he thought were his rights, there was nothing he could do. And there was something about our old man’s presence that was highly effective at discouraging any kind of aggression.
At last, disgusted apparently with the hopeless turn affairs had taken, the NARRAGANSETT's boats drew off, and returned on board their ship. Two of our boats had by this time accumulated a mountainous coil of line each, with which we returned to our own vessel, leaving the skipper to visit the present holder of the whale, the skipper of the JOHN HAMPDEN.
At last, clearly fed up with how hopeless things had become, the NARRAGANSETT's boats pulled away and went back to their ship. By this time, two of our boats had gathered a huge pile of line each, and we headed back to our own vessel, leaving the captain to talk to the current owner of the whale, the captain of the JOHN HAMPDEN.
What arrangements they made, or how they settled the NARRAGANSETT's claim between them, I never knew, but I dare say there was a costly law-suit about it in New Bedford years after.
What agreements they came up with, or how they worked out the NARRAGANSETT's claim between them, I never found out, but I can imagine there was an expensive lawsuit about it in New Bedford years later.
This was not very encouraging for a start, nor did the next week see us do any better. Several times we saw other ships with whales alongside, but we got no show at all. Now, I had hoped a great deal from our cruise on these grounds, because I had heard whispers of a visit to the icy Sea of Okhotsk, and the prospect was to me a horrible one. I never did take any stock in Arctic work. But if we made a good season on the Japan grounds, we should not go north, but gradually work down the Pacific again, on the other side, cruising as we went.
This wasn’t very promising to start, and the following week didn’t go any better. We saw other ships with whales nearby several times, but we didn’t have any luck at all. I had high hopes for our trip in these waters because I had heard hints about a trip to the icy Sea of Okhotsk, which sounded terrible to me. I never really believed in Arctic work. However, if we had a successful season in the Japan area, we wouldn’t head north but instead gradually make our way back down the Pacific on the other side, cruising along the way.
Day after day went by without any fresh capture or even sight of fish, until I began to believe that the stories I had heard of the wonderful fecundity of the Coast of Japan waters were fables without foundation, in fact. Had I known what sort of fishing our next bout would be, I should not have been so eager to sight whales again. If this be not a platitude of the worst kind, I don't know the meaning of the word; but, after all, platitudes have their uses, especially when you want to state a fact baldly.
Day after day passed without any new catches or even a glimpse of fish, until I started to think that the stories I had heard about the amazing abundance of the waters off the Coast of Japan were just made up. If I had known what kind of fishing our next trip would involve, I wouldn't have been so eager to see whales again. If this isn't a cliché of the worst kind, I don't know what is; but still, clichés have their purpose, especially when you want to state a fact plainly.
CHAPTER XV. WHICH COMES UNCOMFORTABLY NEAR BEING THE LAST
All unversed as I am in the finer shades of literary craftsmanship, there is great uncertainty in my mind whether it is good or bad "art" to anticipate your next chapter by foreshadowing its contents; but whether good or bad art, the remembrance of my miseries on the eventful occasion I wish to describe was so strong upon me as I wrote the last few lines of the previous chapter that I just had to let those few words leak out.
All inexperienced as I am in the subtleties of literary skill, I'm not sure if it's good or bad "art" to hint at what happens in your next chapter; but regardless of whether it’s good or bad art, the memory of my struggles during that significant moment I want to describe was so vivid in my mind as I wrote the last few lines of the previous chapter that I felt I had to let those few words slip out.
Through all the vicissitudes of this strange voyage I had hitherto felt pretty safe, and as the last thing a man anticipates (if his digestion is all right) is the possibility of coming to grief himself while fully prepared to see everybody else go under, so I had got to think that whoever got killed I was not to be—a very pleasing sentiment, and one that carries a man far, enabling him to face dangers with a light heart which otherwise would make a nerveless animal of him.
Through all the ups and downs of this strange journey, I had felt pretty safe. Just like how a person doesn’t expect to get hurt themselves when they’re fully prepared to watch everyone else struggle (as long as their digestion is fine), I started to believe that no matter who got killed, it wouldn’t be me. That was a comforting thought, and it helped me a lot, allowing me to face dangers with a light heart, which otherwise would have left me feeling paralyzed with fear.
In this optimistic mood, then, I gaily flung myself into my place in the mate's boat one morning, as we were departing in chase of a magnificent cachalot that had been raised just after breakfast. There were no other vessels in sight—much to our satisfaction—the wind was light, with a cloudless sky, and the whale was dead to leeward of us. We sped along at a good rate towards our prospective victim, who was, in his leisurely enjoyment of life, calmly lolling on the surface, occasionally lifting his enormous tail out of water and letting it fall flat upon the surface with a boom audible for miles.
In this cheerful mood, I happily jumped into my spot in the mate's boat one morning as we set off in pursuit of a magnificent sperm whale that had been spotted just after breakfast. There were no other ships in sight—much to our delight—the wind was light, the sky was clear, and the whale was downwind from us. We moved quickly toward our intended target, who, in his relaxed enjoyment of life, was peacefully floating on the surface, occasionally lifting his massive tail out of the water and letting it crash back down with a sound that could be heard for miles.
We were as usual, first boat; but, much to the mate's annoyance, when we were a short half-mile from the whale, our main-sheet parted. It became immediately necessary to roll the sail up, lest its flapping should alarm the watchful monster, and this delayed us sufficiently to allow the other boats to shoot ahead of us. Thus the second mate got fast some seconds before we arrived on the scene, seeing which we furled sail, unshipped the mast, and went in on him with the oars only. At first the proceedings were quite of the usual character, our chief wielding his lance in most brilliant fashion, while not being fast to the animal allowed us much greater freedom in our evolutions; but that fatal habit of the mate's—of allowing his boat to take care of herself so long as he was getting in some good home-thrusts—once more asserted itself. Although the whale was exceedingly vigorous, churning the sea into yeasty foam over an enormous area, there we wallowed close to him, right in the middle of the turmoil, actually courting disaster.
We were the first boat as usual, but much to the mate's frustration, when we were just half a mile from the whale, our main-sheet broke. We quickly had to roll up the sail to avoid alarming the watchful creature, and this delay let the other boats move ahead of us. As a result, the second mate got his line in before we arrived, so we furled the sail, removed the mast, and went at it with just the oars. At first, everything went according to plan, with our chief expertly wielding his lance, and since we weren't tied to the whale, we had more freedom to maneuver. But that dangerous habit of the mate—letting his boat drift as long as he was scoring some good hits—reared its head again. Even though the whale was thrashing around violently, creating a frothy mess over a huge area, we hung around right in the middle of the chaos, practically asking for trouble.
He had just settled down for a moment, when, glancing over the gunwale, I saw his tail, like a vast shadow, sweeping away from us towards the second mate, who was laying off the other side of him. Before I had time to think, the mighty mass of gristle leapt into the sunshine, curved back from us like a huge bow. Then with a roar it came at us, released from its tension of Heaven knows how many tons. Full on the broadside it struck us, sending every soul but me flying out of the wreckage as if fired from catapults. I did not go because my foot was jammed somehow in the well of the boat, but the wrench nearly pulled my thigh-bone out of its socket. I had hardly released my foot, when, towering above me, came the colossal head of the great creature, as he ploughed through the bundle of debris that had just been a boat. There was an appalling roar of water in my ears, and darkness that might be felt all around. Yet, in the midst of it all, one thought predominated as clearly as if I had been turning it over in my mind in the quiet of my bunk aboard—"What if he should swallow me?" Nor to this day can I understand how I escaped the portals of his gullet, which of course gaped wide as a church door. But the agony of holding my breath soon overpowered every other feeling and thought, till just as something was going to snap inside my head I rose to the surface. I was surrounded by a welter of bloody froth, which made it impossible for me to see; but oh, the air was sweet!
He had just settled in for a moment when I glanced over the side and saw his tail, like a huge shadow, sweeping away from us toward the second mate, who was lying on the other side of him. Before I could think, the massive mass of flesh leaped into the sunlight, curving away from us like a giant bow. Then, with a roar, it came at us, releasing a tension of who-knows-how-many tons. It hit us hard on the side, sending everyone but me flying out of the wreckage as if they were shot from catapults. I stayed put because my foot was somehow jammed in the well of the boat, but the force nearly pulled my thigh bone out of its socket. I had barely freed my foot when the enormous head of the great creature appeared above me, plowing through the debris that had just been a boat. There was a terrifying roar of water in my ears and a darkness that felt tangible around me. Yet, in the midst of all this chaos, one thought stood out as clearly as if I were mulling it over in the calm of my bunk—“What if he swallows me?” To this day, I can’t understand how I escaped the gaping maw that was as wide as a church door. But the agony of holding my breath soon overwhelmed every other feeling and thought until, just as something was about to snap inside my head, I broke the surface. I was surrounded by a mess of bloody foam, which made it impossible to see; but oh, the air was sweet!
I struck out blindly, instinctively, although I could feel so strong an eddy that voluntary progress was out of the question. My hand touched and clung to a rope, which immediately towed me in some direction—I neither knew nor cared whither. Soon the motion ceased, and, with a seaman's instinct, I began to haul myself along by the rope I grasped, although no definite idea was in my mind as to where it was attached. Presently I came butt up against something solid, the feel of which gathered all my scattered wits into a compact knub of dread. It was the whale! "Any port in a storm," I murmured, beginning to haul away again on my friendly line. By dint of hard work I pulled myself right up the sloping, slippery bank of blubber, until I reached the iron, which, as luck would have it, was planted in that side of the carcass now uppermost. Carcass I said—well, certainly I had no idea of there being any life remaining within the vast mass beneath me, yet I had hardly time to take a couple of turns round myself with the rope (or whale-line, as I had proved it to be), when I felt the great animal quiver all over, and begin to forge ahead. I was now composed enough to remember that help could not be far away, and that my rescue, providing that I could keep above water, was but a question of a few minutes. But I was hardly prepared for the whale's next move. Being very near his end, the boat, or boats, had drawn off a bit, I supposed, for I could see nothing of them. Then I remembered the flurry. Almost at the same moment it began; and there was I, who with fearful admiration had so often watched the titanic convulsions of a dying cachalot, actually involved in them. The turns were off my body, but I was able to twist a couple of turns round my arms, which, in case of his sounding, I could readily let go.
I struck out blindly, on instinct, even though I could feel such a strong current that any controlled movement was impossible. My hand found and grabbed onto a rope, which quickly pulled me in some direction—I didn’t know or care where it was. Soon the movement stopped, and with a sailor's instinct, I began to pull myself along the rope I held, though I had no clear idea of where it was connected. Eventually, I came up hard against something solid, the sensation of which gathered all my scattered thoughts into a tight ball of fear. It was the whale! “Any port in a storm,” I muttered, starting to pull on my lifeline again. By working hard, I managed to haul myself up the sloping, slick surface of blubber until I reached the iron, which, as luck would have it, was embedded in the side of the carcass that was now on top. Carcass—I mean, I had no reason to believe there was still any life left in the enormous mass beneath me, but I barely had time to wrap the rope (or whale-line, as I had confirmed it to be) around myself a couple of times when I felt the massive animal tremble all over and start to move forward. I was calm enough now to remember that help couldn’t be far away, and that as long as I could stay above water, my rescue was just a matter of a few minutes. But I was hardly ready for the whale's next move. Being close to its end, the boat or boats must have pulled away a bit, I figured, since I couldn’t see them. Then I recalled the commotion. Almost immediately, it started; and there I was, who had often watched in awe the massive convulsions of a dying sperm whale, actually caught up in them. The turns were off my body, but I managed to twist a couple of turns around my arms, which, in case he dove, I could easily let go of.
Then all was lost in roar and rush, as of the heart of some mighty cataract, during which I was sometimes above, sometimes beneath, the water, but always clinging with every ounce of energy still left, to the line. Now, one thought was uppermost—"What if he should breach?" I had seen them do so when in flurry, leaping full twenty feet in the air. Then I prayed.
Then everything was lost in a deafening crash and chaos, like the heart of some massive waterfall, during which I was sometimes above and sometimes below the water, but always holding on with every ounce of energy I had left to the line. One thought dominated my mind—"What if he breaks free?" I had seen them do that in a frenzy, jumping a full twenty feet in the air. Then I prayed.
Quickly as all the preceding changes had passed came perfect peace. There I lay, still alive, but so weak that, although I could feel the turns slipping off my arms, and knew that I should slide off the slope of the whale's side into the sea if they did, I could make no effort to secure myself. Everything then passed away from me, just as if I had gone to sleep.
Quickly, right after all those changes, complete peace came over me. There I was, still alive, but so weak that even though I could feel the ropes slipping off my arms and knew I would slide off the whale's side into the sea if they did, I couldn't do anything to hold on. Everything faded away from me, just like I was falling asleep.
I do not at all understand how I kept my position, nor how long, but I awoke to the blessed sound of voices, and saw the second mate's boat alongside, Very gently and tenderly they lifted me into the boat, although I could hardly help screaming with agony when they touched me, so bruised and broken up did I feel. My arms must have been nearly torn from their sockets, for the strands of the whale-line had cut deep into their flesh with the strain upon it, while my thigh was swollen enormously from the blow I received at the onset. Mr. Cruce was the most surprised man I think I ever saw. For full ten minutes he stared at me with wide-open eyes. When at last he spoke, it was with difficulty, as if wanting words to express his astonishment. At last he blurted out, "Whar you bin all de time, ennyhaow? 'Cawse ef you bin hangin' on to dat ar wale ev'sence you boat smash, w'y de debbil you hain't all ter bits, hey?" I smiled feebly, but was too weak to talk, and presently went off again into a dead faint.
I really don’t understand how I kept my position or for how long, but I woke up to the blessed sound of voices and saw the second mate’s boat alongside. They gently and carefully lifted me into the boat, although I could hardly help screaming in pain when they touched me; I felt so bruised and broken. My arms must have been nearly torn from their sockets because the whale-line had cut deep into my flesh from the strain, while my thigh was hugely swollen from the blow I took at the start. Mr. Cruce looked like the most surprised man I’ve ever seen. He stared at me with wide-open eyes for a full ten minutes. When he finally spoke, it was with difficulty, as if he struggled to find the words to express his astonishment. Finally, he blurted out, “Where you been all this time, anyway? ‘Cause if you’ve been hanging on to that whale while your boat got smashed, why the hell aren’t you all to pieces, huh?” I smiled weakly but was too tired to talk, and soon I fainted again.
When I recovered, I was snug in my bunk aboard, but aching in every joint, and as sore as if I had been pounded with a club until I was bruised all over. During the day Mr. Count was kind enough to pay me a visit. With his usual luck, he had escaped without the slightest injury; neither was any other member of the boat's crew the worse for the ducking but myself. He told me that the whale was one of the largest he had ever seen, and as fat as butter. The boat was an entire loss, so completely smashed to pieces that nothing of her or her gear had been recovered. After spending about a quarter of an hour with me, he left me considerably cheered up, promising to look after me in the way of food, and also to send me some books. He told me that I need not worry myself about my inability to be at work, because the old man was not unfavourably disposed towards me, which piece of news gave me a great deal of comfort.
When I woke up, I was cozy in my bunk on the ship, but every joint hurt, and I felt as sore as if I had been beaten with a club until I was bruised all over. During the day, Mr. Count was nice enough to come and see me. With his usual luck, he had come through without a scratch; no one else on the crew was worse off from the incident except me. He told me that the whale was one of the biggest he had ever seen, and it was as fat as butter. The boat was a total loss, completely smashed to pieces, so much so that nothing from it or its gear could be salvaged. After spending about fifteen minutes with me, he left me feeling much better, promising to take care of my meals and send me some books. He assured me that I shouldn’t worry about not being able to work, because the captain wasn’t upset with me, which really made me feel a lot better.
When my poor, weary shipmates came below from their heavy toil of cutting in, they were almost inclined to be envious of my comfort—small blame to them—though I would gladly have taken my place among them again, could I have got rid of my hurts. But I was condemned to lie there for nearly three weeks before I was able to get about once more. In my sleep I would undergo the horrible anticipation of sliding down that awful, cavernous mouth over again, often waking with a shriek and drenched with sweat.
When my tired shipmates came below after their hard work of cutting in, they seemed a bit envious of my comfort—who could blame them?—even though I would have happily joined them again if I could have shaken off my injuries. But I was stuck lying there for almost three weeks before I could move around again. In my sleep, I would relive the terrifying anticipation of sliding down that dreadful, gaping mouth, often waking up with a scream and drenched in sweat.
While I lay there, three whales were caught, all small cows, and I was informed that the skipper was getting quite disgusted with the luck. At last I managed to get on deck, quite a different-looking man to when I went below, and feeling about ten years older. I found the same sullen quiet reigning that I had noticed several times before when we were unfortunate. I fancied that the skipper looked more morose and savage than ever, though of me, to my great relief, he took not the slightest notice.
While I was lying there, three small whales were caught, and I was told that the captain was getting pretty fed up with the luck. Finally, I made it up on deck, looking like a completely different person than when I went below, and feeling about ten years older. I found the same gloomy silence that I had noticed several times before when things weren’t going well. I thought the captain looked even more grim and fierce than ever, but thankfully, he didn’t pay me any attention at all.
The third day after my return to duty we sighted whales again. We lowered three boats as promptly as usual; but when within about half a mile of the "pod" some slight noise in one of the boats gallied them, and away they went in the wind's eye, it blowing a stiffish breeze at the time, It was from the first evidently a hopeless task to chase them, but we persevered until recalled to the ship, dead beat with fatigue. I was not sorry, for my recent adventure seemed to have made quite a coward of me, so much so that an unpleasant gnawing at the pit of my stomach as we neared them almost made me sick. I earnestly hoped that so inconvenient a feeling would speedily leave me, or I should be but a poor creature in a boat.
The third day after I returned to duty, we spotted whales again. We quickly launched three boats as usual, but when we got about half a mile from the "pod," some noise from one of the boats startled them, and away they went into the wind, which was blowing pretty hard at the time. It was clear from the start that chasing them was a lost cause, but we kept at it until we were called back to the ship, completely exhausted. I wasn’t upset about it, though, because my recent adventure had made me quite anxious, to the point where an uncomfortable feeling in my stomach as we approached them almost made me feel sick. I really hoped that this annoying sensation would go away soon, or I’d be useless in a boat.
In passing, I would like to refer to the wonderful way in which these whales realize at a great distance, if the slightest sound be made, the presence of danger. I do not use the word "hear" because so abnormally small are their organs of hearing, the external opening being quite difficult to find, that I do not believe they can hear at all well. But I firmly believe they possess another sense by means of which they are able to detect any unusual vibration of the waves of either air or sea at a far greater distance than it would be possible for them to hear, Whatever this power may be which they possess, all whalemen are well acquainted with their exercise of it, and always take most elaborate precautions to render their approach to a whale noiseless.
I want to mention the amazing way these whales can sense danger from a great distance when even the slightest sound is made. I don’t use the word "hear" because their hearing organs are so small—it's quite hard to find their external openings—that I don’t think they hear very well at all. However, I strongly believe they have another sense that allows them to pick up on any unusual vibrations in the waves of air or sea from much farther away than they could hear. Whatever this ability is, every whaleman knows about it and always takes great care to approach a whale quietly.
Our extraordinary want of success at last so annoyed the skipper that he determined to quit the ground and go north. The near approach of the open season in those regions probably hastened his decision, but I learned from Goliath that he had always been known as a most fortunate man among the "bowheads," as the great MYSTICETAE of that part of the Arctic seas are called by the Americans. Not that there is any difference, as far as I have been able to ascertain, between them and the "right" whale of the Greenland seas, but from some caprice of nomenclature for which there is no accounting.
Our lack of success finally frustrated the captain so much that he decided to leave the area and head north. The impending open season in those regions likely sped up his decision, but I learned from Goliath that he had always been known as a very lucky man among the "bowheads," which is what the great MYSTICETAE in that part of the Arctic are called by Americans. It's not that there's any difference, as far as I can tell, between them and the "right" whale of the Greenland seas; it’s just some quirky naming convention that doesn’t really make sense.
So in leisurely fashion we worked north, keeping, of course, a bright look-out all the way for straggling cachalots, but not seeing any. From scraps of information that in some mysterious fashion leaked out, we learned that we were bound to the Okhotsk Sea, it being no part of the skipper's intentions to go prowling around Behrings Sea, where he believed the whales to be few and far between.
So we casually made our way north, always on the lookout for wandering sperm whales, but we didn’t spot any. From bits of information that somehow leaked out, we found out that we were headed to the Sea of Okhotsk, since the captain had no plans to roam around the Bering Sea, where he thought the whales were scarce.
It may be imagined that we of the crew were not at all pleased with this intelligence, our life being, we considered, sufficiently miserable without the addition of extreme cold, for we did not realize that in the Arctic regions during summer the cold is by no means unbearable, and our imagination pictured a horrible waste of perpetual ice and snow, in the midst of which we should be compelled to freeze while dodging whales through the crevices of the floes. But whether our pictures of the prospects that awaited us were caricatures or no made not the slightest difference. "Growl you may, but go you must" is an old sea-jingle of the truest ring; but, while our going was inevitable, growling was a luxury none of us dare indulge in.
We might think that we, the crew, weren’t at all happy about this news. Our lives were already tough enough without adding extreme cold. We didn’t realize that in the Arctic during the summer, the cold is actually manageable. Instead, we imagined a terrible landscape of endless ice and snow, where we would have to freeze while navigating around whales through the cracks in the ice. But whether our visions of what awaited us were exaggerated or not didn't change anything. "You can complain, but you have to go" is an old sea saying that rings true; yet, while leaving was unavoidable, complaining was a luxury none of us could afford.
We had by no means a bad passage to the Kuriles, which form a natural barrier enclosing the immense area of the Okhotsk Sea from the vast stretch of the Pacific. Around this great chain of islands the navigation is exceedingly difficult, and dangerous as well, from the ever-varying currents as from the frequent fogs and sudden storms. But these impediments to swift and safe navigation are made light of by the whalemen, who, as I feel never weary of remarking, are the finest navigators in the world where speed is not the first consideration.
We didn't have a bad journey to the Kuriles, which act as a natural barrier separating the vast area of the Okhotsk Sea from the expansive Pacific Ocean. Navigation around this great chain of islands is very challenging and dangerous due to the constantly changing currents, frequent fogs, and sudden storms. However, these obstacles to quick and safe travel are easily handled by the whalers, who, as I often point out, are the best navigators in the world when speed isn't the main priority.
The most peculiar features of these inhospitable shores to a seaman are the vast fields of seaweed surrounding them all, which certainly helps to keep the sea down during gales, but renders navigation most difficult on account of its concealment of hidden dangers. These islands are aptly named, the word "Kurile" being Kamschatkan for smoke; and whether it be regarded as given in consequence of the numerous volcanoes which pour their fumes into the air, or the all-prevailing fog fostered by the Kuro Siwo, or Japanese counterpart of the Gulf stream, the designation is equally appropriate.
The most unusual features of these harsh shores for sailors are the vast fields of seaweed surrounding them, which definitely helps to calm the sea during storms but makes navigation extremely tricky because it hides dangerous obstacles. These islands are aptly named, with "Kurile" meaning smoke in Kamschatkan; whether it's because of the many volcanoes that release their fumes into the air or the constant fog created by the Kuro Siwo, the Japanese equivalent of the Gulf Stream, the name fits perfectly.
We entered the Okhotsk Sea by the Nadeshda Channel, so-named after Admiral Krusenstern's ship, which was the first civilized vessel that passed through its turbulent waters. It separates the islands Rashau and Mantaua by about twenty miles, yet so conflicting and violent are the currents which eddy and swirl in all parts of it, that without a steady, strong, fair wind it is most dangerous to a sailing vessel. Thenceforward the navigation was free from difficulty, or at least none that we could recognize as such, so we gave all our attention to the business which brought us there.
We entered the Okhotsk Sea through the Nadeshda Channel, named after Admiral Krusenstern's ship, which was the first civilized vessel to navigate its rough waters. It separates the islands of Rashau and Mantaua by about twenty miles, but the currents whirl and swirl everywhere, making it very dangerous for sailing vessels without a steady, strong, favorable wind. After that, the navigation was trouble-free, or at least there were no recognizable challenges, so we focused entirely on the task that brought us there.
Scarcely any change was needed in our equipment, except the substitution of longer harpoons for those we had been using, and the putting away of the bomb-guns. These changes were made because the blubber of the bowhead is so thick that ordinary harpoons will not penetrate beyond it to the muscle, which, unless they do, renders them liable to draw, upon a heavy strain. As for the bombs, Yankees hold the mysticetae in such supreme contempt that none of them would dream of wasting so expensive a weapon as a bomb upon them. I was given to understand by my constant crony, Mistah Jones, that there was no more trouble in killing a bowhead than in slaughtering a sheep; and that while it was quite true that accidents DID occur, they were entirely due to the carelessness or clumsiness of the whalemen, and not in any way traceable to a desire on the victim's part to do any one harm.
We hardly needed any changes to our gear, except we swapped out our shorter harpoons for longer ones and put away the bomb guns. These adjustments were necessary because the blubber of the bowhead whale is so thick that regular harpoons can't reach the muscle beneath it, which makes them likely to pull out under heavy strain. As for the bombs, people disrespect the mysticetae so much that none of them would even think about using such an expensive weapon on them. My close friend, Mistah Jones, made it clear to me that killing a bowhead was no more difficult than slaughtering a sheep. While it's true that accidents CAN happen, they are entirely due to the carelessness or clumsiness of the whalers, and have nothing to do with any desire from the whale to hurt anyone.
The sea was little encumbered with ice, it being now late in June, so that our progress was not at all impeded by the few soft, brashy floes that we encountered, none of them hard enough to do a ship's hull any damage. In most places the sea was sufficiently shallow to permit of our anchoring. For this purpose we used a large kedge, with stout hawser for cable, never furling all the sails in case of a strong breeze suddenly springing up, which would cause us to drag. This anchoring was very comfortable. Besides allowing us to get much more rest than when on other cruising-grounds, we were able to catch enormous quantities of fish, mostly salmon, of which there were no less than fourteen varieties. So plentiful were these splendid fish that we got quite critical in our appreciation of them, very soon finding that one kind, known as the "nerker," was far better flavoured than any of the others. But as the daintiest food palls the quickest, it was not long before we got tired of salmon, and wished most heartily for beef.
The sea had very little ice since it was late June, so our progress wasn’t held up by the few soft, brashy floes we encountered; none were tough enough to damage the ship's hull. In most places, the water was shallow enough for us to anchor. For this, we used a large kedge with a strong hawser for a cable, and we never fully furled the sails in case a strong breeze suddenly came up, which might cause us to drag. This anchoring was quite comfortable. Besides letting us get a lot more rest than when we were on other cruising grounds, we were able to catch huge amounts of fish, mostly salmon, with no fewer than fourteen varieties. So plentiful were these amazing fish that we became quite picky, soon realizing that one variety, known as the "nerker," tasted far better than the rest. But just like the best food can get boring quickly, we soon grew tired of salmon and found ourselves really craving beef.
Much fun has been made of the discontent of sailors. With food which is considered a luxury ashore, and wonder expressed that if, as we assert, the ordinary dietary of the seaman be so bad, he should be so ready to rebel when fed with delicacies. But in justice to the sailor, it ought to be remembered that the daintiest food may be rendered disgusting by bad cookery, such as is the rule on board merchant ships. "God sends meat, but the devil sends cooks" is a proverb which originated on board ship, and no one who has ever served any time in a ship's forecastle would deny that it is abundantly justified. Besides which, even good food well cooked of one kind only, served many times in succession, becomes very trying, only the plainest foods, such as bread, rice, potatoes, etc., retaining their command of the appetite continually.
Sailors' complaints have often been laughed at. With food that’s seen as a luxury on land, people are puzzled why, if we say the typical sailor's diet is so bad, they would be quick to rebel when offered treats. But, to be fair to sailors, it should be noted that even the fanciest food can be made unappetizing by poor cooking, which is common on merchant ships. The saying "God sends meat, but the devil sends cooks" originated on ships, and anyone who has spent time in a ship's forecastle would agree it’s spot on. Plus, even good food, if served repeatedly without variety, can become tiresome; only simple foods like bread, rice, and potatoes can keep their appeal over time.
I remember once, when upon the Coromandel coast in a big Greenock ship, we found fowls very cheap. At Bimliapatam the captain bought two or three hundred, which, as we had no coops, were turned loose on deck. We had also at the same time prowling about the decks three goats, twenty pigs, and two big dogs.
I remember once, when we were on the Coromandel coast in a big Greenock ship, we found chickens for a great price. In Bimliapatam, the captain bought two or three hundred, which, since we had no cages, were let loose on deck. At the same time, we also had three goats, twenty pigs, and two large dogs wandering around the decks.
Consequently the state of the ship was filthy, nor could all our efforts keep her clean. This farmyard condition of things was permitted to continue for about a week, when the officers got so tired of it, and the captain so annoyed at the frequent loss of fowls by their flying overboard, that the edict went forth to feed the foremast hands on poultry till further orders. Great was our delight at the news. Fowl for dinner represented to our imagination almost the apex of high living, only indulged in by such pampered children of fortune as the officers of ships or well-to-do people ashore.
As a result, the ship was a mess, and no matter how hard we tried, we couldn't keep it clean. This farm-like state of affairs went on for about a week until the officers grew tired of it, and the captain got frustrated with the constant loss of chickens flying overboard. So they decided to feed the crew poultry until further notice. We were thrilled by the news. Having chicken for dinner felt like the ultimate luxury, something only the spoiled children of wealth—like the ship's officers or well-off folks on land—could indulge in.
When dinner-time arrived, we boys made haste to the galley with watering mouths, joyfully anticipating that rare delight of the sailor—a good "feed." The cook uncovered his coppers, plunged his tormentors therein, and produced such a succession of ugly corpses of fowls as I had never seen before. To each man a whole one was allotted, and we bore the steaming hecatomb into the forecastle. The boisterous merriment became hushed at our approach, and faces grew lengthy when the unwholesome aspect of the "treat" was revealed. Each man secured his bird, and commenced operations. But oh, the disappointment, and the bad words! What little flesh there was upon the framework of those unhappy fowls was like leather itself, and utterly flavourless. It could not well have been otherwise. The feathers had been simply scalded off, the heads chopped off, and bodies split open to facilitate drawing (I am sure I wonder the cook took the trouble to do that much), and thus prepared they were cast into a cauldron of boiling salt water. There, with the water fiercely bubbling, they were kept for an hour and a half, then pitchforked out into the mess kid and set before us. We simply could not eat them; no one but a Noumean Kanaka could, for his teeth are equal to husking a cocoa-nut, or chopping off a piece of sugar-cane as thick as your wrist.
When dinner time came, we boys rushed to the galley with our mouths watering, excited for that rare treat of a sailor—a good meal. The cook revealed his pots, tossed in his challenges, and brought out a lineup of unappealing dead chickens like I had never seen before. Each man got a whole one, and we carried the steaming heap into the living quarters. The loud laughter quieted as we approached, and faces turned serious when the unappetizing sight of the "feast" was shown. Each man grabbed his chicken and started to dig in. But oh, the disappointment and the curses! The little bit of meat left on those unfortunate birds was as tough as leather and completely tasteless. It couldn’t have been any different. The feathers had just been scalded off, the heads chopped off, and the bodies split open to make cleaning easier (I still can’t believe the cook went through that much trouble), and then they were tossed into a pot of boiling salty water. There, bubbling fiercely, they were left for an hour and a half, then pulled out and dumped into the serving dish before us. We simply couldn’t eat them; no one but a Noumean Kanaka could, since his teeth can handle husking a coconut or chopping through a piece of sugar cane as thick as your wrist.
After much heated discussion, it was unanimously resolved to protest at once against the substitution of such a fraud as this poultry for our legitimate rations of "salt horse." so, bearing the DISJECTA MEMBRA of our meal, the whole crowd marched aft, and requested an interview with the skipper. He came out of the cabin at once, saying, "Well, boys, what's the matter?" The spokesman, a bald-headed Yankee, who had been bo'sun's mate of an American man-of-war, stepped forward and said, offering his kid, "Jest have a look at that sir." The skipper looked, saying, inquiringly, "Well?" "D'yew think, sir," said Nat, "THET'S proper grub for men?" "Proper grub! Why, you old sinner, you don't mean to say you're goin' to growl about havin' chicken for dinner?" "Well, sir, it depends muchly upon the chicken. All I know is, that I've et some dam queer tack in my time, but sence I ben fishin' I never had no such bundles of sticks parcelled with leather served out to me. I HEV et boot—leastways gnawed it; when I was cast away in a open boat for three weeks—but it wa'n't bad boot, as boots go. Now, if yew say that these things is boots, en thet it's necessary we should eat'em, or starve, w'y, we'll think about it. But if yew call'em chickens,'n say you're doin' us a kindness by stoppin' our'lowance of meat wile we're wrastlin' with 'em, then we say we don't feel obliged to yew, 'n 'll thank yew kindly to keep such lugsuries for yerself, 'n give us wot we signed for." A murmur of assent confirmed this burst of eloquence, which we all considered a very fine effort indeed. A moment's silence ensued; then the skipper burst out, "I've often heard of such things, but hang me if I ever believed 'em till now! You ungrateful beggars! I'll see you get your whack, and no more, from this out. When you get any little extras aboard this ship agen, you'll be thankful for 'em; now I tell you." "All right, sir," said Nat; "so long as we don't hev to chaw any more of yer biled Bimly crows, I dessay we shall worry along as usual." And, as the Parliamentary reports say, the proceedings then terminated.
After a lot of heated discussion, it was unanimously decided to protest immediately against the replacement of our legitimate rations of "salt horse" with this fake stuff that they're calling poultry. So, carrying the leftovers of our meal, the entire group marched to the back of the ship and asked to see the captain. He came out of the cabin right away, saying, "Well, boys, what's going on?" The spokesperson, a bald-headed guy from New England who had been a bosun’s mate on an American warship, stepped forward and said, offering his hand, "Just take a look at this, sir." The captain looked and asked, "Well?" "Do you think, sir," Nat said, "that this is proper food for men?" "Proper food! Come on, you old scoundrel, you can’t be saying you’re going to complain about having chicken for dinner?" "Well, sir, it really depends on the chicken. All I know is, I’ve eaten some pretty weird stuff before, but since I’ve been fishing, I’ve never had anything like these bundles of sticks served up to me. I have eaten boots—at least gnawed on them; when I was stranded in an open boat for three weeks—but it wasn’t bad boot, for boots go. Now, if you say these things are boots and that it's necessary for us to eat them or starve, then we’ll think about it. But if you’re calling them chickens and acting like you’re doing us a favor by cutting our meat rations while we struggle with these, then we won’t feel obligated to you and would appreciate it if you kept such luxuries for yourself and gave us what we signed up for." A murmur of agreement confirmed this outburst, which we all thought was a great effort. There was a moment of silence, and then the captain exploded, "I've heard of such things, but I never believed them until now! You ungrateful rascals! I’ll make sure you get your share, and no more, from now on. When you get any little extras on this ship again, you’ll be thankful for them; I can promise you that." “All right, sir,” said Nat; “as long as we don’t have to chew on any more of your boiled Bimly crows, I guess we’ll manage as usual." And, as the parliamentary reports say, the proceedings then ended.
Now, suppose the skipper had told the story to some of his shore friends, how very funny the sailors' conduct would have been made to appear.
Now, imagine if the captain had shared the story with some of his friends on land; the sailors' behavior would have seemed really funny.
On another occasion long after, when I was mate of a barque loading mahogany in Tonala, Mexico, the skipper thought he would practise economy by buying a turtle instead of beef. A large turtle was obtained for twenty-five cents, and handed over to the cook to be dealt with, particular instructions being given him as to the apportionment of the meat.
On another occasion, long after that, when I was the first mate on a barque loading mahogany in Tonala, Mexico, the captain decided to save money by buying a turtle instead of beef. He got a big turtle for twenty-five cents and passed it over to the cook with specific instructions on how to divide the meat.
At eight bells there was a gathering of the men in front of the poop, and a summons for the captain. When he appeared, the usual stereotyped invitation to "have a look at THAT, if you please, sir," was uttered. The skipper was, I think, prepared for a protest, for he began to bluster immediately. "Look here!" he bawled, "I ain't goin' to 'ave any of your dam nonsense. You WANT somethin' to growl about, you do." "Well, Cap'n George," said one of the men, "you shorely don't think we k'n eat shells, do yer?" Just then I caught sight of the kid's contents, and could hardly restrain my indignation. For in a dirty heap, the sight of which might have pleased an Esquimaux, but was certainly enough to disgust any civilized man, lay the calipee, or under-shell of the turtle, hacked into irregular blocks. It had been simply boiled, and flung into the kid, an unclean, disgusting heap of shell, with pieces of dirty flesh attached in ragged lumps. But the skipper, red-faced and angry, answered, "W'y, yer so-and-so ijits, that's wot the Lord Mayor of London gives about a guinea a hounce for w'en 'e feeds lords n' dooks. Only the haristocracy at 'ome get a charnce to stick their teeth in such grub as that. An' 'ere are you lot a-growlin' at 'avin' it for a change!" "That's all right, cap'n," said the man; "bein' brort up ter such lugsuries, of corse you kin appreshyate it. So if yer keep it fer yer own eatin', an' giv us wot we signed for, we shall be werry much obliged." "Now, I ain't a-goin' to 'ave none o' YOUR cheek, so you'd better git forrard. You can betcher life you won't get no more fresh messes this voy'ge." So, with grumbling and ill-will on both sides, the conference came to an end. But I thought, and still think, that the mess set before those men, who had been working hard since six a.m., was unfit for the food of a good dog.
At eight o'clock, the crew gathered near the stern and called for the captain. When he showed up, the usual scripted invitation to "take a look at THIS, if you please, sir," was said. The captain seemed ready for a complaint, as he started to shout right away. "Listen up!" he yelled, "I’m not putting up with any of your nonsense. You just want something to complain about." "Well, Cap’n George," one of the crew replied, "you really don’t think we can eat shells, do you?" Just then, I noticed what was in the mess and could barely hold back my anger. In a filthy pile that might have pleased an Eskimo but would certainly disgust any civilized person, lay the calipee, or bottom shell of the turtle, chopped into uneven chunks. It had just been boiled and dumped into the mess, a dirty, disgusting heap of shell with bits of grimy flesh stuck in ragged clumps. But the captain, red-faced and furious, shot back, "Well, you idiots, that’s what the Lord Mayor of London pays about a guinea a pound for when he feeds lords and dukes. Only the aristocracy at home get a chance to dig into food like that. And here you lot are complaining about having it for a change!" "That’s fine, captain," the man said; "being brought up to such luxuries, of course you can appreciate it. So if you keep it for yourself and give us what we signed for, we’d really appreciate it." "Now, I’m not going to take any of YOUR cheek, so you’d better get forward. You can bet your life you won’t get any more fresh food this voyage." So, with grumbling and resentment from both sides, the meeting came to an end. But I thought, and still think, that what was served to those men, who had been working hard since six a.m., was unfit even for a good dog.
Out of my own experience I might give many other instances of the kind, but I hope these will suffice to show that Jack's growling is often justified, when both sides of the story are heard.
Based on my own experience, I could provide many more examples like this, but I hope these will be enough to demonstrate that Jack's complaints are often valid when you take into account both sides of the story.
CHAPTER XVI. "BOWHEAD" FISHING
Day and night being now only distinguishable by the aid of the clock, a constant look-out aloft was kept all through the twenty-four hours, watch and watch, but whales were apparently very scarce. We did a good deal of "pelagic" sealing; that is, catching seals swimming. But the total number obtained was not great, for these creatures are only gregarious when at their rocky haunts during the breeding season, or among the ice just before that season begins. Our sealing, therefore, was only a way of passing the time in the absence of nobler game, to be abandoned at once with whales in sight.
Day and night were now only distinguishable by the clock, so we kept a constant lookout above for all twenty-four hours, taking turns watching, but whales seemed to be very rare. We did quite a bit of "pelagic" sealing, which means catching seals while they were swimming. However, the total number we caught wasn’t large, since these animals are only social when they gather at their rocky homes during the breeding season, or among the ice right before it starts. Therefore, our sealing was just a way to pass the time in the absence of better game, which we would immediately stop doing as soon as whales were spotted.
It was on the ninth or tenth morning after our arrival on the grounds that a bowhead was raised, And two boats sent after him. It was my first sight of the great MYSTICETUS, and I must confess to being much impressed by his gigantic bulk. From the difference in shape, he looked much larger than the largest sperm whale we had yet seen, although we had come across some of the very biggest specimens of cachalot.
It was on the ninth or tenth morning after we arrived that a bowhead was spotted, and two boats were sent after it. This was my first glimpse of the enormous MYSTICETUS, and I have to admit, I was really struck by its massive size. From its shape, it appeared much larger than the biggest sperm whale we had encountered, even though we had seen some of the largest specimens of cachalot.
The contrast between the two animals is most marked, so much so, in fact, that one would hardly credit them with belonging to the same order. Popular ideas of the whale are almost invariably taken from the MYSTICETUS, so that the average individual generally defines a whale as a big fish which spouts water out of the top of his head, and cannot swallow a herring. Indeed, so lately as last year a popular M.P., writing to one of the religious papers, allowed himself to say that "science will not hear of a whale with a gullet capable of admitting anything larger than a man's fist"—a piece of crass ignorance, which is also perpetrated in the appendix to a very widely-distributed edition of the Authorized Version of the Bible. This opinion, strangely enough, is almost universally held, although I trust that the admirable models now being shown in our splendid Natural History Museum at South Kensington will do much to remove it. Not so many people, perhaps, believe that a whale is a fish, instead of a mammal, but few indeed are the individuals who do not still think that a cetacean possesses a sort of natural fountain on the top of its head, whence, for some recondite reason, it ejects at regular intervals streams of water into the air.
The difference between the two animals is really obvious, to the point that you'd barely believe they belong to the same group. Most people's views on whales come from the MYSTICETUS, leading the average person to think of a whale as a big fish that shoots water out of the top of its head and can't swallow a herring. In fact, just last year, a well-known Member of Parliament wrote in a religious publication that "science won’t accept a whale that can swallow anything bigger than a man's fist"—a clear example of ignorance that's also found in the appendix of a widely circulated edition of the Bible. This belief is strangely common, though I hope the amazing models now on display at our fantastic Natural History Museum in South Kensington will help change that. While maybe not as many people think a whale is a fish rather than a mammal, very few actually realize that a cetacean doesn’t have a sort of natural fountain on its head from which it regularly shoots water into the air for some mysterious reason.
But a whale can no more force water through its spiracle or blow-hole than you or I through our nostrils. It inhales, when at the surface, atmospheric air, and exhales breath like ours, which, coming warm into a cooler medium, becomes visible, as does our breath on a frosty morning.
But a whale can't push water through its blowhole any more than you or I can through our nostrils. It breathes in air from the atmosphere when it surfaces and exhales like we do, which, when warm air hits a cooler environment, becomes visible, just like our breath on a chilly morning.
Now, the MYSTICETUS carries his nostrils on the summit of his head, or crown, the orifice being closed by a beautifully arranged valve when the animal is beneath the water. Consequently, upon coming to the surface to breathe, he sends up a jet of visible breath into the air some ten or twelve feet. The cachalot, on the other hand, has the orifice at the point of his square snout, the internal channel running in a slightly diagonal direction downwards, and back through the skull to the lungs. So when he spouts, the breath is projected forward diagonally, and, from some peculiarity which I do not pretend to explain, expends itself in a short, bushy tuft of vapour, very distinct from the tall vertical spout of the bowhead or right whale.
Now, the MYSTICETUS has its nostrils at the top of its head, or crown, and the opening is sealed by a well-arranged valve when the animal is underwater. Therefore, when it surfaces to breathe, it releases a visible spray of breath into the air about ten to twelve feet high. The cachalot, on the other hand, has its opening at the tip of its square snout, with the internal passage running slightly downward and back through the skull to the lungs. So when it spouts, the breath is pushed forward at an angle, and due to some unique characteristic that I can't explain, it forms a short, bushy plume of vapor, which is quite different from the tall, vertical spout of the bowhead or right whale.
There was little or no wind when we sighted the individual I am now speaking of, so we did not attempt to set sail, but pulled straight for him "head and head." Strange as it may appear, the MYSTICETUS' best point of view is right behind, or "in his wake," as we say; it is therefore part of the code to approach him from right ahead, in which direction he cannot see at all. Some time before we reached him he became aware of our presence, showing by his uneasy actions that he had his doubts about his personal security. But before he had made up his mind what to do we were upon him, with our harpoons buried in his back. The difference in his behaviour to what we had so long been accustomed to was amazing. He did certainly give a lumbering splash or two with his immense flukes, but no one could possibly have been endangered by them. The water was so shallow that when he sounded it was but for a very few minutes; there was no escape for him that way. As soon as he returned to the surface he set off at his best gait, but that was so slow that we easily hauled up close alongside of him, holding the boats in that position without the slightest attempt to guard ourselves from reprisals on his part, while the officers searched his vitals with the lances as if they were probing a haystack.
There was little to no wind when we spotted the individual I'm talking about, so we didn't try to set sail but headed straight for him "head and head." Strange as it may seem, the best way to approach the MYSTICETUS is from behind, or "in his wake," as we say; it's part of the code to approach him from the front, where he can't see at all. Well before we reached him, he sensed our presence, showing through his nervous actions that he was unsure about his safety. But before he decided what to do, we were upon him, with our harpoons embedded in his back. The change in his behavior compared to what we had been used to was amazing. He did make a couple of heavy splashes with his huge flukes, but nobody was in danger from them. The water was so shallow that when he dove, it was only for a few minutes; there was no way for him to escape that way. As soon as he surfaced, he took off at his best pace, but it was so slow that we easily pulled up right next to him, keeping the boats in position without any attempt to protect ourselves from any retaliation, while the officers searched his insides with the lances as if probing a haystack.
Really, the whole affair was so tame that it was impossible to get up any fighting enthusiasm over it; the poor, unwieldy creature died meekly and quietly as an overgrown seal. In less than an hour from the time of leaving the ship we were ready to bring our prize alongside.
Really, the whole thing was so uneventful that it felt impossible to get excited about it; the poor, awkward creature died peacefully and quietly, like an oversized seal. In less than an hour after leaving the ship, we were ready to bring our catch alongside.
Upon coming up to the whale, sail was shortened, and as soon as the fluke-chain was passed we anchored. It was, I heard, our skipper's boast that he could "skin a bowhead in forty minutes;" and although we were certainly longer than that, the celerity with which what seemed a gigantic task was accomplished was marvellous. Of course, it was all plain-sailing, very unlike the complicated and herculean task inevitable at the commencement of cutting-in a sperm whale.
As we approached the whale, we shortened the sail, and as soon as the fluke-chain was attached, we dropped anchor. I heard our captain brag that he could "skin a bowhead in forty minutes," and while we definitely took longer than that, the speed with which what seemed like a massive job was done was amazing. Of course, it was straightforward, very different from the complex and grueling task that comes with cutting into a sperm whale.
Except for the head work, removing the blubber was effected in precisely the same way as in the case of the cachalot. There was a marked difference between the quantity of lard enveloping this whale and those we had hitherto dealt with. It was nearly double the thickness, besides being much richer in oil, which fairly dripped from it as we hoisted in the blanket-pieces. The upper jaw was removed for its long plates of whalebone or baleen—that valuable substance which alone makes it worth while nowadays to go after the MYSTICETUS, the price obtained for the oil being so low as to make it not worth while to fit out ships to go in search of it alone. "Trying-out" the blubber, with its accompaniments, is carried on precisely as with the sperm whale. The resultant oil, when recent, is of a clear white, unlike the golden-tinted fluid obtained from the cachalot. As it grows stale it developes a nauseous smell, which sperm does not, although the odour of the oil is otto of roses compared with the horrible mass of putridity landed from the tanks of a Greenland whaler at the termination of a cruise. For in those vessels, the fishing-time at their disposal being so brief, they do not wait to boil down the blubber, but, chopping it into small pieces, pass it below as it is into tanks, to be rendered down by the oil-mills ashore on the ship's return.
Except for the head work, removing the blubber was done exactly the same way as with the cachalot. There was a noticeable difference in the amount of blubber surrounding this whale compared to the ones we had previously dealt with. It was nearly twice as thick and much richer in oil, which dripped from it as we hoisted the blanket pieces. We removed the upper jaw for its long plates of whalebone or baleen—that valuable material that makes it worth going after the MYSTICETUS nowadays, since the price for the oil is so low that it’s not worth sending out ships to hunt it for that alone. “Trying out” the blubber, along with its other parts, is done in the same way as with the sperm whale. The resulting oil, when fresh, is clear white, unlike the golden-tinted liquid from the cachalot. As it gets stale, it develops a sickly smell, which sperm oil does not; although, the smell of this oil is like roses compared to the disgusting stench from the putrid mass dumped from the tanks of a Greenland whaler at the end of a trip. In those ships, since their fishing time is so limited, they don’t wait to boil down the blubber but chop it into small pieces and put it directly into tanks to be processed by oil mills onshore when the ship returns.
This first bowhead yielded us eighteen tuns of oil and a ton of baleen, which made the catch about equal in value to that of a seven-tun cachalot. But the amount of labour and care necessary in order to thoroughly dry and cleanse the baleen was enormous; in fact, for months after we began the bowhead fishery there was almost always something being done with the wretched stuff—drying, scraping, etc.—which, as it was kept below, also necessitated hoisting it up on deck and getting it down again.
This first bowhead gave us eighteen tuns of oil and a ton of baleen, which made the catch roughly equal in value to that of a seven-tun sperm whale. However, the amount of work and attention needed to thoroughly dry and clean the baleen was massive; in fact, for months after we started the bowhead fishery, there was almost always something being done with the awful stuff—drying, scraping, etc.—which, since it was stored below, also required hauling it up on deck and bringing it back down again.
After this beginning, it was again a considerable time before we sighted any more; but when we did, there were quite a number of them—enough to employ all the boats with one each. I was out of the fun this time, being almost incapable of moving by reason of several boils on my legs—the result, I suppose, of a long abstinence from fresh vegetables, or anything to supply their place.
After this start, it took quite a while before we saw any more, but when we did, there were quite a few of them—enough to send all the boats out with one each. I missed out on the excitement this time, as I could hardly move because of several boils on my legs—the result, I guess, of not having fresh vegetables or anything else to make up for it.
As it happened, however, I lost no excitement by remaining on board; for while all the boats were away a large bowhead rose near the ship, evidently being harassed in some way by enemies, which I could not at first see. He seemed quite unconscious of his proximity to the ship, though, and at last came so near that the whole performance was as visible as if it had been got up for my benefit. Three "killers" were attacking him at once, like wolves worrying a bull, except that his motions were far less lively than those of any bull would have been.
As it turned out, I didn’t miss out on any excitement by staying on board; while all the boats were gone, a large bowhead whale surfaced near the ship, clearly being attacked by something I couldn’t see at first. He seemed completely unaware of how close he was to the ship and eventually got so near that the whole scene was as clear as if it were put on just for me. Three orcas were attacking him at the same time, like wolves harassing a bull, except that his movements were much less energetic than any bull's would have been.
The "killer," or ORCA GLADIATOR, is a true whale, but, like the cachalot, has teeth. He differs from that great cetacean, though, in a most important particular; i.e. by having a complete set in both upper and lower jaws, like any other carnivore. For a carnivore indeed is he, the very wolf of the ocean, and enjoying, by reason of his extraordinary agility as well as comparative worthlessness commercially, complete immunity from attack by man. By some authorities he is thought to be identical with the grampus, but whalers all consider the animals quite distinct. Not having had very long acquaintance with them both, I cannot speak emphatically upon this difference of opinion; so far as personal observation goes, I agree with the whalers in believing that there is much variation both of habits and shape between them.
The "killer," or ORCA GLADIATOR, is a true whale, but like the sperm whale, it has teeth. However, it differs from that large cetacean in one crucial way: it has a complete set of teeth in both its upper and lower jaws, just like any other carnivore. And indeed, it is a carnivore, the very wolf of the ocean, enjoying complete immunity from human attack due to its impressive agility and its relatively low commercial value. Some experts believe it is the same as the grampus, but whalers all consider the two animals to be quite different. Since I haven't spent much time with either, I can't speak definitively on this disagreement; based on my personal observation, I agree with the whalers that there are significant differences in both behavior and shape between them.
But to return to the fight. The first inkling I got of what was really going on was the leaping of a killer high into the air by the side of the whale, and descending upon the victim's broad, smooth back with a resounding crash. I saw that the killer was provided with a pair of huge fins—one on his back, the other on his belly—which at first sight looked as if they were also weapons of offence. A little observation convinced me that they were fins only. Again and again the aggressor leaped into the air, falling each time on the whale's back, as if to beat him into submission.
But let's get back to the fight. The first hint I got of what was really happening was when a killer whale leaped high into the air next to the whale and came crashing down onto its broad, smooth back. I noticed that the killer had a pair of huge fins—one on its back and the other on its belly—which at first glance appeared to be weapons. A bit more observation convinced me that they were just fins. Time and again, the aggressor jumped into the air, landing on the whale's back each time, as if trying to force it into submission.
The sea around foamed and boiled like a cauldron, so that it was only occasional glimpses I was able to catch of the two killers, until presently the worried whale lifted his head clear out of the surrounding smother, revealing the two furies hanging—one on either side—to his lips, as if endeavouring to drag his mouth open—which I afterwards saw was their principal object, as whenever during the tumult I caught sight of them, they were still in the same position. At last the tremendous and incessant blows, dealt by the most active member of the trio, seemed actually to have exhausted the immense vitality of the great bowhead, for he lay supine upon the surface. Then the three joined their forces, and succeeded in dragging open his cavernous mouth, into which they freely entered, devouring his tongue. This, then, had been their sole object, for as soon as they had finished their barbarous feast they departed, leaving him helpless and dying to fall an easy prey to our returning boats.
The sea around us was churning and frothing like a boiling pot, so I could only catch occasional glimpses of the two killers. Eventually, the distressed whale lifted his head out of the turmoil, showing the two attackers clinging—one on each side—trying to pry his mouth open. I later realized that was their main goal, as whenever I spotted them during the chaos, they were still in the same position. Finally, the relentless and powerful blows from the most active of the trio seemed to drain the whale's immense energy, leaving him floating on the surface. Then the three of them combined their efforts and managed to force his massive mouth open, rushing inside to devour his tongue. This was clearly their only aim, because as soon as they finished their brutal feast, they left him helpless and dying, making him an easy target for our returning boats.
Thus, although the four whales captured by the boats had been but small, the day's take, augmented by so great a find, was a large one, and it was a long time before we got clear of the work it entailed.
Thus, even though the four whales caught by the boats were small, the day's catch, boosted by such a significant find, was considerable, and it took us a long time to finish the work it required.
From that time forward we saw no whales for six weeks, and, from the reports we received from two whalers we "gammed," it appeared that we might consider ourselves most fortunate in our catch, since they, who had been longer on the ground than ourselves, had only one whale apiece.
From that point on, we didn’t see any whales for six weeks, and based on the reports we got from two whalers we chatted with, we seemed to be pretty lucky with our catch, as they, having spent more time in the area than we had, only managed to catch one whale each.
In consequence of this information, Captain Slocum decided to go south again, and resume the sperm whaling in the North Pacific, near the line—at least so the rumour ran; but as we never heard anything definitely, we could not feel at all certain of our next destination.
As a result of this information, Captain Slocum decided to head south again and continue sperm whaling in the North Pacific, close to the equator—at least that’s what the rumor said; but since we never heard anything confirmed, we couldn't be sure about our next destination.
Ever since the fracas at the Bonins between Goliath and his watch, the relations between Captain Slocum and the big negro had been very strained. Even before the outbreak, as I have remarked upon one occasion, it was noticeable that little love was lost between them. Why this was so, without anything definite to guide one's reasoning, was difficult to understand, for a better seaman or a smarter whaleman than Mistah Jones did not live—of that every one was quite sure. Still, there was no gainsaying the fact that, churlish and morose as our skipper's normal temper always was, he was never so much so as in his behaviour towards his able fourth mate, who, being a man of fine, sensitive temper, chafed under his unmerited treatment so much as to lose flesh, becoming daily more silent, nervous, and depressed. Still, there had never been an open rupture, nor did it appear as if there would be, so great was the power Captain Slocum possessed over the will of everybody on board.
Ever since the fight at the Bonins between Goliath and his watch, the relationship between Captain Slocum and the big guy had been really tense. Even before the incident, as I’ve mentioned before, it was clear that there wasn’t much affection between them. It was hard to understand why, especially with no clear reasons to back up one’s thoughts, because everyone agreed that there wasn’t a better sailor or smarter whaleman than Mister Jones. Still, it couldn’t be denied that, as grumpy and moody as our captain usually was, he was never more so than in his behavior towards his capable fourth mate, who, being a sensitive person, was so hurt by this unfair treatment that he started to lose weight, becoming increasingly quiet, anxious, and downcast. Despite this, there had never been an outright clash, and it didn’t seem like there would be, given the strong control Captain Slocum had over everyone’s will on the ship.
One night, however, as we were nearing the Kuriles again, on our way south, leaving the Sea of Okhotsk, I was sitting on the fore side of the try-works alone, meditating upon what I would do when once I got clear of this miserable business. Futile and foolish, no doubt, my speculations were, but only in this way could I forget for a while my surroundings, since the inestimable comfort of reading was denied me. I had been sitting thus absorbed in thought for nearly an hour, when Goliath came and seated himself by my side. We had always been great friends, although, owing to the strict discipline maintained on board, it was not often we got a chance for a "wee bit crack," as the Scotch say. Besides, I was not in his watch, and even now he should rightly have been below. He sat for a minute or two silent; then, as if compelled to speak, he began in low, fierce whispers to tell me of his miserable state of mind. At last, after recapitulating many slights and insults he had received silently from the captain, of which I had previously known nothing, he became strangely calm. In tones quite unlike his usual voice, he said that he was not an American-born negro, but a pure African, who had been enslaved in his infancy, with his mother, somewhere in the "Hinterland" of Guinea. While still a child, his mother escaped with him into Liberia, a where he had remained till her death, She was, according to him, an Obeah woman of great power, venerated exceedingly by her own people for her prophetic abilities. Before her death, she had told him that he would die suddenly, violently, in a struggle with a white man in a far-off country, but that the white man would die too by his hand. She had also told him that he would be a great traveller and hunter upon the sea. As he went on, his speech became almost unintelligible, being mingled with fragments of a language I had never heard before; moreover, he spoke as a man who is only half awake. A strange terror got hold of me, for I began to think he was going mad, and perhaps about to run a-mok, as the Malays do when driven frantic by the infliction of real or fancied wrongs.
One night, as we were approaching the Kuriles again on our way south, leaving the Sea of Okhotsk, I was sitting alone on the front side of the try-works, thinking about what I would do once I got away from this miserable situation. My thoughts were probably pointless and silly, but this was the only way I could forget my surroundings for a bit, since I couldn’t enjoy the comfort of reading. I had been deep in thought for almost an hour when Goliath came and sat down next to me. We had always been good friends, but because of the strict discipline on board, we didn’t often get a chance for a little chat, as the Scots say. Also, I wasn’t on his watch, and he should’ve been below deck. He sat quietly for a minute or two, then, as if he couldn’t hold it in any longer, he began to speak in low, intense whispers about his miserable state of mind. After recounting many slights and insults he had silently endured from the captain, which I hadn’t known about before, he suddenly became oddly calm. In a tone that was nothing like his usual voice, he revealed that he wasn’t an American-born Black man, but a pure African who had been enslaved as a child along with his mother in the “Hinterland” of Guinea. When he was still a child, his mother escaped with him to Liberia, where he stayed until her death. According to him, she was a powerful Obeah woman, deeply respected by her people for her prophetic skills. Before she died, she told him that he would die suddenly and violently in a struggle with a white man in a distant country, but that the white man would also die at his hands. She had also predicted that he would be a great traveler and hunter at sea. As he spoke, his words became nearly unintelligible, mixing in fragments of a language I had never heard before; moreover, he spoke like someone who was only half awake. A strange fear took hold of me, as I started to worry that he was going mad and might even go on a rampage, like the Malays do when driven to madness by real or imagined wrongs.
But he gradually returned to his old self, to my great relief, and I ventured somewhat timidly to remind him of the esteem in which he was held by all hands; even the skipper, I ventured to say, respected him, although, from some detestable form of ill-humour, he had chosen to be so sneering and insulting towards him. He shook his head sadly, and said, "My dear boy, youse de only man aboard dis ship—wite man, dat is—dat don't hate an' despise me becawse ob my colour, wich I cain't he'p; an' de God you beliebe in bless you fer dat. As fer me, w'at I done tole you's true,'n befo' bery little w'ile you see it COME true. 'N w'en DAT happens w'at's gwine ter happen, I'se real glad to tink it gwine ter be better fer you—gwine ter be better fer eberybody 'bord de CACH'LOT; but I doan keer nuffin 'bout anybody else. So long." He held out his great black hand, and shook mine heartily, while a big tear rolled down his face and fell on the deck. And with that he left me a prey to a very whirlpool of conflicting thoughts and fears.
But he gradually went back to his old self, which relieved me greatly, and I somewhat timidly reminded him of the respect everyone had for him; even the captain, I dared to say, respected him, though, for some miserable reason, he had chosen to be so sneering and insulting toward him. He shook his head sadly and said, "My dear boy, you’re the only man on this ship—white man, that is—who doesn’t hate and despise me because of my color, which I can’t help; and the God you believe in bless you for that. As for me, what I told you is true, and soon you’ll see it come true. When that happens, I hope it’ll be better for you—it’ll be better for everyone on the CACH'LOT; but I don’t care about anyone else. So long." He extended his large black hand and shook mine heartily, while a big tear rolled down his face and fell on the deck. And with that, he left me caught in a whirlwind of conflicting thoughts and fears.
The night was a long and weary one—longer and drearier perhaps because of the absence of the darkness, which always made it harder to sleep. An incessant day soon becomes, to those accustomed to the relief of the night, a burden grievous to be borne; and although use can reconcile us to most things, and does make even the persistent light bearable, in times of mental distress or great physical weariness one feels irresistibly moved to cry earnestly, "Come, gentle night."
The night was long and exhausting—maybe even longer and gloomier because there was no darkness, which always made it harder to sleep. A never-ending day quickly becomes a heavy load for those used to the comfort of night; and while we can often get used to almost anything and even make the constant light tolerable, during times of mental stress or extreme physical fatigue, one can't help but feel an urgent desire to cry out, "Come, gentle night."
When I came on deck at eight bells, it was a stark calm. The watch, under Mistah Jones' direction, were busy scrubbing decks with the usual thoroughness, while the captain, bare-footed, with trouser-legs and shirt-sleeves rolled up, his hands on his hips and a portentous frown on his brow, was closely looking on. As it was my spell at the crow's-nest, I made at once for the main-rigging, and had got halfway to the top, when some unusual sounds below arrested me.
When I came up on deck at eight bells, it was eerily calm. The watch, under Mistah Jones' direction, was busy scrubbing the decks with their usual thoroughness, while the captain, barefoot, with his pant legs and shirt sleeves rolled up, hands on his hips and a serious frown on his face, was watching closely. Since it was my turn at the crow's-nest, I headed straight for the main rigging and had made it halfway up when some unusual sounds below caught my attention.
All hands were gathered in the waist, a not unusual thing at the changing of the watch. In the midst of them, as I looked down, two men came together in a fierce struggle. They were Goliath and the skipper. Captain Slocum's right hand went naturally to his hip pocket, where he always carried a revolver; but before he could draw it, the long, black arms of his adversary wrapped around him, making him helpless as a babe. Then, with a rush that sent every one flying out of his way, Goliath hurled himself at the bulwarks, which were low, the top of the rail about thirty-three inches from the deck. The two bodies struck the rail with a heavy thud, instantly toppling overboard. That broke the spell that bound everybody, so that there was an instantaneous rush to the side. Only a hardly noticeable ripple remained on the surface of the placid sea.
All hands were gathered at the waist, which was typical when the watch changed. As I looked down, I saw two men engaged in a fierce struggle. They were Goliath and the skipper. Captain Slocum instinctively reached for his hip pocket, where he always kept a revolver, but before he could pull it out, Goliath's long, strong arms wrapped around him, leaving him as helpless as a baby. Then, with a sudden burst that knocked everyone out of the way, Goliath threw himself against the low bulwarks, with the top of the rail about thirty-three inches above the deck. The two of them crashed against the rail with a heavy thud, instantly falling overboard. That broke the trance that had held everyone, causing an immediate rush to the side. Only a barely noticeable ripple remained on the surface of the calm sea.
But, from my lofty perch, the whole of the ghastly struggle had been visible to the least detail. The two men had struck the water locked in closest embrace, which relaxed not even when far below the surface. When the sea is perfectly smooth, objects are visible from aloft at several feet depth, though apparently diminished in size. The last thing I saw was Captain Slocum's white face, with its starting black eyes looking their last upon the huge, indefinite hull of the ship whose occupants he had ruled so long and rigidly.
But from my high vantage point, I could see the entire horrifying struggle in great detail. The two men had hit the water still wrapped in a tight embrace, which didn’t loosen even when they were far beneath the surface. When the sea is perfectly calm, you can see objects from above down to several feet deep, though they seem smaller. The last thing I saw was Captain Slocum's pale face, with his wide-open black eyes taking one last look at the massive, indistinct hull of the ship that he had commanded so long and strictly.
The whole tragedy occupied such a brief moment of time that it was almost impossible to realize that it was actual. Reason, however, soon regained her position among the officers, who ordered the closest watch to be kept from aloft, in case of the rising of either or both of the men. A couple of boats were swung, ready to drop on the instant. But, as if to crown the tragedy with completeness, a heavy squall, which had risen unnoticed, suddenly burst upon the ship with great fury, the lashing hail and rain utterly obscuring vision even for a few yards. So unexpected was the onset of this squall that, for the only time that voyage, we lost some canvas through not being able to get it in quick enough. The topgallant halyards were let go; but while the sails were being clewed up, the fierce wind following the rain caught them from their confining gear, rending them into a thousand shreds. For an hour the squall raged—a tempest in brief—then swept away to the south-east on its furious journey, leaving peace again. Needless perhaps to say, that after such a squall it was hopeless to look for our missing ones. The sudden storm had certainly driven us several miles away front the spot where they disappeared, and, although we carefully made what haste was possible back along the line we were supposed to have come, not a vestige of hope was in any one's mind that we should ever see them again.
The whole tragedy happened so quickly that it was almost impossible to believe it was real. However, reason soon took charge again among the officers, who ordered close watch to be kept from above in case either or both of the men surfaced. A couple of boats were prepared to drop at a moment’s notice. But, as if to make the tragedy even more complete, a heavy squall that had come up unnoticed suddenly hit the ship with full force, with driving hail and rain completely obscuring our sight even just a few yards ahead. The onset of this squall was so unexpected that, for the only time on that voyage, we lost some sails because we couldn’t get them in fast enough. The topgallant halyards were released, but as we were gathering in the sails, the fierce wind following the rain ripped them from their rigging, tearing them into a thousand pieces. The squall raged for about an hour—a brief tempest—before moving off to the southeast on its wild path, leaving calm in its wake. It goes without saying that after such a storm, it was pointless to look for our missing crew members. The sudden storm had certainly carried us several miles away from where they had disappeared, and even though we hurried back along the route we believed we had taken, no one held out any hope that we would ever see them again.
Nor did we. Whether that madness, which I had feared was coming upon Goliath during our previous night's conversation, suddenly overpowered him and impelled him to commit the horrible deed, what more had passed between him and the skipper to even faintly justify so awful a retaliation—these things were now matters of purest speculation. As if they had never been, the two men were blotted out—gone before God in full-blown heat of murder and revengeful fury.
Nor did we. Whether that madness, which I had feared was taking over Goliath during our conversation last night, suddenly consumed him and drove him to commit the terrible act, or what more had transpired between him and the captain to even mildly justify such a horrific response—these things were now entirely a matter of speculation. As if they had never existed, the two men were erased—gone before God in the full blaze of murder and vengeful rage.
On the same evening Mr. Count mustered all hands on the quarter-deck, and addressed us thus: "Men, Captain Slocum is dead, and, as a consequence, I command the ship. Behave yourself like men, not presuming upon kindness or imagining that I am a weak, vacillating old man with whom you can do as you like, and you will find in me a skipper who will do his duty by you as far as lies in his power, nor expect more from you than you ought to render. If, however, you DO try any tricks, remember that I am an old hand, equal to most of the games that men get up to. I do want—if you will help me—to make this a comfortable as well as a successful ship. I hope with all my heart we shall succeed."
That evening, Mr. Count gathered everyone on the quarter-deck and addressed us: "Men, Captain Slocum has passed away, and because of that, I’m in charge of the ship. Act like men; don’t take advantage of my kindness or think that I’m a weak, indecisive old man you can push around. You’ll find me a captain who will do my best for you and won’t expect more from you than what you should give. But if you try any tricks, just remember that I’ve been around long enough to understand most of the games people play. I want—if you’ll help me—to make this ship both comfortable and successful. I truly hope we succeed."
In answer to this manly and affecting little speech, which confirmed my previous estimate of Captain Count's character, were he but free to follow the bent of his natural, kindly inclinations, and which I have endeavoured to translate out of his usual dialect, a hearty cheer was raised by all hands, the first ebullition of general good feeling manifested throughout the voyage. Hearts rose joyfully at the prospect of comfort to be gained by thoughtfulness on the part of the commander; nor from that time forward did any sign of weariness of the ship or voyage show itself among us, either on deck or below.
In response to this brave and touching little speech, which reaffirmed my earlier impression of Captain Count’s character, if only he were free to act on his natural, kind instincts, and which I’ve tried to rephrase from his typical way of speaking, a loud cheer erupted from everyone on board, marking the first real outburst of collective goodwill felt throughout the journey. Everyone felt uplifted at the thought of the comfort that could come from the commander’s thoughtfulness; from that moment on, no signs of fatigue with the ship or voyage appeared among us, whether on deck or below.
The news soon spread among us that, in consequence of the various losses of boats and gear, the captain deemed it necessary to make for Honolulu, where fresh supplies could readily be obtained. We had heard many glowing accounts from visitors, when "gamming," of the delights of this well-known port of call for whalers, and under our new commander we had little doubt that we should be allowed considerable liberty during our stay. So we were quite impatient to get along fretting considerably at the persistent fogs which prevented our making much progress while in the vicinity of the Kuriles. But we saw no more bowheads, for which none of us forward were at all sorry. We had got very tired of the stink of their blubber, and the never-ending worry connected with the preservation of the baleen; besides, we had not yet accumulated any fund of enthusiasm about getting a full ship, except as a reason for shortening the voyage, and we quite understood that what black oil we had got would be landed at Hawaii, so that our visit to the Okhotsk Sea, with its resultant store of oil, had not really brought our return home any nearer, as we at first hoped it would.
The news quickly spread among us that, due to the various losses of boats and gear, the captain thought it was necessary to head to Honolulu, where we could easily get fresh supplies. We had heard many enthusiastic stories from visitors, when "gamming," about the joys of this well-known port for whalers, and under our new commander, we had no doubt we would have a lot of freedom during our stay. So we were quite eager to move on, feeling frustrated by the constant fogs that kept us from making much progress near the Kuriles. But we didn’t see any more bowhead whales, and none of us forward were sad about that. We had grown quite tired of the smell of their blubber and the never-ending hassle of preserving the baleen; plus, we hadn’t built up any excitement about filling the ship, except as a reason to shorten the voyage. We understood that the black oil we had collected would be unloaded in Hawaii, so our trip to the Okhotsk Sea, with its resulting supply of oil, hadn’t really brought our return home any closer, as we had initially hoped.
A great surprise was in store for me. I knew that Captain Count was favourably inclined towards me, for he had himself told me so, but nothing was further from my thoughts than promotion. However, one Sunday afternoon, when we were all peacefully enjoying the unusual rest (we had no Sundays in Captain Slocum's time), the captain sent for me. He informed me that, after mature consideration, he had chosen me to fill the vacancy made by the death of Mistah Jones. Mr. Cruce was now mate; the waspish little third had become second; Louis Silva, the captain's favourite harpooner was third; and I was to be fourth. Not feeling at all sure of how the other harpooners would take my stepping over their heads, I respectfully demurred to the compliment offered me, stating my reasons. But the captain said he had fully made up his mind, after consultation with the other officers, and that I need have no apprehension on the score of the harpooners' jealousy; that they had been spoken to on the subject, and they were all agreed that the captain's choice was the best, especially as none of them knew anything of navigation, or could write their own names.
I was in for a big surprise. I knew Captain Count thought highly of me since he had told me directly, but I never expected to be promoted. One Sunday afternoon, as we were all enjoying a rare day of relaxation (we didn't have Sundays during Captain Slocum's time), the captain called for me. He told me that after careful consideration, he had picked me to fill the spot left by Mistah Jones's death. Mr. Cruce was now the mate; the irritable little third had moved up to second; Louis Silva, the captain's favorite harpooner, was third; and I would be fourth. Unsure of how the other harpooners would react to my promotion over them, I politely declined the compliment and explained my reasons. But the captain insisted he had made his decision after discussing it with the other officers, and I shouldn’t worry about any jealousy from the harpooners. They had been consulted, and everyone agreed that his choice was the best, especially since none of them knew anything about navigation or could even write their names.
In consequence of there being none of the crew fit to take a harpooner's place, I was now really harpooner of the captain's boat, which he would continue to work, when necessary, until we were able to ship a harpooner, which he hoped to do at Hawaii.
Due to the fact that none of the crew were able to take the place of a harpooner, I was now officially the harpooner for the captain's boat. He would continue to manage it when needed until we could find a harpooner, which he hoped to do in Hawaii.
The news of my promotion was received in grim silence by the Portuguese forward, but the white men all seemed pleased. This was highly gratifying to me, for I had tried my best to be helpful to all, as far as my limited abilities would let me; nor do I think I had an enemy in the ship. Behold me, then, a full-blown "mister," with a definite substantial increase in my prospects of pay of nearly one-third, in addition to many other advantages, which, under the new captain, promised exceedingly well.
The news of my promotion was met with a tense silence from the Portuguese forward, but the white crew members all seemed pleased. This made me very happy because I had done my best to assist everyone, within the limits of my capabilities; I don’t believe I had any enemies on the ship. So here I was, officially a "mister," with a solid pay increase of nearly one-third, along with many other benefits that, under the new captain, looked very promising.
More than half the voyage lay behind us, looking like the fast-settling bank of storm-clouds hovering above the tempest-tossed sea so lately passed, while ahead the bright horizon was full of promise of fine weather for the remainder of the journey.
More than half the journey was behind us, resembling the thick bank of storm clouds looming over the choppy sea we had just crossed, while ahead, the clear horizon was filled with the promise of nice weather for the rest of the trip.
CHAPTER XVII. VISIT TO HONOLULU
Right glad were we all when, after much fumbling and box-hauling about, we once more felt the long, familiar roll of the Pacific swell, and saw the dim fastnesses of the smoky islands fading into the lowering gloom astern. Most deep-water sailors are familiar, by report if not by actual contact, with the beauties of the Pacific islands, and I had often longed to visit them to see for myself whether the half that had been told me was true. Of course, to a great number of seafaring men, the loveliness of those regions counts for nothing, their desirability being founded upon the frequent opportunities of unlimited indulgence in debauchery. To such men, a "missionary" island is a howling wilderness, and the missionaries themselves the subjects of the vilest abuse as well as the most boundless lying.
We were all really happy when, after a lot of fumbling and moving boxes around, we once again felt the familiar swell of the Pacific Ocean and saw the smoky islands slowly disappearing into the dark behind us. Most deep-water sailors have heard about the beauty of the Pacific islands, even if they haven’t visited them themselves, and I had often wished to see for myself if what I had heard was true. Of course, for many sailors, the beauty of those places doesn’t matter; they’re more interested in the chances for unlimited partying and indulgence. For those men, a "missionary" island is just a wild, unwelcoming place, and the missionaries get subjected to the worst insults and outrageous lies.
No one who has travelled with his eyes open would assert that all missionaries were wise, prudent, or even godly men; while it is a great deal to be regretted that so much is made of hardships which in a large proportion of cases do not exist, the men who are supposed to be enduring them being immensely better off and more comfortable than they would ever have been at home. Undoubtedly the pioneers of missionary enterprise had, almost without exception, to face dangers and miseries past telling, but that is the portion of pioneers in general. In these days, however, the missionary's lot in Polynesia is not often a hard one, and in many cases it is infinitely to be preferred to a life among the very poor of our great cities.
No one who has traveled with their eyes open would claim that all missionaries are wise, cautious, or even righteous individuals; while it's unfortunate that so much is emphasized about hardships that, in many instances, don’t actually exist, the people who are said to be experiencing these hardships are often much better off and more comfortable than they would have been at home. Undoubtedly, the pioneers of missionary work had to face untold dangers and suffering, but that's a common experience for pioneers in general. Nowadays, though, the life of a missionary in Polynesia is not usually very difficult, and in many cases, it’s far better than living among the very poor in our large cities.
But when all has been said that can be said against the missionaries, the solid bastion of fact remains that, in consequence of their labours, the whole vile character of the populations of the Pacific has been changed, and where wickedness runs riot to-day, it is due largely to the hindrances placed in the way of the noble efforts of the missionaries by the unmitigated scoundrels who vilify them. The task of spreading Christianity would not, after all, be so difficult were it not for the efforts of those apostles of the devil to keep the islands as they would like them to be—places where lust runs riot day and night, murder may be done with impunity, slavery flourishes, and all evil may be indulged in free from law, order, or restraint.
But when everything that can be said against the missionaries has been said, the undeniable truth remains that, thanks to their work, the terrible nature of the populations in the Pacific has been transformed. Where chaos reigns today, it’s largely because of the obstacles created by the complete scoundrels who slander them. Spreading Christianity wouldn’t actually be so hard if it weren't for the efforts of those agents of evil trying to keep the islands the way they want them—places where desire runs wild day and night, murder can occur without consequences, slavery thrives, and all kinds of wrongdoing can happen without law, order, or restraint.
It speaks volumes for the inherent might of the Gospel that, in spite of the object-lessons continually provided for the natives by white men of the negation of all good, that it has stricken its roots so deeply into the soil of the Pacific islands. Just as the best proof of the reality of the Gospel here in England is that it survives the incessant assaults upon it from within by its professors, by those who are paid, and highly paid, to propagate it, by the side of whose deadly doings the efforts of so-called infidels are but as the battery of a summer breeze; so in Polynesia, were not the principles of Christianity vital with an immortal and divine life, missionary efforts might long ago have ceased in utter despair at the fruitlessness of the field.
It’s remarkable how powerful the Gospel is that, despite the constant negative examples set by white men for the local people, it has taken such strong hold in the Pacific islands. Just like the strongest evidence of the Gospel’s truth here in England is that it endures the ongoing challenges from within by its followers—those who are paid, and often very well, to spread it—while the actions of so-called non-believers seem minor in comparison; in Polynesia, if the principles of Christianity weren’t alive with an eternal and divine essence, missionary efforts would likely have given up long ago in complete hopelessness about the lack of results.
We were enjoying a most uneventful passage, free from any serious changes either of wind or weather which quiet time was utilised to the utmost in making many much-needed additions to the running-gear, repairing rigging, etc. Any work involving the use of new material had been put off from time to time during the previous part of the voyage till the ship aloft was really in a dangerous condition. This was due entirely to the peculiar parsimony of our late skipper, who could scarcely bring himself to broach a coil of rope, except for whaling purposes. The same false economy had prevailed with regard to paint and varnish, so that the vessel, while spotlessly clean, presented a worn-out weather-beaten appearance. Now, while the condition of life on board was totally different to what it had been, as regards comfort and peace, discipline and order were maintained at the same high level as always, though by a different method—in fact, I believe that a great deal more work was actually done, certainly much more that was useful and productive; for Captain Count hated, as much as any foremast hand among us, the constant, remorseless grind of iron-work polishing, paint-work scrubbing, and holystoning, all of which, though necessary in a certain degree, when kept up continually for the sole purpose of making work—a sort of elaborated tread-mill, in fact—becomes the refinement of cruelty to underfed, unpaid, and hopeless men.
We were having a pretty uneventful journey, with no significant changes in wind or weather. We made the most of this calm time by adding much-needed upgrades to the running gear, repairing the rigging, and so on. Any work that required new materials had been postponed during the earlier part of the voyage, leaving the ship's upper parts in a risky condition. This was entirely due to the unusual stinginess of our previous captain, who hardly ever allowed himself to break out a coil of rope, except for whaling. The same misguided frugality applied to paint and varnish, so while the vessel was spotless inside, it looked old and weather-beaten on the outside. Now, while life on board had changed significantly in terms of comfort and peace, we maintained the same high standards of discipline and order, albeit through different methods. In fact, I believe we were getting a whole lot more work done, and definitely much more that was useful and productive; for Captain Count disliked, as much as any of us crew members, the never-ending grind of polishing metal, scrubbing paintwork, and holystoning. While these tasks were necessary to some degree, doing them continuously just to keep busy became a sort of cruel routine for underfed, unpaid, and hopeless men.
So, while the CACHALOT could have fearlessly challenged comparison with any ship afloat for cleanliness and neatness of appearance, the hands no longer felt that they were continually being "worked up" or "hazed" for the sole, diabolical satisfaction of keeping them "at it." Of course, the incidence of the work was divided, since so many of the crew were quite unable to do any sailorizing, as we term work in sails and rigging. Upon them, then, fell all the common labour, which can be done by any unskilled man or woman afloat or ashore.
So, while the CACHALOT could have confidently compared to any ship out there for cleanliness and appearance, the crew no longer felt like they were constantly being "worked up" or "hazed" just for the twisted pleasure of keeping them busy. Of course, the workload was divided since many of the crew couldn't handle any of the sailor tasks, which we refer to as work in sails and rigging. Therefore, they took on all the general labor that could be done by any unskilled person, whether at sea or on land.
Of this work a sailor's duties are largely made up, but when good people ashore wonder "whatever sailors do with their time," it would be useful for them to remember that a ship is a huge and complicated machine, needing constant repairs, which can only be efficiently performed by skilled workmen. An "A.B." or able seaman's duties are legally supposed to be defined by the three expressions, "hand, reef, and steer." If he can do those three things, which mean furling or making fast sails, reefing them, and steering the ship, his wages cannot be reduced for incompetency. Yet these things are the A B C of seamanship only. A good SEAMAN is able to make all the various knots, splices, and other arrangements in hempen or wire rope, without which a ship cannot be rigged; he can make a sail, send up or down yards and masts, and do many other things, the sum total of which need several years of steady application to learn, although a good seaman is ever learning.
Sailors spend most of their time on their duties, but when good people on land wonder, "What do sailors actually do with their time?" it might help to remember that a ship is a massive and complex machine that needs constant maintenance, which can only be effectively done by skilled workers. An "A.B." or able seaman's responsibilities are legally meant to be defined by the three tasks: "hand, reef, and steer." If he can do those three things, which involve securing or adjusting sails and steering the ship, his pay can't be lowered for incompetence. However, these tasks are just the basics of seamanship. A good seaman knows how to tie various knots, splices, and other setups in rope or wire, which are essential for rigging a ship; he can make a sail, raise or lower yards and masts, and perform many other tasks that require several years of dedicated practice to master, though a good seaman is always learning.
Such seamen are fast becoming extinct. They are almost totally unnecessary in steamships, except when the engines break down in a gale of wind, and the crowd of navvies forming the crew stand looking at one another when called upon to set sail or do any other job aloft. THEN the want of seamen is rather severely felt. But even in sailing ships—the great, overgrown tanks of two thousand tons and upwards—mechanical genius has utilized iron to such an extent in their rigging that sailor-work has become very largely a matter of blacksmithing. I make no complaint of this, not believing that the "old was better;" but, since the strongest fabric of man's invention comes to grief sometimes in conflict with the irresistible sea, some provision should be made for having a sufficiency of seamen who could exercise their skill in refitting a dismasted ship, or temporarily replacing broken blacksmith work by old-fashioned rope and wood.
Such sailors are quickly becoming a thing of the past. They are almost entirely unnecessary on steamships, except when the engines fail during a storm, and the crew of laborers just look at each other when they are asked to set sail or do any other job up high. That's when we really feel the lack of sailors. But even on sailing ships—the massive, oversized vessels of two thousand tons and more—mechanical innovation has used iron in their rigging to such an extent that sailing work has mostly turned into blacksmithing. I don't complain about this, as I don’t think the “old way was better,” but since even the strongest creations of humans can struggle against the relentless sea, there should be some plan in place to ensure we have enough sailors who can use their skills to repair a ship that has lost its mast or temporarily replace broken metalwork with traditional rope and wood.
But, as the sailing ship is doomed inevitably to disappear before steam, perhaps it does not matter much. The economic march of the world's progress will never be stayed by sentimental considerations, nor will all the romance and poetry in the world save the seaman from extinction, if his place can be more profitably filled by the engineer. From all appearances, it soon will be, for even now marine superintendents of big lines are sometimes engineers, and in their hands lie the duty of engaging the officers. It would really seem as if the ship of the near future would be governed by the chief engineer, under whose direction a pilot or sailing-master would do the necessary navigation, without power to interfere in any matter of the ship's economy. Changes as great have taken place in other professions; seafaring cannot hope to be the sole exception.
But, just like sailing ships are destined to disappear in favor of steam-powered vessels, maybe it doesn't matter that much. The relentless advance of the world's economy won't be halted by sentimental feelings, and no amount of romance or poetry can protect seafarers from being replaced if their roles can be more profitably filled by engineers. From what we can see, that shift is happening soon, as even now, marine superintendents in major shipping lines are often engineers, and they are responsible for hiring the officers. It really seems like the ship of the near future will be run by the chief engineer, with a pilot or sailing-master handling navigation, but without the power to interfere in the ship's operational matters. Significant changes like this have occurred in other professions; seafaring can't expect to be the only exception.
So, edging comfortably along, we gradually neared the Sandwich Islands without having seen a single spout worth watching since the tragedy. At last the lofty summits of the island mountains hove in sight, and presently we came to an anchor in that paradise of whalers, missionaries, and amateur statesmen—Honolulu. As it is as well known to most reading people as our own ports—better perhaps—I shall not attempt to describe it, or pit myself against the able writers who have made it so familiar. Yet to me it was a new world. All things were so strange, so delightful, especially the lovable, lazy, fascinating Kanakas, who could be so limply happy over a dish of poi, or a green cocoa-nut, or even a lounge in the sun, that it seemed an outrage to expect them to work. In their sports they could be energetic enough. I do not know of any more delightful sight than to watch them bathing in the tremendous surf, simply intoxicated with the joy of living, as unconscious of danger as if swinging in a hammock while riding triumphantly upon the foaming summit of an incoming breaker twenty feet high, or plunging with a cataract over the dizzy edge of its cliff, swallowed up in the hissing vortex below, only to reappear with a scream of riotous laughter in the quiet eddy beyond.
So, as we cruised along comfortably, we slowly approached the Sandwich Islands without having spotted a single whale spout worth watching since the tragedy. Finally, the tall peaks of the island mountains came into view, and soon after we dropped anchor in that paradise of whalers, missionaries, and amateur politicians—Honolulu. Since it's as well known to most readers as our own ports—perhaps even better—I won't bother describing it or competing with the talented writers who have made it so familiar. Yet for me, it was a new world. Everything was so strange and delightful, especially the lovable, laid-back Kanakas, who could be so blissfully happy over a bowl of poi, a green coconut, or just lounging in the sun that it felt unfair to expect them to work. In their play, they could be quite energetic. I can't think of anything more delightful than watching them swim in the huge surf, completely overjoyed with life, as oblivious to danger as if they were swinging in a hammock while riding triumphantly on the foaming crest of a twenty-foot wave, or plunging over the dizzy edge of a cliff, swallowed by the hissing whirlpool below, only to reappear with screams of raucous laughter in the calm eddy beyond.
As far as I could judge, they were the happiest of people, literally taking no thought for the morrow, and content with the barest necessaries of life, so long as they were free and the sun shone brightly. We had many opportunities of cultivating their acquaintance, for the captain allowed us much liberty, quite one-half of the crew and officers being ashore most of the time. Of course, the majority spent all their spare time in the purlieus of the town, which, like all such places anywhere, were foul and filthy enough; but that was their own faults. I have often wondered much to see men, who on board ship were the pink of cleanliness and neatness, fastidious to a fault in all they did, come ashore and huddle in the most horrible of kennels, among the very dregs and greaves of the 'long-shore district. It certainly wants a great deal of explanation; but I suppose the most potent reason is, that sailors, as a class, never learn to enjoy themselves rationally. They are also morbidly suspicions of being taken in hand by anybody who would show them anything worth seeing, preferring to be led by the human sharks that infest all seaports into ways of strange nastiness, and so expensive withal that one night of such wallowing often costs them more than a month's sane recreation and good food would. All honour to the devoted men and women who labour in our seaports for the moral and material benefit of the sailor, passing their lives amidst sights and sounds shocking and sickening to the last degree, reviled, unthanked, unpaid. Few are the missionaries abroad whose lot is so hard as theirs.
As far as I could tell, they were the happiest people, literally not worrying about tomorrow and satisfied with just the essentials of life, as long as they were free and the sun was shining. We had plenty of chances to get to know them better since the captain gave us a lot of freedom, with nearly half of the crew and officers being ashore most of the time. Naturally, most spent all their free time in the rough parts of town, which, like in any such place, were dirty and grimy; but that was their own choice. I often wondered why men who were incredibly clean and tidy on the ship, overly particular in everything they did, would come ashore and crowd into the most horrible places, among the absolute worst of the waterfront district. It really requires some explanation, but I assume the main reason is that sailors, as a group, never learn to enjoy themselves in a sensible way. They also have a strange fear of being shown anything worthwhile by someone, preferring to follow the shady characters that populate all seaports into paths of disgustingness, often so costly that one night of that kind of behavior could set them back more than a month of healthy recreation and good food. All respect to the dedicated men and women who work in our seaports for the moral and material benefit of sailors, spending their lives amid sights and sounds that are shocking and sickening to the extreme, unappreciated, unpaid, and often insulted. Few missionaries abroad have a harder lot than theirs.
We spent ten happy days in Honolulu, marred only by one or two drunken rows among the chaps forward, which, however, resulted in their getting a severe dressing down in the forecastle, where good order was now kept. There had been no need for interference on the part of the officers, which I was glad to see, remembering what would have happened under such circumstances not long ago. Being short-handed, the captain engaged a number of friendly islanders for a limited period, on the understanding that they were to be discharged at their native place, Vau Vau. There were ten of them, fine stalwart fellows, able bodied and willing as possible. They were cleanly in their habits, and devout members of the Wesleyan body, so that their behaviour was quite a reproach to some of our half-civilized crew. Berths were found for them in the forecastle, and they took their places among us quite naturally, being fairly well used to a whale-ship.
We spent ten enjoyable days in Honolulu, only interrupted by a couple of drunken arguments among the guys up front, which led to a serious talking-to in the forecastle, where order was now maintained. The officers didn’t need to step in, which I was happy to see, considering how things would have played out not long ago. Since we were short-handed, the captain hired a number of friendly islanders for a limited time, with the understanding that they would be taken back to their home in Vau Vau. There were ten of them, strong and capable, eager to help. They kept clean and were devout members of the Wesleyan church, making their behavior quite a contrast to some of our less civilized crew. We found them spots in the forecastle, and they settled in with us easily, having some experience with life on a whale ship.
CHAPTER XVIII. ON THE "LINE" GROUNDS
We weighed at last, one morning, with a beautiful breeze, and, bidding a long farewell to the lovely isles and their amiable inhabitants, stood at sea, bound for the "line" or equatorial grounds on our legitimate business of sperm whaling. It was now a long while since we had been in contact with a cachalot, the last one having been killed by us on the Coast of Japan some six months before. But we all looked forward to the coming campaign with considerable joy, for we were now a happy family, interested in the work, and, best of all, even if the time was still distant, we were, in a sense, homeward bound. At any rate, we all chose so to think, from the circumstance that we were now working to the southward, towards Cape Horn, the rounding of which dreaded point would mark the final stage of our globe-encircling voyage.
We finally set sail one morning, with a beautiful breeze, and saying a long goodbye to the lovely islands and their friendly people, headed out to sea, on our legitimate mission of sperm whaling. It had been quite a while since we encountered a sperm whale, the last one we had caught was off the coast of Japan about six months ago. But we were all looking forward to the upcoming expedition with a lot of excitement because we were now like a happy family, eager for the work ahead, and, even if it was still a while away, we felt like we were, in a way, headed home. At any rate, we all chose to think of it that way since we were now traveling south toward Cape Horn, and rounding that dreaded point would mark the last leg of our journey around the globe.
We had, during our stay at Honolulu, obtained a couple of grand boats in addition to our stock, and were now in a position to man and lower five at once, if occasion should arise, still leaving sufficient crew on board to work the vessel. The captain had also engaged an elderly seaman of his acquaintance—out of pure philanthropy, as we all thought, since he was in a state of semi-starvation ashore—to act as a kind of sailing-master, so as to relieve the captain of ship duty at whaling time, allowing him still to head his boat. This was not altogether welcome news to me, for, much as I liked the old man and admired his pluck, I could not help dreading his utter recklessness when on a whale, which had so often led to a smash-up that might have been easily avoided. Moreover, I reasoned that if he had been foolhardy before, he was likely to be much more so now, having no superior to look black or use language when a disaster occurred. For now I was his harpooner, bound to take as many risks as he chose to incur, and anxious also to earn a reputation among the more seasoned whalemen for smartness sufficient to justify my promotion.
During our time in Honolulu, we got a couple of great boats to add to our fleet, and now we could man and launch five at once if needed, while still leaving enough crew on board to operate the vessel. The captain had also hired an older sailor he knew—mostly out of kindness, as we all believed, since he was nearly starving on land—to serve as a kind of sailing-master. This would give the captain some relief from ship duties during whaling season, while still allowing him to lead his boat. I didn’t find this news entirely welcome, because even though I liked the old man and admired his courage, I couldn’t shake off my fear of his reckless behavior when it came to whale hunting, which had often resulted in avoidable disasters. Plus, I figured that if he had been foolish before, he would likely be even more so now, with no one senior to reprimand him when things went wrong. Now I was his harpooner, bound to take on as many risks as he was willing to take, while also eager to prove myself to the more experienced whalers to earn recognition for my skills.
The Kanakas shipped at Honolulu were distributed among the boats, two to each, being already trained whalemen, and a fine lot of fellows they were. My two—Samuela and Polly—were not very big men, but sturdy, nimble as cats, as much at home in the water as on deck, and simply bubbling over with fun and good-humour. From my earliest sea-going, I have always had a strong liking for natives of tropical countries, finding them affectionate and amenable to kindness. Why, I think, white men do not get on with darkies well, as a rule, is, that they seldom make an appeal to the MAN, in them. It is very degrading to find one's self looked down upon as a sort of animal without reason or feelings; and if you degrade a man, you deprive him of any incentive to make himself useful, except the brute one you may feel bound to apply yourself. My experience has been limited to Africans (of sorts), Kanakas, natives of Hindostan, Malagasy, and Chinese; but with all these I have found a little COMARADERIE answer excellently. True, they are lazy; but what inducement have they to work? The complicated needs of our civilized existence compel US to work, or be run over by the unresting machine; but I take leave to doubt whether any of us with a primitive environment would not be as lazy as any Kanaka that ever dozed under a banana tree through daylight hours. Why, then, make an exalted virtue of the necessity which drives us, and objurgate the poor black man because he prefers present ease to a doubtful prospective retirement on a competency? Australian blackfellows and Malays are said to be impervious to kind treatment by a great number of witnesses, the former appearing incapable of gratitude, and the latter unable to resist the frequent temptation to kill somebody. Not knowing anything personally of either of these races, I can say nothing for or against them.
The Kanakas who boarded in Honolulu were spread out among the boats, two to each, and they were already experienced whalers—a great bunch of guys. My two—Samuela and Polly—weren't very big but were strong, as nimble as cats, just as comfortable in the water as on deck, and full of fun and good humor. Since I started sailing, I’ve always liked people from tropical regions; they seem affectionate and responsive to kindness. I think white people often struggle to connect with black folks because they rarely appeal to the man within them. It's demeaning to be seen as a kind of animal without reason or feelings; when you diminish a person, you remove any motivation for them to be useful, aside from the brute force you might feel compelled to use. My experience has mostly been with Africans (of various kinds), Kanakas, people from India, Malagasy, and Chinese; but with all of them, I’ve found that a little camaraderie works wonders. Sure, they can be lazy, but what reason do they have to work? The complex demands of our civilized lives force us to work or get crushed by the relentless system. But I wonder if any of us, in a primitive setting, wouldn’t be just as lazy as any Kanaka lounging under a banana tree during daylight. So why elevate the necessity that drives us to virtue and criticize a poor black man for choosing present comfort over an uncertain future? It’s said that Australian Aborigines and Malays are unresponsive to kindness, with the former seeming incapable of gratitude and the latter often giving in to the urge to harm someone. Not having personal experience with either group, I can’t say anything for or against them.
All the coloured individuals that I have had to do with have amply repaid any little kindness shown them with fidelity and affection, but especially has this been the case with Kanakas, The soft and melodious language spoken by them is easy to acquire, and is so pleasant to speak that it is well worth learning, to say nothing of the convenience to yourself, although the Kanaka speedily picks up the mutilated jargon which does duty for English on board ship.
All the people of color I've interacted with have gratefully returned any small kindness I've shown them with loyalty and warmth, especially the Kanakas. Their soft and melodic language is easy to learn and so enjoyable to speak that it's definitely worth the effort, not to mention the convenience for yourself, even though the Kanaka quickly picks up the broken English that gets used on board ship.
What I specially longed for now was a harpooner, or even two, so that I might have my boat to myself, the captain taking his own boat with a settled harpooner. Samuela, the biggest of my two Kanakas, very earnestly informed me that he was no end of a "number one" whale slaughterer; but I judged it best to see how things went before asking to have him promoted. My chance, and his, came very promptly; so nicely arranged, too, that I could not have wished for anything better. The skipper had got a fine, healthy boil on one knee-cap, and another on his wrist, so that he was, as you may say, HORS DE COMBAT. While he was impatiently waiting to get about once more, sperm whales were raised. Although nearly frantic with annoyance, he was compelled to leave the direction of things to Mr. Cruce, who was quite puffed up with the importance of his opportunity.
What I really wanted right now was a harpooner, or even two, so I could have my boat to myself while the captain took his own boat with a dedicated harpooner. Samuela, the biggest of my two Kanakas, insisted that he was an exceptional whale hunter; but I figured it was best to see how things played out before asking for his promotion. My chance, and his, came pretty quickly, and it was arranged so well that I couldn’t have asked for anything better. The skipper had a nasty boil on one knee and another on his wrist, so he was, you could say, out of action. While he was impatiently waiting to get moving again, sperm whales were spotted. Although he was nearly frantic with frustration, he had to leave the management of things to Mr. Cruce, who was feeling pretty important about his new responsibilities.
Such a nice little school of cow-whales, a lovely breeze, clear sky, warm weather—I felt as gay as a lark at the prospect. As we were reaching to windward, with all boats ready for lowering, the skipper called me aft and said, "Naow, Mr. Bullen, I cain't lower, because of this condemned leg'n arm of mine; but how'r yew goin' ter manage 'thout a harpooneer?" I suggested that if he would allow me to try Samuela, who was suffering for a chance to distinguish himself, we would "come out on top." "All right," he said; "but let the other boats get fast first, 'n doan be in too much of a hurry to tie yerself up till ya see what's doin'. If everythin's goin' bizness-fashion', 'n yew git a chance, sail right in; yew got ter begin some time. But ef thet Kanaka looks skeered goin' on, take the iron frum him ter onct." I promised, and the interview ended.
Such a nice little school of cow-whales, a lovely breeze, clear sky, warm weather—I felt as happy as can be at the thought of it. As we headed into the wind, with all boats ready to lower, the captain called me over and said, "Now, Mr. Bullen, I can't lower because of this damn leg and arm of mine; but how are you going to manage without a harpooner?" I suggested that if he let me try Samuela, who was eager for a chance to prove himself, we would "come out on top." "All right," he said; "but let the other boats get fast first, and don’t be in too much of a hurry to tie yourself up until you see what's happening. If everything's going smoothly and you get a chance, go for it; you've got to start sometime. But if that Kanaka looks scared going in, take the iron from him right away." I promised, and the conversation ended.
When I told Samuela, of his chance, he was beside himself with joy. As to his being scared, the idea was manifestly absurd. He was as pleased with the prospect as it was possible for a man to be, and hardly able to contain himself for impatience to be off. I almost envied him his exuberant delight, for a sense of responsibility began to weigh upon me with somewhat depressing effect.
When I informed Samuela about his opportunity, he was overwhelmed with joy. The thought of him being scared was completely ridiculous. He was as excited about the possibility as anyone could be, barely able to hold back his eagerness to get started. I almost envied his boundless happiness, as a feeling of responsibility started to weigh on me in a rather discouraging way.
We gained a good weather-gage, rounded to, and lowered four boats. Getting away in good style, we had barely got the sails up, when something gallied the school. We saw or heard nothing to account for it, but undoubtedly the "fish" were off at top speed dead to windward, so that our sails were of no use. We had them in with as little delay as possible, and lay to our oars for all we were worth, being fresh and strong, as well as anxious to get amongst them. But I fancy all our efforts would have availed us little had it not been for the experience of Mr. Cruce, whose eager eye detected the fact that the fish were running on a great curve, and shaped our course to cut them off along a chord of the arc.
We got a good position with the wind, turned around, and lowered four boats. Setting off in style, we had just gotten the sails up when something startled the school. We didn’t see or hear anything that explained it, but the "fish" took off at full speed against the wind, making our sails useless. We took them down as quickly as we could and rowed with all our strength, feeling fresh and eager to get among them. But I think all our efforts would have been pointless if it weren't for Mr. Cruce's experience; his keen eye noticed that the fish were running in a big curve, so he adjusted our course to intercept them along a straight line of the arc.
Two and a half hours of energetic work was required of us before we got on terms with the fleeing monsters; but at last, to our great joy, they broke water from sounding right among us. It was a considerable surprise, but we were all ready, and before they had spouted twice, three boats were fast, only myself keeping out, in accordance with my instructions. Samuela was almost distraught with rage and grief at the condition of things. I quite pitied him, although I was anything but pleased myself. However, when I ranged up alongside the mate's fish, to render what assistance was needed, he shouted to me, "We's all right; go'n git fas', if yew kin." That was enough, and away we flew after a retreating spout to leeward. Before we got there, though, there was an upheaval in the water just ahead, and up came a back like a keelless ship bottom up. Out came the head belonging to it, and a spout like an explosion burst forth, denoting the presence of an enormous bull-cachalot. Close by his side was a cow of about one-third his size, the favoured sultana of his harem, I suppose. Prudence whispered, "Go for the cow;" ambition hissed, "All or none—the bull, the bull." Fortunately emergencies of this kind leave one but a second or two to decide, as a rule; in this case, as it happened, I was spared even that mental conflict, for as we ran up between the two vast creatures, Samuela, never even looking at the cow, hurled his harpoon, with all the energy that he had been bursting with so long, at the mighty bull. I watched its flight—saw it enter the black mass and disappear to the shaft, and almost immediately came the second iron, within a foot of the first, burying itself in the same solid fashion.
We worked hard for two and a half hours before we finally got close to the fleeing monsters; but at last, to our great relief, they broke the surface right among us. It was quite a surprise, but we were all set, and before they had spouted twice, three boats were hooked on, with just me holding back, following my instructions. Samuela was nearly beside himself with anger and sadness about the situation. I felt sorry for him, even though I wasn’t happy about it myself. However, when I pulled up next to the mate's catch to help out, he shouted to me, "We’re good; go get fast if you can." That was enough, and off we went after a spout drifting downwind. Before we reached it, though, there was a disturbance in the water just ahead, and up came a back like an upside-down keelless ship. Then the head appeared, and a spout like an explosion erupted, signaling the presence of a massive bull sperm whale. Next to him was a female about a third of his size, probably the favored mate of his harem. Prudence whispered, "Go for the female," while ambition hissed, "All or none—the bull, the bull." Luckily, moments like these usually don’t give you long to decide; in this case, I didn’t even get that chance, because as we sped up between the two huge creatures, Samuela, without even glancing at the female, launched his harpoon with all the force he had been holding back at the giant bull. I watched it fly—saw it pierce the dark mass and disappear up to the shaft, and almost immediately the second harpoon followed, landing just a foot away from the first, embedding itself in the same solid way.
"Starn—starn all!" I shouted; and we backed slowly away, considerably hampered by the persistent attentions of the cow, who hung round us closely. The temptation to lance her was certainly great, but I remembered the fate that had overtaken the skipper on the first occasion we struck whales, and did not meddle with her ladyship. Our prey was not apparently disposed to kick up much fuss at first, so, anxious to settle matters, I changed ends with Samuela, and pulled in on the whale. A good, steady lance-thrust—the first I had ever delivered—was obtained, sending a thrill of triumph through my whole body. The recipient, thoroughly roused by this, started off at a great lick, accompanied, somewhat to my surprise, by the cow. Thenceforward for another hour, in spite of all our efforts, we could not get within striking distance, mainly because of the close attention of the cow, which stuck to her lord like a calf to its mother. I was getting so impatient of this hindrance, that it was all I could do to restrain myself from lancing the cow, though I felt convinced that, if I did, I should spoil a good job. Suddenly I caught sight of the ship right ahead. We were still flying along, so that in a short time we were comparatively close to her. My heart beat high and I burned to distinguish myself under the friendly and appreciative eye of the skipper.
"Starn—starn all!" I shouted, and we slowly backed away, weighed down by the cow's constant presence, which stuck close to us. The urge to lance her was certainly strong, but I remembered what happened to the skipper during our first whale hunt and decided to leave her alone. Our target didn’t seem keen on making a fuss at first, so eager to resolve things, I switched places with Samuela and moved in on the whale. I delivered a solid lance-thrust—the first one I had ever done—which sent a wave of triumph through me. The whale, now fully awake, took off at breakneck speed, with the cow surprisingly following close behind. For the next hour, despite all our efforts, we couldn’t get within striking range, mostly due to the cow, who was sticking to her mate like a calf to its mother. I was getting so frustrated by this obstacle that I could barely hold back the impulse to lance the cow, even though I knew it would ruin a good opportunity. Suddenly, I spotted the ship right ahead. We were still racing forward, and before long, we were relatively close to her. My heart raced, and I was eager to prove myself under the friendly and approving gaze of the skipper.
None of the other boats were in sight, from our level at least, so that I had a reasonable hope of being able to finish my game, with all the glory thereunto attaching, unshared by any other of my fellow-officers. As we ran quite closely past the ship, calling on the crew to haul up for all they were worth, we managed actually to squeeze past the cow, and I got in a really deadly blow. The point of the lance entered just between the fin and the eye, but higher up, missing the broad plate of the shoulder-blade, and sinking its whole four feet over the hitches right down into the animal's vitals. Then, for the first time, he threw up his flukes, thrashing them from side to side almost round to his head, and raising such a turmoil that we were half full of water in a moment. But Samuela was so quick at the steer-oar, so lithe and forceful, and withal appeared so to anticipate every move of mine, that there seemed hardly any danger.
None of the other boats were in sight from where we were, so I had a good chance to finish my game, with all the glory that came with it, all to myself and not shared with any of my fellow officers. As we sped closely past the ship, urging the crew to pull as hard as they could, we actually managed to squeeze past the cow, and I landed a really solid hit. The point of the lance went right between the fin and the eye, but higher up, missing that big plate of the shoulder blade, and sinking all four feet down into the animal's vital organs. Then, for the first time, it raised its flukes, thrashing them from side to side almost to its head, causing such a commotion that we were half full of water in an instant. But Samuela was so quick at steering, so agile and strong, and seemed to anticipate every move I made, that there felt like hardly any danger.
After a few moments of this tremendous exertion, our victim settled down, leaving the water deeply stained with his gushing blood. With him disappeared his constant companion, the faithful cow, who had never left his side a minute since we first got fast. Down, down they went, until my line began to look very low, and I was compelled to make signals to the ship for more. We had hardly elevated the oars, when down dropped the last boat with four men in her, arriving by my side in a few minutes with two fresh tubs of tow-line. We took them on board, and the boat returned again. By the time the slack came we had about four hundred and fifty fathoms out—a goodly heap to pile up loose in our stern-sheets. I felt sure, however, that we should have but little more trouble with our fish; in fact, I was half afraid that he would die before getting to the surface, in which case he might sink and be lost. We hauled steadily away, the line not coming in very easily, until I judged there was only about another hundred fathoms out. Our amazement may be imagined, when suddenly we were compelled to sleek away again, the sudden weight on the line suggesting that the fish was again sounding. If ever a young hand was perplexed, it was I. Never before had I heard of such unseemly behaviour, nor was my anxiety lessened when I saw, a short distance away, the huge body of my prize at the surface spouting blood. At the same time, I was paying out line at a good rate, as if I had a fast fish on which was sounding briskly.
After a few moments of intense struggle, our victim settled down, leaving the water heavily stained with his blood. Along with him disappeared his constant companion, the loyal cow, who had never left his side since we first got stuck. Down, down they went, until my line began to look very low, and I had to signal the ship for more supplies. We had barely lifted the oars when the last boat with four men arrived by my side within a few minutes, bringing two fresh tubs of towline. We took them on board, and the boat headed back. By the time the slack came, we had about four hundred and fifty fathoms out—a significant amount to pile up loosely in our stern. However, I was fairly certain that we wouldn’t have much more trouble with our fish; in fact, I was half afraid that he would die before reaching the surface, which could lead to him sinking and being lost. We pulled steadily, the line not coming in easily, until I estimated there was only about another hundred fathoms left. Our surprise can be imagined when suddenly we had to pull back again, the sudden weight on the line indicating that the fish was diving again. If ever a rookie was confused, it was me. Never before had I heard of such unexpected behavior, nor was my anxiety eased when I saw, not far away, the massive body of my prize at the surface, spouting blood. At the same time, I was letting out line at a fast pace, as if I had a hooked fish that was strong and diving rapidly.
The skipper had been watching me very closely from his seat on the taffrail, and had kept the ship within easy distance. Now, suspecting something out of the common, he sent the boat again to my assistance, in charge of the cooper. When that worthy arrived, he said, "Th' ol' man reckens yew've got snarled erp'ith thet ar' loose keow, 'n y'r irons hev draw'd from th' other. I'm gwine ter wait on him,'n get him 'longside 'soon's he's out'er his flurry. Ole man sez yew'd best wait on what's fast t' yer an' nev' mine th' other." Away he went, reaching my prize just as the last feeble spout exhaled, leaving the dregs of that great flood of life trickling lazily down from the widely expanded spiracle. To drive a harpoon into the carcass, and run the line on board, was the simplest of jobs, for, as the captain had foreseen, my irons were drawn clean. I had no leisure to take any notice of them now, though, for whatever was on my line was coming up hand-over-fist.
The captain had been keeping a close eye on me from his spot on the railing, making sure the ship stayed nearby. Now, sensing something unusual, he sent the boat back to help me, with the cooper in charge. When he arrived, he said, "The old man thinks you’ve got tangled up with that loose cow, and your gear has come away from the other one. I'm going to stick with him and bring him alongside as soon as he’s settled down. The old man says you’d better focus on what’s hooked to you and not worry about the other one." He then left, reaching my catch just as the last weak spout fizzled out, leaving the remnants of that vast life-force trickling slowly from the wide-open blowhole. Getting a harpoon into the body and bringing the line aboard was an easy task, because, as the captain had predicted, my gear was completely free. I didn’t have time to pay attention to them now, though, since whatever was on my line was coming up fast.
With a bound it reached the surface—the identical cow so long attendant upon the dead whale. Having been so long below for such a small whale, she was quite exhausted, and before she had recovered we had got alongside of her and lanced her, so thoroughly that she died without a struggle. The ship was so close that we had her alongside in a wonderfully short time, and with scarcely any trouble.
With a leap, it reached the surface—the same cow that had been with the dead whale for so long. After being down for such a long time for such a small whale, she was really tired, and before she could recover, we had gotten next to her and struck her, so effectively that she died without putting up a fight. The ship was so close that we got her alongside in no time at all, with hardly any effort.
When I reached the deck, the skipper called me, and said several things that made me feel about six inches taller. He was, as may be thought, exceedingly pleased, saying that only once in his long career had he seen a similar case; for I forgot to mention that the line was entangled around the cow's down-hanging jaw, as if she had actually tried to bite in two the rope that held her consort, and only succeeded in sharing his fate. I would not like to say that whales do not try to thus sever a line, but, their teeth being several inches apart, conical, and fitting into sockets in the upper jaw instead of meeting the opposed surfaces of other teeth, the accomplishment of such a feat must, I think, be impossible.
When I got to the deck, the captain called me over and said a few things that made me feel like I was six inches taller. He was, as you can imagine, really pleased, mentioning that in his long career he had only seen something like this once before. I forgot to mention that the line was tangled around the cow's dangling jaw, as if she had actually tried to bite through the rope that held her companion, only to end up sharing his fate. I wouldn't say that whales don't try to sever a line this way, but given that their teeth are several inches apart, conical, and fit into sockets in the upper jaw instead of meeting other teeth directly, I believe it's pretty much impossible for them to pull it off.
The ship being now as good as anchored by the vast mass of flesh hanging to her, there was a tremendous task awaiting us to get the other fish alongside. Of course they were all to windward; they nearly always are, unless the ship is persistently "turned to windward" while the fishing is going on. Whalers believe that they always work up into the wind while fast, and, when dead, it is certain that they drift at a pretty good rate right in the "wind's eye." This is accounted for by the play of the body, which naturally lies head to wind; and the wash of the flukes, which, acting somewhat like the "sculling" of an oar at the stern of a boat, propel the carcass in the direction it is pointing, Consequently we had a cruel amount of towing to do before we got the three cows alongside. Many a time we blessed ourselves that they were no bigger, for of all the clumsy things to tow with boats, a sperm whale is about the worst. Owing to the great square mass of the head, they can hardly be towed head-on at all, the practice being to cut off the tips of the flukes, and tow them tail first. But even then it is slavery. To dip your oar about three times in the same hole from whence you withdrew it, to tug at it with all your might, apparently making as much progress as though you were fast to a dock-wall, and to continue this fun for four or five hours at a stretch, is to wonder indeed whether you have not mistaken your vocation.
The ship was basically anchored by the massive amount of flesh hanging off it, and we had a huge job ahead of us to get the other fish alongside. Naturally, they were all upwind; they usually are unless the ship is continuously "turned to windward" while we're fishing. Whalers think they always work into the wind when they’re caught, and when they’re dead, they definitely drift pretty quickly right into the "wind's eye." This happens because of the way the body naturally faces into the wind, and the action of the flukes, which work like the "sculling" of an oar at the back of a boat, pushing the carcass in the direction it’s pointing. So, we had a tough time towing before we got the three females alongside. Many times, we were grateful they weren't any bigger, because a sperm whale is one of the clumsier things to tow with boats. Because of the large, square mass of the head, it's almost impossible to tow them head-on; the usual method is to cut off the tips of the flukes and tow them tail-first. But even then, it feels like hard labor. To dip your oar about three times in the same spot where you just pulled it out, to pull with all your strength while it feels like you’re barely making any progress, as if you were tied to a dock, and to keep that up for four or five hours straight really makes you question whether you’ve chosen the right job.
However, "it's dogged as does it," so by dint of sheer sticking to the oar, we eventually succeeded in getting all our prizes alongside before eight bells that evening, securing them around us by hawsers to the cows, but giving the big bull the post of honour alongside on the best fluke-chain.
However, "it's persistence that pays off," so by simply sticking to our task, we eventually succeeded in getting all our prizes alongside before eight bells that evening, securing them around us with hawsers to the cows, but giving the big bull the spot of honor alongside on the best fluke-chain.
We were a busy company for a fortnight thence, until the last of the oil was run below—two hundred and fifty barrels, or twenty-five tuns, of the valuable fluid having rewarded our exertions. During these operations we had drifted night and day, apparently without anybody taking the slightest account of the direction we were taking; when, therefore, on the day after clearing up the last traces of our fishing, the cry of "Land ho!" came ringing down from the crow's-nest, no one was surprised, although the part of the Pacific in which we were cruising has but few patches of TERRA FIRMA scattered about over its immense area when compared with the crowded archipelagoes lying farther south and east.
We were a busy crew for two weeks after that, until we used up the last of the oil—two hundred and fifty barrels, or twenty-five tuns, of the valuable stuff rewarded our hard work. During this time, we had been drifting night and day, seemingly without anyone paying attention to the direction we were headed; so, when the shout of "Land ho!" rang down from the crow's-nest the day after we finished cleaning up the last signs of our fishing, nobody was surprised, even though the part of the Pacific we were in has very few pieces of solid ground scattered across its vast area compared to the crowded archipelagos further south and east.
We could not see the reported land from the deck for two hours after it was first seen from aloft, although the odd spectacle of a scattered group of cocoa-nut trees apparently growing out of the sea was for some time presented to us before the island itself came into view. It was Christmas Island, where the indefatigable Captain Cook landed on December 24, 1777, for the purpose of making accurate observations of an eclipse of the sun. He it was who gave to this lonely atoll the name it has ever since borne, with characteristic modesty giving his own great name to a tiny patch of coral which almost blocks the entrance to the central lagoon. Here we lay "off and on" for a couple of days, while foraging parties went ashore, returning at intervals with abundance of turtle and sea-fowls' eggs. But any detailed account of their proceedings must be ruthlessly curtailed, owing to the scanty limits of space remaining.
We couldn't see the reported land from the deck for two hours after it was first spotted from above, although we were treated to the unusual sight of a scattered group of coconut trees seemingly growing out of the sea before the island itself came into view. It was Christmas Island, where the tireless Captain Cook landed on December 24, 1777, to make accurate observations of a solar eclipse. He gave this remote atoll the name it has carried ever since, modestly naming a tiny patch of coral that almost blocks the entrance to the central lagoon after himself. We remained "off and on" for a couple of days while foraging parties went ashore, returning periodically with plenty of turtles and seabirds' eggs. However, any detailed account of their activities must be drastically shortened due to the limited space remaining.
CHAPTER XIX. EDGING SOUTHWARD
The line whaling grounds embrace an exceedingly extensive area, over the whole of which sperm whales may be found, generally of medium size. No means of estimating the probable plenty or scarcity of them in any given part of the grounds exist, so that falling in with them is purely a matter of coincidence. To me it seems a conclusive proof of the enormous numbers of sperm whales frequenting certain large breadths of ocean, that they should be so often fallen in with, remembering what a little spot is represented by a day's cruise, and that the signs which denote almost infallibly the vicinity of right whales are entirely absent in the case of the cachalot. In the narrow waters of the Greenland seas, with quite a small number of vessels seeking, it is hardly possible for a whale of any size to escape being seen; but in the open ocean a goodly fleet may cruise over a space of a hundred thousand square miles without meeting any of the whales that may yet be there in large numbers. So that when one hears talk of the extinction of the cachalot, it is well to bear in mind that such a thing would take a long series of years to effect, even were the whaling business waxing instead of waning, While, however, South Sea whaling is conducted on such old-world methods as still obtain; while steam, with all the power it gives of rapidly dealing with a catch, is not made use of, the art and mystery of the whale-fisher must continually decrease. No such valuable lubricant has ever been found as sperm oil; but the cost of its production, added to the precarious nature of the supply, so handicaps it in the competition with substitutes that it has been practically eliminated from the English markets, except in such greatly adulterated forms as to render it a lie to speak of the mixture as sperm oil at all.
The line whaling grounds cover a massive area where sperm whales are generally found, mostly at a medium size. There's no way to estimate how many there are in any specific part of these grounds, so encountering them is purely random. It seems to me that the frequent sightings of sperm whales in certain vast sections of the ocean prove their enormous populations, especially considering how small an area is covered by a day's journey, and noting that the signs indicating the presence of right whales are completely absent when it comes to cachalots. In the narrow waters of the Greenland seas, where only a few boats are hunting, it’s nearly impossible for a whale of any size to go unseen; however, in the open ocean, a large fleet can cruise over an area of a hundred thousand square miles without encountering any whales that might still be plentiful there. Therefore, when there's talk of the extinction of the cachalot, it's important to remember that achieving that would take a long time even if whaling were on the rise instead of decline. While whaling in the South Seas still follows outdated methods and steam power, which could quickly handle a catch, isn’t utilized, the skills and secrets of whale fishing will continue to diminish. Sperm oil has never been matched by any other lubricant, but the high production costs and the uncertain supply make it hard to compete with substitutes, so it has practically disappeared from the English markets, except in heavily adulterated forms that make it misleading to even call it sperm oil.
Except to a few whose minds to them are kingdoms, and others who can hardly be said to have any minds at all, the long monotony of unsuccessful seeking for whales is very wearying. The ceaseless motion of the vessel rocking at the centre of a circular space of blue, with a perfectly symmetrical dome of azure enclosing her above, unflecked by a single cloud, becomes at last almost unbearable from its changeless sameness of environment. Were it not for the trivial round and common task of everyday ship duty, some of the crew must become idiotic, or, in sheer rage at the want of interest in their lives, commit mutiny.
Except for a few people who see their minds as their own kingdoms and others who barely seem to think at all, the long stretch of fruitless whale hunting is really exhausting. The constant motion of the boat swaying in the middle of a circular expanse of blue, with a perfectly clear dome of sky above it, completely free of clouds, eventually becomes almost unbearable because of the unchanging sameness of the surroundings. If it weren't for the mundane tasks of daily ship duties, some crew members would likely go crazy or, driven mad by the lack of excitement in their lives, might even rebel.
Such a weary time was ours for full four weeks after sighting Christmas Island. The fine haul we had obtained just previous to that day seemed to have exhausted our luck for the time being, for never a spout did we see. And it was with no ordinary delight that we hailed the advent of an immense school of black-fish, the first we had run across for a long time. Determined to have a big catch, if possible, we lowered all five boats, as it was a beautifully calm day, and the ship might almost safely have been left to look after herself. After what we had recently been accustomed to, the game seemed trifling to get up much excitement over; but still, for a good day's sport, commend me to a few lively black-fish.
It was a really tough time for us for a full four weeks after we spotted Christmas Island. The great catch we had just before that day seemed to have drained our luck for a while, as we didn’t see even a single spout. So, we were extra excited when we came across a huge school of blackfish, the first we've seen in quite some time. Determined to grab as many as we could, we lowered all five boats because it was a perfectly calm day, and the ship could have almost been left to its own devices. Given what we had been through lately, the game didn’t seem that thrilling, but still, for a good day of fishing, nothing beats a few energetic blackfish.
In less than ten minutes we were in the thick of the crowd, with harpoons flying right and left. Such a scene of wild confusion and uproarious merriment ensued as I never saw before in my life. The skipper, true to his traditions, got fast to four, all running different ways at once, and making the calm sea boil again with their frantic gyrations. Each of the other boats got hold of three; but, the mate getting too near me, our fish got so inextricably tangled up that it was hopeless to try and distinguish between each other's prizes. However, when we got the lances to work among them, the hubbub calmed down greatly, and the big bodies one by one ceased their gambols, floating supine.
In less than ten minutes, we were in the middle of the crowd, with harpoons flying in all directions. It was a scene of wild chaos and incredible fun like I’d never seen before in my life. True to his style, the skipper got attached to four, all going in different directions at once and making the calm sea foam again with their frantic movements. Each of the other boats caught three; however, when the mate got too close to me, our fish got so ridiculously tangled that it was impossible to tell each other's catches apart. But once we started using the lances among them, the noise settled down a lot, and one by one, the big bodies stopped their antics, floating on their backs.
So far, all had been gay; but the unlucky second mate must needs go and do a thing that spoiled a day's fun entirely. The line runs through a deep groove in the boat's stem, over a brass roller so fitted that when the line is running out it remains fixed, but when hauling in it revolves freely, assisting the work a great deal. The second mate had three fish fast, like the rest of us—the first one on the end of the main line, the other two on "short warps," or pieces of whale-line some eight or ten fathoms long fastened to harpoons, with the other ends running on the main line by means of bowlines round it. By some mistake or other he had allowed the two lines to be hauled together through the groove in his boat's stem, and before the error was noticed two fish spurted off in opposite directions, ripping the boat in two halves lengthways, like a Dutchman splitting a salt herring.
So far, everything had been great; but the unlucky second mate had to go and do something that ruined the whole day's fun. The line runs through a deep groove in the front of the boat, over a brass roller designed so that when the line is coming out, it stays fixed, but when reeling it in, it spins freely, making the work a lot easier. The second mate had three fish caught, just like the rest of us—the first one on the end of the main line, and the other two on "short warps," or pieces of whale-line about eight or ten fathoms long attached to harpoons, with the other ends connected to the main line using bowlines. By some mistake, he had let the two lines get pulled through the groove in the front of his boat together, and before anyone noticed the mistake, two fish shot off in opposite directions, ripping the boat apart lengthwise, like a Dutchman slicing a salt herring in half.
Away went the fish with the whole of the line, nobody being able to get at it to cut; and, but for the presence of mind shown by the crew in striking out and away from the tangle, a most ghastly misfortune, involving the loss of several lives, must have occurred. As it was, the loss was considerable, almost outweighing the gain on the day's fishing, besides the inconvenience of having a boat useless on a whaling grounds.
Away went the fish with the entire line, and no one could get to it to cut it; if it weren't for the quick thinking of the crew in pulling away from the tangle, a horrific disaster, resulting in multiple lives lost, could have happened. As it turned out, the loss was significant, nearly canceling out the gains from the day's fishing, along with the hassle of having a boat that was useless in whaling territory.
The accident was the fruit of gross carelessness, and should never have occurred; but then, strange to say, disasters to whale-boats are nearly always due to want of care, the percentage of unavoidable casualties being very small as compared with those like the one just related. When the highly dangerous nature of the work is remembered, this statement may seem somewhat overdrawn; but it has been so frequently corroborated by others, whose experience far outweighs my own, that I do not hesitate to make it with the fullest confidence in its truth.
The accident was a result of extreme negligence and should never have happened; however, it's odd to note that disasters involving whale boats are almost always caused by a lack of care, with unavoidable accidents being very rare compared to incidents like the one just described. When considering how risky the work is, this claim might seem a bit exaggerated; but it has been confirmed so many times by others whose experience far surpasses my own that I confidently stand by this statement.
Happily no lives were lost on this occasion, for it would have indeed been grievous to have seen our shipmates sacrificed to the MANES of a mere black-fish, after successfully encountering so many mighty whales. The episode gave us a great deal of unnecessary work getting the two halves of the boat saved, in addition to securing our fish, so that by the time we got the twelve remaining carcasses hove on deck we were all quite fagged out. But under the new regime we were sure of a good rest, so that did not trouble us; it rather made the lounge on deck in the balmy evening air and the well-filled pipe of peace doubly sweet.
Fortunately, no lives were lost this time, because it would have been truly tragic to see our shipmates sacrificed to the spirits of a simple black fish after successfully facing so many giant whales. The incident caused us a lot of extra work trying to salvage the two halves of the boat, in addition to securing our catch, so by the time we got the twelve remaining carcasses on deck, we were all pretty worn out. But with the new arrangements, we were looking forward to a good rest, so that didn’t bother us; it actually made the time spent lounging on deck in the pleasant evening air with a nice, filled pipe even more enjoyable.
Our next day's work completed the skinning of the haul we had made, the last of the carcasses going overboard with a thunderous splash at four in the afternoon. The assemblage of sharks round the ship on this occasion was incredible for its number and the great size of the creatures. Certainly no mariners see so many or such huge sharks as whalemen; but, in spite of all our previous experience, this day touched high-water mark. Many of these fish were of a size undreamed of by the ordinary seafarer, some of them full thirty feet in length, more like whales than sharks. Most of them were striped diagonally with bands of yellow, contrasting curiously with the dingy grey of their normal colour. From this marking is derived their popular name—"tiger sharks," not, as might be supposed, from their ferocity. That attribute cannot properly be applied to the SQUALUS at all, which is one of the most timid fish afloat, and whose ill name, as far as regards blood-thirstiness, is quite undeserved. Rapacious the shark certainly is; but what sea-fish is not? He is not at all particular as to his diet; but what sea-fish is? With such a great bulk of body, such enormous vitality and vigour to support, he must needs be ever eating; and since he is not constructed on swift enough lines to enable him to prey upon living fish, like most of his neighbours, he is perforce compelled to play the humble but useful part of a sea-scavenger.
Our work the next day finished skinning the catch we had made, with the last of the carcasses going overboard with a loud splash at four in the afternoon. The number and size of the sharks circling the ship this time were unbelievable. Certainly, no sailors encounter as many or such large sharks as whalers do; but despite all our previous experiences, this day was remarkable. Many of these fish were a size unimaginable to the average seafarer, some reaching thirty feet in length, resembling whales more than sharks. Most of them were striped diagonally with bands of yellow, creating a striking contrast with their usual dingy grey color. This distinctive marking is how they got their popular name—"tiger sharks," not because of their ferocity as one might think. That trait can't really be attributed to the SQUALUS at all, which is one of the most timid fish in the ocean, and whose bad reputation for bloodthirstiness is quite unfounded. The shark is definitely predatory; but then, what sea fish isn't? He isn't picky about his diet; but what sea fish is? With such a large body and immense energy to maintain, he has to eat constantly; and since he isn't built for speed to catch live fish like most of his neighbors, he is forced to take on the humble yet important role of a sea scavenger.
He eats man, as he eats anything else eatable because in the water man is easily caught, and not from natural depravity or an acquired taste begetting a decided preference for human flesh. All natives of shores infested by sharks despise him and his alleged man-eating propensities, knowing that a very feeble splashing will suffice to frighten him away even if ever so hungry. Demerara River literally swarms with sharks, yet I have often seen a negro, clad only in a beaming smile, slip into its muddy waters, and, after a few sharp blows with his open hand upon the surface, calmly swim down to the bottom, clear a ship's anchor, or do whatever job was required, coming up again as leisurely as if in a swimming-bath. A similar disregard of the dangerous attributes awarded by popular consent to the shark may be witnessed everywhere among the people who know him best. The cruelties perpetrated upon sharks by seamen generally are the result of ignorance and superstition combined, the most infernal forces known to humanity. What would be said at home of such an act, if it could be witnessed among us, as the disembowelling of a tiger, say, and then letting him run in that horrible condition somewhere remote from the possibility of retaliating upon his torturers? Yet that is hardly comparable with a similar atrocity performed upon a shark, because he will live hours to the tiger's minutes in such a condition.
He eats humans just like he eats anything else that’s edible because, in the water, humans are easy to catch, not due to some natural evil or a preference for human flesh. Everyone living by shark-infested shores hates him and his supposed man-eating habits, knowing that a little splashing is enough to scare him off, even when he’s hungry. The Demerara River is filled with sharks, yet I’ve often seen a Black man, wearing nothing but a big smile, slip into its murky waters and, after a few sharp slaps on the surface with his hand, swim down to the bottom, clear a ship's anchor, or do whatever was needed, surfacing as casually as if he were in a swimming pool. A similar disregard for the dangers attributed to sharks by popular belief can be seen everywhere among the people who know them best. The cruelty inflicted on sharks by sailors is usually a mix of ignorance and superstition, the most destructive forces known to mankind. Imagine how we’d react at home if we saw someone disembowel a tiger and then let it run off in that condition far away from the chance to retaliate against its tormentors. Yet that hardly compares to similar cruelty done to a shark, because a shark can survive for hours in such a state, while a tiger only minutes.
I once caught a shark nine feet long, which we hauled on board and killed by cutting off its head and tail. It died very speedily—for a shark—all muscular motion ceasing in less than fifteen minutes. It was my intention to prepare that useless and unornamental article so dear to sailors—a walking-stick made of a shark's backbone. But when I came to cut out the vertebra, I noticed a large scar, extending from one side to the other, right across the centre of the back. Beneath it the backbone was thickened to treble its normal size, and perfectly rigid; in fact, it had become a mass of solid bone. At some time or other this shark had been harpooned so severely that, in wrenching himself free, he must have nearly torn his body in two halves, severing the spinal column completely. Yet such a wound as that had been healed by natural process, the bone knit together again with many times the strength it had before—minus, of course, its flexibility—and I can testify from the experience of securing him that he could not possibly have been more vigorous than he was.
I once caught a nine-foot shark, which we pulled on board and killed by chopping off its head and tail. It died pretty quickly—for a shark—all movement stopping in less than fifteen minutes. I planned to turn that useless and unattractive thing that sailors cherish—a walking stick made from a shark's backbone. But when I started to cut out the vertebra, I saw a big scar that stretched from one side to the other, right across the center of its back. Underneath, the backbone was thickened to three times its normal size and completely stiff; it had turned into a solid mass of bone. At some point, this shark had been harpooned so badly that, in struggling to get free, it must have nearly torn its body in half, completely severing its spinal column. Yet such a wound had healed naturally, the bone knitting back together with much more strength than it had before—minus, of course, its flexibility—and I can confirm from the experience of catching it that it couldn’t have been more powerful than it was.
A favourite practice used to be—I trust it is so no longer—to catch a shark, and, after driving a sharpened stake down through his upper jaw and out underneath the lower one, so that its upper portion pointed diagonally forward, to let him go again. The consequence of this cruelty would be that the fish was unable to open his mouth, or go in any direction without immediately coming to the surface. How long he might linger in such torture, one can only guess; but unless his fellows, finding him thus helpless, came along and kindly devoured him, no doubt he would exist in extreme agony for a very long time.
A popular practice used to be—I hope it’s no longer the case—to catch a shark and then drive a sharpened stake through its upper jaw and out underneath its lower jaw, so that the top part pointed forward. After that, they would release it. The result of this cruelty was that the shark couldn’t open its mouth or swim in any direction without instantly coming to the surface. It’s hard to say how long it would suffer like this; but unless other sharks found him in this helpless state and kindly ate him, he would likely endure extreme pain for a very long time.
Two more small cows were all that rewarded our search during the next fortnight, and we began to feel serious doubts as to the success of our season upon the line grounds, after all. Still, on the whole, our voyage up to the present had not been what might fairly be called unsuccessful, for we were not yet two years away from New Bedford, while we had considerably more than two thousand barrels of oil on board—more, in fact, than two-thirds of a full cargo. But if a whale were caught every other day for six months, and then a month elapsed without any being seen, grumbling would be loud and frequent, all the previous success being forgotten in the present stagnation. Perhaps it is not so different in other professions nearer home?
For the next two weeks, all we found were two small cows, and we started to have serious doubts about the success of our season on the line grounds. Still, overall, our trip so far hadn’t been unsuccessful, since we were not even two years out of New Bedford and had over two thousand barrels of oil on board—more than two-thirds of a full cargo. But if you caught a whale every other day for six months and then went a month without seeing any, complaints would be loud and frequent, with all previous success forgotten in the face of the current lull. Maybe it's not so different in other jobs closer to home?
Christmas Day drew near, beloved of Englishmen all the world over, though thought little of by Americans. The two previous ones spent on board the CACHALOT have been passed over without mention, absolutely no notice being taken of the season by any one on board, to all appearance. In English ships some attempt is always made to give the day somewhat of a festive character, and to maintain the national tradition of good-cheer and goodwill in whatever part of the world you may happen to be. For some reason or other, perhaps because of the great increase in comfort; we had all experienced lately, I felt the approach of the great Christian anniversary very strongly; although, had I been in London, I should probably have spent it in lonely gloom, having no relatives or friends whom I might visit. But what of that? Christmas is Christmas; and, if we have no home, we think of the place where our home should be; and whether, as cynics sneer, Dickens invented the English Christmas or not, its observance has taken deep root among us. May its shadow never be less!
Christmas Day was approaching, cherished by English people all over the world, though mostly ignored by Americans. The previous two Christmases spent on the CACHALOT went by unnoticed, with apparently no one on board acknowledging the holiday at all. In English ships, there’s always some effort to make the day feel a bit festive and to uphold the national tradition of joy and goodwill wherever you are. For some reason, maybe due to the recent increase in comfort we all experienced, I felt the significance of this important Christian holiday very strongly; although, had I been in London, I would probably have spent it in lonely sadness, with no family or friends to visit. But so what? Christmas is Christmas; and even if we have no home, we think of where our home ought to be; and whether, as cynics might mock, Dickens invented the English Christmas or not, its celebration has taken deep root among us. May its spirit never fade!
On Christmas morning I mounted to the crow's-nest at daybreak, and stood looking with never-failing awe at the daily marvel of the sunrise. Often and often have I felt choking for words to express the tumult of thoughts aroused by this sublime spectacle. Hanging there in cloudland, the tiny microcosm at one's feet forgotten, the grandeur of the celestial outlook is overwhelming. Many and many a time I have bowed my head and wept in pure reverence at the majesty manifested around me while the glory of the dawn increased and brightened, till with one exultant bound the sun appeared.
On Christmas morning, I climbed up to the crow's-nest at daybreak and stood there, filled with awe at the daily wonder of the sunrise. Again and again, I've found myself at a loss for words to capture the whirlwind of thoughts sparked by this breathtaking sight. Up there in the clouds, with the tiny world below forgotten, the beauty of the celestial view is overwhelming. Many times, I've bowed my head and cried in pure reverence at the magnificence surrounding me as the glory of the dawn grew and brightened, until the sun finally burst forth in a triumphant arrival.
For some time I stood gazing straight ahead of me with eyes that saw not, filled with wonder and admiration. I must have been looking directly at the same spot for quite a quarter of an hour, when suddenly, as if I had but just opened my eyes, I saw the well-known bushy spout of a sperm whale. I raised the usual yell, which rang through the stillness discordantly, startling all hands out of their lethargy like bees out of a hive. After the usual preliminaries, we were all afloat with sails set, gliding slowly over the sleeping sea towards the unconscious objects of our attention. The captain did not lower this time, as there only appeared to be three fish, none of them seeming large. Though at any distance it is extremely difficult to assess the size of whales, the spout being very misleading. Sometimes a full-sized whale will show a small spout, while a twenty-barrel cow will exhale a volume of vapour extensive enough for two or three at once.
For a while, I stood staring straight ahead with eyes that didn’t really see, filled with wonder and admiration. I must have been fixated on the same spot for about fifteen minutes when suddenly, as if I had just opened my eyes, I spotted the familiar bushy spout of a sperm whale. I let out my usual shout, which broke the stillness with an awkward sound, waking everyone from their daze like bees rising from a hive. After the usual preparations, we all set sail, gliding slowly over the calm sea toward the unaware targets of our attention. The captain didn’t lower the boats this time since there only seemed to be three whales, and none of them looked particularly large. Even from a distance, it’s really tough to judge the size of whales because the spout can be very deceiving. Sometimes a full-sized whale might have a small spout, while a smaller whale can exhale a cloud of vapor big enough to look like two or three whales at once.
Now although, according to etiquette, I kept my position in the rear of my superior officers, I had fully determined in my own mind, being puffed up with previous success, to play second fiddle to no one, if I could help it, this time. Samuela was decidedly of the same opinion; indeed, I believe he would have been delighted to tackle a whole school single-handed, while my crew were all willing and eager for the fight. We had a long, tedious journey before we came up with them, the wind being so light that even with the occasional assistance of the paddles our progress was wretchedly slow. When at last we did get into their water, and the mate's harpooner stood up to dart, his foot slipped, and down he came with a clatter enough to scare a cachalot twenty miles away. It gallied our friends effectually, sending them flying in different directions at the top of their speed. But being some distance astern of the other boats, one of the fish, in his headlong retreat, rose for a final blow some six or seven fathoms away, passing us in the opposite direction. His appearance was only momentary, yet in that moment Samuela hurled his harpoon into the air, where it described a beautiful parabola, coming down upon the disappearing monster's back just as the sea was closing over it. Oh, it was a splendid dart, worthy of the finest harpooner that ever lived! There was no time for congratulations, however, for we spun round as on a pivot, and away we went in the wake of that fellow at a great rate. I cast one look astern to see whether the others had struck, but could see nothing of them; we seemed to have sprung out of their ken in an instant.
Even though etiquette had me staying behind my superior officers, I was fully determined, feeling confident from past successes, not to take a backseat to anyone this time. Samuela definitely felt the same way; in fact, I think he would have been thrilled to take on an entire group by himself, while my crew was all pumped and ready for the challenge. We had a long, exhausting journey before we caught up with them, as the wind was so light that even with some help from the paddles, our progress was painfully slow. When we finally entered their territory, the mate's harpooner stood up to throw, but his foot slipped, and down he came with a noise loud enough to scare a sperm whale twenty miles away. It startled our targets effectively, sending them darting in all directions at full speed. However, since we were a bit behind the other boats, one of the fish, in its frenzied escape, surfaced for a final gasp about six or seven fathoms away, moving past us in the opposite direction. His appearance was brief, but in that moment, Samuela launched his harpoon into the air, where it traced a beautiful arc, landing on the back of the rapidly disappearing creature just as the water closed over it. Oh, it was an amazing throw, worthy of the best harpooner ever! There was no time for cheers, though, as we spun around and took off after that guy at full speed. I glanced back to see if the others had made a catch, but I couldn't see anything; we seemed to have vanished from their sight in an instant.
The speed of our friend was marvellous, but I comforted myself with the knowledge that these animals usually run in circles—sometimes, it is true, of enormous diameter, but seldom getting far away from their starting-point. But as the time went on, and we seemed to fly over the waves at undiminished speed, I began to think this whale might be the exception necessary to prove the rule, so I got out the compass and watched his course. Due east, not a degree to north or south of it, straight as a bee to its hive. The ship was now far out of sight astern, but I knew that keen eyes had been watching our movements from the masthead, and that every effort possible would be made to keep the run of us. The speed of our whale was not only great, but unflagging. He was more like a machine than an animal capable of tiring; and though we did our level best, at the faintest symptom of slackening, to get up closer and lance him, it was for some time impossible. After, at a rough estimate, running in a direct easterly course for over two hours, he suddenly sounded, without having given us the ghost of a chance to "land him one where he lived." Judging from his previous exertions, though, it was hardly possible he would be able to stay down long, or get very deep, as the strain upon these vast creatures at any depth is astonishingly exhausting. After a longer stay below than usual, when they have gone extra deep, they often arrive at the surface manifestly "done up" for a time. Then, if the whaleman be active and daring, a few well-directed strokes may be got in which will promptly settle the business out of hand.
The speed of our friend was amazing, but I reassured myself knowing these animals typically run in circles—sometimes, it’s true, circles of huge size, but they usually don’t stray far from where they started. However, as time passed and we seemed to fly over the waves at full speed, I began to think this whale might be the exception that proves the rule, so I took out the compass and tracked his direction. Due east, not a degree north or south, straight as a bee to its hive. The ship was now far out of sight behind us, but I knew that sharp eyes were watching our movements from the masthead, and that every effort would be made to keep up with us. The speed of our whale was not only fast but relentless. He was more like a machine than an animal that could tire; and even though we did our best, at the slightest hint of slowing down, to get closer and spear him, it was impossible for quite a while. After a rough estimate of running directly east for over two hours, he suddenly dove, without giving us any chance to "land him one where he lived." Judging by his previous efforts, it was hard to believe he could stay underwater long or go very deep, as the strain on these massive creatures at any depth is incredibly exhausting. After spending longer below than usual, especially if they’ve gone really deep, they often come to the surface clearly "done in" for a while. Then, if the whaleman is quick and bold, a few well-placed strikes might end the issue right away.
Now, when my whale sounded he was to all appearance as frightened a beast as one could wish—one who had run himself out endeavouring to get away from his enemies, and as a last resource had dived into the quietness below in the vain hope to get away. So I regarded him, making up my mind to wait on him with diligence upon his arrival, and not allow him to get breath before I had settled him. But when he did return, there was a mighty difference in him. He seemed as if he had been getting some tips on the subject from some school below where whales are trained to hunt men; for his first move was to come straight for me with a furious rush, carrying the war into the enemy's country with a vengeance. It must be remembered that I was but young, and a comparatively new hand at this sort of thing; so when I confess that I felt more than a little scared at this sudden change in the tactics of my opponent, I hope I shall be excused. Remembering, however, that all our lives depended on keeping cool, I told myself that even if I was frightened I must not go all to pieces, but compel myself to think and act calmly, since I was responsible for others. If the animal had not been in so blind a fury, I am afraid my task would have been much harder; but he was mad, and his savage rushes were, though disquieting, unsystematic and clumsy. It was essential, however, that he should not be allowed to persist too long in his evil courses; for a whale learns with amazing rapidity, developing such cunning in an hour or two that all a man's smartness may be unable to cope with his newly acquired experience. Happily, Samuela was perfectly unmoved. Like a machine, he obeyed every gesture, every look even, swinging the boat "off" or "on" the whale with such sweeping strokes of his mighty oar that she revolved as if on a pivot, and encouraging the other chaps with his cheerful cries and odd grimaces, so that the danger was hardly felt. During a momentary lull in the storm, I took the opportunity to load my bomb-gun, much as I disliked handling the thing, keeping my eye all the time on the water around where I expected to see mine enemy popping up murderously at any minute. Just as I had expected, when he rose, it was very close, and on his back, with his jaw in the first biting position, looking ugly as a vision of death. Finding us a little out of reach, he rolled right over towards us, presenting as he did so the great rotundity of his belly. We were not twenty feet away, and I snatched up the gun, levelled it, and fired the bomb point-blank into his bowels. Then all was blank. I do not even remember the next moment. A rush of roaring waters, a fighting with fearful, desperate energy for air and life, all in a hurried, flurried phantasmagoria about which there was nothing clear except the primitive desire for life, life, life! Nor do I know how long this struggle lasted, except that, in the nature of things, it could not have been very long.
Now, when my whale dove, he looked as scared as a creature could be—one who had exhausted himself trying to escape from his foes, and as a last resort had plunged into the calm below, hoping to get away. So I watched him, deciding to stay focused on him when he resurfaced and not let him catch his breath before I took action. But when he did come back, he was drastically different. It was as if he had received some training from a school below where whales are taught to hunt humans; his first move was to charge straight at me with a furious rush, bringing the fight into the enemy's territory with full force. I should point out that I was still young and fairly new at handling this kind of situation, so when I admit that I felt more than a little scared by this sudden change in my opponent's tactics, I hope I won’t be judged too harshly. Still, knowing that our lives depended on staying calm, I reminded myself that even if I was scared, I had to keep it together and think and act coolly since others were counting on me. If the whale hadn’t been so blindly furious, my task would have been much tougher; but he was raging, and his wild charges were, although unsettling, chaotic and awkward. However, it was crucial that he didn’t continue his reckless behavior for too long; a whale learns incredibly fast, becoming so cunning in just an hour or two that all of a person’s cleverness might not be enough to match his newly gained experience. Luckily, Samuela remained completely unfazed. Like a machine, he followed every command, even my slightest glance, maneuvering the boat "off" or "on" the whale with such powerful strokes of his oar that we spun as if on a pivot, encouraging the others with his cheerful shouts and funny faces, so the danger felt minimal. During a brief break in the chaos, I took the chance to load my bomb-gun, though I didn’t like handling it, keeping my eyes constantly on the water where I expected my enemy to resurface at any moment. Just as I expected, when he rose, he was very close, his jaws positioned for biting, looking as menacing as a vision of death. Realizing we were a bit beyond reach, he rolled over toward us, showing us the great roundness of his belly. We were less than twenty feet away, and I grabbed the gun, aimed it, and fired the bomb point-blank into his belly. Then everything went dark. I don’t even remember the next moment. It was a rush of roaring water, struggling with intense, desperate energy for air and life, all in a hurried, chaotic blur where nothing was clear except the primal urge for life, life, life! I also don’t know how long this struggle lasted, only that, naturally, it couldn’t have been very long.
When I returned to a consciousness of external things, I was for some time perfectly still, looking at the sky, totally unable to realize what had happened or where I was. Presently the smiling, pleasant face of Samuela bent over me. Meeting my gratified look of recognition, he set up a perfect yell of delight. "So glad, so glad you blonga life! No go Davy Jonesy dis time, hay?" I put my hand out to help myself to a sitting posture, and touched blubber. That startled me so that I sprung up as if shot. Then I took in the situation at a glance. There were all my poor fellows with me, stranded upon the top of our late antagonist, but no sign of the boat to be seen. Bewildered at the state of affairs, I looked appealingly from one to the other for an explanation. I got it from Abner, who said, laconically, "When yew fired thet ole gun, I guess it mus' have bin loaded fer bear, fer ye jest tumbled clar head over heels backwards outen the boat. Et that very same moment I suspicion the bomb busted in his belly, fer he went clean rampageous loony. He rolled right over an' over to'rds us, n' befo' we c'd rightly see wat wuz comin', we cu'dnt see anythin' 'tall; we wuz all grabbin' at nothin', some'rs underneath the whale. When I come to the top, I lit eout fer the fust thing I c'd see to lay holt of, which wuz old squarhead himself, deader 'n pork. I guess thet ar bomb o' yourn kinder upset his commissary department. Anyway, I climed up onto him, 'n bime-by the rest ov us histed themselves alongside ov me. Sam Weller here; he cum last, towin' you 'long with him. I don'no whar he foun' ye, but ye was very near a goner, 'n's full o' pickle as ye c'd hold." I turned a grateful eye upon my dusky harpooner, who had saved my life, but was now apparently blissfully unconscious of having done anything meritorious.
When I became aware of my surroundings again, I was completely still for a while, staring at the sky, unable to grasp what had just happened or where I was. Soon, the smiling, friendly face of Samuela appeared above me. When our eyes met and I showed my relief at recognizing him, he let out a joyful yell. "So glad, so glad you’re alive! You didn’t go to Davy Jones this time, right?" I reached out to help myself into a sitting position and touched something slippery. That startled me so much that I jumped up like I’d been shot. Then I quickly took in what was happening. All my companions were with me, stranded on top of our former enemy, but there was no sign of the boat anywhere. Confused about what was going on, I looked around at everyone, seeking an explanation. Abner provided it, saying simply, "When you fired that old gun, I guess it must have been loaded for bear, because you just tumbled clear backwards out of the boat. At that moment, I think the bomb went off in his belly, because he went completely crazy. He rolled right over towards us, and before we could see what was coming, we couldn’t see anything at all; we were all grabbing at nothing, somewhere under the whale. When I surfaced, I grabbed for the first thing I could find, which was old squarehead himself, dead as a door nail. I guess that bomb of yours messed up his insides. Anyway, I climbed up onto him, and soon the rest of us pulled ourselves up next to me. Sam Weller here; he came last, dragging you with him. I don’t know where he found you, but you were nearly done for and as drenched as you could be." I looked gratefully at my dark-skinned harpooner, who had saved my life but seemed blissfully unaware that he had done anything remarkable.
Behold us, then, a half-drowned row of scarecrows perched, like some new species of dilapidated birds, upon the side of our late foe. The sun was not so furiously hot as usual, for masses of rain-laden NIMBI were filling the sky, so that we were comparatively free from the awful roasting we might have expected: nor was our position as precarious for a while as would be thought. True, we had only one harpoon, with its still fast line, to hold on by; but the side of the whale was somehow hollowed, so that, in spite of the incessant movement imparted to the carcass by the swell, we sat fairly safe, with our feet in the said hollow. We discussed the situation in all its bearings, unable to extract more than the faintest gleam of hope from any aspect of the case. The only reasonable chance we had was, that the skipper had almost certainly taken our bearings, and would, we were sure, be anxiously seeking us on the course thus indicated. Meanwhile, we were ravenously hungry and thirsty. Samuela and Polly set to work with their sheath-knives, and soon excavated a space in the blubber to enable them to reach the meat. Then they cut off some good-sized junks, and divided it up. It was not half bad; and as we chewed on the tough black fibre, I could hardly help smiling as I thought how queer a Christmas dinner we were having. But eating soon heightened our thirst, and our real sufferings then began. We could eat very little once the want of drink made itself felt. Hardly two hours had elapsed, though, before one of the big-bellied clouds which bad been keeping the sun off us most considerately emptied out upon us a perfect torrent of rain. It filled the cavity in the whale's side in a twinkling; and though the water was greasy, stained with blood, and vilely flavoured, it was as welcome a drink as I have ever tasted. Thus fed, and with our thirst slaked, we were able to take a more hopeful view of things while the prospect of our being found seemed much more probable than it had done before the rain fell.
Look at us now, a half-drowned row of scarecrows sitting like some new type of worn-out birds on the side of our recent enemy. The sun wasn't as blazing hot as usual because dark rain-filled clouds were taking over the sky, sparing us from the scorching heat we might have expected. Surprisingly, our situation for a while wasn’t as precarious as one might think. True, we only had one harpoon, still attached by its line, to hold on to; but the whale's side had a sort of hollowed space, so despite the constant movement caused by the swell, we were sitting pretty safely with our feet resting in that hollow. We talked about the situation from every angle, unable to find more than the faintest glimmer of hope in any of it. The only reasonable chance we had was that the captain had likely taken our position and would definitely be searching for us on the route indicated. Meanwhile, we were extremely hungry and thirsty. Samuela and Polly grabbed their sheath knives and quickly dug a space in the blubber to get to the meat. They cut off some decent-sized chunks and divided it up. It wasn’t bad at all; and as we chewed on the tough black fibers, I couldn’t help but smile, thinking about how strange our Christmas dinner was. But eating only made us thirstier, and that’s when our real suffering began. We could hardly eat anything once our need for water kicked in. Hardly two hours had passed when one of the big, round clouds that had been keeping the sun off us so kindly unleashed a heavy downpour. It quickly filled the cavity in the whale's side; and although the water was greasy, stained with blood, and tasted awful, it was the most welcome drink I’ve ever had. After that, with our hunger satisfied and our thirst quenched, we found ourselves feeling a bit more hopeful, as the chances of being found seemed much more likely after the rain fell.
Still, we had to endure our pillory for a long while yet. The sharks and birds began to worry us, especially the former, who in their eagerness to get a portion of the blubber, fought, writhed and tore at the carcass with tireless energy. Once, one of the smaller ones actually came sliding up right into our hollow; but Samuela and Polly promptly dispatched him with a cut throat, sending him back to encourage the others. The present relieved us of most of their attentions for a short time at least, as they eagerly divided the remains of their late comrade among them.
Still, we had to endure our punishment for a long while longer. The sharks and birds began to worry us, especially the sharks, who, in their eagerness to get a piece of the blubber, fought, thrashed, and tore at the carcass with relentless energy. Once, one of the smaller ones actually slid right into our hollow; but Samuela and Polly quickly finished him off with a swift cut, sending him back to rally the others. The scene relieved us of most of their attention for at least a little while, as they eagerly shared the remains of their fallen comrade among them.
To while away the time we spun yarns—without much point, I am afraid; and sung songs, albeit we did not feel much like singing—till after a while our poor attempts at gaiety fizzled out like a damp match, leaving us silent and depressed. The sun, which had been hidden for some time, now came out again, his slanting beams revealing to us ominously the flight of time and the near approach of night. Should darkness overtake us in our present position, we all felt that saving us would need the performance of a miracle; for in addition to the chances of the accumulated gases within the carcass bursting it asunder, the unceasing assault of the sharks made it highly doubtful whether they would not in a few hours more have devoured it piecemeal. Already they had scooped out some deep furrows in the solid blubber, making it easier to get hold and tear off more, and their numbers were increasing so fast that the surrounding sea was fairly alive with them. Lower and lower sank the sun, deeper and darker grew the gloom upon our faces, till suddenly Samuela leaped to his feet in our midst, and emitted a yell so ear-piercing as to nearly deafen us. He saw the ship! Before two minutes had passed we all saw her—God bless her!—coming down upon us like some angelic messenger. There were no fears among us that we should be overlooked. We knew full well how anxiously and keenly many pairs of eyes had been peering over the sea in search of us, and we felt perfectly sure they had sighted us long ago. On she came, gilded by the evening glow, till she seemed glorified, moving in a halo of celestial light, all her homeliness and clumsy build forgotten in what she then represented to us.
To pass the time, we told stories—without much purpose, I’m afraid—and sang songs, even though we weren’t really in the mood for it—until our weak attempts at cheerfulness fizzled out like a damp match, leaving us quiet and downcast. The sun, which had been hidden for a while, now peeked out again, its angled rays ominously reminding us of how quickly time was passing and that night was approaching. If darkness caught us in our current situation, we all felt that saving us would require a miracle; because besides the risk of the gases building up in the carcass exploding, the relentless attacks from the sharks made it highly unlikely that we wouldn’t be devoured piece by piece within just a few more hours. They had already created deep grooves in the thick blubber, making it easier for them to grab and tear off more, and their numbers were growing so fast that the surrounding water was practically alive with them. The sun sank lower and lower, the gloom on our faces deepened and darkened, until suddenly Samuela jumped to his feet in our midst and let out a yell so piercing it nearly deafened us. He saw the ship! Within two minutes, we all spotted her—thank God!—coming toward us like some divine messenger. We had no doubts that we would be missed. We knew very well how anxiously and intently many eyes had been scanning the sea for us, and we were completely sure they had spotted us long ago. She came gliding in, bathed in the evening light, seeming almost glorified, moving in a halo of celestial brightness, with all her roughness and clunky build forgotten in what she represented to us in that moment.
Never before or since has a ship looked like that, to me, nor can I ever forget the thankfulness, the delight, the reverence, with which I once more saw her approaching. Straight down upon us she bore, rounding to within a cable's length, and dropping a boat simultaneously with her windward sweep. They had no whale—well for us they had not. In five minutes we were on board, while our late resting-place was being hauled alongside with great glee.
Never before or since have I seen a ship like that, and I can’t forget the gratitude, joy, and awe I felt as I saw her approaching again. She came straight towards us, turning to come within a cable's length and dropping a boat at the same time as she swung around with the wind. They didn’t have a whale—thank goodness for that. In five minutes, we were on board while our previous resting spot was being pulled alongside with great excitement.
The captain shook hands with me cordially, pooh-poohing the loss of the boat as an unavoidable incident of the trade, but expressing his heart-felt delight at getting us all back safe. The whale we had killed was ample compensation for the loss of several boats, though such was the vigour with which the sharks were going for him, that it was deemed advisable to cut in at once, working all night. We who had been rescued, however, were summarily ordered below by the skipper, and forbidden, on pain of his severe displeasure, to reappear until the following morning. This great privilege we gladly availed ourselves of, awaking at daylight quite well and fit, not a bit the worse for our queer experience of the previous day.
The captain shook my hand warmly, downplaying the loss of the boat as just a part of the job, but he showed genuine happiness that we all made it back safely. The whale we had caught was more than enough compensation for the lost boats, although the sharks were so aggressive in attacking it that we decided it was best to start processing it right away and worked through the night. However, the captain quickly ordered us who had been saved to go below deck, making it clear that we weren't allowed to come back up until the next morning. We happily took this opportunity and woke up at dawn feeling good and completely fine, not worse for the strange experience we had the day before.
The whale proved a great acquisition, for although not nearly so large as many we had caught, he was so amazingly rich in blubber that he actually yielded twelve and a half tuns of oil, in spite of the heavy toll taken of him by the hungry multitudes of sharks. In addition to the oil, we were fortunate enough to secure a lump of ambergris, dislodged perhaps by the explosion of my bomb in the animal's bowels. It was nearly black, wax-like to the touch, and weighed seven pounds and a half. At the current price, it would be worth about L200, so that, taken altogether, the whale very nearly approached in value the largest one we had yet caught. I had almost omitted to state that incorporated with the substance of the ambergris were several of the horny cuttle-fish beaks, which, incapable of being digested, had become in some manner part of this peculiar product.
The whale turned out to be a great find. Even though it wasn't nearly as big as many others we'd caught, it was incredibly rich in blubber, yielding twelve and a half tuns of oil, despite the heavy toll taken by the hungry sharks. On top of the oil, we were lucky enough to get a lump of ambergris, likely dislodged by the explosion of my bomb in the animal's stomach. It was almost black, waxy to the touch, and weighed seven and a half pounds. At the current price, it would be worth about £200, so altogether, the whale was nearly as valuable as the largest one we had caught so far. I almost forgot to mention that mixed in with the ambergris were several beaks from cuttlefish, which couldn't be digested and somehow became part of this unique substance.
CHAPTER XX. "HUMPBACKING" AT VAU VAU
Another three weeks' cruising brought us to the end of the season on the line, which had certainly not answered all our expectations, although we had perceptibly increased the old barky's draught during our stay. Whether from love of change or belief in the possibilities of a good haul, I can hardly say, but Captain Count decided to make the best of his way south, to the middle group of the "Friendly" Archipelago, known as Vau Vau, the other portions being called Hapai and Tongataboo respectively, for a season's "humpbacking." From all I could gather, we were likely to have a good time there, so I looked forward to the visit with a great deal of pleasurable anticipation.
Another three weeks of cruising brought us to the end of the season in the area, which definitely didn't meet all our expectations, even though we had noticeably increased the old ship's draft during our stay. Whether it was due to a desire for change or a belief in the chance for a good catch, I can't say for sure, but Captain Count decided to head south to the middle group of the "Friendly" Archipelago, known as Vau Vau, with the other parts called Hapai and Tongataboo, for a season of "humpbacking." From everything I heard, we were likely to have a great time there, so I looked forward to the trip with a lot of excitement.
We were bound to make a call at Vau Vau, in any case, to discharge our Kanakas shipped at Honolulu, although I fervently hoped to be able to keep my brave harpooner Samuela. So when I heard of our destination, I sounded him cautiously as to his wishes in the matter, finding that, while he was both pleased with and proud of his position on board, he was longing greatly for his own orange grove and the embraces of a certain tender "fafine" that he averred was there awaiting him. With such excellent reasons for his leaving us, I could but forbear to persuade him, sympathizing with him too deeply to wish him away from such joys as he described to me.
We were definitely going to stop at Vau Vau to drop off our Kanakas that we picked up in Honolulu, even though I really hoped to keep my brave harpooner Samuela. So when I found out our destination, I carefully asked him about his feelings on the matter. I learned that, while he was happy and proud of his role on the ship, he was also really missing his orange grove and the affection of a certain special woman he claimed was waiting for him there. With such great reasons for him to leave us, I couldn’t bring myself to convince him to stay, feeling too sympathetic to want him to miss out on the joys he talked about.
So we bade farewell to the line grounds, and commenced another stretch to the south, another milestone, as it were, on the long road home. Prosaic and uneventful to the last degree was our passage, the only incident worth recording being our "gamming" of the PASSAMAQUODDY, of Martha's Vineyard, South Sea whaler; eighteen months out, with one thousand barrels of sperm oil on board. We felt quite veterans alongside of her crew, and our yarns laid over theirs to such an extent that they were quite disgusted at their lack of experience. Some of them had known our late skipper, but none of them had a good word for him, the old maxim, "Speak nothing but good of the dead," being most flagrantly set at nought. One of her crew was a Whitechapelian, who had been roving about the world for a good many years.
So we said goodbye to the line grounds and started another journey south, another milestone on the long road home. Our passage was completely mundane and uneventful, with the only noteworthy event being our encounter with the PASSAMAQUODDY, a South Sea whaler from Martha's Vineyard; eighteen months at sea, carrying one thousand barrels of sperm oil. We felt like veterans next to her crew, and our stories overshadowed theirs to the point that they were pretty frustrated with their own lack of experience. Some of them had known our former captain, but none of them had anything good to say about him, completely ignoring the old saying, "Speak nothing but good of the dead." One of her crew members was from Whitechapel and had been wandering around the world for many years.
Amongst other experiences, he had, after "jumping the bounty" two or three times, found himself a sergeant in the Federal Army before Gettysburg. During that most bloody battle, he informed me that a "Reb" drew a bead on him at about a dozen yards' distance, and fired, He said he felt just as if somebody had punched him in the chest, and knocked him flat on his back on top of a sharp stone—no pain at all, nor any further recollection of what had happened, until he found himself at the base, in hospital. When the surgeons came to examine him for the bullet, they found that it had struck the broad brass plate of his cross-belt fairly in the middle, penetrating it and shattering his breast bone. But after torturing him vilely with the probe, they were about to give up the search in despair, when he told them he felt a pain in his back. Examining the spot indicated by him, they found a bullet just beneath the skin, which a touch with the knife allowed to tumble out. Further examination revealed the strange fact that the bullet, after striking his breast-bone, had glanced aside and travelled round his body just beneath the skin, without doing him any further harm. In proof of his story, he showed me the two scars and the perforated buckle-plate.
Among other experiences, he had, after "jumping the bounty" two or three times, become a sergeant in the Federal Army before Gettysburg. During that bloody battle, he told me that a Confederate aimed at him from about twelve yards away and fired. He said it felt like someone had punched him in the chest, knocking him flat on his back onto a sharp rock—no pain at all, and he couldn't remember what happened until he found himself at the base, in the hospital. When the surgeons came to check for the bullet, they discovered it had hit the broad brass plate of his cross-belt right in the middle, penetrating it and shattering his breastbone. After putting him through a lot of pain with the probe, they were about to give up the search in frustration when he mentioned feeling a pain in his back. When they examined the spot he indicated, they found a bullet just beneath the skin, which fell out with a little nudge of the knife. Further examination revealed the odd fact that after hitting his breastbone, the bullet had deflected and traveled around his body just under the skin, without causing him any further harm. To prove his story, he showed me the two scars and the damaged buckle plate.
At another time, being in charge of a picket of Germans, he and his command were captured by a party of Confederates, who haled him before their colonel, a southern gentleman of the old school. In the course of his interrogation by the southern officer, he was asked where he hailed from. He replied, "London, England." "Then," said the colonel, "how is it you find yourself fighting for these accursed Yankees?" The cockney faltered out some feeble excuse or another, which his captor cut short by saying, "I've a great respect for the English, and consequently I'll let you go this time. But if ever I catch you again, you're gone up. As for those d——-d Dutchmen, they'll be strung up inside of five minutes." And they were.
At another time, while in charge of a group of Germans, he and his team were captured by a group of Confederates, who brought him before their colonel, a southern gentleman from the old days. During the interrogation by the southern officer, he was asked where he was from. He replied, "London, England." "Then," said the colonel, "how is it that you find yourself fighting for these cursed Yankees?" The Cockney stumbled out some weak excuse, which his captor interrupted by saying, "I have a lot of respect for the English, so I’ll let you go this time. But if I catch you again, you're in trouble. As for those damned Dutchmen, they'll be hanged in five minutes." And they were.
So with yarn, song, and dance, the evening passed pleasantly away; while the two old hookers jogged amicably along side by side, like two market-horses whose drivers are having a friendly crack. Along about midnight we exchanged crews again, and parted with many expressions of good-will—we to the southward, she to the eastward, for some particular preserve believed in by her commander.
So with yarns, songs, and dancing, the evening went by nicely; while the two old ladies chatted happily next to each other, like two market horses whose drivers are having a friendly chat. Around midnight, we switched crews again and said our goodbyes with lots of good wishes—we headed south, and she went east, heading for a specific spot her captain believed in.
In process of time we made the land of Vau Vau, a picturesque, densely wooded, and in many places precipitous, group of islands, the approach being singularly free from dangers in the shape of partly hidden reefs. Long and intricate were the passages we threaded, until we finally came to anchor in a lovely little bay perfectly sheltered from all winds. We moored, within a mile of a dazzling white beach, in twelve fathoms. A few native houses embowered in orange and cocoa-nut trees showed here and there, while the two horns of the bay were steep-to, and covered with verdure almost down to the water's edge. The anchor was hardly down before a perfect fleet of canoes flocked around us, all carrying the familiar balancing outrigger, without which those narrow dugouts cannot possibly keep upright. Their occupants swarmed on board, laughing and playing like so many children, and with all sorts of winning gestures and tones besought our friendship. "You my flem?" was the one question which all asked; but what its import might be we could not guess for some time. By-and-by it appeared that when once you had agreed to accept a native for your "flem," or friend, he from henceforward felt in duty bound to attend to all your wants which it lay within his power to supply. This important preliminary settled, fruit and provisions of various kinds appeared as if by magic. Huge baskets of luscious oranges, massive bunches of gold and green bananas, clusters of green cocoa-nuts, conch-shells full of chillies, fowls loudly protesting against their hard fate, gourds full of eggs, and a few vociferous swine—all came tumbling on board in richest profusion, and, strangest thing of all, not a copper was asked in return. I might have as truly said nothing was asked, since money must have been useless here. Many women came alongside, but none climbed on board. Surprised at this, I asked Samuela the reason, as soon as I could disengage him for a few moments from the caresses of his friends. He informed me that the ladies' reluctance to favour us with their society was owing to their being in native dress, which it is punishable to appear in among white men, the punishment consisting of a rather heavy fine. Even the men and boys, I noticed, before they ventured to climb on board, stayed a while to put on trousers, or what did duty for those useful articles of dress. At any rate, they were all clothed, not merely enwrapped with a fold or two of "tapa," the native bark-cloth, but made awkward and ugly by dilapidated shirts and pants.
Over time, we arrived at the land of Vau Vau, a beautiful, densely wooded group of islands that in many places were steep and rugged, with a surprisingly safe approach free from partly hidden reefs. The paths we navigated were long and complicated, until we finally anchored in a lovely little bay that was perfectly sheltered from all winds. We moored within a mile of a bright white beach in twelve fathoms of water. A few native houses hidden among orange and coconut trees appeared here and there, while the two sides of the bay dropped steeply into the water, covered in greenery almost down to the edge. The anchor was barely down before a whole fleet of canoes surrounded us, each with the familiar balancing outrigger, without which those narrow boats could never stay upright. The occupants swarmed on board, laughing and playing like children, using all sorts of charming gestures and tones to ask for our friendship. "You my flem?" was the one question everyone asked; however, it took us a while to figure out what it meant. Eventually, we learned that once you agreed to accept a native as your "flem," or friend, they felt it was their duty to take care of all your needs that they could meet. With that important detail settled, fruits and various provisions appeared as if by magic. Huge baskets of juicy oranges, large bunches of gold and green bananas, clusters of green coconuts, conch shells full of chilies, roosters loudly protesting their fate, gourds full of eggs, and a few noisy pigs—all came tumbling on board in rich abundance, and strangely enough, not a single coin was asked in return. I could have said that nothing was asked, since money would have been useless here. Many women came alongside, but none climbed aboard. I was surprised by this and asked Samuela why, as soon as I could free him from the company of his friends for a moment. He told me that the ladies' reluctance to join us was because they were in traditional dress, which is punishable when appearing around white men, with the punishment being a fairly hefty fine. I also noticed that even the men and boys, before climbing aboard, took some time to put on trousers, or whatever served as those useful garments. In any case, they were all dressed, not just wrapped in a fold or two of "tapa," the native bark cloth, but looking awkward and unkempt in worn-out shirts and pants.
She was a busy ship for the rest of that day. The anchor down, sails furled and decks swept, the rest of the time was our own, and high jinks were the result. The islanders were amiability personified, merry as children, nor did I see or hear one quarrelsome individual among them. While we were greedily devouring the delicious fruit, which was piled on deck in mountainous quantities, they encouraged us, telling us that the trees ashore were breaking down under their loads, and what a pity it was that there were so few to eat such bountiful supplies.
She was a busy ship for the rest of that day. With the anchor down, sails furled, and decks cleaned, the rest of the time was ours, leading to some fun and games. The islanders were the embodiment of friendliness, as cheerful as children, and I didn’t see or hear a single person who was quarrelsome among them. While we eagerly devoured the delicious fruit, which was piled high on deck in huge amounts, they encouraged us, saying that the trees onshore were bending under their loads, and what a shame it was that there were so few people to enjoy such abundant supplies.
We were, it appeared, the first whale-ship that had anchored there that year, and, in that particular bay where we lay, no vessel had moored for over two years. An occasional schooner from Sydney called at the "town" about ten miles away, where the viceroy's house was, and at the present time of speaking one of Godeffroi's Hamburg ships was at anchor there, taking in an accumulation of copra from her agent's store. But the natives all spoke of her with a shrug—"No like Tashman. Tashman no good." Why, I could not ascertain.
We seemed to be the first whale ship to drop anchor there that year, and in that particular bay where we were, no vessel had moored for over two years. An occasional schooner from Sydney stopped by the "town" about ten miles away, where the viceroy's house was, and at that moment, one of Godeffroi's Hamburg ships was anchored there, collecting a load of copra from her agent's store. But the locals all talked about her with a shrug—"Not like Tashman. Tashman no good." I couldn't figure out why.
Our Kanakas had promised to remain with us till our departure for the south, so, hard as it seemed to them, they were not allowed to go ashore, in case they might not come back, and leave us short-handed. But as their relatives and friends could visit them whenever they felt inclined, the restriction did not hurt them much. The next day, being Sunday, all hands were allowed liberty to go ashore by turns (except the Kanakas), with strict injunctions to molest no one, but to behave as if in a big town guarded by policemen. As no money could be spent, none was given, and, best of all, it was impossible to procure any intoxicating liquor.
Our Kanakas had promised to stay with us until we left for the south, so, difficult as it was for them, they weren’t allowed to go ashore, in case they didn’t come back and we ended up short-handed. However, since their relatives and friends could visit them whenever they wanted, the restriction didn’t bother them much. The next day, Sunday, everyone was given the freedom to go ashore in turns (except for the Kanakas), with strict orders to not bother anyone and to act as if they were in a big city with police around. Since no money could be spent, none was given, and, best of all, it was impossible to get any alcoholic drinks.
Our party got ashore about 9.30, but not a soul was visible either on the beach or in the sun-lit paths which led through the forest inland. Here and there a house, with doors wide open, stood in its little cleared space, silent and deserted. It was like a country without inhabitants. Presently, however, a burst of melody arrested us, and borne upon the scented breeze came oh, so sweetly!—the well-remembered notes of "Hollingside." Hurriedly getting behind a tree, I let myself go, and had a perfectly lovely, soul-refreshing cry. Reads funny, doesn't it? Sign of weakness perhaps. But when childish memories come back upon one torrent-like in the swell of a hymn or the scent of the hawthorn, it seems to me that the flood-gates open without you having anything to do with it. When I was a little chap in the Lock Chapel choir, before the evil days came, that tune was my favourite; and when I heard it suddenly come welling up out of the depths of the forest, my heart just stood still for a moment, and then the tears came. Queer idea, perhaps, to some people; but I do not know when I enjoyed myself so much as I did just then, except when a boy of sixteen home from a voyage, and strolling along the Knightsbridge Road, I "happened" into the Albert Hall. I did not in the least know what was coming; the notices on the bills did not mean anything to me; but I paid my shilling, and went up into the gallery. I had hardly edged myself into a corner by the refreshment-stall, when a great breaker of sound caught me, hurled me out of time, thought, and sense in one intolerable ecstasy—"For unto us a Child is born; unto us a Son is given"—again and again—billows and billows of glory. I gasped for breath, shook like one in an ague fit; the tears ran down in a continuous stream; while people stared amazed at me, thinking, I suppose, that I was another drunken sailor. Well, I was drunk, helplessly intoxicated, but not with drink, with something Divine, untellable, which, coming upon me unprepared, simply swept me away with it into a heaven of delight, to which only tears could testify.
Our group landed around 9:30, but there wasn’t a single person in sight on the beach or the sunlit paths that led into the forest. Here and there, a house stood in its small cleared area, doors wide open, silent and abandoned. It felt like a place with no inhabitants. Then, suddenly, a burst of music caught our attention, and on the fragrant breeze came the sweet, familiar notes of "Hollingside." I quickly hid behind a tree, let myself go, and had a truly beautiful, soul-refreshing cry. It sounds strange, doesn't it? Maybe a sign of weakness. But when childhood memories rush back, triggered by a hymn or the smell of hawthorn, it feels like the floodgates open without any control. When I was a little kid in the Lock Chapel choir, before tough times hit, that tune was my favorite; and when I suddenly heard it rising from the depths of the forest, my heart froze for a moment, and then the tears flowed. It might seem odd to some, but I can't remember enjoying myself as much as I did just then, except for that time when I was sixteen, back home after a trip, and I wandered into the Albert Hall on Knightsbridge Road. I had no idea what to expect; the signs didn’t mean anything to me, but I paid my shilling and went up to the gallery. I had just settled into a corner by the refreshment stall when a huge wave of sound hit me, throwing me out of time, thought, and sense in one overwhelming ecstasy—"For unto us a Child is born; unto us a Son is given"—over and over—soaring waves of glory. I gasped for breath and shook like I had a fever; tears streamed down my face as people stared at me in amazement, probably thinking I was just another drunken sailor. Well, I was drunk, completely intoxicated, but not with alcohol—rather with something Divine and indescribable that hit me unexpectedly and swept me away into a blissful heaven, which only my tears could express.
But I am in the bush, whimpering over the tones of "Hollingside." As soon as I had pulled myself together a bit, we went on again in the direction of the sound, Presently we came to a large clearing, in the middle of which stood a neat wooden, pandanus-thatched church. There were no doors or windows to it, just a roof supported upon posts, but a wide verandah ran all round, upon the edge of which we seated ourselves; for the place was full—full to suffocation, every soul within miles, I should think, being there. No white man was present, but the service, which was a sort of prayer-meeting, went with a swing and go that was wonderful to see. There was no perfunctory worship here; no one languidly enduring it because it was "the right sort of thing to show up at, you know;" but all were in earnest, terribly in earnest. When they sang, it behoved us to get away to a little distance, for the vigour of the voices, unless mellowed by distance, made the music decidedly harsh. Every one was dressed in European clothing—the women in neat calico gowns; but the men, nearly all of them, in woollen shirts, pilot-coats, and trousers to match, and sea-boots! Whew! it nearly stifled me to look at them. The temperature was about ninety degrees in the shade, with hardly a breath of air stirring, yet those poor people, from some mistaken notion of propriety, were sweating in torrents under that Arctic rig. However they could worship, I do not know! At last the meeting broke up. The men rushed out, tore off their coats, trousers, and shirts, and flung themselves panting upon the grass, mother-naked, except for a chaplet of cocoanut leaves, formed by threading them on a vine-tendril, and hanging round the waist.
But I’m in the bush, feeling sad over the sounds of "Hollingside." Once I managed to pull myself together a bit, we continued toward the sound. Soon, we reached a large clearing, where a tidy wooden church with a pandanus-thatched roof stood in the middle. There were no doors or windows—just a roof held up by posts—but a wide verandah went all the way around, and we sat down on the edge because the place was packed—packed to the brim, with every person within miles, I would guess, present. No white person was there, but the service, which was kind of a prayer meeting, had an energy that was amazing to witness. There was no half-hearted worship here; no one was just showing up because it was the socially acceptable thing to do. Everyone was completely engaged, intensely so. When they sang, we had to step back a bit, because the power of the voices, unless softened by distance, made the music pretty harsh. Everyone was dressed in European clothes—the women in tidy calico dresses; most of the men in wool shirts, pilot jackets, matching trousers, and heavy boots! Whew! Just looking at them almost suffocated me. The temperature was about ninety degrees in the shade, with hardly any breeze, yet those poor people, due to some misguided idea of propriety, were sweating buckets under that cold-weather gear. I have no idea how they could worship! Finally, the meeting ended. The men rushed outside, tore off their jackets, pants, and shirts, and collapsed panting on the grass, completely naked except for a crown of coconut leaves that they had strung together on a vine tendril and wrapped around their waists.
Squatting by the side of my "flem," whom I had recognized, I asked him why ever he outraged all reason by putting on such clothes in this boiling weather. He looked at me pityingly for a moment before he replied, "You go chapella Belitani? No put bes' close on top?" "Yes," I said; "but in hot weather put on thin clothes; cold weather, put on thick ones." "S'pose no got more?" he said, meaning, I presumed, more than the one suit. "Well," I said, "more better stop 'way than look like big fool, boil all away, same like duff in pot. You savvy duff?" He smiled a wide comprehensive smile, but looked very solemn again, saying directly, "You no go chapella; you no mishnally. No mishnally [missionary=godly]; very bad. Me no close; no go chapella; vely bad. Evelly tangata, evelly fafine, got close all same papalang [every man and woman has clothes like a white man]; go chapella all day Sunday." That this was no figure of speech I proved fully that day, for I declare that the recess between any of the services never lasted more than an hour. Meanwhile the worshippers did not return to their homes, for in many cases they had journeyed twenty or thirty miles, but lay about in the verdure, refreshing themselves with fruit, principally the delightful green cocoa-nuts, which furnish meat and drink both—cool and refreshing in the extreme, as well as nourishing.
Squatting next to my "flem," whom I had recognized, I asked him why he went against all common sense by wearing such heavy clothes in this boiling weather. He looked at me sympathetically for a moment before replying, "You go to church? No wear better clothes on top?" "Yes," I said; "but in hot weather, you wear light clothes; in cold weather, you wear thick ones." "What if you don't have more?" he asked, meaning, I assumed, more than one outfit. "Well," I said, "it’s better to go without than to look like a big fool, sweating all over, like dumplings in a pot. You know dumplings?" He gave a wide, understanding smile but became serious again, saying directly, "You don't go to church; you’re not godly. Not godly, very bad. I have no clothes; I don’t go to church; very bad. Every man and woman has clothes like a white person; they go to church all day on Sunday." I proved that this wasn’t just a figure of speech that day, as I can honestly say that the break between any of the services rarely lasted more than an hour. Meanwhile, the worshippers didn’t head back to their homes, since in many cases they had traveled twenty or thirty miles, but lounged in the greenery, refreshing themselves with fruit, mainly the enjoyable green coconuts, which provide both food and drink—cool and extremely refreshing, as well as nourishing.
We were all heartily welcome to whatever was going, but there was a general air of restraint, a fear of breaking the Sabbath, which prevented us from trespassing too much upon the hospitality of these devout children of the sun. So we contented ourselves with strolling through the beautiful glades and woods, lying down, whenever we felt weary, under the shade of some spreading orange tree loaded with golden fruit, and eating our fill, or rather eating until the smarting of our lips warned us to desist. Here was a land where, apparently, all people were honest, for we saw a great many houses whose owners were absent, not one of which was closed, although many had a goodly store of such things as a native might be supposed to covet. At last, not being able to rid ourselves of the feeling that we were doing something wrong, the solemn silence and Sundayfied air of the whole region seeming to forbid any levity even in the most innocent manner, we returned on board again, wonderfully impressed with what we had seen, but wondering what would have happened if some of the ruffianly crowds composing the crews of many ships had been let loose upon this fair island.
We were all warmly welcomed to join in whatever was happening, but there was a general sense of restraint, a worry about breaking the Sabbath, which kept us from overstaying our welcome with these devout people. So, we made do with wandering through the beautiful glades and woods, lying down whenever we got tired under the shade of a sprawling orange tree full of golden fruit, and eating our fill, or rather, eating until the sting on our lips told us to stop. This seemed to be a place where everyone was honest, as we saw many homes whose owners were away, none of which were locked, even though many contained items that a local might want. Eventually, unable to shake the feeling that we were doing something wrong, with the solemn silence and Sunday vibe of the area seeming to forbid any lightheartedness even in the most innocent ways, we returned to the ship, deeply impressed by what we had seen, but wondering what might have happened if some of the rougher crowds from various ships had been unleashed on this beautiful island.
In the evening we lowered a stage over the bows to the water's edge, and had a swimming-match, the water being perfectly delightful, after the great heat of the day, in its delicious freshness; and so to bunk, well pleased indeed with our first Sunday in Vau Vau.
In the evening, we lowered a stage over the front of the boat to the water's edge and had a swimming match. The water felt amazing after the intense heat of the day, refreshing and lovely. Then we went to sleep, really happy about our first Sunday in Vau Vau.
I have no doubt whatever that some of the gentry who swear at large about the evils of missionaries would have been loud in their disgust at the entire absence of drink and debauchery, and the prevalence of what they would doubtless characterize as adjective hypocrisy on the part of the natives; but no decent man could help rejoicing at the peace, the security, and friendliness manifested on every hand, nor help awarding unstinted praise to whoever had been the means of bringing about so desirable a state of things. I felt that their Sabbatarianism was carried to excess; that they would have been better, not worse, for a little less church, and a little more innocent fun; but ten thousand times better thus than such scenes of lust let loose and abandoned animalism as we witnessed at Honolulu. What pleased me mightily was the absence of the white man with his air of superiority and sleek overlordship. All the worship, all the management of affairs, was entirely in the hands of the natives themselves, and excellently well did they manage everything.
I'm completely convinced that some of the people who loudly criticize missionaries are the same ones who would be outraged by the complete lack of drinking and debauchery, seeing what they would probably call blatant hypocrisy among the locals; however, no good person could help but celebrate the peace, security, and friendliness everywhere, nor could they refrain from giving generous credit to whoever made such a positive situation possible. I felt that their strict observance of the Sabbath was excessive; they would have been better off with a bit less church and a bit more innocent fun; but it was a thousand times better than the scenes of unrestrained lust and wild behavior we saw in Honolulu. What I found really pleasing was the absence of the white man with his sense of superiority and smooth control. All the worship and the management of affairs were entirely in the hands of the locals themselves, and they managed everything exceptionally well.
I shall never forget once going ashore in a somewhat similar place, but very far distant, one Sunday morning, to visit the mission station. It was a Church mission, and a very handsome building the church was. By the side of it stood the parsonage, a beautiful bungalow, nestling in a perfect paradise of tropical flowers. The somewhat intricate service was conducted, and the sermon preached, entirely by natives—very creditably too. After service I strolled into the parsonage to see the reverend gentleman in charge, whom I found supporting his burden in a long chair, with a tall glass of brandy and soda within easy reach, a fine cigar between his lips, and a late volume of Ouida's in his hand. All very pleasant and harmless, no doubt, but hardly reconcilable with the ideal held up in missionary magazines. Yet I have no doubt whatever that this gentleman would have been heartily commended by the very men who can hardly find words harsh enough to express their opinion of missionaries of the stamp of Paton, Williams, Moffat, and Mackenzie.
I will never forget a time when I went ashore in a somewhat similar place, but very far away, one Sunday morning to visit the mission station. It was a church mission, and the church building was quite impressive. Next to it stood the parsonage, a lovely bungalow set in a gorgeous paradise of tropical flowers. The somewhat complex service was led, and the sermon delivered, entirely by locals—very commendably too. After the service, I wandered into the parsonage to see the reverend gentleman in charge, whom I found relaxing in a long chair, with a tall glass of brandy and soda within easy reach, a fine cigar in his mouth, and a recent book by Ouida in his hand. All very pleasant and harmless, I’m sure, but hardly in line with the ideal presented in missionary magazines. Still, I have no doubt that this gentleman would have been warmly praised by the very people who can hardly find words harsh enough to express their opinion of missionaries like Paton, Williams, Moffat, and Mackenzie.
Well, it is highly probable—nay, almost certain, that I shall be accused of drawing an idyllic picture of native life from first impressions, which, if I had only had sufficient subsequent experience among the people, I should have entirely altered. All I can say is, that although I did not live among them ashore, we had a number of them on board; we lay in the island harbour five months, during which I was ashore nearly every day, and from habit I observed them very closely; yet I cannot conscientiously alter one syllable of what I have written concerning them. Bad men and women there were, of course, to be found—as where not?—but the badness, in whatever form, was not allowed to flaunt itself, and was so sternly discountenanced by public (entirely native) opinion, that it required a good deal of interested seeking to find.
Well, it's highly likely—almost certain—that I'll be accused of painting an overly idealistic picture of native life based on first impressions, which I would have completely changed if I had spent more time with the people. All I can say is that, although I didn't live among them on land, we had quite a few of them on board; we stayed in the island harbor for five months, during which I went ashore nearly every day, and I observed them closely out of habit. Still, I can't honestly change a single word of what I've written about them. Sure, there were bad men and women, like anywhere else, but their bad behavior wasn't allowed to show itself openly, and it was so firmly rejected by public (entirely native) opinion that you had to look really hard to find it.
But after all this chatter about my amiable friends, I find myself in danger of forgetting the purpose of our visit. We lost no time in preparation, since whaling of whatever sort is conducted in these ships on precisely similar lines, but on Monday morning, at daybreak, after a hurried breakfast, lowered all boats and commenced the campaign. We were provided with boxes—one for each boat—containing a light luncheon, but no ordered meal, because it was not considered advisable to in any way hamper the boat's freedom to chase. Still, in consideration of its being promptly dumped overboard on attacking a whale, a goodly quantity of fruit was permitted in the boats.
But after all this talking about my friendly companions, I realize I'm at risk of forgetting why we came here. We wasted no time getting ready, since whaling, no matter the type, is done on these ships in pretty much the same way. On Monday morning, at dawn, after a quick breakfast, we launched all the boats and started the hunt. We were given boxes—one for each boat—filled with a light snack, but no proper meal, since it was thought best not to restrict the boats' ability to chase. Still, considering that whatever we brought would likely be quickly thrown overboard when attacking a whale, a decent amount of fruit was allowed in the boats.
In the calm beauty of the pearly dawn, with a gentle hush over all nature, the lofty, tree-clad hills reflected with startling fidelity in the glassy, many-coloured waters, the only sound audible the occasional cra-a-ake of the advance-guard of a flight of fruit-bats (PECA) homeward from their nocturnal depredations, we shipped our oars and started, pulling to a certain position whence we could see over an immense area. Immediately upon rounding the horn of our sheltered bay, the fresh breeze of the south-east trades met us right on end with a vigour that made a ten-mile steady pull against it somewhat of a breather. Arriving at the station indicated by the chief, we set sail, and, separating as far as possible without losing sight of each other, settled down for the day's steady cruise. Anything more delightful than that excursion to those who love seashore scenery combined with boat-sailing would be difficult to name. Every variety of landscape, every shape of strait, bay, or estuary, reefs awash, reefs over which we could sail, ablaze with loveliness inexpressible; a steady, gentle, caressing breeze, and overhead one unvarying canopy of deepest blue. Sometimes, when skirting the base of some tremendous cliffs, great caution was necessary, for at one moment there would obtain a calm, death-like in its stillness; the next, down through a canyon cleaving the mountain to the water's edge would come rushing with a shrill howl, a blast fierce enough to almost lift us out of the water. Away we would scud with flying sheets dead before it, in a smother of spray, but would hardly get full way on her before it was gone, leaving us in the same hush as before, only a dark patch on the water far to leeward marking its swift rush. These little diversions gave us no uneasiness, for it was an unknown thing to make a sheet fast in one of our boats, so that a puff of wind never caught us unprepared.
In the peaceful beauty of the pearly dawn, with a gentle hush over all of nature, the tall, tree-covered hills mirrored perfectly in the smooth, colorful waters, the only sound being the occasional cra-a-ake of fruit bats (PECA) returning home from their nighttime foraging, we put down our oars and began, heading to a spot where we could see a vast area. As soon as we rounded the corner of our sheltered bay, the fresh breeze from the southeast trades hit us straight on with a strength that made a ten-mile steady pull against it a bit of a workout. When we reached the location specified by the chief, we raised our sails, and, spreading out as much as possible without losing sight of each other, settled in for a day of steady cruising. It would be hard to find anything more delightful than that trip for those who love coastal scenery and sailing. Every type of landscape, every shape of strait, bay, or estuary, reefs just under the surface, reefs we could sail over, all radiating indescribable beauty; a steady, gentle, comforting breeze, and above us an endless sky of the deepest blue. Sometimes, when hugging the base of towering cliffs, we had to be extra careful, as one moment there would be a calm, eerie stillness; the next, a gust would rush down a canyon cutting through the mountain to the water’s edge with a sharp howl, strong enough to nearly lift us out of the water. We would dart away with our sails full, caught up in a spray-filled rush, but before we could fully catch our speed, the wind would vanish, leaving us in the same quiet as before, with only a dark spot on the water far behind marking its quick exit. These small surprises didn’t bother us, as it was never an issue to secure a sail in our boats, so a sudden gust of wind never caught us off guard.
On that first day we seemed to explore such a variety of stretches of water that one would hardly have expected there could be any more discoveries to make in that direction. Nevertheless, each day's cruise subsequently revealed to us some new nook or other, some quiet haven or pretty passage between islands that, until closely approached, looked like one. When, at sunset, we returned to the ship, not having seen anything like a spout, I felt like one who had been in a dream, the day's cruise having surpassed all my previous experience. Yet it was but the precursor of many such. Oftentimes I think of those halcyon days, with a sigh of regret that they can never more be renewed to me; but I rejoice to think that nothing can rob me of the memory of them.
On that first day, we seemed to explore so many different stretches of water that it was hard to believe there could be more discoveries to make in that area. Still, every day's cruise eventually showed us some new spot, some quiet cove, or beautiful passage between islands that looked like one until we got close. When we returned to the ship at sunset, without having seen anything like a spout, I felt like I was in a dream, as the day’s cruise had exceeded all my previous experiences. Yet it was just the beginning of many more like it. I often think of those peaceful days with a sigh of regret that I can never relive them; but I’m glad that nothing can take away the memories I have.
Much to the discomfort of the skipper, it was four days before a solitary spout was seen, and then it was so nearly dark that before the fish could be reached it was impossible to distinguish her whereabouts. A careful bearing was taken of the spot, in the hope that she might be lingering in the vicinity next morning, and we hastened on board.
Much to the annoyance of the captain, it was four days before a single spout was spotted, and by then it was almost dark, making it impossible to determine where the fish was before we could get to it. We carefully noted the location, hoping she would still be in the area the next morning, and quickly returned on board.
Before it was fairly light we lowered, and paddled as swiftly as possible to the bay where we had last seen the spout overnight. When near the spot we rested on our paddles a while, all hands looking out with intense eagerness for the first sign of the whale's appearance. There was a strange feeling among us of unlawfulness and stealth, as of ambushed pirates waiting to attack some unwary merchantman, or highwaymen waylaying a fat alderman on a country road. We spoke in whispers, for the morning was so still that a voice raised but ordinarily would have reverberated among the rocks which almost overhung us, multiplied indefinitely. A turtle rose ghost-like to the surface at my side, lifting his queer head, and, surveying us with stony gaze, vanished as silently as he came.
Before it was light enough, we lowered our paddles and moved as quickly as we could to the bay where we had last seen the whale spout overnight. When we got close, we paused for a moment, all of us scanning the water with intense anticipation, waiting for the first sign of the whale's appearance. There was a strange sense of secrecy and excitement among us, like ambushed pirates ready to attack an unsuspecting merchant ship, or bandits lying in wait for a wealthy traveler on a quiet road. We spoke in hushed tones because the morning was so quiet that even a regular voice might have echoed among the rocks hanging over us, amplifying infinitely. A turtle appeared suddenly at my side, lifting its odd head, staring at us with a blank expression, then vanished as quietly as it had come.
What a sigh! One looked at the other inquiringly, but the repetition of that long expiration satisfied us all that it was the placid breathing of the whale we sought somewhere close at hand, The light grew rapidly better, and we strained our eyes in every direction to discover the whereabouts of our friend, but, for some minutes without result. There was a ripple just audible, and away glided the mate's boat right for the near shore. Following him with our eyes, we almost immediately beheld a pale, shadowy column of white, shimmering against the dark mass of the cliff not a quarter of a mile away. Dipping our paddles with the utmost care, we made after the chief, almost holding our breath. His harpooner rose, darted once, twice, then gave a yell of triumph that ran re-echoing all around in a thousand eerie vibrations, startling the drowsy PECA in myriads from where they hung in inverted clusters on the trees above. But, for all the notice taken by the whale, she might never have been touched. Close nestled to her side was a youngling of not more, certainly, than five days old, which sent up its baby-spout every now and then about two feet into the air. One long, wing-like fin embraced its small body, holding it close to the massive breast of the tender mother, whose only care seemed to be to protect her young, utterly regardless of her own pain and danger. If sentiment were ever permitted to interfere with such operations as ours, it might well have done so now; for while the calf continually sought to escape from the enfolding fin, making all sorts of puny struggles in the attempt, the mother scarcely moved from her position, although streaming with blood from a score of wounds. Once, indeed, as a deep-searching thrust entered her very vitals, she raised her massy flukes high in air with an apparently involuntary movement of agony; but even in that dire throe she remembered the possible danger to her young one, and laid the tremendous weapon as softly down upon the water as if it were a feather fan.
What a sigh! One person looked at the other questioningly, but the repeated long exhale confirmed for us all that it was the calm breathing of the whale we were searching for nearby. The light quickly improved, and we strained our eyes in every direction to find our friend, but for several minutes we had no luck. There was a barely audible ripple, and the mate's boat glided away toward the nearby shore. Following his movement with our eyes, we soon caught sight of a pale, shadowy column of white shimmering against the dark cliff not even a quarter of a mile away. Carefully dipping our paddles, we followed the chief, nearly holding our breath. His harpooner rose, lunged once, twice, and then let out a triumphant yell that echoed around in a thousand eerie vibrations, startling the sleepy PECA in countless numbers from where they hung in inverted clusters on the trees above. But to all appearances, the whale seemed completely unfazed. Close to her side was a young calf, no more than five days old, which occasionally sent up its baby spout about two feet into the air. One long, wing-like fin wrapped around its small body, holding it close to the massive breast of the caring mother, whose only concern seemed to be protecting her young, entirely ignoring her own pain and danger. If emotions were ever allowed to interfere with our task, they might have done so now; for while the calf continually tried to escape from the embracing fin, making all sorts of weak attempts, the mother barely moved from her spot, even though she was streaming with blood from numerous wounds. Once, indeed, when a deep thrust stabbed into her very core, she lifted her massive flukes high into the air in an involuntary movement of pain; but even in that intense moment, she remembered the possible danger to her calf and laid her enormous weapon back on the water as gently as if it were a feather fan.
So in the most perfect quiet, with scarcely a writhe, nor any sign of flurry, she died, holding the calf to her side until her last vital spark had fled, and left it to a swift despatch with a single lance-thrust. No slaughter of a lamb ever looked more like murder. Nor, when the vast bulk and strength of the animal was considered, could a mightier example have been given of the force and quality of maternal love.
So in complete silence, with hardly a movement or any sign of panic, she died, holding the calf to her side until her last breath was gone, leaving it to a quick death with a single lance thrust. No slaughter of a lamb ever seemed more like murder. And considering the massive size and strength of the animal, there couldn't be a stronger example of the power and depth of maternal love.
The whole business was completed in half an hour from the first sight of her, and by the mate's hand alone, none of the other boats needing to use their gear. As soon as she was dead, a hole was bored through the lips, into which a tow-line was secured, the two long fins were lashed close into the sides of the animal by an encircling line, the tips of the flukes were cut off, and away we started for the ship. We had an eight-mile tow in the blazing sun, which we accomplished in a little over eight, hours, arriving at the vessel just before two p.m. News of our coming had preceded us, and the whole native population appeared to be afloat to make us welcome. The air rang again with their shouts of rejoicing, for our catch represented to them a gorgeous feast, such as they had not indulged in for many a day. The flesh of the humpbacked whale is not at all bad, being but little inferior to that of the porpoise; so that, as these people do not despise even the coarse rank flesh of the cachalot, their enthusiasm was natural. Their offers of help were rather embarrassing to us, as we could find little room for any of them in the boats, and the canoes only got in our way. Unable to assist us, they vented their superfluous energies on the whale in the most astounding aquatic antics imaginable—diving under it; climbing on to it; pushing and rolling each other headlong over its broad back; shrieking all the while with the frantic, uncontrollable laughter of happy children freed from all restraint. Men, women, and children all mixed in this wild, watery spree; and as to any of them getting drowned, the idea was utterly absurd.
The whole thing was done in half an hour from when we first saw her, and it was just the mate who handled it; none of the other boats needed to use their gear. Once she was dead, we bored a hole through her lips and secured a tow-line. We tied the two long fins closely to the sides of the whale with a line, cut off the tips of the flukes, and set off for the ship. We had an eight-mile tow in the blazing sun that took us just a little over eight hours, arriving at the vessel just before 2 p.m. Word of our arrival had gotten out, and the whole local population was out on the water to welcome us. The air was filled with their shouts of joy, as our catch meant a huge feast for them, something they hadn’t enjoyed in a long time. The flesh of the humpback whale isn’t bad at all, being only slightly worse than that of the porpoise. Since these people aren’t picky even about the coarse meat of the cachalot, their excitement was understandable. Their offers to help us were a bit awkward, as there wasn’t much room for them in our boats and their canoes just got in the way. Unable to lend a hand, they released their extra energy by performing the most incredible aquatic antics imaginable—diving under it, climbing on it, and pushing each other head over heels across its broad back, all while laughing hysterically like happy kids set free. Men, women, and children all joined in this wild, water-filled fun; the thought of any of them drowning was completely ridiculous.
When we got it alongside, and prepared to cut in, all the chaps were able to have a rest, there were so many eager volunteers to man the windlass, not only willing but, under the able direction of their compatriots belonging to our crew, quite equal to the work of heaving in blubber. All their habitual indolence was cast aside. Toiling like Trojans, they made the old windlass rattle again as they spun the brakes up and down, every blanket-piece being hailed with a fresh volley of eldritch shrieks, enough to alarm a deaf and dumb asylum.
When we got it next to us and got ready to start cutting, everyone was able to take a break because there were so many eager volunteers to work the windlass. Not only were they willing, but with the skilled guidance of our crew members, they were more than capable of hauling in the blubber. All their usual laziness was forgotten. Working hard, they made the old windlass rattle again as they spun the brakes up and down, with every blanket piece met by a new round of strange shrieks, enough to disturb even a deaf and mute asylum.
With such ample aid, it was, as may be supposed a brief task to skin our prize, although the strange arrangement of the belly blubber caused us to lift some disappointing lengths. This whale has the blubber underneath the body lying in longitudinal corrugations, which, when hauled off the carcass at right angles to their direction, stretch out flat to four or five times their normal area. Thus, when the cutting-blocks had reached their highest limit, and the piece was severed from the body, the folds flew together again leaving dangling aloft but a miserable square of some four or five feet, instead of a fine "blanket" of blubber twenty by five. Along the edges of these RUGAE, as also upon the rim of the lower jaw, abundance of limpets and barnacles had attached themselves, some of the former large as a horse's hoof, and causing prodigious annoyance to the toiling carpenter, whose duty it was to keep the spades ground. It was no unusual thing for a spade to be handed in with two or three gaps in its edge half an inch deep, where they had accidentally come across one of those big pieces of flinty shell, undistinguishable from the grey substance of the belly blubber.
With so much help, it was, as you might expect, a quick job to skin our prize, although the unusual layout of the belly blubber made us pull off some disappointing lengths. This whale has the blubber beneath its body arranged in long folds, which, when pulled off the carcass at a right angle to their direction, stretch out flat to four or five times their normal size. So, when the cutting blocks reached their limit, and the piece was cut from the body, the folds snapped back, leaving only a pathetic square of about four or five feet hanging instead of a nice "blanket" of blubber measuring twenty by five. Along the edges of these folds, as well as on the edge of the lower jaw, many limpets and barnacles had attached themselves, some of the former as large as a horse's hoof, causing great annoyance to the hard-working carpenter, whose job it was to keep the spades sharpened. It was not uncommon for a spade to be handed over with two or three chips in its edge half an inch deep, where it had accidentally hit one of those big pieces of tough shell, indistinguishable from the gray substance of the belly blubber.
But, in spite of these drawbacks, in less than ninety minutes the last cut was reached, the vertebra severed, and away went the great mass of meat, in tow of countless canoes, to an adjacent point, where, in eager anticipation, fires were already blazing for the coming cookery. An enormous number of natives had gathered from far and near, late arrivals continually dropping in from all points of the compass with breathless haste. No danger of going short need have troubled them, for, large as were their numbers, the supply was evidently fully equal to all demands. All night long the feast proceeded, and, even when morning dawned, busy figures were still discernible coming and going between the reduced carcass and the fires, as if determined to make an end of it before their operations ceased.
But despite these drawbacks, in less than ninety minutes they reached the final cut, severed the vertebra, and transported the huge mass of meat in countless canoes to a nearby spot where fires were already blazing in eager anticipation of the cooking. A massive number of locals had gathered from far and wide, with late arrivals rushing in from all directions. They didn’t have to worry about running short, as, despite their large numbers, the supply was clearly more than enough to meet the demand. The feast went on all night, and even as morning broke, busy figures were still visible coming and going between the remaining carcass and the fires, as if they were determined to finish it off before they stopped their work.
CHAPTER XXI. PROGRESS OF THE "HUMPBACK" SEASON
It will probably be inferred from the foregoing paragraph that we were little troubled with visits from the natives next day; but it would be doing them an injustice if I omitted to state that our various "flems" put in an appearance as usual with their daily offerings of fruit, vegetables, etc. They all presented a somewhat jaded and haggard look, as of men who had dined not wisely but too well, nor did the odour of stale whale-meat that clung to them add to their attractions. Repentance for excesses or gluttony did not seem to trouble them, for they evidently considered it would have been a sin not to take with both hands the gifts the gods had so bountifully provided. Still, they did not stay long, feeling, no doubt, sore need of a prolonged rest after their late arduous exertions; so, after affectionate farewells, they left us again to our greasy task of trying-out.
It’s likely that from the previous paragraph, you can gather that we weren’t bothered much by visits from the locals the next day. However, it wouldn’t be fair to them if I didn’t mention that our various "flems" showed up as usual with their daily gifts of fruit, vegetables, and so on. They all looked a bit worn out and haggard, like guys who had eaten too much without thinking. The smell of stale whale meat that lingered on them didn’t help their appeal either. They didn’t seem bothered by guilt over their overindulgence; they clearly believed it would have been a shame not to take full advantage of the generous gifts the gods had provided. Still, they didn’t stick around long, probably feeling the need for a good rest after their recent hard work. So, after some warm goodbyes, they left us again to our greasy job of trying out.
The cow proved exceedingly fat, making us, though by no means a large specimen, fully fifty barrels of oil. The whalebone (baleen) was so short as to be not worth the trouble of curing, so, with the exception of such pieces as were useful to the "scrimshoners" for ornamenting their nicknacks, it was not preserved. On the evening of the third day the work was so far finished that we were able to go ashore for clothes-washing, which necessary process was accompanied with a good deal of fun and hilarity. In the morning cruising was resumed again.
The cow turned out to be really fat, providing us, even though it wasn't a huge one, with fifty barrels of oil. The whalebone (baleen) was too short to bother with curing, so apart from a few pieces that the "scrimshoners" could use to decorate their trinkets, it wasn't kept. By the evening of the third day, the work was mostly done, allowing us to go ashore to wash our clothes, which was a fun and lively experience. We resumed cruising again in the morning.
For a couple of days we met with no success, although we had a very aggravating chase after some smart bulls we fell in with, to our mutual astonishment, just as we rounded a point of the outermost island. They were lazily sunning themselves close under the lee of the cliffs, which at that point were steep-to, having a depth of about twenty fathoms close alongside. A fresh breeze was blowing, so we came round the point at a great pace, being almost among them before they had time to escape. They went away gaily along the land, not attempting to get seaward, we straining every nerve to get alongside of them. Whether they were tantalizing us or not, I cannot say, but certainly it looked like it. In spite of their well-known speed, we were several times so close in their wake that the harpooners loosed the tacks of the jibs to get a clear shot; but as they did so the nimble monsters shot ahead a length or two, leaving us just out of reach. It was a fine chase while it lasted, though annoying; yet one could hardly help feeling amused at the way they wallowed along—just like a school of exaggerated porpoises. At last, after nearly two hours of the fun, they seemed to have had enough of it, and with one accord headed seaward at a greatly accelerated pace, as who should say, "Well, s' long, boys; company's very pleasant and all that, but we've got important business over at Fiji, and can't stay fooling around here any longer." In a quarter of an hour they were out of sight, leaving us disgusted and outclassed pursuers sneaking back again to shelter, feeling very small. Not that we could have had much hope of success under the circumstances, knowing the peculiar habits of the humpback and the almost impossibility of competing with him in the open sea; but they had lured us on to forget all these things in the ardour of the chase, and then exposed our folly.
For a couple of days, we had no luck, even though we had an incredibly frustrating chase after some clever bulls that we stumbled upon, surprisingly, as we turned a corner on the outermost island. They were lazily basking in the sun right under the cliffs, which were steep there, dropping to about twenty fathoms right next to us. A fresh breeze was blowing, so we came around the point at high speed, nearly getting among them before they had a chance to get away. They took off happily along the shore, not trying to head out to sea, while we pushed ourselves hard to catch up. Whether they were teasing us or not, I can't be sure, but it certainly looked that way. Despite their known speed, we were often so close behind them that the harpooners let out the tacks of the jibs to get a clear shot; but as they did, those nimble creatures sped ahead a length or two, leaving us just out of reach. It was an exciting chase while it lasted, although annoying; still, it was hard not to be amused by how they rolled along—just like a bunch of oversized porpoises. Finally, after nearly two hours of this fun, they seemed to have had enough and, in unison, headed out to sea at a much faster pace, as if to say, "Well, see you later, guys; it’s been nice and all, but we’ve got important business over at Fiji, and can't keep fooling around here." In a quarter of an hour, they were out of sight, leaving us frustrated and outmatched, sneaking back to shelter, feeling very small. Not that we had much hope of success in the first place, knowing the unique habits of the humpback and how almost impossible it is to compete with them in open water; but they had tricked us into forgetting all those things in the excitement of the chase, only to highlight our foolishness.
Then ensued a week or two of uneventful cruising, broken only by the capture of a couple of cows—one just after the fruitless chase mentioned above, and one several days later. These events, though interesting enough to us, were marked by no such deviation from the ordinary course as to make them worthy of special attention; nor do I think that the cold-blooded killing of a cow-whale, who dies patiently endeavouring to protect her young, is a subject that lends itself to eulogium.
Then came a week or two of boring cruising, interrupted only by the capture of a couple of cows—one right after the unsuccessful chase mentioned earlier, and one several days later. These events, while interesting to us, weren't significant enough to deviate from the usual routine to deserve special notice; nor do I think that the cold-blooded killing of a cow-whale, who dies patiently trying to protect her young, is a topic that invites praise.
However, just when the delightful days were beginning to pall upon us, a real adventure befell us, which, had we been attending strictly to business, we should not have encountered. For a week previous we had been cruising constantly without ever seeing a spout, except those belonging to whales out at sea, whither we knew it was folly to follow them. We tried all sorts of games to while away the time, which certainly did hang heavy, the most popular of which was for the whole crew of the boat to strip, and, getting overboard, be towed along at the ends of short warps, while I sailed her. It was quite mythological—a sort of rude reproduction of Neptune and his attendant Tritons. At last, one afternoon as we were listlessly lolling (half asleep, except the look-out man) across the thwarts, we suddenly came upon a gorge between two cliffs that we must have passed before several times unnoticed. At a certain angle it opened, disclosing a wide sheet of water, extending a long distance ahead. I put the helm up, and we ran through the passage, finding it about a boat's length in width and several fathoms deep, though overhead the cliffs nearly came together in places. Within, the scene was very beautiful, but not more so than many similar ones we had previously witnessed. Still, as the place was new to us, our languor was temporarily dispelled, and we paddled along, taking in every feature of the shores with keen eyes that let nothing escape. After we had gone on in this placid manner for maybe an hour, we suddenly came to a stupendous cliff—that is, for those parts—rising almost sheer from the water for about a thousand feet. Of itself it would not have arrested our attention, but at its base was a semicircular opening, like the mouth of a small tunnel. This looked alluring, so I headed the boat for it, passing through a deep channel between two reefs which led straight to the opening. There was ample room for us to enter, as we had lowered the mast; but just as we were passing through, a heave of the unnoticed swell lifted us unpleasantly near the crown of this natural arch. Beneath us, at a great depth, the bottom could be dimly discerned, the water being of the richest blue conceivable, which the sun, striking down through, resolved into some most marvellous colour-schemes in the path of its rays. A delicious sense of coolness, after the fierce heat outside, saluted us as we entered a vast hall, whose roof rose to a minimum height of forty feet, but in places could not be seen at all. A sort of diffused light, weak, but sufficient to reveal the general contour of the place, existed, let in, I supposed, through some unseen crevices in the roof or walls. At first, of course, to our eyes fresh from the fierce glare outside, the place seemed wrapped in impenetrable gloom, and we dared not stir lest we should run into some hidden danger. Before many minutes, however, the gloom lightened as our pupils enlarged, so that, although the light was faint, we could find our way about with ease. We spoke in low tones, for the echoes were so numerous and resonant that even a whisper gave back from those massy walls in a series of recurring hisses, as if a colony of snakes had been disturbed.
However, just when the pleasant days were starting to wear on us, a real adventure happened, which we wouldn’t have encountered if we had been focused solely on business. For a week, we had been sailing around without seeing a single spout, except for those of whales far out at sea, which we knew were pointless to chase. We tried all sorts of games to pass the time, which definitely felt long, the most popular one being for the entire crew to strip down and jump overboard, getting towed along at the ends of short lines while I sailed the boat. It was quite mythological—a sort of rough version of Neptune and his attendants, the Tritons. Finally, one afternoon, as we were lazily lounging (half-asleep, except for the lookout) across the seats, we unexpectedly came upon a gorge between two cliffs that we must have passed several times without noticing. At a certain angle, it opened up, revealing a wide expanse of water stretching far ahead. I turned the helm, and we navigated through the passage, which was about a boat's length wide and several fathoms deep, though the cliffs nearly closed in above in some places. Inside, the scene was very beautiful, but not more so than many we had seen before. Still, since the place was new to us, our lethargy was temporarily lifted, and we paddled along, observing every detail of the shores with sharp eyes that missed nothing. After drifting in this peaceful way for maybe an hour, we suddenly encountered an enormous cliff—that is, for this area—rising almost straight up from the water for about a thousand feet. On its own, it wouldn’t have caught our attention, but at its base was a semicircular opening, like the entrance to a small tunnel. It looked inviting, so I steered the boat toward it, navigating through a deep channel between two reefs leading straight to the entrance. There was plenty of room for us to enter since we had lowered the mast; but just as we were going through, an unnoticed swell lifted us uncomfortably close to the top of this natural arch. Beneath us, the bottom was barely visible at a great depth, with the water being the richest shade of blue imaginable, which the sun, shining through, refracted into some incredible color patterns along its rays. A lovely coolness welcomed us as we entered a vast hall, whose ceiling rose to at least forty feet, but in some spots, it was so high it was hard to see. A kind of soft light, weak but enough to reveal the general shape of the place, came through, I assumed, from some hidden cracks in the roof or walls. At first, of course, our eyes, fresh from the intense glare outside, perceived the place as shrouded in impenetrable darkness, and we hesitated to move for fear of running into some hidden danger. However, within a few minutes, as our eyes adjusted, the darkness lightened, allowing us to navigate easily despite the faint light. We spoke in hushed tones, as the echoes were so numerous and resonant that even a whisper bounced off those massive walls in a series of recurring hisses, as if a colony of snakes had been disturbed.
We paddled on into the interior of this vast cave, finding everywhere the walls rising sheer from the silent, dark waters, not a ledge or a crevice where one might gain foothold. Indeed, in some places there was a considerable overhang from above, as if a great dome whose top was invisible sprang from some level below the water. We pushed ahead until the tiny semicircle of light through which we had entered was only faintly visible; and then, finding there was nothing to be seen except what we were already witnessing, unless we cared to go on into the thick darkness, which extended apparently into the bowels of the mountain, we turned and started to go back. Do what we would, we could not venture to break the solemn hush that surrounded us as if we were shut within the dome of some vast cathedral in the twilight, So we paddled noiselessly along for the exit, till suddenly an awful, inexplicable roar set all our hearts thumping fit to break our bosoms. Really, the sensation was most painful, especially as we had not the faintest idea whence the noise came or what had produced it. Again it filled that immense cave with its thunderous reverberations; but this time all the sting was taken out of it, as we caught sight of its author. A goodly bull-humpback had found his way in after us, and the sound of his spout, exaggerated a thousand times in the confinement of that mighty cavern, had frightened us all so that we nearly lost our breath. So far, so good; but, unlike the old nigger, though we were "doin' blame well," we did not "let blame well alone." The next spout that intruder gave, he was right alongside of us. This was too much for the semi-savage instincts of my gallant harpooner, and before I had time to shout a caution he had plunged his weapon deep into old Blowhard's broad back.
We paddled further into the depths of this vast cave, with the walls rising straight up from the silent, dark water, leaving no ledge or crevice to gain a foothold. In some areas, there was a noticeable overhang from above, as if a huge dome whose peak was hidden began from some level beneath the water. We pushed ahead until the small semicircle of light we had entered through was barely visible; then, realizing there was nothing to see except what we already were, unless we dared to continue into the thick darkness that seemed to stretch deep into the mountain, we turned back. No matter what we did, we couldn’t break the solemn quiet surrounding us, as if we were enclosed within the dome of a vast cathedral in twilight. So, we paddled silently towards the exit until suddenly, a terrifying, unexplainable roar made our hearts race as if they could burst from our chests. The sensation was quite painful, especially since we had no idea where the sound was coming from or what had caused it. Again, it reverberated throughout the immense cave; but this time, the fear was lessened when we spotted its source. A large bull humpback had made its way in after us, and the sound of its spout, amplified a thousand times in the confines of that massive cavern, scared us nearly breathless. So far, so good; but, unlike the old fellow, even while we were "doing just fine," we didn’t "let fine alone." The next spout from our uninvited guest came from right beside us. This was too much for the semi-wild instincts of my courageous harpooner, and before I could shout a warning, he had plunged his weapon deep into old Blowhard's broad back.
I should like to describe what followed, but, in the first place, I hardly know; and, in the next, even had I been cool and collected, my recollections would sound like the ravings of a fevered dream. For of all the hideous uproars conceivable, that was, I should think, about the worst. The big mammal seemed to have gone frantic with the pain of his wound, the surprise of the attack, and the hampering confinement in which he found himself. His tremendous struggles caused such a commotion that our position could only be compared to that of men shooting Niagara in a cylinder at night. How we kept afloat, I do not know. Some one had the gumption to cut the line, so that by the radiation of the disturbance we presently found ourselves close to the wall, and trying to hold the boat in to it with our finger-tips. Would he never be quiet? we thought, as the thrashing, banging, and splashing still went on with unfailing vigour. At last, in, I suppose, one supreme effort to escape, he leaped clear of the water like a salmon. There was a perceptible hush, during which we shrank together like unfledged chickens on a frosty night; then, in a never-to-be-forgotten crash that ought to have brought down the massy roof, that mountainous carcass fell. The consequent violent upheaval of the water should have smashed the boat against the rocky walls, but that final catastrophe was mercifully spared us. I suppose the rebound was sufficient to keep us a safe distance off.
I want to describe what happened next, but first, I can barely remember it; and even if I had been calm and collected, my memories would sound like the ramblings of a fevered dream. Of all the awful chaos imaginable, that was probably the worst. The huge animal seemed to have completely lost it from the pain of his injury, the shock of the attack, and the cramped space he found himself in. His tremendous struggles created such a racket that our situation could only be compared to that of people shooting the rapids of Niagara in a barrel at night. I have no idea how we stayed afloat. Someone had the sense to cut the line, and thanks to the disturbance, we soon found ourselves close to the wall, trying to keep the boat pressed against it with our fingertips. Would he ever calm down? we wondered, as the thrashing, banging, and splashing continued with relentless energy. Finally, in what I guess was one last desperate attempt to escape, he jumped out of the water like a salmon. There was a noticeable silence during which we huddled together like baby birds on a chilly night; then, with a crash that should have brought the heavy roof down, that massive body fell. The resulting violent surge of water should have smashed the boat against the rocky walls, but thankfully, that disaster was spared us. I suppose the rebound was enough to keep us at a safe distance.
A perfect silence succeeded, during which we sat speechless, awaiting a resumption of the clamour. At last Abner broke the heavy silence by saying, "I doan' see the do'way any mo' at all, sir." He was right. The tide had risen, and that half-moon of light had disappeared, so that we were now prisoners for many hours, it not being at all probable that we should be able to find our way out during the night ebb. Well, we were not exactly children, to be afraid of the dark, although there is considerable difference between the velvety darkness of a dungeon and the clear, fresh night of the open air. Still, as long as that beggar of a whale would only keep quiet or leave the premises, we should be fairly comfortable. We waited and waited until an hour had passed, and then came to the conclusion that our friend was either dead or gone out, as he gave no sign of his presence.
A perfect silence followed, during which we sat quietly, waiting for the noise to start up again. Eventually, Abner broke the heavy silence by saying, "I don't see the way out anymore, sir." He was right. The tide had risen, and that half-moon of light had vanished, which meant we were stuck for several hours; it was unlikely we would find our way out during the low tide of the night. Well, we weren’t exactly kids who were scared of the dark, but there’s a big difference between the soft darkness of a dungeon and the clear, fresh night of the outdoors. Still, as long as that pesky whale would just stay quiet or leave, we would be pretty comfortable. We waited and waited until an hour had gone by, and then we concluded that our friend was either dead or gone, as he hadn’t made any noise.
That being settled, we anchored the boat, and lit pipes, preparatory to passing as comfortable a night as might be under the circumstances, the only thing troubling me being the anxiety of the skipper on our behalf. Presently the blackness beneath was lit up by a wide band of phosphoric light, shed in the wake of no ordinary-sized fish, probably an immense shark. Another and another followed in rapid succession, until the depths beneath were all ablaze with brilliant foot-wide ribands of green glare, dazzling to the eye and bewildering to the brain. Occasionally, a gentle splash or ripple alongside, or a smart tap on the bottom of the boat, warned us how thick the concourse was that had gathered below. Until that weariness which no terror is proof against set in, sleep was impossible, nor could we keep our anxious gaze from that glowing inferno beneath, where one would have thought all the population of Tartarus were holding high revel. Mercifully, at last we sank into a fitful slumber, though fully aware of the great danger of our position. One upward rush of any of those ravening monsters, happening to strike the frail shell of our boat, and a few fleeting seconds would have sufficed for our obliteration as if we had never been.
Once that was settled, we anchored the boat and lit our pipes, getting ready for as comfortable a night as possible under the circumstances, with only the skipper's worries about us weighing on my mind. Soon, the darkness below was illuminated by a wide band of glowing light, created in the wake of a massive fish, probably a huge shark. One after another, they appeared quickly, until the depths were lit up with brilliant, foot-wide ribbons of green light, dazzling to the eye and confusing to the mind. Occasionally, a gentle splash or ripple beside us, or a sharp tap on the bottom of the boat, reminded us of how thick the gathering was below. Until that weariness, which even fear can't resist, set in, sleep was impossible, and we couldn't tear our anxious gaze away from that glowing chaos below, where it seemed like all the souls of the underworld were having a wild party. Finally, we mercifully fell into a restless sleep, fully aware of the grave danger of our situation. One sudden rush from any of those hungry creatures hitting the fragile shell of our boat, and just a few fleeting seconds would have been enough to erase us as if we had never existed.
But the terrible night passed away, and once more we saw the tender, irridescent light stream into that abode of dread. As the day strengthened, we were able to see what was going on below, and a grim vision it presented. The water was literally alive with sharks of enormous size, tearing with never ceasing energy at the huge carcass of the whale lying on the bottom, who had met his fate in a singular but not unheard-of way. At that last titanic effort of his he had rushed downward with such terrific force that, striking his head on the bottom, he had broken his neck. I felt very grieved that we had lost the chance of securing him; but it was perfectly certain that before we could get help to raise him, all that would be left of his skeleton would be quite valueless to us. So with such patience as we could command we waited near the entrance until the receding ebb made it possible for us to emerge once more into the blessed light of day. I was horrified at the haggard, careworn appearance of my crew, who had all, excepting the two Kanakas, aged perceptibly during that night of torment. But we lost no time in getting back to the ship, where I fully expected a severe wigging for the scrape my luckless curiosity had led me into. The captain, however, was very kind, expressing his pleasure at seeing us all safe back again, although he warned me solemnly against similar investigations in future. A hearty meal and a good rest did wonders in removing the severe effects of our adventure, so that by next morning we were all fit and ready for the days work again.
But the awful night passed, and once again we saw the gentle, shimmering light stream into that frightening place. As the day grew stronger, we could see what was happening below, and it was a grim sight. The water was literally alive with huge sharks, relentlessly tearing at the massive whale carcass lying on the bottom, who had met his fate in an unusual but not unheard-of way. In his final, enormous effort, he had rushed downward with such incredible force that, striking his head on the seafloor, he broke his neck. I felt very upset that we had missed the opportunity to secure him; but it was clear that by the time we could get help to raise him, all that would be left of his skeleton would be worthless to us. So, with as much patience as we could muster, we waited near the entrance until the receding tide allowed us to emerge once again into the beautiful light of day. I was horrified by the haggard, tired appearance of my crew, who had all, except for the two Kanakas, visibly aged during that night of torment. But we wasted no time in getting back to the ship, where I fully expected to receive a stern talking-to for the trouble my unfortunate curiosity had caused. The captain, however, was very kind, expressing his happiness at seeing us all safely back, although he seriously warned me against similar explorations in the future. A hearty meal and good rest did wonders in alleviating the severe effects of our adventure, so by the next morning, we were all ready and fit for another day’s work.
It certainly seemed as if I was in for a regular series of troubles. After cruising till nearly two p.m., we fell in with the mate's boat, and were sailing quietly along side by side, when we suddenly rounded a point and ran almost on top of a bull-humpback that was basking in the beautiful sunshine. The mate's harpooner, a wonderfully smart fellow, was not so startled as to lose his chance, getting an iron well home before the animal realized what had befallen him. We had a lovely fight, lasting over an hour, in which all the marvellous agility with which this whale is gifted was exerted to the full in order to make his escape. But with the bottom not twenty fathoms away, we were sure of him. With all his supple smartness, he had none of the dogged savagery of the cachalot about him, nor did we feel any occasion to beware of his rushes, rather courting them, so as to finish the game as quickly as possible.
It definitely felt like I was in for a string of problems. After sailing until nearly two p.m., we came across the mate's boat and were moving peacefully side by side when we suddenly turned a corner and nearly ran into a bull humpback whale basking in the lovely sunshine. The mate's harpooner, a really sharp guy, wasn’t so shocked that he missed his shot and got an iron deep into the whale before it realized what was happening. We had a great struggle that lasted over an hour, where the whale used all its incredible agility to try to escape. But with the bottom just twenty fathoms below, we were confident of catching him. Despite his quick movements, he didn’t have the fierce determination of the sperm whale, and we didn’t feel the need to be cautious of his charges; in fact, we welcomed them to end the fight as quickly as possible.
He was no sooner dead than we hurried to secure him, and had actually succeeded in passing the tow-line through his lips, when, in the trifling interval that passed while we were taking the line aft to begin towing, he started to sink. Of course it was, "let go all!" If you can only get the slightest way on a whale of this kind, you are almost certain to be able to keep him afloat, but once he begins to sink you cannot stop him. Down he went, till full twenty fathoms beneath us he lay comfortably on the reef, while we looked ruefully at one another. We had no gear with us fit to raise him, and we were ten miles from the ship; evening was at hand, so our prospects of doing anything that night were faint.
He had barely died when we rushed to secure him, and we actually managed to pass the tow-line through his lips. But in the brief moment it took us to take the line back to start towing, he began to sink. Naturally, it was “let go all!” If you can get even a little movement on a whale like this, you’re almost guaranteed to keep him afloat, but once he starts to sink, there’s no stopping him. Down he went, until he lay comfortably on the reef, twenty fathoms below us, while we exchanged disappointed glances. We didn’t have the right equipment with us to raise him, and we were ten miles from the ship; evening was approaching, so our chances of accomplishing anything that night were slim.
However, the mate decided to start off for home at once, leaving us there, but promising to send back a boat as speedily as possible with provisions and gear for the morning. There was a stiff breeze blowing, and he was soon out of sight; but we were very uncomfortable. The boat, of course, rode like a duck, but we were fully exposed to the open sea; and the mighty swell of the Pacific, rolling in over those comparatively shallow grounds, sometimes looked dangerously like breaking. Still, it was better than the cave, and there was a good prospect of supper. Long before we expected her, back came the boat, bringing bountiful provision of yams, cold pork and fruit—a regular banquet to men who were fasting since daylight. A square meal, a comforting pipe, and the night's vigil, which had looked so formidable, no longer troubled us, although, to tell the truth, we were heartily glad when the dawn began to tint the east with pale emerald and gold. We set to work at once, getting the huge carcass to the surface without as much labour as I had anticipated. Of course all hands came to the rescue.
However, the mate decided to head home right away, leaving us there but promising to send back a boat as quickly as possible with supplies and gear for the morning. There was a strong breeze blowing, and he soon disappeared from view; we felt very uncomfortable. The boat, of course, floated effortlessly, but we were completely exposed to the open sea; the powerful swell of the Pacific, rolling in over those relatively shallow waters, sometimes looked dangerously close to breaking. Still, it was better than the cave, and we had a good chance of getting supper. Long before we expected her, the boat returned, bringing plenty of yams, cold pork, and fruit—a real feast for men who hadn’t eaten since daylight. A full meal, a comforting smoke, and the night’s watch, which had seemed so intimidating, no longer bothered us, although, to be honest, we were really relieved when dawn began to color the east with soft green and gold. We got to work right away, bringing the huge carcass to the surface with less effort than I had thought it would take. Naturally, everyone jumped in to help.
But, alas for the fruit of our labours! Those hungry monsters had collected in thousands, and, to judge from what we were able to see of the body, they had reduced its value alarmingly. However, we commenced towing, and were getting along fairly well, when a long spur of reef to leeward of us, over which the sea was breaking frightfully, seemed to be stretching farther out to intercept us before we could get into smooth water. The fact soon faced us that we were in the remorseless grip of a current that set right over that reef, and against its steady stream all our efforts were the merest triviality. Still, we hung on, struggling desperately to keep what we had earned, until so close to the roaring, foaming line of broken water, that one wave breaking farther out than the rest very nearly swamped us all. One blow of an axe, one twirl of the steer-oars, and with all the force we could muster we were pulling away from the very jaws of death, leaving our whale to the hungry crowds, who would make short work of him. Downcast indeed, at our bad luck, we returned on board, disappointing the skipper very much with our report. Like the true gentleman he was, though, recognizing that we had done our best, he did not add to the trouble by cursing us all for a set of useless trash, as his predecessor would have done; on the contrary, a few minutes after the receipt of the bad news his face was as bright as ever, his laugh as hearty as if there was no such thing as a misfortune in the world.
But, unfortunately for the results of our hard work! Those hungry creatures had gathered in the thousands, and judging by what we could see of the body, they had significantly decreased its worth. However, we started towing and were making decent progress when a long stretch of reef downwind of us, where the sea was crashing violently, seemed to be extending further out to block our path before we could reach calmer waters. It soon became clear that we were caught in a fierce current that flowed right over that reef, and against its strong current, all our efforts felt trivial. Still, we held on, fighting hard to keep what we had earned, until we were so close to the roaring, foaming edge of the broken water that one wave crashing further out nearly swamped us. With one swing of an axe, one turn of the steering oars, and all the strength we could muster, we pulled away from the very jaws of death, leaving our whale to the hungry crowd, who would deal with it quickly. Feeling quite down about our bad luck, we returned on board, disappointing the skipper with our report. Like the true gentleman he was, though, recognizing that we had done our best, he didn't add to our troubles by cursing us all as useless, like his predecessor would have done; on the contrary, just a few minutes after hearing the bad news, his face was as bright as ever, and his laugh as hearty as if misfortune didn't exist.
And now I must come to what has been on my mind so long—a tragedy that, in spite of all that had gone before, and of what came after, is the most indelible of all the memories which cling round me of that eventful time. Abner Cushing, the Vermonter had declared at different times that he should never see his native Green Mountain again. Since the change in our commander, however, he had been another man—always silent and reserved, but brighter, happier, and with a manner so improved as to make it hard to recognize him for the same awkward, ungainly slab of a fellow that had bungled everything he put his hand to. Taking stock of him quietly during our day-long leisurely cruises in the boat, I often wondered whether his mind still kept its gloomy forebodings, and brooded over his tragical life-history. I never dared to speak to him on the subject, for fear of arousing what I hoped was growing too faint for remembrance. But at times I saw him in the moonlit evenings sitting on the rail alone, steadfastly gazing down into the star-besprent waters beneath him, as if coveting their unruffled peace.
And now I need to talk about what’s been on my mind for so long—a tragedy that, despite everything that happened before and after, is the most unforgettable memory I have from that eventful time. Abner Cushing, the guy from Vermont, had said at different times that he would never see his home in the Green Mountains again. However, since we got a new commander, he had changed completely—always quiet and reserved, but somehow brighter, happier, and with an improved demeanor that made it hard to believe he was the same awkward guy who messed everything up. During our long, relaxed days on the boat, I often wondered if his mind still held onto its dark thoughts and reflected on his tragic life story. I never had the courage to bring it up with him, fearing it would stir up memories I hoped were fading away. But sometimes, I would see him on moonlit nights, sitting alone on the railing, gazing steadily into the starry waters below, as if longing for their calmness.
Two-thirds of our stay in the islands had passed away, when, for a wonder, the captain took it into his head to go up to the chief village one morning. So he retained me on board, while the other three boats left for the day's cruise as usual. One of the mate's crew was sick, and to replace him he took Abner out of my boat. Away they went; and shortly after breakfast-time I lowered, received the captain on board, and we started for the capital. Upon our arrival there we interviewed the chief, a stout, pleasant-looking man of about fifty, who was evidently held in great respect by the natives, and had a chat with the white Wesleyan missionary in charge of the station. About two p.m., after the captain's business was over, we were returning under sail, when we suddenly caught sight of two of our boats heading in towards one of the islands. We helped her with the paddles to get up to them, seeing as we neared them the two long fins of a whale close ahead of one of them. As we gazed breathlessly at the exciting scene, we saw the boat rush in between the two flippers, the harpooner at the same time darting an iron straight down. There was a whirl in the waters, and quick as thought the vast flukes of the whale rose in the air, recurving with a sidelong sweep as of some gigantic scythe. The blow shore off the bow of the attacking boat as if it had been an egg-shell.
Two-thirds of our time in the islands had gone by when, surprisingly, the captain decided to go up to the main village one morning. He kept me on board while the other three boats set off for their usual day's cruise. One of the crew members from the mate’s boat was sick, so he took Abner from my boat to replace him. They set off, and shortly after breakfast, I lowered the boat, picked up the captain, and we headed for the capital. When we arrived, we met with the chief, a stout, friendly-looking man around fifty, who was clearly respected by the locals, and had a chat with the white Wesleyan missionary in charge of the station. Around 2 p.m., after the captain finished his business, we began sailing back when we suddenly spotted two of our boats heading toward one of the islands. We paddled to catch up with them and, as we got closer, we saw the two long fins of a whale just ahead of one of the boats. As we watched in excitement, the boat rushed between the two flippers, and the harpooner quickly thrust an iron spear downwards. The water churned, and before we knew it, the massive flukes of the whale flipped up into the air, sweeping sideways like a gigantic scythe. The blow smashed the front of the attacking boat as if it were made of eggshell.
At the same moment the mate stooped, picked up the tow-line from its turn round the logger-head, and threw it forward from him. He must have unconsciously given a twist to his hand, for the line fell in a kink round Abner's neck just as the whale went down with a rush. Struggling, clutching at the fatal noose, the hapless man went flying out through the incoming sea, and in one second was lost to sight for ever. Too late, the harpooner cut the line which attached the wreck to the retreating animal, leaving the boat free, but gunwale under. We instantly hauled alongside of the wreck and transferred her crew, all dazed and horror-stricken at the awful death of their late comrade.
At the same moment, the mate bent down, grabbed the tow-line from where it was wrapped around the logger-head, and threw it away from him. He must have accidentally twisted his hand because the line ended up knotted around Abner's neck just as the whale dove down quickly. Struggling and grasping at the deadly loop, the unfortunate man was thrown out into the incoming waves and was gone in an instant. Too late, the harpooner cut the line that connected the wreck to the fleeing whale, freeing the boat but leaving it swamped. We immediately pulled up next to the wreck and helped transfer its crew, all of whom were dazed and horrified by the tragic death of their former comrade.
I saw the tears trickle down the rugged, mahogany-coloured face of the captain, and honoured him for it, but there was little time to waste in vain regrets. It was necessary to save the boat, if possible, as we were getting short of boat-repairing material; certainly we should not have been able to build a new one. So, drawing the two sound boats together, one on either side of the wreck, we placed the heavy steering oars across them from side to side. We then lifted the battered fore part upon the first oar, and with a big effort actually succeeded in lifting the whole of the boat out of water upon this primitive pontoon. Then, taking the jib, we "frapped" it round the opening where the bows had been, lashing it securely in that position. Several hands were told off to jump into her stern on the word, and all being ready we launched her again. The weight of the chaps in her stern-sheets cocked her bows right out of water, and in that position we towed her back to the ship, arriving safely before dusk.
I watched the tears flow down the rough, dark brown face of the captain, and I respected him for it, but there wasn’t much time to waste on regrets. We had to save the boat, if we could, since we were running low on repair materials; there was no way we could build a new one. So, we brought the two intact boats alongside the wreck, placing the heavy steering oars across them from one side to the other. We then lifted the damaged front part onto the first oar and made a strong effort to actually get the entire boat out of the water on this makeshift platform. After that, we took the jib and wrapped it around the opening where the bow used to be, securing it tightly. A few people were assigned to jump into the stern on command, and once everyone was ready, we launched her again. The weight of the guys in the back lifted the bow right out of the water, and in that position, we towed her back to the ship, arriving safely before nightfall.
That evening we held a burial service, at which hundreds of natives attended with a solemnity of demeanour and expressions of sorrow that would not have been out of place at the most elaborate funeral in England or America. It was a memorable scene. The big cressets were lighted, shedding their wild glare over the dark sea, and outlining the spars against the moonless sky with startling effect. When we had finished the beautiful service, the natives, as if swayed by an irresistible impulse, broke into the splendid tune St. Ann's; and I afterwards learned that the words they sang were Dr. Watts' unsurpassable rendering of Moses' pean of praise, "O God, our help in ages past." No elaborate ceremonial in towering cathedral could begin to compare with the massive simplicity of poor Abner's funeral honours, the stately hills for many miles reiterating the sweet sounds, and carrying them to the furthest confines of the group.
That evening we held a burial service, attended by hundreds of locals who showed a seriousness and expressions of grief that would have been fitting for the most elaborate funerals in England or America. It was an unforgettable scene. The large torches were lit, casting a wild glare over the dark sea and outlining the masts against the moonless sky in a striking way. After we finished the beautiful service, the locals, as if moved by an irresistible urge, began to sing the wonderful tune of St. Ann's; I later learned that the words they sang were Dr. Watts' unmatched version of Moses' hymn of praise, "O God, our help in ages past." No elaborate ceremony in a grand cathedral could compare to the powerful simplicity of poor Abner's funeral honors, with the majestic hills echoing the sweet sounds for miles and carrying them to the farthest reaches of the group.
Next day was Sunday, and, in pursuance of a promise given some time before, I went ashore to my "flem's" to dinner, he being confined to the house with a hurt leg. It was not by any means a festive gathering, for he was more than commonly taciturn; his daughter Irene, a buxom lassie of fourteen, who waited on us, appeared to be dumb; and his wife was "in the straw." These trifling drawbacks, however, in nowise detracted from the hospitality offered. The dining-room was a large apartment furnished with leaves, the uprights of cocoa-nut tree, the walls and roof of pandanus leaf. Beneath the heaps of leaves, fresh and sweet-scented, was the earth. The inner apartment, or chamber of state, had a flooring of highly-polished planks, and contained, I presume, the household gods; but as it was in possession of my host's secluded spouse, I did not enter.
The next day was Sunday, and, following a promise I made some time ago, I went ashore to my "flem's" for dinner, as he was stuck at home with an injured leg. It wasn't exactly a festive gathering, as he was unusually quiet; his daughter Irene, a plump girl of fourteen who served us, seemed almost mute; and his wife was "out of sorts." However, these small setbacks didn't take away from the hospitality we received. The dining room was a spacious area decorated with leaves, the support beams made from coconut trees, and the walls and roof were made of pandanus leaves. Underneath the piles of fresh, sweet-smelling leaves was the earth. The inner room, or main chamber, had a polished wooden floor and probably contained the household deities; but since it was occupied by my host's secluded wife, I didn’t go inside.
A couch upon a pile of leaves was hastily arranged, upon which I was bidden to seat myself, while a freshly cut cocoa-nut of enormous size was handed to me, the soft top sliced off so that I might drink its deliciously cool contents. These nuts must grow elsewhere, but I have never before or since seen any so large. When green—that is, before the meat has hardened into indigestible matter—they contain from three pints to two quarts of liquid, at once nourishing, refreshing, and palatable. The natives appeared to drink nothing else, and I never saw a drop of fresh water ashore during our stay.
A couch made from a pile of leaves was quickly set up for me to sit on, while someone handed me a huge, freshly cut coconut with the top sliced off so I could drink its deliciously cool liquid. These coconuts must grow in other places, but I’ve never seen any this large before or since. When they’re green—that is, before the meat hardens into something hard to digest—they hold between three pints and two quarts of liquid, which is nourishing, refreshing, and tasty. The locals seemed to drink nothing else, and I never saw a drop of fresh water while we were there.
Taking a huge knife from some hiding-place, Irene handed it to her father, who at once commenced to dig in the ground by his side, while I looked on wondering and amused. Presently he fished up a bundle of leaves bound with a vine-tendril, which he laid carefully aside. More digging brought to light a fine yam about three pounds in weight, which, after carefully wiping the knife on some leaves, he proceeded to peel. It was immediately evident that the yam was perfectly cooked, for it steamed as he removed the skin, revealing the inside as white as milk. Some large, round leaves were laid in front of me, and the yam placed upon them. Then mine host turned his attention to the bundle first unearthed, which concealed a chicken, so perfectly done that, although the bones drew out of the meat as if it had been jelly, it was full of juice and flavour; and except for a slight foreign twang, referrible, doubtless, to the leaves in which it had been enwrapped, I do not think it could have been possible to cook anything in a better way, or one more calculated to retain all the natural juices of the meat. The fowl was laid beside the yam, another nut broached; then, handing me the big knife, my "flem" bade me welcome, informing me that I saw my dinner. As nothing would induce him to join me, the idea being contrary to his notions of respect due to a guest, I was fain to fall to, and an excellent meal I made. For dessert, a basketful of such oranges freshly plucked as cannot be tasted under any other conditions, and crimson bananas, which upon being peeled, looked like curved truncheons of golden jelly, after tasting which I refused to touch anything else.
Irene pulled out a big knife from somewhere and handed it to her dad, who immediately started digging in the ground next to him while I watched, curious and entertained. Before long, he uncovered a bundle of leaves tied with a vine, which he set aside carefully. More digging revealed a beautiful yam weighing about three pounds, which he began to peel after wiping the knife on some leaves. It was clear right away that the yam was perfectly cooked, steaming as he removed the skin to reveal its milk-white interior. He placed some large, round leaves in front of me and set the yam on top of them. Then, he turned his attention to the bundle he had first dug up, which contained a chicken, so cooked that the bones came out of the meat like jelly, yet it was juicy and flavorful; aside from a slight foreign taste, probably from the leaves it had been wrapped in, I couldn't imagine a better way to prepare it, retaining all the natural juices. He laid the chicken next to the yam, opened another nut, and then handed me the big knife, welcoming me and telling me I was seeing my dinner. Since nothing would persuade him to join me—believing it was disrespectful to a guest—I was left to dig in, and I had an amazing meal. For dessert, there was a basket of freshly picked oranges that could only be enjoyed in this setting, and crimson bananas that, when peeled, resembled curved pieces of golden jelly; after tasting them, I refused to eat anything else.
A corn-cob cigarette closed the banquet, After expressing my thanks, I noticed that the pain of his leg was giving my friend considerable uneasiness, which he was stolidly enduring upon my account rather than appear discourteously anxious to get rid of me. So, with the excuse that I must needs be going, having another appointment, I left the good fellow and strolled around to the chapel, where I sat enjoying the sight of those simple-minded Kanakas at their devotions till it was time to return on board. Before closing this chapter, I would like, for the benefit of such of my readers who have not heard yet of Kanaka cookery, to say that it is simplicity itself. A hole is scooped in the earth, in which a fire is made (of wood), and kept burning until a fair-sized heap of glowing charcoal remains. Pebbles are then thrown in until the charcoal is covered. Whatever is to be cooked is enveloped in leaves, placed upon the pebbles, and more leaves heaped upon it. The earth is then thrown back into the cavity, and well stamped down. A long time is, of course, needed for the viands to get cooked through; but so subtle is the mode that overdoing anything is almost an impossibility. A couple of days may pass from the time of "putting down" the joint, yet when it is dug up it will be smoking hot, retaining all its juices, tender as jelly, but, withal, as full of flavour as it is possible for cooked meat to be. No matter how large the joint is, or how tough the meat, this gentle suasion will render it succulent and tasty; and no form of civilized cookery can in the least compare with it.
A corn-cob cigarette wrapped up the feast. After thanking everyone, I noticed that my friend's leg was causing him quite a bit of discomfort, which he was quietly enduring for my sake rather than seem rude by wanting to get rid of me. So, using the excuse that I had to leave for another appointment, I said goodbye to my good friend and wandered over to the chapel, where I enjoyed watching those simple-minded Kanakas at their prayers until it was time to go back on board. Before I finish this chapter, I want to mention, for those readers who aren't familiar with Kanaka cooking, that it’s really quite simple. A hole is dug in the ground, and a fire is made (from wood) that burns until there’s a decent amount of glowing charcoal left. Pebbles are then added until the charcoal is covered. The food to be cooked is wrapped in leaves, placed on top of the pebbles, and more leaves are piled on top. Then, the earth is shoveled back into the hole and pressed down well. This method requires quite a bit of time for the food to cook completely; however, it’s so gentle that it’s nearly impossible to overcook anything. It might take a couple of days since the food was "put down," but when it’s dug up, it will be steaming hot, full of juices, incredibly tender, and bursting with flavor as cooked meat can be. Regardless of how large the cut of meat is, or how tough it may seem, this slow cooking method will make it juicy and delicious, and no style of modern cooking can compare to it.
CHAPTER XXII. FAREWELL TO VAU VAU
Taking it all round, our visit to the Friendly Islands had not been particularly fortunate up till the time of which I spoke at the conclusion of the last chapter. Two-thirds of the period during which the season was supposed to last had expired, but our catch had not amounted to more than two hundred and fifty barrels of oil. Whales had been undoubtedly scarce, for our ill-success on tackling bulls was not at all in consequence of our clumsiness, these agile animals being always a handful, but due to the lack of cows, which drove us to take whatever we could get, which, as has been noted, was sometimes a severe drubbing. Energy and watchfulness had been manifested in a marked degree by everybody, and when the news circulated that our stay was drawing to a close, there was, if anything, an increase of zeal in the hope that we might yet make a favourable season.
Overall, our trip to the Friendly Islands hadn't been very lucky up until the time I mentioned at the end of the last chapter. Two-thirds of the expected season had passed, but we had only managed to catch about two hundred and fifty barrels of oil. Whales had clearly been in short supply, as our struggles with the bulls weren't due to our incompetence—these agile creatures are always a challenge—but because there were not enough cows. This situation forced us to take whatever we could find, which, as noted, sometimes resulted in tough losses. Everyone showed remarkable energy and alertness, and when word spread that our time there was coming to an end, there was, if anything, even more eagerness in the hope that we might still have a successful season.
But none of these valuable qualities exhibited by us could make up for the lack of "fish" which was lamentably evident. It was not easy to understand why, because these islands were noted as a breeding-place for the humpbacked whale. Yet for years they had not been fished, so that a plausible explanation of the paucity of their numbers as a consequence of much harassing could not be reasonably offered. Still, after centuries of whale-fishing, little is known of the real habits of whales, Where there is abundance of "feed," in the case of MYSTICETA it may be reasonably inferred that whales may be found in proportionately greater numbers. With regard to the wider-spread classes of the great marine mammalia, beyond the fact, ascertained from continued observation, that certain parts of the ocean are more favoured by them than others, there is absolutely no data to go upon as to why at times they seem to desert their usual haunts and scatter themselves far and wide.
But none of these valuable qualities we showed could make up for the clear lack of "fish." It was hard to understand why, since these islands were known as a breeding ground for humpback whales. However, they hadn't been fished for years, so we couldn't reasonably explain the low numbers as a result of heavy fishing. Even after centuries of whale hunting, we still know very little about the actual habits of whales. Where there's plenty of "feed," in the case of MYSTICETA, we can reasonably assume that whales might be found in greater numbers. As for the wider groups of large marine mammals, we only know from ongoing observation that some parts of the ocean are preferred over others. There's absolutely no data on why, at times, they seem to leave their usual spots and scatter far and wide.
The case of the cachalot is still more difficult. All the BALAENAE seem to be compelled, by laws which we can only guess at, to frequent the vicinity of land possessing shallows at their breeding times, so that they may with more or less certainty be looked for in such places at the seasons which have been accurately fixed. They may be driven to seek other haunts, as was undoubtedly the case at Vau Vau in a great measure, by some causes unknown, but to land they must come at those times. The sperm whale, however, needs no shelter at such periods, or, at any rate, does not avail herself of any. They may often be seen in the vicinity of land where the water is deep close to, but seldom with calves. Schools of cows with recently born young gambolling about them are met with at immense distances from land, showing no disposition to seek shelter either. For my part, I firmly believe that the cachalot is so terrible a foe, that the great sharks who hover round a gravid cow of the BALAENAE, driving her in terror to some shallow spot where she may hope to protect her young, never dare to approach a sperm cow on kidnapping errands, or any other if they can help it, until their unerring guides inform them that life is extinct. When a sperm whale is in health, nothing that inhabits the sea has any chance with him; neither does he scruple to carry the war into the enemy's country, since all is fish that comes to his net, and a shark fifteen feet in length has been found in the stomach of a cachalot.
The situation with the sperm whale is even more complicated. All the baleen whales seem to be forced, for reasons we can only speculate about, to stay near shallow waters during their breeding times, so they can be found in those locations during the specific seasons that are well-documented. They might be driven to find other places, as was largely the case at Vau Vau, due to some unknown factors, but they still have to come close to land during those times. In contrast, the sperm whale doesn’t need any shelter during this period, or at least doesn’t take advantage of it. They can often be spotted near land where the water is deep close by, but rarely with calves. Groups of females with recently born young can be found far from land, showing no inclination to seek shelter either. Personally, I strongly believe that the sperm whale is such a fierce opponent that the large sharks, which circle around a pregnant baleen whale, scaring her into shallow waters where she might protect her young, would never dare to approach a sperm whale cow looking to kidnap her calves, or any other whale if they can avoid it, until they are sure she is dead. When a sperm whale is healthy, nothing in the ocean stands a chance against it; it doesn’t hesitate to invade enemy territory since anything that comes near is fair game, and a fifteen-foot shark has been discovered in the stomach of a sperm whale.
The only exception he seems to make is in the case of man. Instances have several—nay, many times occurred where men have been slain by the jaws of a cachalot crushing the boat in which they were; but their death was of course incidental to the destruction of the boat. Never, as far as I have been able to ascertain, has a cachalot attacked a man swimming or clinging to a piece of wreckage, although such opportunities occur innumerably. I have in another place told the story of how I once saw a combat between a bull-cachalot and so powerful a combination of enemies that even one knowing the fighting qualities of the sperm whale would have hesitated to back him to win, but the yarn will bear repetition.
The only exception he seems to make is in the case of humans. There have been several—actually, many—instances where men have been killed by a sperm whale crushing the boat they were in; but their deaths were just a result of the boat being destroyed. As far as I can tell, no sperm whale has ever attacked a person swimming or hanging onto a piece of wreckage, even though those situations happen all the time. I’ve shared a story elsewhere about how I once witnessed a battle between a bull sperm whale and such a powerful group of attackers that even someone familiar with the fighting abilities of sperm whales would have thought twice about betting on him to win, but it’s a story worth telling again.
Two "killers" and a sword-fish, all of the largest size. Description of these warriors is superfluous, since they are so well known to museums and natural histories; but unless one has witnessed the charge of a XIPHIAS, he cannot realize what a fearful foe it is. Still, as a practice, these creatures leave the cachalot respectfully alone, knowing instinctively that he is not their game. Upon this memorable occasion, however I guess the two ORCAS were starving, and they had organized a sort of forlorn hope with the XIPHIAS as an auxiliary who might be relied upon to ensure success if it could be done. Anyhow, the syndicate led off with their main force first; for while the two killers hung on the cachalot's flanks, diverting his attention, the sword-fish, a giant some sixteen feet long, launched himself at the most vulnerable part of the whale, for all the world like a Whitehead torpedo. The wary eye of the whale saw the long, dark mass coming, and, like a practised pugilist, coolly swerved, taking for the nonce no notice of those worrying wolves astern. The shock came; but instead of the sword penetrating three, or maybe four feet just where the neck (if a whale has any neck) encloses the huge heart, it met the mighty, impenetrable mass of the head, solid as a block of thirty tons of india-rubber.
Two "killer whales" and a swordfish, all massive in size. There's no need to describe these creatures further, as they're well-known in museums and natural history. But unless you've seen a swordfish charge, you can't truly understand what a dangerous opponent it is. Generally, these animals keep their distance from the sperm whale, knowing instinctively that it's not their target. However, on this memorable occasion, I suspect the two orcas were starving, and they had teamed up with the swordfish in a desperate effort to find food. Anyway, they launched their main attack first; while the two killers distracted the sperm whale by circling its sides, the swordfish, a giant about sixteen feet long, charged at the whale's most vulnerable spot, much like a torpedo. The whale's keen eye spotted the long, dark shape approaching and, like a skilled boxer, calmly dodged it, momentarily ignoring the pesky orcas behind. The impact came, but instead of the sword penetrating three or four feet into the area where the neck (if a whale has a neck) wraps around its huge heart, it collided with the whale’s massive, impenetrable head, solid as a thirty-ton block of rubber.
So the blow glanced, revealing a white streak running diagonally across the eye, while the great XIPHIAS rolled helplessly over the top of that black bastion. With a motion so rapid that the eye could scarcely follow it, the whale turned, settling withal, and, catching the momentarily motionless aggressor in the lethal sweep of those awful shears, crunched him in two halves, which writhing sections he swallowed SERIATIM. And the allied forces aft—what of them? Well, they had been rash—they fully realized that fact, and would have fled, but one certainly found that he had lingered on the scene too long. The thoroughly-roused leviathan, with a reversal of his huge bulk that made the sea boil like a pot, brandished his tail aloft and brought it down upon the doomed "killer," making him at once the "killed." He was crushed like a shrimp under one's heel.
So the blow barely hit, revealing a white streak diagonally across the eye, while the massive swordfish rolled helplessly over the top of that dark barrier. With a movement so quick that the eye could barely follow it, the whale turned, settling in, and catching the momentarily motionless aggressor in the deadly sweep of its massive jaws, snapped him in two, swallowing the writhing pieces one after the other. And what about the allied forces behind? They had been reckless—they fully realized that fact and would have fled, but one clearly found that he had stayed on the scene too long. The fully alert giant, with a turn of his massive body that made the sea boil like a pot, raised his tail high and brought it down on the doomed killer, instantly turning him into the killed. He was crushed like a shrimp underfoot.
The survivor fled—never faster—for an avalanche of living, furious flesh was behind him, and coming with enormous leaps half out of the sea every time. Thus they disappeared, but I have no doubts as to the issue. Of one thing I am certain—that, if any of the trio survived, they never afterwards attempted to rush a cachalot.
The survivor ran for his life—never faster—because a wave of furious, living bodies was chasing him, leaping out of the sea with every step. They vanished, but I'm confident about the outcome. One thing I'm sure of is that if any of the three made it, they never tried to take on a sperm whale again.
Strange to say, the sperm whale does not appear to be a fond mother. At the advent of danger she often deserts her offspring and in such cases it is hardly conceivable that she ever finds it again. It is true that she is not gifted with such long "arms" as the BALAENAE wherewith to cuddle her young one to her capacious bosom while making tracks from her enemies; nor is she much "on the fight," not being so liberally furnished with jaw as the fierce and much larger bull—for this is the only species of whale in which there exists a great disproportion between the sexes in point of size. Such difference as may obtain between the MYSTICETA is slightly in favour of the female. I never heard of a cow-cachalot yielding more than fifty barrels of oil; but I have both heard of, and seen, bulls carrying one hundred and fifty. One individual taken by us down south was seventy feet long, and furnished us with more than the latter amount; but I shall come to him by-and-by. Just one more point before leaving this (to me) fascinating subject for the present.
Strangely enough, the sperm whale doesn’t seem to be a caring mother. When danger approaches, she often abandons her young, and in those situations, it’s hard to imagine she ever finds them again. It's true she doesn’t have such long "arms" like the BALAENAE to hold her calf close while escaping from threats; nor is she much of a fighter, as she doesn’t have as powerful a jaw as the fierce and much larger bull—this is the only type of whale where there’s a significant size difference between the sexes. Any size difference among MYSTICETA tends to slightly favor the female. I’ve never heard of a female sperm whale producing more than fifty barrels of oil, but I’ve heard of and seen bulls yielding one hundred and fifty. One individual we caught down south was seventy feet long and provided us with more than that amount; but I’ll get into that later. Just one more point before I leave this (to me) fascinating topic for now.
To any one studying the peculiar configuration of a cachalot's mouth, it would appear a difficult problem how the calf could suck. Certainly it puzzled me more than a little. But, when on the "line" grounds we got among a number of cows one calm day, I saw a little fellow about fifteen feet long, apparently only a few days old, in the very act. The mother lay on one side, with the breast nearly at the waters edge; while the calf, lying parallel to its parent, with its head in the same direction, held the teat sideways in the angle of its jaw, with its snout protruding from the surface. Although we caught several cow-humpbacks with newly born calves, I never had an opportunity of seeing THEM suck.
To anyone studying the unique shape of a sperm whale's mouth, it seems like a tricky question how the calf could nurse. It certainly puzzled me quite a bit. However, one calm day when we were on the "line" grounds and came across several females, I saw a little one about fifteen feet long, apparently just a few days old, nursing. The mother was lying on her side, with her breast almost at the water's edge, while the calf, lying parallel to its mom and facing the same direction, held the nipple sideways in the corner of its jaw, with its snout sticking out above the surface. Even though we caught several humpback cows with newborn calves, I never had the chance to see THEM nurse.
Gradually our pleasant days at Vau Vau drew to a close. So quiet and idyllic had the life been, so full of simple joys, that most of us, if not all, felt a pang at the thought of our imminent departure from the beautiful place. Profitable, in a pecuniary sense, the season had certainly failed to be, but that was the merest trifle compared with the real happiness and peace enjoyed during our stay. Even the terrible tragedy which had taken one of our fellows from us could not spoil the actual enjoyment of our visit, sad and touching as the event undoubtedly was. There was always, too, a sufficiently arduous routine of necessary duties to perform, preventing us from degenerating into mere lotus eaters in that delicious afternoon-land. Nor even to me, friendless nomad as I was, did the thought ever occur, "I will return no more."
Gradually, our enjoyable days at Vau Vau came to an end. Life had been so quiet and peaceful, filled with simple pleasures, that most of us, if not all, felt a twinge of sadness at the thought of leaving this beautiful place. The season may not have been profitable in a financial sense, but that seemed insignificant compared to the real happiness and peace we experienced during our time there. Even the tragic event that took one of our friends away couldn't ruin the enjoyment of our visit, though it was undeniably sad and touching. There was always a demanding routine of necessary tasks to keep us from becoming idle in that lovely afternoon paradise. Even for me, a friendless wanderer, I never thought, "I will not return."
But these lovely days spent in softly gliding over the calm, azure depths, bathed in golden sunlight, gazing dreamily down at the indescribable beauties of the living reefs, feasting daintily on abundance of never-cloying fruit, amid scenes of delight hardly to be imagined by the cramped mind of the town dweller; islands, air, and sea all shimmering in an enchanted haze, and silence scarcely broken by the tender ripple of the gently-parted waters before the boat's steady keel—though these joys have all been lost to me, and I in "populous city pent" endure the fading years, I would not barter the memory of them for more than I can say, so sweet it is to me. And, then, our relations with the natives had been so perfectly amicable, so free from anything to regret. Perhaps this simple statement will raise a cynical smile upon the lips of those who know Tahati, the New Hebrides, and kindred spots with all their savage, bestial orgies of alternate unbridled lust and unnamable cruelty. Let it be so. For my part, I rejoice that I have no tale of weeks of drunkenness, of brutal rape, treacherous murder, and almost unthinkable torture to tell.
But these beautiful days spent gliding softly over the calm, blue waters, bathed in golden sunlight, dreamily gazing down at the indescribable beauty of the living reefs, enjoying an endless supply of delicious fruit, amidst scenes of joy that are almost unimaginable for someone from a crowded city; islands, air, and sea all shimmering in a magical haze, with silence only occasionally broken by the gentle ripple of the water parting in front of the boat’s steady path—though I have lost all these joys and now endure the passing years in a "populous city pent," I wouldn’t trade the memory of them for anything I can express, as it is so sweet to me. And, our interactions with the locals had been so completely friendly, so devoid of anything to regret. Maybe this simple statement will bring a cynical smile to the faces of those who know Tahiti, the New Hebrides, and similar places with their savage, brutal orgies of unrestrained lust and unimaginable cruelty. Let it be so. For my part, I’m glad that I have no stories of weeks of drunkenness, brutal assaults, treacherous murders, and nearly incomprehensible torture to share.
For of such is the paradise of the beach-comber, and the hell of the clean man. Not that I have been able to escape it altogether. When I say that I once shipped, unwittingly, as sailing-master of a little white schooner in Noumea, bound to Apia, finding when too late that she was a "blackbirder"—"labour vessel," the wise it call—nothing more will be needed to convince the initiated that I have moved in the "nine circles" of Polynesia.
For this is the paradise of the beachcomber and the nightmare of the tidy person. Not that I've been able to completely avoid it. When I say that I once signed on, unknowingly, as the captain of a little white schooner in Noumea, heading to Apia, realizing too late that she was a "blackbirder"—a "labor vessel," as the knowledgeable call it—nothing more needs to be said to convince those in the know that I've experienced the "nine circles" of Polynesia.
Some time before the day fixed for our departure, we were busy storing the gifts so liberally showered upon us by our eager friends. Hundreds of bunches of bananas, many thousands of oranges, yams, taro, chillies, fowls, and pigs were accumulated, until the ship looked like a huge market-boat. But we could not persuade any of the natives to ship with us to replace those whoso contract was now expiring. Samuela and Polly were, after much difficulty, prevailed upon by me to go with us to New Zealand, much to my gratification; but still we were woefully short-handed, At last, seeing that there was no help for it, the skipper decided to run over to Futuna, or Horn Island, where he felt certain of obtaining recruits without any trouble. He did so most unwillingly, as may well be believed, for the newcomers would need much training, while our present Kanaka auxiliaries were the smartest men in the ship.
Some time before our departure day, we were busy storing the gifts that our eager friends had generously given us. We piled up hundreds of bunches of bananas, thousands of oranges, yams, taro, chilies, chickens, and pigs, until the ship looked like a huge market boat. However, we couldn’t convince any of the locals to come with us to replace those whose contracts were ending. After a lot of persuasion, I managed to get Samuela and Polly to join us heading to New Zealand, which made me really happy; but we were still seriously short-handed. Finally, realizing there was no other option, the captain decided to head over to Futuna or Horn Island, where he was pretty sure he could find recruits without any issues. He was very reluctant to do this, as you can imagine, because the newcomers would need a lot of training, while our current Kanaka helpers were the best crew on the ship.
The slop-chest was largely drawn upon, to the credit of the crew, who wished in some tangible way to show their appreciation of the unremitting kindness shown them by their dusky friends. Not a whisper had been uttered by any native as to desire of remuneration for what he had given. If they expected a return, they certainly exercised great control over themselves in keeping their wishes quiet. But when they received the clothing, all utterly unsuited to their requirements as it was, their beaming faces eloquently proclaimed the reality of their joy. Heavy woollen shirts, thick cloth trousers and jackets, knitted socks; but acceptable beyond all was a pilot-suit—warm enough for the Channel in winter. Happy above all power of expression was he who secured it. With an eared cloth cap and a pair of half boots, to complete his preposterous rig, no Bond Street exquisite could feel more calmly conscious of being a well-dressed man than he. From henceforth he would be the observed of all observers at chapel on Sunday, exciting worldly desires and aspirations among his cooler but coveting fellow-worshippers.
The slop-chest was heavily used, thanks to the crew who wanted to show their appreciation for the constant kindness of their dark-skinned friends. Not a word had been spoken by any native about wanting payment for what they had given. If they were hoping for something in return, they certainly kept their wishes to themselves. But when they received the clothing, completely unsuitable for their needs, their shining faces clearly showed their happiness. Heavy wool shirts, thick cloth pants and jackets, knitted socks; but the best was a pilot suit—warm enough for the Channel in winter. The person who got it was happier than anyone could express. With a cloth cap and a pair of half boots to finish off his ridiculous outfit, no fashionable person from Bond Street could feel more confidently well-dressed than he did. From now on, he'd be the center of attention at chapel on Sundays, stirring up worldly desires and envy among his more composed but envious fellow worshippers.
The ladies fared very badly, until the skipper, with a twinkling eye, announced that he had "dug up" some rolls of "cloth" (calico), which he was prepared to supply us with at reasonable rates. Being of rather pretty pattern, it went off like hot pies, and as the "fathoms" of gaudy, flimsy material were distributed to the delighted fafines, their shrill cries of gratitude were almost deafening.
The ladies were struggling a lot until the captain, with a playful smile, announced that he had found some rolls of fabric (calico) that he was ready to sell us at reasonable prices. Since the fabric had a pretty pattern, it sold out quickly, and as the bright, lightweight material was handed out to the thrilled ladies, their excited shouts of thanks were almost overwhelming.
Inexorable time brought round the morning of our departure. Willing hands lifted our anchor, and hoisted the sails, so that we had nothing to do but look on. A scarcely perceptible breeze, stealing softly over the tree-tops, filled our upper canvas, sparing us the labour of towing her out of the little bay where we had lain so long, and gradually wafted us away from its lovely shores, amid the fast-flowing tears of the great crowd. With multitudinous cries of "Ofa, al-ofa, papalang" ringing in our ears ("Good-bye; good-bye, white man"), we rounded the point, and, with increasing pace, bore away through the outlying islands for the open sea. There was a strong trade blowing, making the old barky caper like a dancing-master, which long unfamiliar motion almost disagreed with some of us, after our long quiet. Under its hastening influence we made such good time that before dinner Vau Vau had faded into nothingness, mingling like the clouds with the soft haze on the horizon, from henceforth only a memory.
Relentless time brought on the morning of our departure. Willing hands lifted the anchor and hoisted the sails, leaving us with nothing to do but watch. A barely noticeable breeze, gently sweeping over the treetops, filled our sails, saving us the effort of towing out of the little bay where we had stayed so long, and gradually carried us away from its beautiful shores, amidst the fast-flowing tears of the large crowd. With countless cries of "Ofa, al-ofa, papalang" ringing in our ears ("Good-bye; good-bye, white man"), we rounded the point and, with increasing speed, sailed through the nearby islands toward the open sea. A strong trade wind began blowing, making the old ship dance like a performer, a movement that felt strange to some of us after such a long period of calm. With this swift influence, we made such good progress that before dinner, Vau Vau had disappeared completely, blending with the clouds and the soft haze on the horizon, becoming just a memory.
We were not a very cheerful crowd that night, most of us being busy with his own reflections. I must confess that I felt far greater sorrow at leaving Vau Vau than ever I did at leaving England; because by the time I was able to secure a berth, I have usually drunk pretty deep of the bitter cup of the "outward bounder," than whom there is no more forlorn, miserable creature on earth. No one but the much abused boarding-master will have anything to do with him, and that worthy is generally careful to let him know that he is but a hanger-on, a dependant on sufferance for a meal, and that his presence on shore is an outrage. As for the sailors' homes, I have hardly patience to speak of them. I know the sailor is usually a big baby that wants protecting against himself, and that once within the four walls of the institution he is safe; but right there commendation must end. Why are good folks ashore systematically misled into the belief that the sailor is an object of charity, and that it is necessary to subscribe continually and liberally to provide him with food and shelter when ashore? Most of the contributors would be surprised to know that the cost of board and lodging at the "home" is precisely the same as it is outside, and much higher than a landsman of the same grade can live for in better style. With the exception of the sleeping accommodation, most men prefer the boarding-house, where, if they preserve the same commercial status which is a SINE QUA NON at the "home," they are treated like gentlemen; but in what follows lies the essential difference, and the reason for this outburst of mine, smothered in silence for years. An "outward bounder"—that is, a man whose money is exhausted and who is living upon the credit; of his prospective advance of pay—is unknown at the "home." No matter what the condition of things is in the shipping world; though the man may have fought with energy to get his discharge accepted among the crowd at the "chain-locker;" though he be footsore and weary with "looking for a ship," when his money is done, out into the street he must go, if haply he may find a speculative boarding-master to receive him. This act, although most unlikely in appearance, is often performed; and though the boarding-master, of course, expects to recoup himself out of the man's advance note, it is none the less as merciful as the action of the "home" authorities is merciless. Of course a man may go to the "straw house," or, as it is grandiloquently termed, the "destitute seaman's asylum," where for a season he will be fed on the refuse from the "home," and sheltered from the weather. But the ungrateful rascals do not like the "straw house," and use very bad language about it.
We weren't a very cheerful group that night, as most of us were lost in our own thoughts. I have to admit that I felt a lot more sadness about leaving Vau Vau than I ever did about leaving England. By the time I was able to get a spot on a ship, I had usually drunk deeply from the bitter cup of the "outward bounder," who is the most hopeless, miserable person on earth. Nobody but the often-maligned boarding master wants anything to do with him, and that person is usually careful to make it clear that he's just a leech, dependent on a meal for the time being, and that his presence on shore is a bother. I hardly have the patience to talk about sailors' homes. I know that sailors are usually big babies who need protection from themselves, and once they’re inside those four walls, they’re safe; but that’s where the praise ends. Why are the good folks on land constantly misled into thinking that sailors are charity cases and that it’s necessary to continually donate generously to provide them with food and shelter when they’re on shore? Most of the donors would be shocked to learn that the cost of room and board at the "home" is exactly the same as it is outside and much higher than what a landlubber of the same status can live on in better conditions. Except for the sleeping arrangements, most guys prefer the boarding house, where, if they maintain the same commercial status that is a must at the "home," they’re treated like gentlemen. However, this is where the crucial difference lies, and the reason for my outburst, which I’ve kept quiet about for years. An "outward bounder"—a man whose money is all gone and who is living on the credit of his future pay advance—is unknown at the "home." Regardless of how things are in the shipping world; even if he has fought hard to have his discharge accepted among the crowd at the "chain-locker"; even if he’s footsore and tired from "looking for a ship," when his money runs out, he has to go out onto the street, hoping to find a speculative boarding master willing to take him in. This act, though it seems unlikely, does happen; and even though the boarding master expects to recoup his costs from the man's advance note, it’s still a merciful act while the actions of the "home" authorities are merciless. Of course, a man could go to the "straw house," grandly called the "destitute seaman's asylum," where for a time he will be fed leftovers from the "home" and sheltered from the weather. But the ungrateful guys don’t like the "straw house" and use very harsh language about it.
The galling thing about the whole affair is that the "sailors' home" figures in certain official publications as a charity, which must be partially supported by outside contributions. It may be a charitable institution, but it certainly is not so to the sailor, who pays fully for everything he receives. The charity is bestowed upon a far different class of people to merchant Jack. Let it be granted that a man is sober and provident, always getting a ship before his money is all gone, he will probably be well content at the home, although very few seamen like to be reminded ashore of their sea routine, as the manner of the home is. If the institution does not pay a handsome dividend, with its clothing shops and refreshment bars, as well as the boarding-house lousiness on such a large scale, only one inference can be fairly drawn—there must be something radically wrong with the management.
The frustrating thing about the whole situation is that the "sailors' home" is labeled in some official publications as a charity that needs outside donations to stay afloat. It might be a charitable institution, but it certainly doesn’t feel that way to the sailors who pay for everything they get. The charity goes to a very different group of people than merchant sailors. Let’s say a man is responsible and saves money, always finding a ship before his funds run out; he might be fairly happy at the home, even though very few sailors enjoy being reminded of their sea life while on land, as the atmosphere of the home tends to do. If the institution isn’t making a decent profit from its clothing shops and refreshment bars, as well as the shabby boarding situation on such a large scale, then the only reasonable conclusion is that there’s something seriously wrong with the management.
After this burst of temper, perhaps I had better get back to the subject in hand. It was, I suppose, in the usual contrary nature of things that, while we were all in this nearly helpless condition, one evening just before sunset, along comes a sperm whale. Now, the commonest prudence would have suggested letting him severely alone, since we were not only short-handed, but several of our crew were completely crippled by large boils; but it would have been an unprecedented thing to do while there was any room left in the hold. Consequently we mustered the halt and the lame, and manned two boats—all we could do—leaving the almost useless cripples to handle the ship. Not to displace the rightful harpooner, I took an oar in one of them, headed by the captain.
After that outburst, I guess I should get back to the topic at hand. It was, I suppose, typical that while we were all in this nearly helpless state, one evening just before sunset, a sperm whale showed up. Naturally, the smartest move would have been to stay away from it, especially since we were short-handed and several crew members were completely taken out by large boils. But it would have been unprecedented to just ignore it while there was still space in the hold. So, we gathered the injured and the lame, and manned two boats—our best option—leaving the mostly useless crew to manage the ship. Not wanting to take the place of the rightful harpooner, I took an oar in one of the boats, led by the captain.
At first my hopes were high that we should not succeed in reaching the victim before dark, but I was grievously disappointed in this. Just as the whale was curving himself to sound, we got fairly close, and the harpooner made a "pitch-pole" dart; that is, he hurled his weapon into the air, where it described a fine curve, and fell point downward on the animal's back just as he was disappearing. He stopped his descent immediately, and turned savagely to see what had struck him so unexpectedly. At that moment the sun went down.
At first, I had high hopes that we wouldn’t reach the victim before dark, but I was sadly disappointed. Just as the whale was diving, we got really close, and the harpooner made a "pitch-pole" throw; that is, he threw his weapon into the air, where it made a nice arc and came down point-first on the whale's back just as it was going under. The whale immediately stopped sinking and turned aggressively to see what had struck it so unexpectedly. At that moment, the sun set.
After the first few minutes' "kick-up," he settled down for a steady run, but not before the mate got good and fast to him likewise. Away we went at a rare rate into the gathering gloom of the fast-coming night. Now, had it been about the time of full moon or thereabouts, we should doubtless have been able, by the flood of molten light she sends down in those latitudes, to give a good account of our enemy; but alas for us, it was not. The sky overhead was a deep blue-black, with steely sparkles of starlight scattered all over it, only serving to accentuate the darkness. After a short time our whale became totally invisible, except for the phosphoric glare of the water all around him as he steadily ploughed his way along. There was a good breeze blowing, which soon caused us all to be drenched with the spray, rendering the general effect of things cold as well as cheerless. Needless to say, we strove with all our might to get alongside of him, so that an end might be put to so unpleasant a state of affairs; but in our crippled condition it was not at all easy to do so.
After the first few minutes of "getting started," he settled in for a steady run, but only after the mate managed to catch up with him. Off we went at a remarkable speed into the deepening darkness of the approaching night. If it had been around the time of a full moon, we might have been able to see our enemy clearly thanks to the bright light it casts in those regions, but unfortunately, it wasn’t. The sky above was a deep blue-black, with sharp twinkling stars scattered across it, only highlighting the darkness. After a short while, our whale became completely invisible, except for the glowing water around him as he continued on his path. A strong breeze was blowing, quickly soaking us with spray, making everything feel cold and gloomy. Naturally, we struggled with all our strength to get closer to him so that we could end this uncomfortable situation, but in our damaged state, it was far from easy to do so.
We persevered, however, and at last managed to get near enough for the skipper to hurl a lance into the brightness of which the whale formed the centre. It must have touched him, for he gave a bound forward and disappeared. We suddenly came to a standstill, but in a moment were whirled round as if on a pivot, and away we went in the opposite direction. He had turned a complete somersault in the water beneath us, giving us a "grue" as we reflected what would have happened had he then chosen to come bounding to the surface. This manoeuvre seemed to please him mightily, for he ran at top speed several minutes, and then repeated it. This time he was nearly successful in doing us some real harm, for it was now so dark that we could hardly see the other boat's form as she towed along parallel to us about three or four lengths away. The two boats swung round in a wide circle, rushing back at each other out of the surrounding darkness as if bent on mutual destruction. Only by the smartest manipulation was a collision avoided, which, as each boat's bows bristled with lances and harpoons, would have been a serious matter for some of us. However, the whale did not have it all his own way, for the skipper, having charged his bomb-gun, patiently laid for him, and fired. It was rather a long shot, but it reached him, as we afterwards ascertained, making an ugly wound in the small near his tail.
We kept at it, and finally got close enough for the captain to throw a harpoon into the bright spot where the whale was. It must have hit him because he launched forward and vanished. We suddenly came to a halt, but in a moment we were spun around like a top and took off in the opposite direction. He had done a full flip under us, giving us a chill as we thought about what would have happened if he had chosen to surface right then. This move seemed to excite him a lot, as he sped away for several minutes and then did it again. This time, he almost caused us real trouble because it was so dark we could barely see the other boat, which was towing alongside us about three or four lengths away. The two boats swung in a big circle, rushing back toward each other out of the darkness as if aiming for a crash. Only through quick maneuvering did we avoid a collision, which, given that both boats were armed with lances and harpoons, would have been serious for some of us. However, the whale didn’t have it all his way because the captain had loaded his bomb-gun and patiently waited for him, then fired. It was a long shot, but it hit him, as we found out later, creating a nasty wound near his tail.
Its effect upon him was startling and immediate. He rushed off at so furious a rate dead to windward that for a great while we had all our work cut out to keep her free by baling. The sea had risen a little, and as we leapt from one wave to another the spray flew over us in an almost continuous cloud. Clearly our situation was a parlous one. We could not get near him; we were becoming dangerously enfeebled, and he appeared to be gaining strength instead of losing it. Besides all this, none of us could have the least idea of how the ship now bore from us, our only comfort being that, by observation of the Cross, we were not making a direct course, but travelling on the circumference of an immense circle. Whatever damage we had done to him so far was evidently quite superficial, for, accustomed as we were to tremendous displays of vigour on the part of these creatures, this specimen fairly surprised us.
His reaction was shocking and instant. He took off at such a furious speed straight into the wind that we struggled for a long time just to keep the boat afloat by bailing. The sea had picked up a bit, and as we jumped from one wave to the next, the spray engulfed us in a nearly constant cloud. Clearly, we were in a dangerous situation. We couldn't get close to him; we were getting weak, while he seemed to be getting stronger instead of weaker. On top of that, none of us had the slightest idea of how far the ship had drifted from us, our only reassurance being that, by observing the Cross, we were not on a direct course but rather moving along the edge of a massive circle. Any damage we had inflicted on him so far was clearly just superficial, because, as familiar as we were with the incredible power of these creatures, this particular one truly took us by surprise.
The time could only be guessed at; but, judging from our feelings, it might have been two or three nights long. Still, to all things an end, so in the midst of our dogged endurance of all this misery we felt the pace give, and took heart of grace immediately. Calling up all our reserves, we hauled up on to him, regardless of pain or weariness. The skipper and mate lost no opportunities of lancing, once they were alongside, but worked like heroes, until a final plunging of the fast-dying leviathan warned us to retreat. Up he went out of the glittering foam into the upper darkness, while we held our breath at the unique sight of a whale breaching at night. But when he fell again the effect was marvellous. Green columns of water arose on either side of the descending mass as if from the bowels of the deep, while their ghostly glare lit up the encircling gloom with a strange, weird radiance, which reflected in our anxious faces, made us look like an expedition from the FLYING DUTCHMAN. A short spell of gradually quieting struggle succeeded as the great beast succumbed, until all was still again, except the strange, low surge made by the waves as they broke over the bank of flesh passively obstructing their free sweep.
The exact time was hard to determine, but based on how we felt, it could have been two or three nights. Still, everything has to come to an end, so in the middle of enduring all this misery, we felt the intensity lessen and immediately regained our spirits. Summoning all our strength, we pulled up on him, ignoring the pain or exhaustion. The skipper and mate seized every chance to strike while they were alongside, working like champions, until the final thrash of the dying giant signaled us to pull back. Up he soared from the sparkling foam into the dark sky, and we held our breath at the rare sight of a whale breaching at night. But when he fell back, the scene was stunning. Green columns of water shot up on either side of the massive creature as if they were rising from the depths, and their eerie glow illuminated the surrounding darkness with a strange, spectral light, reflecting on our anxious faces and making us look like a crew from the FLYING DUTCHMAN. A brief period of gradually calming struggle followed as the great beast surrendered, until everything fell silent again, except for the strange, low surge made by the waves breaking over the mass of flesh that was blocking their path.
While the final touch was being given to our task—i.e. the hole-boring through the tail-fin—all hands lay around in various picturesque attitudes, enjoying a refreshing smoke, care forgetting. While thus pleasantly employed, sudden death, like a bolt from the blue, leapt into our midst in a terrible form. The skipper was labouring hard at his task of cutting the hole for the tow-line, when without warning the great fin swung back as if suddenly released from tremendous tension. Happily for us, the force of the blow was broken by its direction, as it struck the water before reaching the boat's side, but the upper lobe hurled the boat-spade from the captain's hands back into our midst, where it struck the tub oarsman, splitting his head in two halves. The horror of the tragedy, the enveloping darkness, the inexplicable revivifying of the monster, which we could not have doubted to be dead, all combined to stupefy and paralyze us for the time. Not a sound was heard in our boat, though the yells of inquiry from our companion craft arose in increasing volume. It was but a brief accession of energy, only lasting two or three minutes, when the whale collapsed finally. Having recovered from our surprise, we took no further chances with so dangerous an opponent, but bored him as full of holes as a colander.
While we were putting the finishing touches on our task—drilling a hole in the tail fin—everyone was sprawled out in various relaxed positions, enjoying a refreshing smoke and forgetting our worries. Just as we were comfortably engaged, sudden death struck us like a bolt from the blue in a terrifying way. The captain was hard at work cutting the hole for the tow-line when, without warning, the massive fin swung back as if it had been suddenly released from intense pressure. Fortunately, the force of the blow was softened by its angle, as it hit the water before reaching the side of the boat, but the upper lobe flung the boat-spade from the captain's hands back towards us, where it struck the tub oarsman, splitting his head in two. The horror of the tragedy, the surrounding darkness, and the mysterious revival of the monster—which we all believed to be dead—left us stunned and paralyzed for a moment. Not a sound was heard in our boat, even though the shouts of our companions on another craft grew louder. This brief burst of energy lasted only two or three minutes before the whale finally collapsed. Once we recovered from our shock, we decided not to take any more risks with such a dangerous foe and filled it with holes like a colander.
Mournful and miserable were the remaining hours of our vigil. We sat around poor Miguel's corpse with unutterable feelings, recalling all the tragical events of the voyage, until we reached the nadir of despondency. With the rosy light of morning came more cheerful feelings, heightened by the close proximity of the ship, from which it is probable we had never been more than ten miles distant during the whole night. She had sighted us with the first light, and made all sail down to us, all hands much relieved at our safety. We were so sorely exhausted that we could hardly climb on board; and how we hoisted the boats I hardly know. The whale was secured by the efforts of the cripples we had left on board, while we wayfarers, after a good meal, were allowed four hours' sound, sweet sleep.
The remaining hours of our watch were filled with sadness and despair. We gathered around poor Miguel's body with intense emotions, reflecting on all the tragic events of our journey, until we hit rock bottom. When morning light came, it brought brighter feelings, especially since we were so close to the ship, which we likely hadn’t been more than ten miles away from all night. She had spotted us at dawn and hurried over, with everyone on board feeling relieved about our safety. We were so drained that we could barely climb aboard, and I can hardly remember how we managed to hoist the boats. The whale was secured by the efforts of the crew we had left on board, while we travelers, after a hearty meal, were granted four hours of deep, restful sleep.
When we returned to our duties, the first thing that awaited us was the burial of the poor body. Very reverently were the last sad offices performed, the flag hoisted half-mast, the bell solemnly tolled. Then we gathered at the gangway while the eternal words of hope and consolation were falteringly read, and with a sudden plunge the long, straight parcel slid off the hatch into the vast tomb ever ready for the dead sailor.
When we got back to our responsibilities, the first thing we had to do was bury the poor body. We performed the last sad rites with great respect, the flag was raised to half-mast, and the bell was solemnly rung. Then we gathered at the gangway while the timeless words of hope and comfort were read hesitantly, and with a swift motion, the long, straight package slid off the hatch into the vast tomb that is always ready for the dead sailor.
Our dead out of sight, work claimed all our attention and energy, wiping with its benificent influence all gloomy musings over the inevitable, and replacing them with the pressing needs of life. The whale was not a large one, but peculiar to look at. Like the specimen that fought so fiercely with us in the Indian Ocean, its jaw was twisted round in a sort of hook, the part that curved being so thickly covered with long barnacles as to give the monster a most eerie look. One of the Portuguese expressed his decided opinion that we had caught Davy Jones himself, and that, in consequence, we should have no more accidents. It was impossible not to sympathize with the conceit, for of all the queer-looking monstrosities ever seen, this latest acquisition of ours would have taken high honours. Such malformations of the lower mandible of the cachalot have often been met with, and variously explained; but the most plausible opinion seems to be that they have been acquired when the animal is very young and its bones not yet indurated, since it is impossible to believe that an adult could suffer such an accident without the broken jaw drooping instead of being turned on one side.
Our dead were out of sight, so work took all our attention and energy, pushing away our gloomy thoughts about the inevitable and replacing them with the urgent needs of life. The whale wasn’t very big but was definitely strange to look at. Like the one that fought so fiercely with us in the Indian Ocean, its jaw was twisted into a sort of hook, and the part that curved was so thickly covered with long barnacles that it gave the creature a really eerie appearance. One of the Portuguese guys was sure we had caught Davy Jones himself and that, because of that, we wouldn’t have any more accidents. It was hard not to relate to that idea because, out of all the bizarre-looking creatures we had seen, this latest addition would definitely win an award. These strange jaw deformities in sperm whales have been commonly observed and explained in different ways; however, the most reasonable explanation seems to be that they are developed when the animal is very young and its bones aren’t fully hardened. It’s hard to believe that an adult could sustain such an injury without the broken jaw hanging down instead of being twisted to one side.
The yield of oil was distressingly scanty, the whale being what is technically known as a "dry skin." The blubber was so hard and tough that we could hardly cut it up for boiling, and altogether it was one of the most disappointing affairs we had yet dealt with. This poorness of blubber was, to my mind, undoubtedly due to the difficulty the animal must have had in obtaining food with his disabling defect of jaw. Whatever it was, we were heartily glad to see the last of the beast, fervently hoping we should never meet with another like him.
The amount of oil we got was extremely low, with the whale being what’s called a “dry skin.” The blubber was so hard and tough that we could barely cut it up for boiling, and overall it was one of the most disappointing experiences we’d encountered so far. I believed this poor quality of blubber was definitely because the animal must have struggled to find food with that jaw issue. Whatever the reason, we were really relieved to be done with that whale, sincerely hoping we’d never come across another one like it.
During the progress of these melancholy operations we had drifted a considerable distance out of our course, no attention being paid, as usual, to the direction of our drift until the greasy work was done. Once the mess was cleared away, we hauled up again for our objective—Futuna—which, as it was but a few hours' sail distant, we hoped to make the next day.
During the course of these sad activities, we had drifted quite a bit off our intended path, ignoring the direction of our drift, as usual, until the messy job was finished. Once the mess was cleaned up, we steered back towards our goal—Futuna—which, since it was only a few hours away by boat, we hoped to reach the next day.
CHAPTER XXIII. AT FUTUNA, RECRUITING
Sure enough, in accordance with our expectations, break of day revealed the twin masses of Futuna ahead, some ten or fifteen miles away. With the fine, steady breeze blowing, by breakfast-time we were off the entrance to a pretty bight, where sail was shortened and the ship hove-to. Captain Count did not intend to anchor, for reasons of his own, he being assured that there was no need to do so. Nor was there. Although the distance from the beach was considerable, we could see numbers of canoes putting off, and soon they began to arrive. Now, some of the South Sea Islands are famous for the elegance and seaworthiness of their canoes; nearly all of them have a distinctly definite style of canoe-building; but here at Futuna was a bewildering collection of almost every type of canoe in the wide world. Dugouts, with outriggers on one side, on both sides, with none at all; canoes built like boats, like prams, like irregular egg-boxes, many looking like the first boyish attempt to knock something together that would float; and—not to unduly prolong the list by attempted classification of these unclassed craft—CORACLES. Yes; in that lonely Pacific island, among that motley crowd of floating nondescripts, were specimens of the ancient coracle of our own islands, constructed in exactly the same way; that is, of wicker-work, covered with some waterproof substance, whether skin or tarpaulin. But the ingenious Kanaka, not content with his coracles, had gone one better, and copied them in dugouts of solid timber. The resultant vessel was a sort of cross between a butcher's tray and a wash-basin—
Sure enough, as we expected, dawn revealed the two peaks of Futuna ahead, about ten or fifteen miles away. With a steady, nice breeze blowing, by breakfast time we were off the entrance to a beautiful bay, where we shortened the sails and brought the ship to a stop. Captain Count didn’t plan to anchor for his own reasons, as he felt it wasn’t necessary. And it wasn’t. Even though we were quite far from shore, we could see many canoes heading out, and soon they started arriving. Some of the South Sea Islands are known for the beauty and seaworthiness of their canoes; nearly all of them have a specific style of canoe-building. But here in Futuna, there was an astonishing mix of almost every type of canoe imaginable. Dugouts with outriggers on one side, on both sides, or none at all; canoes shaped like boats, like prams, like uneven egg boxes, many resembling a boy's first attempt to build something that could float; and—not to overly extend the list by attempting to categorize these unclassifiable boats—CORACLES. Yes, in that remote Pacific island, among that eclectic assortment of floating oddities, were examples of the ancient coracle from our own islands, made in exactly the same way; that is, from wickerwork, covered with some waterproof material, whether skin or tarp. But the clever Kanaka, not satisfied with his coracles, had taken it a step further and created similar ones using solid timber dugouts. The resulting vessel was a mix between a butcher's tray and a washbasin—
"A thing beyond Conception: such a wretched wherry, Perhaps ne'er ventured on a pond, Or crossed a ferry."
"A thing beyond imagination: such a miserable little boat, Perhaps never dipped into a pond, Or crossed a ferry."
The proud possessors of the coracles, both wicker and wood, must have been poor indeed, for they did not even own a paddle, propelling their basins through the water with their hands. It may be imagined what a pace they put on! At a little distance they were very puzzling, looking more like a water-beetle grown fat and lazy than aught else.
The proud owners of the coracles, made of both wicker and wood, must have been pretty poor since they didn’t even have a paddle, pushing their small boats through the water with their hands. You can imagine how fast they were moving! From a distance, they were quite confusing, looking more like a water beetle that had gotten fat and lazy than anything else.
And so, in everything floatable, the whole male population of that part of the coast came to visit us. We were speedily the centre of a great crowd of canoes, some of which were continually capsizing and spilling their occupants, who took no more notice of such incidents than one would of a sneeze. Underneath a canoe, or on top, made but little difference to these amphibious creatures. They brought nothing with them to trade; in fact, few of their vessels were capable of carrying anything that could not swim and take care of itself. As they came on board, each crossed himself more or less devoutly, revealing the teaching of a Roman Catholic mission; and as they called to one another, it was not hard to recognize, even in their native garb, such names as Erreneo (Irenaeus), Al'seo (Aloysius), and other favourite cognomens of saints.
So, in everything that floats, the entire male population of that part of the coast came to see us. We quickly became the center of a huge crowd of canoes, some of which were constantly tipping over and dumping their passengers, who paid as little attention to these incidents as one would to a sneeze. Being under a canoe or on top of one didn’t matter much to these water-loving people. They didn’t bring anything to trade; in fact, few of their boats could carry anything that couldn’t swim and fend for itself. As they came on board, each one crossed himself more or less devoutly, showing the influence of a Roman Catholic mission; and as they called to one another, it was easy to recognize, even in their native clothing, names like Erreneo (Irenaeus), Al'seo (Aloysius), and other popular names of saints.
A laughing chattering good-tempered crowd they were—just like a bevy of children breaking up, and apparently destitute of the slightest sense of responsibility. They spoke a totally different dialect, or maybe language, to that of Vau Vau, for it was only an isolated word here and there that Samuela could make out. But presently, going forward through the crowd that thronged every part of the deck, I saw a man leaning nonchalantly against the rail by the fore-rigging, who struck me at once as being an American negro. The most casual observer would not have mistaken him for a Kanaka of those latitudes, though he might have passed as a Papuan. He was dressed in all the dignity of a woollen shirt, with a piece of fine "tapa" for a waistcloth, feet and legs bare. Around his neck was a necklace composed of a number of strings of blue and white beads plaited up neatly, and carrying as a pendant a George shilling. Going up to him, I looked at the coin, and said, "Belitani money?" "Oh yes," he said, "that's a shilling of old Georgey Fourf," in perfectly good English, but with an accent which quite confirmed my first idea. I at once invited him aft to see the skipper, who was very anxious to find an interpreter among the noisy crowd, besides being somewhat uneasy at having so large a number on board.
They were a laughing, chattering, good-natured crowd—just like a group of kids breaking up and seemingly lacking any sense of responsibility. They spoke a completely different dialect, or maybe even a different language, than Vau Vau, because Samuela could only pick out a few isolated words. But as I pushed through the crowd that filled every part of the deck, I noticed a man casually leaning against the rail by the front rigging, and he struck me immediately as an American Black man. Even the most casual observer wouldn’t mistake him for a local Kanaka, though he could have passed for a Papuan. He was dressed with the dignity of a wool shirt, wearing a piece of fine tapa as a waistcloth, with his feet and legs bare. Around his neck was a necklace made of several strings of blue and white beads, neatly braided, with a George shilling hanging as a pendant. I approached him, looked at the coin, and asked, "British money?" "Oh yes," he replied, "that's a shilling of old Georgey Four," speaking in perfectly good English but with an accent that confirmed my initial thought. I immediately invited him to come to the back to meet the captain, who was eager to find an interpreter among the noisy crowd and was also a bit uneasy about having so many people on board.
To the captain's interrogations he replied that he was "Tui Tongoa"—that is, King of Tonga, an island a little distance away—but that he was at present under a cloud, owing to the success of a usurper, whom he would reckon with by-and-by.
To the captain's questions, he answered that he was "Tui Tongoa"—that is, King of Tonga, an island not far away—but that he was currently in a difficult situation because of a usurper who had succeeded, and he planned to deal with him later.
In the mean time he would have no objection to engaging himself with us as a harpooner, and would get us as many men as we wanted, selecting from among the crowd on board, fellows that would, he knew, be useful to us.
In the meantime, he wouldn’t mind joining us as a harpooner and would gather as many crew members as we needed, picking from the crowd on board, choosing guys he knew would be helpful to us.
A bargain was soon struck, and Tui entered upon his self-imposed task. It was immediately evident that he had a bigger contract on hand than he had imagined. The natives, who had previously held somewhat aloof from him in a kind of deferential respect, no sooner got wind of the fact that we needed some of them than they were seized with a perfect frenzy of excitement. There were, I should think, at least a hundred and fifty of them on board at the time. Of this crowd, every member wanted to be selected, pushing his candidature with voice and gesture as vigorously as he knew how. The din was frightful. Tui, centre of the frantic mob, strove vainly to make himself heard, to reduce the chaos to some sort of order, but for a great while it was a hopeless attempt. At last, extricating himself from his importunate friends, he gained the captain's side. Panting, almost breathless, with sweat streaming off him, he gasped out, "Oh, cap'n, dese yer darn niggers all gone mad! Dribe 'em oberbord; clar 'em out, 'n I'll stan' by to grab some o' der likely ones as de res' scatter." "But what about the wages?" said the skipper. "I'm not goin' ter give 'em whatever they like to ask." "You leab it ter me, cap'n. I bet you'll be satisfy. Anyhow, dishyers no time fer tradin'; de blame niggers all off dere coco-nuts. Anybody fink you'se payin' off 'stead o' shippin', an' deyse all afraid dey won't get 'nough."
A deal was quickly made, and Tui took on his self-imposed task. It was clear right away that he had a bigger job ahead of him than he had expected. The locals, who had previously kept their distance out of a sort of respectful wariness, became incredibly excited as soon as they realized we needed some help. I’d say there were at least a hundred and fifty of them on board at the time. Each person in that crowd wanted to be chosen, pushing their case with every shout and gesture they could muster. The noise was overwhelming. Tui, at the center of the chaotic crowd, struggled to make himself heard and bring some order to the chaos, but for a long time, it was a losing battle. Finally, managing to break away from his persistent companions, he made it to the captain's side. Breathing heavily, almost out of breath, with sweat pouring off him, he exclaimed, "Oh, captain, these darn people have all gone crazy! Get them overboard; clear them out, and I'll be ready to grab some of the good ones as the rest scatter." "But what about their pay?" asked the captain. "I’m not going to give them whatever they want." "Leave it to me, captain. I bet you’ll be satisfied. Anyway, this isn’t the time for haggling; those folks are all over the place. Anyone would think you’re paying off instead of bringing them on board, and they’re all worried they won’t get enough."
Unpleasant as the job was to all of us, it had to be done; so we armed ourselves with ropes'-ends, which we flourished threateningly, avoiding where possible any actual blows. Many sprang overboard at once, finding their way ashore or to their canoes as best they could. The majority, however, had to swim, for we now noticed that, either in haste or from carelessness, they had in most cases omitted to fasten their canoes securely when coming alongside, so that many of them were now far out to sea. The distance to shore being under three miles, that mattered little, as far as their personal safety was concerned.
As unpleasant as the job was for all of us, it had to be done; so we equipped ourselves with ropes, which we waved around threateningly, making sure to avoid actual hits when we could. Many jumped overboard at once, finding their way to shore or to their canoes as best as they could. However, the majority had to swim because we now realized that, either in their hurry or due to carelessness, they often forgot to tie their canoes securely when they came alongside, leaving many of them far out to sea. The distance to shore being under three miles, it didn't matter much in terms of their personal safety.
This summary treatment was eminently successful, quiet being rapidly restored, so that Tui was able to select a dozen men, who he declared were the best in the islands for our purpose. Although it seems somewhat premature to say so, the general conduct of the successful candidates was so good as to justify Tui fully in his eulogium. Perhaps his presence had something to do with it?
This summary treatment was incredibly successful, and quiet was quickly restored, allowing Tui to choose a dozen men whom he proclaimed were the best in the islands for our needs. While it might seem a bit early to say this, the overall behavior of the successful candidates was so impressive that it fully justified Tui’s praise. Maybe his presence had something to do with it?
We now had all that we came for, so that we were anxious to be off. But it was a job to get rid of the visitors still remaining on board. They stowed themselves away in all manner of corners, in some cases ludicrously inadequate as hiding-places, and it was not until we were nearly five miles from the land that the last of them plunged into the sea and struck out for home. It was very queer. Ignorant of our destination, of what would be required of them; leaving a land of ease and plenty for a certainty of short commons and hard work, without preparation or farewells, I do not think I ever heard of such a strange thing before. Had their home been famine or plague-stricken, they could not have evinced greater eagerness to leave it, or to face the great unknown.
We had everything we came for, so we were eager to leave. But it was difficult to get rid of the remaining visitors on board. They hid themselves in all sorts of corners, some of which were laughably inadequate as hiding spots, and it wasn't until we were nearly five miles from shore that the last of them jumped into the water and swam back home. It was very strange. Ignorant of our destination and what would be expected of them; leaving a place of comfort and abundance for a certain future of hardship and hard work, without any preparation or farewells, I don't think I've ever heard of anything quite like it before. If their home had been suffering from famine or disease, they couldn't have shown more eagerness to leave or to face the unknown.
As we drew farther off the island the wind freshened, until we had a good, whole-sail breeze blustering behind us, the old ship making, with her usual generous fuss, a tremendous rate of seven knots an hour. Our course was shaped for the southward, towards the Bay of Islands, New Zealand. In that favourite haunt of the South-seaman we were to wood and water, find letters from home (those who had one), and prepare for the stormy south.
As we moved farther away from the island, the wind picked up, giving us a strong, full-sail breeze pushing us forward. The old ship was making a good pace of seven knots an hour, just like usual. We were heading south toward the Bay of Islands, New Zealand. In that popular spot for sailors in the South, we planned to restock on wood and water, check for letters from home (for those who had any), and get ready for the stormy south.
Obviously the first thing to be done for our new shipmates was to clothe them. When they arrived on board, all, with the single exception of Tui, were furnished only with a "maro" of "tapa," scanty in its proportions, but still enough to wrap round their loins. But when they were accepted for the vacant positions on board, they cast off even the slight apology for clothing which they had worn, flinging the poor rags to their retreating and rejected compatriots. Thus they were strutting about, in native majesty unclad, which, of course, could not be endured among even so unconventional a crowd as we were. So they were mustered aft, and, to their extravagant delight, a complete rig-out was handed to each of them, accompanied by graphic instructions how to dress themselves. Very queer they looked when dressed, but queerer still not long afterwards, when some of them, galled by the unaccustomed restraint of the trousers, were seen prowling about with shirts tied round their waists by the sleeves, and pants twisted turban-wise about their heads. Tui was called, and requested to inform them that they must dress properly, after the fashion of the white man, for that any impromptu improvements upon our method of clothes-wearing could not be permitted. As they were gentle, tractable fellows, they readily obeyed, and, though they must have suffered considerably, there were no further grounds for complaint on the score of dress.
Clearly, the first thing we needed to do for our new shipmates was to get them some clothes. When they boarded, everyone except Tui had only a "maro" made of "tapa," which was pretty minimal but enough to cover themselves. However, once they were accepted for their positions on board, they ditched even that little bit of clothing, tossing the rags to their departing companions. So there they were, strutting around in their native glory, which was something we couldn’t tolerate, even in our unconventional group. They were gathered at the back of the ship, and to their utter delight, each was given a complete outfit along with clear instructions on how to wear it. They looked quite funny in their new clothes, but even funnier later on, when some of them, uncomfortable in their trousers, were spotted wandering around with shirts tied around their waists and pants wrapped around their heads like turbans. Tui was summoned and asked to inform them that they needed to dress properly in the style of white men, as any unplanned modifications to our way of dressing weren’t allowed. Since they were easygoing guys, they complied quickly, and although they must have been pretty uncomfortable, there were no more complaints about their attire.
It has been already noticed that they were Roman Catholics—all except Tui, who from his superior mental elevation looked down upon their beliefs with calm contempt, although really a greater heathen than any of them had ever been. It was quite pathetic to see how earnestly they endeavoured to maintain the form of worship to which they had been accustomed, though how they managed without their priest, I could not find out. Every evening they had prayers together, accompanied by many crossings and genuflexions, and wound up by the singing of a hymn in such queer Latin that it was almost unrecognizable. After much wondering I did manage to make out "O Salutaris Hostia!" and "Tantum Ergo," but not until their queer pronunciation of consonants had become familiar. Some of the hymns were in their own tongue, only one of which I call now remember. Phonetically, it ran thus—
It has already been noted that they were Roman Catholics—all except Tui, who, with his superior intellect, looked down on their beliefs with calm disdain, even though he was actually a bigger heathen than any of them had ever been. It was quite sad to see how earnestly they tried to keep up the form of worship they had always known, though I couldn’t figure out how they managed without their priest. Every evening, they gathered for prayers, complete with many signs of the cross and kneeling, and ended with singing a hymn in such strange Latin that it was almost unrecognizable. After a lot of puzzling, I finally managed to make out "O Salutaris Hostia!" and "Tantum Ergo," but only after I got used to their odd pronunciation of consonants. Some of the hymns were in their own language, but only one of those I can remember. Phonetically, it went like this—
"Mah-lee-ah, Kollyeea leekee; Obselloh mo mallamah. Alofah, keea ma toh; Fah na oh, Mah lah ee ah"—
"Mah-lee-ah, Kollyeea leekee; Obselloh mo mallamah. Alofah, keea ma toh; Fah na oh, Mah lah ee ah"—
which I understood to be a native rendering of "O Stella Maris!" It was sung to the well-known "Processional" in good time, and on that account, I suppose, fixed itself in my memory.
which I understood to be a native version of "O Stella Maris!" It was sung to the familiar "Processional" at a good pace, and for that reason, I guess, it stuck in my memory.
Whenever any of them were ordered aloft, they never failed to cross themselves before taking to the rigging, as if impressed with a sense of their chance of not returning again in safety. To me was given the congenial task of teaching them the duties required, and I am bound to admit that they were willing, biddable, and cheerful learners. Another amiable trait in their characters was especially noticeable: they always held everything in common. No matter how small the portion received by any one, it was scrupulously shared with the others who lacked, and this subdivision was often carried to ludicrous lengths.
Whenever any of them were sent up high, they always made the sign of the cross before climbing the rigging, almost as if they felt they might not come back safely. I was given the enjoyable task of teaching them what they needed to do, and I have to say they were eager, obedient, and cheerful learners. One particularly nice quality about them was that they always shared everything. No matter how small the portion any one of them received, it was carefully shared with the others who didn’t have enough, and this sharing sometimes got a bit ridiculous.
As there was so reason to hurry south, we, took a short cruise on the Vasquez ground, more, I think, for the purpose of training our recruits than anything else. As far as the results to our profit were concerned, we might almost as well have gone straight on, for we only took one small cow-cachalot. But the time spent thus cruising was by no means wasted. Before we left finally for New Zealand, every one of those Kanakas was as much at home in the whale-boats as he would have been in a canoe. Of course they were greatly helped by their entire familiarity with the water, which took from them all that dread of being drowned which hampers the white "greenie" so sorely, besides which, the absolute confidence they had in our prowess amongst the whales freed them from any fear on that head.
Since there was no rush to head south, we took a short cruise on the Vasquez ground, mostly to train our recruits. In terms of profit, we might as well have kept going straight since we only caught one small cow-cachalot. However, the time spent cruising wasn’t wasted at all. By the time we finally left for New Zealand, each of those Kanakas felt as comfortable in the whale-boats as they would in a canoe. They were greatly aided by their familiarity with the water, which removed the fear of drowning that often troubles inexperienced white sailors, and their complete confidence in our skills with the whales made them feel secure on that front as well.
Tui proved himself to be a smart harpooner, and was chosen for the captain's boat. During our conversations, I was secretly amused to hear him allude to himself as Sam, thinking how little it accorded with his SOI-DISANT Kanaka origin. He often regaled me with accounts of his royal struggles to maintain his rule, all of which narrations I received with a goodly amount of reserve, though confirmed in some particulars by the Kanakas, when I became able to converse with them. But I was hardly prepared to find, as I did many years after, upon looking up some detail in Findlay's "South Pacific Directory," this worthy alluded to as "the celebrated Sam," in a brief account of Futuna. There he was said to be king of the twin isles; so I suppose he found means to oust his rival, and resume his sovereignty; though, how an American negro, as Sam undoubtedly was, ever managed to gain such a position, remains to me an unfathomable mystery. Certainly he did not reveal any such masterful attributes as one would have expected in him, while he served as harpooner on board the CACHALOT.
Tui showed himself to be a skilled harpooner and was chosen for the captain's boat. During our talks, I found it secretly funny when he referred to himself as Sam, considering how little it matched his so-called Kanaka background. He often entertained me with stories of his royal battles to keep his throne, all of which I listened to with skepticism, even though some details were confirmed by the Kanakas once I learned to talk to them. But I was completely unprepared to discover, many years later, while looking up some information in Findlay's "South Pacific Directory," that this guy was referred to as "the celebrated Sam" in a brief account of Futuna. It said he was the king of the twin isles; so I guess he figured out how to get rid of his rival and reclaim his throne. However, how an American Black man, as Sam clearly was, managed to achieve such a position remains a complete mystery to me. He definitely didn’t show any exceptional qualities that you would expect from him while working as a harpooner on the CACHALOT.
Gradually we crept south, until one morning we sighted the towering mass of Sunday Island, the principal member of the small Kermadec group, which lies nearly on the prime meridian of one hundred and eighty degrees, and but a short distance north of the extremity of New Zealand. We had long ago finished the last of our fresh provisions, fish had been very scarce, so the captain seized the opportunity to give us a run ashore, and at the same time instructed us to do such foraging as we could. It was rumoured that there were many wild pigs to be found, and certainly abundance of goats; but if both these sources of supply failed, we could fall back on fish, of which we were almost sure to get a good haul.
Slowly, we made our way south, and one morning we spotted the huge mass of Sunday Island, the main island of the small Kermadec group, which is located almost directly on the prime meridian of 180 degrees and just a short distance north of New Zealand’s tip. We had long since run out of our fresh supplies, and fish had been really hard to come by, so the captain took the chance to let us go ashore and instructed us to gather whatever we could. It was said that there were many wild pigs around, and there were definitely plenty of goats; but if we couldn’t find those, we could always rely on fishing, which we were pretty sure would yield a good catch.
The island is a stupendous mass of rock, rising sheer from the waves, in some places to a height of fifteen hundred feet. These towering cliffs are clothed with verdure, large trees clinging to their precipitous sides in a marvellous way. Except at one small bight, known as Denham Bay, the place is inaccessible, not only from the steepness of its cliffs, but because, owing to its position, the gigantic swell of the South Pacific assails those immense bastions with a force and volume that would destroy instantly any vessel that unfortunately ventured too near. Denham Bay, however, is in some measure protected by reefs of scattered boulders, which break the greatest volume of the oncoming rollers. Within those protecting barriers, with certain winds, it is possible to effect a landing with caution; but even then no tyro in boat-handling should venture to do so, as the experiment would almost certainly be fatal to boat and crew.
The island is an impressive mass of rock, rising straight up from the waves, in some areas reaching a height of fifteen hundred feet. These towering cliffs are covered in greenery, with large trees somehow clinging to their steep sides in a remarkable way. Except for one small cove, known as Denham Bay, the area is inaccessible, not only because of the steep cliffs but also due to its position, where the massive swells of the South Pacific slam against those giant walls with a force and volume that would instantly destroy any vessel that happened to get too close. Denham Bay, however, is somewhat protected by reefs of scattered boulders, which break the majority of the incoming waves. Inside those protective barriers, depending on the wind, it is possible to land with caution; but even then, no inexperienced boater should attempt it, as the risk would almost certainly be fatal for both the boat and the crew.
We hove-to off the little bay, the waters of which looked placid enough for a pleasure-party, lowered two boats well furnished with fishing gear and such other equipment as we thought would be needed, and pulled away for the landing-place. As we drew near the beach, we found that, in spite of the hindrance to the ocean swell afforded by the reefs, it broke upon the beach in rollers of immense size. In order to avoid any mishap, then, we turned the boats' heads to seaward, and gently backed towards the beach, until a larger breaker than usual came thundering in. As it rushed towards us, we pulled lustily to meet it, the lovely craft rising to its foaming crest like sea-birds. Then, as soon as we were on its outer slope, we reversed the stroke again, coming in on its mighty shoulders at racing speed. The instant our keels touched the beach we all leapt out, and exerting every ounce of strength we possessed, ran the boats up high and dry before the next roller had time to do more than hiss harmlessly around our feet. It was a task of uncommon difficulty, for the shore was wholly composed of loose lava and pumice-stone grit, into which we sank ankle-deep at every step, besides being exceedingly steep.
We anchored off the small bay, which looked calm enough for a fun outing, lowered two boats stocked with fishing gear and other supplies we thought we’d need, and headed toward the landing spot. As we got closer to the shore, we noticed that, despite the protection from the ocean swell provided by the reefs, it crashed onto the beach in massive waves. To avoid any accidents, we turned the boats’ bows toward the sea and eased back toward the shore until a larger wave surged in. As it came rushing toward us, we paddled hard to meet it, the beautiful boats rising to its foaming peak like seabirds. Once we were on its outer slope, we switched our paddling again, riding in on its powerful shoulders at full speed. The moment our keels hit the sand, we all jumped out and with every bit of strength we had, we pulled the boats up high and dry before the next wave could do more than hiss harmlessly around our feet. It was an unusually difficult task since the shore was entirely made of loose lava and pumice grit, which made us sink ankle-deep with every step, and it was very steep.
We managed, however, to escape without any mishap, for the drenching was a boon to our burnt-up skins. Off we started along the level land, which, as far as I could judge, extended inland for perhaps a mile and a half by about two miles wide. From this flat shelf the cliffs rose perpendicularly, as they did from the sea. Up their sides were innumerable goat-tracks, upon some of which we could descry a few of those agile creatures climbing almost like flies. The plateau was thickly wooded, many of the trees having been fruit-bearing once, but now, much to our disappointment, barren from neglect.
We managed to escape without any problems, as the rain was a relief for our sunburned skin. We took off along the flat land, which, from my perspective, stretched inland for about a mile and a half and was roughly two miles wide. From this flat area, the cliffs shot up straight, just like they did from the sea. There were countless goat paths winding up their sides, and on some of them, we could see a few of those nimble creatures climbing almost effortlessly. The plateau was covered in dense woods, with many of the trees having been fruit-bearing in the past, but now, unfortunately, they were barren due to neglect.
A ruined house, surrounded by other vestiges of what had once been a homestead, stood in the middle of this piece of land. Feeling curious to know what the history of this isolated settlement might be, I asked the mate if he knew anything of it. He told me that an American named Halstead, with his family, lived here for years, visited only by an occasional whaler, to whom they sold such produce as they might have and be able to spare at the time. What their previous history had been, or why they thus chose to cut themselves off from the world, he did not know; but they seemed contented enough with their tiny kingdom, nor had any wish to leave it. But it came to pass that one night they felt the sure and firm-set earth trembling convulsively beneath their feet. Rushing out of their house, they saw the heavens bespread with an awful pall of smoke, the under-side of which was glowing with the reflected fires of some vast furnace. Their terror was increased by a smart shower of falling ashes and the reverberations of subterranean thunders. At first they thought of flight in their boat, not reckoning the wide stretch of sea which rolled between them and the nearest land, but the height and frequency of the breakers then prevailing made that impossible.
A ruined house, surrounded by remnants of what once was a homestead, stood in the middle of this piece of land. Curious about the history of this isolated settlement, I asked the mate if he knew anything about it. He told me that an American named Halstead lived here with his family for years, only visited by the occasional whaler, to whom they sold whatever produce they could spare at the time. He didn’t know what their past was or why they chose to cut themselves off from the world, but they seemed content in their little kingdom and had no desire to leave it. One night, however, they felt the solid ground shaking violently beneath their feet. They rushed out of their house and saw the sky covered in a terrible cloud of smoke, the underside glowing with the reflected fire of some huge furnace. Their fear grew as ashes rained down and they heard the rumbling of underground thunder. At first, they thought about fleeing in their boat, not considering the vast expanse of ocean between them and the nearest land, but the height and frequency of the crashing waves made that impossible.
Their situation was pitiable in the extreme. During the years of peace and serenity they had spent here, no thought of the insecurity of their tenure had troubled them. Though they had but been dwellers on the threshold of the mountain, as it were, and any extension of their territory impossible by reason of the insurmountable barrier around them, they had led an untroubled life, all unknowing of the fearful forces beneath their feet. But now they found the foundations of the rocks beneath breaking up; that withering, incessant shower of ashes and scoriae destroyed all their crops; the mild and delicate air changed into a heavy, sulphurous miasma; while overhead the beneficent face of the bright-blue sky had become a horrible canopy of deadly black, about which played lurid coruscations of infernal fires.
Their situation was incredibly sad. During the peaceful years they spent here, they never worried about the insecurity of their home. Although they were living on the edge of the mountain and could never expand their territory because of the unpassable barrier surrounding them, they had lived a carefree life, completely unaware of the terrifying forces underneath them. But now they discovered that the rocks beneath them were breaking apart; the relentless downpour of ash and debris ruined all their crops; the once gentle, fresh air turned into a heavy, foul-smelling haze; and overhead, the once bright blue sky transformed into a terrible blanket of black, filled with the flickering lights of hellish flames.
What they endured throughout those days and nights of woe, could never be told. They fled from the home they had reared with such abundance of loving labour, taking refuge in a cave; for not even the knowledge that the mountain itself seemed to be in the throes of dissolution could entirely destroy their trust in those apparently eternal fastnesses. Here their eldest son died, worried to death by incessant terror. At last a passing whaler, remembering them and seeing the condition of things, had the humanity and courage to stand in near enough to see their agonized signals of distress. All of them, except the son buried but a day or two before, were safely received and carried away, leaving the terrible mountain to its solitude.
What they went through during those days and nights of suffering could never be fully expressed. They escaped from the home they had built with so much love and effort, finding refuge in a cave; even the fact that the mountain seemed to be falling apart couldn’t completely shake their faith in those seemingly eternal cliffs. It was here that their eldest son died, consumed by constant fear. Eventually, a passing whaler, who remembered them and noticed their dire situation, had the compassion and bravery to get close enough to see their desperate signals for help. All of them, except for the son buried just a day or two earlier, were safely rescued and taken away, leaving the lonely mountain behind.
As I listened, I almost involuntarily cast my eyes upwards; nor was I at all surprised to see far overhead a solitary patch of smoky cloud, which I believe to have been a sure indication that the volcano was still liable to commence operations at any time.
As I listened, I almost unconsciously looked up; so I wasn’t surprised to see a lone patch of smoky cloud far above me, which I believe was a clear sign that the volcano could start erupting at any moment.
So far, we had not happened upon any pigs, or goats either, although we saw many indications of the latter odoriferous animal. There were few sea-birds to be seen, but in and out among the dense undergrowth ran many short-legged brown birds, something like a partridge—the same, I believe, as we afterwards became familiar with in Stewart's Island by the name of "Maori hens." They were so tame and inquisitive that we had no difficulty in securing a few by the simple process of knocking them over with sticks. From the main branch of a large tree hung a big honey-comb, out of which the honey was draining upon the earth. Around it buzzed a busy concourse of bees, who appeared to us so formidable that we decided to leave them to the enjoyment of their sweet store, in case we should invite an attack.
So far, we hadn’t come across any pigs or goats either, although we noticed plenty of signs of the latter smelly animal. There weren’t many sea birds around, but among the thick undergrowth, there were lots of short-legged brown birds that looked a bit like a partridge—the same kind we later got to know in Stewart's Island as "Maori hens." They were so friendly and curious that we had no trouble catching a few by simply knocking them over with sticks. Hanging from the main branch of a large tree was a big honeycomb, with honey dripping down onto the ground. A swarm of bees buzzed around it, looking so intimidating that we decided to let them enjoy their sweet treasure, just in case they decided to attack.
So far, our rambling had revealed nothing of any service to us; but just then, struck by the appearance of a plant which was growing profusely in a glade we were passing over, I made bold to taste one of the leaves. What the botanical name of the vegetable is, I do not know; but, under the designation of "Maori cabbage," it is well known in New Zealand. It looks like a lettuce, running to seed; but it tastes exactly like young turnip-tops, and is a splendid anti-scorbutic. What its discovery meant to us, I can hardly convey to any one who does not know what an insatiable craving for potatoes and green vegetables possesses seamen when they have for long been deprived of these humble but necessary articles of food. Under the circumstances, no "find" could have given us greater pleasure—that is, in the food line—than this did.
So far, our wandering hadn't provided us with anything useful; but just then, I noticed a plant thriving in a clearing we were crossing, and I decided to taste one of the leaves. I don’t know its botanical name, but it’s commonly called "Maori cabbage" in New Zealand. It resembles a seeding lettuce, but it tastes exactly like young turnip greens, and it's a fantastic source of vitamin C. It's hard to explain what this discovery meant to us, especially to anyone who doesn't understand the intense craving for potatoes and green veggies that sailors have after being deprived of these simple but essential foods for a long time. Given the circumstances, nothing else could have brought us more joy—at least in terms of food—than this.
Taking it all round, however, the place as a foraging ground was not a success. We chased a goat of very large size, and beard voluminous as a Rabbi's, into a cave, which may have been the one the Halsteads took shelter in, for we saw no other. One of the Kanakas volunteered to go in after him with a line, and did so. The resultant encounter was the best bit of fun we had had for many a day. After a period of darksome scuffling within, the entangled pair emerged, fiercely wrestling, Billy being to all appearance much the fresher of the two. Fair play seemed to demand that we should let them fight it out; but, sad to say, the other Kanakas could not see things in that light, and Billy was soon despatched. Rather needless killing, too; for no one, except at starvation-point, could have eaten the poor remains of leathery flesh that still decorated that weather-beaten frame.
Overall, the place wasn't great for foraging. We chased a huge goat, with a beard as big as a rabbi's, into a cave, which might have been where the Halsteads sought shelter since we didn't see any other cave. One of the Kanakas offered to go in after him with a rope, and he did. The encounter was the most fun we had in a long time. After some dark scuffling inside, the two of them emerged, fiercely wrestling, with Billy looking much fresher than the other goat. Fair play seemed to suggest we should let them fight it out; however, the other Kanakas didn’t see it that way, and soon Billy was finished off. It seemed like a needless killing too; because no one, unless they were on the brink of starvation, could have eaten the poor, leathery remains that still clung to that battered body.
But this sort of thing was tiring and unprofitable. The interest of the place soon fizzled out, when it was found there was so little worth taking away; so, as the day was getting on, it was decided to launch off and start fishing. In a few minutes we were afloat again, and anchored, in about four fathoms, in as favourable a spot for our sport as ever I saw. Fish swarmed about us of many sorts, but principally of the "kauwhai," a kind of mullet very plentiful about Auckland, and averaging five or six pounds. Much to my annoyance, we had not been able to get any bait, except a bit of raw salt-pork, which hardly any fish but the shark tribe will look at. Had I known or thought of it, a bit of goat would have been far more attractive.
But this kind of thing was tiring and pointless. The excitement of the place quickly faded when we realized there wasn’t much worth taking. So, as the day went on, we decided to set off and start fishing. In a few minutes, we were back on the water and anchored in about four fathoms, in one of the best spots for our sport I’d ever seen. Fish swarmed around us of many types, but mainly the "kauwhai," a kind of mullet that’s very common around Auckland, averaging five or six pounds. To my frustration, we hadn’t been able to get any bait except for a piece of raw salt pork, which hardly any fish but the sharks will even consider. If I had known or thought about it, a piece of goat would have been much more appealing.
However, as there was no help for it, we baited up and started. "Nary nibble ermong 'em!" growled Sam, as we sat impatiently waiting for a bite. When we hauled up to see what was wrong, fish followed the hook up in hundreds, letting us know plainly as possible that they only wanted something tasty. It was outrageous, exasperating beyond measure! At last Samuela grew so tired of it that he seized his harpoon, and hurled it into the middle of a company of kauwhai that were calmly nosing around the bows. By the merest chance he managed to impale one of them upon the broad point. It was hardly in the boat before I had seized it, scaled it, and cut it into neat little blocks. All hands rebaited with it, and flung out again. The change was astounding. Up they came, two at a time, dozens and dozens of them kauwhai, cavalle, yellow-tail, schnapper—lovely fish of delicious flavour and goodly size. Then one of us got a fish which made him yell, "Shark! shark!" with all his might. He had a small line of American cotton, staunch as copper wire, but dreadfully cutting to the hands. When he took a turn round the logger-head, the friction of the running line cut right into the white oak, but the wonderful cord and hook still held their own. At last the monster yielded, coming in at first inch by inch, then more rapidly, till raised in triumph above the gunwhale—a yellow-tail six feet long. I have caught this splendid fish (ELAGATIS BIPINNULATIS) many times before and since then, but never did I see such a grand specimen as this one—no, not by thirty or forty pounds. Then I got a giant cavalle. His broad, shield-like body blazed hither and thither as I struggled to ship him, but it was long ere he gave in to superior strength and excellence of line and hook.
However, since there was no other option, we set up our bait and got started. "Not a single nibble among them!" Sam grumbled as we sat there impatiently waiting for a bite. When we pulled up to check what was wrong, fish followed the hook up in droves, clearly letting us know they only wanted something tasty. It was infuriating, beyond measure! Finally, Sam got so fed up that he grabbed his harpoon and threw it into a group of kauwhai that were lazily swimming around the front of the boat. By sheer luck, he managed to spear one of them. As soon as it was in the boat, I grabbed it, scaled it, and cut it into neat little pieces. Everyone rebaited with it and tossed the lines back out. The change was incredible. Fish came up two at a time, dozens and dozens of kauwhai, cavalle, yellow-tail, schnapper—beautiful fish with delicious flavor and good size. Then one of us hooked a fish and shouted, "Shark! Shark!" at the top of his lungs. He had a small line made of American cotton, tough as copper wire but painfully rough on the hands. When he wrapped it around the logger-head, the friction from the line dug into the white oak, but the strong cord and hook held up just fine. Finally, the beast gave in, coming in slowly at first, then more quickly, until we lifted it in triumph above the gunwale—a yellow-tail six feet long. I’ve caught this amazing fish (ELAGATIS BIPINNULATIS) many times before and after that, but I’ve never seen such a magnificent specimen—at least thirty or forty pounds bigger than any I’d caught. Then I hooked a giant cavalle. Its broad, shield-like body flashed everywhere as I struggled to get it on board, but it took a while before it finally gave in to my superior strength and the excellent line and hook.
Meanwhile, the others had been steadily increasing our cargo, until, feeling that we had quite as much fish as would suffice us, besides being really a good load, I suggested a move towards the ship. We were laying within about half a mile of the shore, where the extremity of the level land reached the cliffs. Up one of the well-worn tracks a fine, fat goat was slowly creeping, stopping every now and then to browse upon the short herbage that clung to the crevices of the rock. Without saying a word, Polly the Kanaka slipped over the side, and struck out with swift overhead strokes for the foot of the cliff. As soon as I saw what, he was after, I shouted loudly for him to return, but he either could not or would not hear me. The fellow's seal-like ability as a swimmer was, of course, well known to me, but I must confess I trembled for his life in such a weltering whirl of rock-torn sea as boiled among the crags at the base of that precipice. He, however, evidently knew what he was going to do, and, though taking risks which would have certainly been fatal to an ordinary swimmer, was quite unafraid of the result.
Meanwhile, the others were steadily loading our cargo, and feeling we had enough fish to last us and a solid load, I suggested we head back to the ship. We were about half a mile from the shore, where the flat land met the cliffs. Up one of the well-trodden paths, a plump goat was slowly making its way, stopping now and then to nibble on the short grass that grew in the crevices of the rock. Without saying a word, Polly the Kanaka slipped over the side and swam with strong strokes toward the foot of the cliff. As soon as I realized what he was doing, I shouted loudly for him to come back, but he either couldn't or wouldn't hear me. I knew he was a great swimmer, but I couldn't help but worry for his life in that churning, rocky sea at the base of the cliff. He, however, clearly knew what he was doing and, despite taking risks that would have been deadly for an average swimmer, seemed completely unfazed by the outcome.
We all watched him breathlessly as he apparently headed straight for the biggest outlying rock—a square, black boulder about the size of an ordinary railway car. He came up to it on the summit of a foaming wave; but just as I looked for him to be dashed to pieces against its adamantine sides, he threw his legs into the air and disappeared. A stealthy, satisfied smile glowed upon Samuela's rugged visage, and, as he caught my eye, he said jauntily, "Polly savee too much. Lookee him come on top one time!" I looked, and sure enough there was the daring villain crawling up among the kelp far out of reach of the hungry rollers. It was a marvellous exhibition of coolness and skill.
We all watched him with bated breath as he seemed to head straight for the biggest outlying rock—a square, black boulder about the size of an ordinary train car. He reached it on the crest of a crashing wave; but just as I expected him to be smashed against its hard sides, he kicked his legs into the air and disappeared. A sly, satisfied smile spread across Samuela's rugged face, and as he caught my eye, he said cheerfully, "Polly savee too much. Look at him coming up one more time!" I looked, and sure enough, there was the daring villain crawling among the kelp far out of reach of the hungry waves. It was a remarkable display of composure and skill.
Without waiting an instant, he began to stalk the goat, dodging amongst the bushes with feet that clung to the steep sides of the cliff as well as the animal's. Before he could reach her, she had winded him, and was off up the track. He followed, without further attempt to hide himself; but, despite his vigour and ability, would, I fancy, have stood a microscopic chance of catching her had she not been heavy with kid. As it was, he had all his work cut out for him. When he did catch her, she made so fierce it struggle for life and liberty that, in the endeavour to hold her, he missed his insecure foothold, and the pair came tumbling over and over down the cliff in a miniature avalanche of stones and dust. At the bottom they both lay quiet for a time; while I anxiously waited, fearing the rash fool was seriously injured; but in a minute or two he was on his feet again.
Without waiting a moment, he started chasing the goat, weaving through the bushes with feet that gripped the steep cliffside just like the animal's. Before he could catch up to her, she caught his scent and took off up the path. He followed, no longer trying to hide; but, despite his energy and skills, I think he would have had almost no chance of catching her if she hadn’t been pregnant. As it was, he had his work cut out for him. When he finally caught her, she struggled so fiercely for her life and freedom that, while trying to hold on, he lost his precarious footing, and they both tumbled down the cliff in a small avalanche of stones and dust. At the bottom, they both lay still for a while; I waited anxiously, fearing that the reckless fool was badly hurt; but in a minute or two, he was back on his feet again.
Lashing the goat to his body, and ignoring her struggles, he crawled out as far among the rocks as he could; then, at the approach of a big breaker, he dived to meet it, coming up outside its threatening top like a life-buoy. I pulled in, as near as I could venture, to pick him up, and in a few minutes had him safely on board again, but suffering fearfully. In his roll down the cliff he had been without his trousers, which would have been some protection to him. Consequently, his thighs were deeply cut and torn in many places, while the brine entering so many wounds, though a grand styptic, must have tortured him unspeakably. At any rate, though he was a regular stoic to bear pain, he fainted while I was "dressing him down" in the most vigorous language I could command for his foolhardy trick. Then we all realized what he must be going through, and felt that he was getting all the punishment he deserved, and more. The goat, poor thing! seemed none the worse for her rough handling.
He tied the goat to himself and ignored her struggles as he crawled as far among the rocks as he could. Then, as a big wave approached, he dove into it, surfacing outside its dangerous crest like a life preserver. I moved in as close as I could to pick him up, and within a few minutes, I had him safely back on board, though he was in a lot of pain. During his tumble down the cliff, he had lost his pants, which might have offered some protection. As a result, his thighs were deeply cut and torn in several places, and the saltwater entering those wounds, while it helped stop the bleeding, must have tortured him terribly. No matter what, even though he was usually able to endure pain like a stoic, he fainted while I scolded him with the strongest words I could muster for his reckless stunt. At that moment, we all understood the extent of his suffering and felt that he was getting all the punishment he had coming, and then some. The poor goat, however, seemed to be none the worse for her rough treatment.
The mate gave the signal to get back on board just as Polly revived, so there were no inconvenient questions asked, and we returned alongside in triumph, with such a cargo of fish as would have given us a good month's pay all round could we have landed them at Billingsgate. Although the mate had not succeeded as well as we, the catch of the two boats aggregated half a ton, not a fish among the lot less than five pounds weight, and one of a hundred and twenty—the yellow-tail aforesaid. As soon as we reached the ship, the boats were run up, sails filled, and away we lumbered again towards New Zealand.
The mate signaled it was time to get back on board just as Polly came to, so there were no awkward questions asked, and we returned triumphantly with a haul of fish that would have netted us a good month's pay if we could’ve sold them at Billingsgate. Even though the mate didn’t do as well as we did, the total catch from both boats weighed half a ton, with not a single fish under five pounds, and one weighing a hundred and twenty—the previously mentioned yellow-tail. As soon as we got back to the ship, the boats were hoisted, sails were set, and we lumbered off again toward New Zealand.
As the great mass of that solitary mountain faded away in the gathering shades of evening, it was impossible to help remembering the sufferings of that afflicted family, confined to those trembling, sulphurous, ash-bestrewn rocks, amid gloom by day, and unnatural glare by night, for all that weary while. And while I admit that there is to some people a charm in being alone with nature, it is altogether another thing when your solitude becomes compulsory, your paradise a prison from which you cannot break away. There are many such nooks scattered about the ocean, where men have hidden themselves away from the busy world, and been forgotten by it; but few of them, I fancy, offer such potentialities of terror as Sunday Island.
As the vast expanse of that lonely mountain disappeared into the deepening evening shadows, it was impossible not to think about the suffering of that troubled family, trapped on those shaky, sulfurous, ash-covered rocks, surrounded by darkness during the day and an eerie brightness at night, for what felt like an eternity. While I understand that some people find a certain appeal in solitude amidst nature, it’s a completely different experience when being alone is forced upon you, turning your paradise into a prison you can’t escape. There are many hidden spots along the ocean where people have secluded themselves from the busy world and have been forgotten; but I doubt many of them hold such terrifying possibilities as Sunday Island.
We had hardly lost sight of the land, when Polly's capture gave birth to a kid. This event was the most interesting thing that had happened on board for a great while, and the funny little visitor would have run great risk of being completely spoiled had he lived. But, to our universal sorrow, the mother's milk failed—from want of green food, I suppose—and we were obliged to kill the poor little chap to save him from being starved to death. He made a savoury mess for some whose appetite for flesh-meat was stronger than any sentimental considerations.
We had barely lost sight of the land when Polly gave birth to a kid. This was the most interesting thing that had happened on board in a long time, and the cute little visitor would have been at serious risk of being completely spoiled if he had lived. But, to our collective sadness, the mother’s milk dried up—probably due to a lack of green food—and we had to put the poor little guy down to save him from starving to death. He made a tasty meal for some whose craving for meat outweighed any sentimental feelings.
To an ordinary trader, the distance between the Kermadecs and the Bay of Islands, New Zealand, roughly represents a couple of days' sail; but to us, who were apparently incapable of hurry under any circumstances, it meant a good week's bludgeoning the protesting waves before the grim outliers of the Three Kings came into view. Even then, although the distance was a mere bagatelle, it was another two days before we arrived off that magnificent harbour where reposes the oldest township in New Zealand—Russell, where rest the mortal remains of the first really Pakeha Maori, but which, for some unaccountable reason, is still left undeveloped and neglected, visited only by the wandering whalers (in ever-decreasing numbers) and an occasional trim, business-like, and gentlemanly man-o'-war, that, like a Guardsman strolling the West End in mufti, stalks the sea with never an item of her smart rig deviating by a shade from its proper set or sheer.
For an average sailor, the distance between the Kermadecs and the Bay of Islands in New Zealand is about a couple of days' sailing. But for us, who seemed unable to hurry no matter what, it meant a solid week battling the unwilling waves before we finally spotted the rugged outliers of the Three Kings. Even then, despite the distance being relatively small, it took us another two days to reach the stunning harbor where the oldest town in New Zealand, Russell, is located. This is also where the remains of the first true Pakeha Maori are laid to rest, yet, for some strange reason, it remains undeveloped and neglected, only visited by a dwindling number of wandering whalers and an occasional sleek, efficient warship, which, like a Guardsman casually strolling through the West End in civilian clothes, glides through the sea with every detail of its impressive rig perfectly in place.
CHAPTER XXIV. THE BAY OF ISLANDS AND NEW ZEALAND COAST
In a comparative new colony like New Zealand, where the marvellous growth of the young state can be traced within living memory, from the privations of the pioneer to the fully developed city with all the machinery of our latest luxurious civilization, it is exceedingly interesting to note how the principal towns have sprung up arbitrarily, and without any heed to the intentions of the ruling powers. The old-fashioned township of Kororarika, or Port Russell, is a case very much in point. As we sailed in between the many islets from which the magnificent bay takes its name, for all appearances to the contrary, we might have been the first, discoverers. Not a house, not a sail, not a boat, broke the loneliness and primeval look of the placid waters and the adjacent shores. Not until we drew near the anchorage, and saw upon opening up the little town the straight-standing masts of three whale-ships, did anything appear to dispel the intense air of solitude overhanging the whole. As we drew nearer, and rounded-to for mooring, I looked expectantly for some sign of enterprise on the part of the inhabitants—some tradesman's boat soliciting orders; some of the population on the beach (there was no sign of a pier), watching the visitor come to an anchor. Not a bit of it. The whole place seemed a maritime sleepy hollow, the dwellers in which had lost all interest in life, and had become far less energetic than the much-maligned Kanakas in their dreamy isles of summer.
In a relatively new colony like New Zealand, where you can still see the incredible growth of the young nation within living memory—from the hardships of the pioneers to the fully developed city with all the perks of our latest lavish civilization—it’s really fascinating to see how the main towns have popped up randomly, without any consideration for the plans of those in charge. The old-fashioned town of Kororarika, or Port Russell, is a perfect example. As we sailed between the many islets that give the stunning bay its name, it was as if we were the first explorers, despite appearances to the contrary. There was not a single house, sail, or boat to break the solitude and ancient look of the calm waters and nearby shores. It wasn't until we got closer to the anchorage and saw the upright masts of three whaling ships in the small town that anything seemed to break the profound stillness that hung over everything. As we approached and prepared to dock, I eagerly searched for any sign of activity from the locals—maybe a tradesman's boat coming by for orders or some people on the beach (since there was no pier) watching the newcomer drop anchor. But there was nothing. The whole area felt like a sleepy maritime hollow, where the inhabitants appeared to have lost all interest in life and had become far less energetic than the much-criticized Kanakas in their idyllic summer islands.
Yet this was once intended for the capital of New Zealand. When the large and splendidly-built city of Dunedin, Otago, was a barren bush, haunted only by the "morepork" and the apteryx, Russell was humming with vitality, her harbour busy with fleets of ships, principally whalers, who found it the most convenient calling-place in the southern temperate zone. Terrible scenes were enacted about its "blackguard beach," orgies of wild debauchery and bloodshed indulged in by the half-savage and utterly lawless crews of the whaleships. But it never attained to any real importance. As a port of call for whalers, it enjoyed a certain kind of prosperity; but when the South Sea fishery dwindled, Russell shrank in immediate sympathy. It never had any vitality of its own, no manufactures or products, unless the wretched coalmines adjacent, with their dirty output, which is scoffed at by the grimiest tug afloat, could be dignified by the name.
Yet this was once meant to be the capital of New Zealand. When the large and impressively built city of Dunedin, Otago, was just a barren bush, only visited by the "morepork" and the apteryx, Russell was alive with activity, its harbor bustling with fleets of ships, mainly whalers, who found it to be the most convenient stop in the southern temperate zone. Horrible scenes played out on its "blackguard beach," with wild parties and violence indulged in by the rough and completely lawless crews of the whaling ships. But it never achieved any real significance. As a stop for whalers, it experienced a certain kind of prosperity; however, when the South Sea fishery declined, Russell quickly shrank alongside it. It never had any vitality of its own, no industries or products, except for the miserable nearby coal mines, with their dirty output, which is ridiculed by the grimiest tug around, that could even be called legitimate.
Remembering, as I did, the beauty, the energy, and prosperity of the great New Zealand ports, some of them with not a tithe of the natural advantages of Russell, I felt amazed, almost indignant, at its dead-and-alive appearance.
Remembering, as I did, the beauty, the energy, and the prosperity of the great New Zealand ports, some of which have far fewer natural advantages than Russell, I felt shocked, almost angry, at its lifeless appearance.
Our anchor was no sooner down than the captains of the JAMES ARNOLD, MATILDA SAYER, and CORAL lowered and came on board, eager to hear or to tell such news as was going. As we had now grown to expect, all work was over immediately the sails were fast and decks cleared up, so that we were free to entertain our visitors. And a high old time we had of it that afternoon! What with songs, dances, and yarns, the hours flew by with lightning speed. Our Kanakas, too, were overjoyed to find compatriots among the visitors, and settled down to a steady stream of talk which lasted, without intermission, the whole night through. It was a wonderful exhibition of tongue-wagging, though what it was all about puzzled me greatly.
Our anchor was barely down when the captains of the JAMES ARNOLD, MATILDA SAYER, and CORAL lowered their boats and came on board, eager to share or hear the latest news. As we had come to expect, all work stopped as soon as the sails were secured and the decks cleaned up, allowing us to entertain our guests. And we had a blast that afternoon! With songs, dances, and stories, the hours flew by in no time. Our Kanakas were also thrilled to find fellow countrymen among the visitors and settled into a constant stream of conversation that lasted all night. It was quite a showcase of chatting, though I was seriously puzzled about what they were talking about.
Life on board those three ships, though described in glowing terms by the visitors, was evidently not to be mentioned for comfort in the same breath as ours. But we found that our late captain's fame as a "hard citizen" was well known to all; so that it is only ordinary justice to suppose that such a life as he led us was exceptional for even a Yankee spouter. Our friends gave us a blood-curdling account of the Solander whaling ground, which we were about to visit, the JAMES ARNOLD and CORAL having spent a season there that cruise. I did not, however, pay much attention to their yarns, feeling sure that, even if they were fact, it would not help to brood over coming hardships, and inclined to give liberal discount to most of their statements. The incessant chatter, got wearisome at last, and I, for one, was not sorry when, at two in the morning, our visitors departed to their several ships, and left us to get what sleep still remained left to us.
Life on those three ships, though praised by the visitors, clearly wasn’t as comfortable as ours. However, we learned that our late captain's reputation as a "hard citizen" was well-known, so it's only fair to assume that the life he led was unusual, even for a Yankee talker. Our friends shared a chilling story about the Solander whaling ground we were about to visit, where the JAMES ARNOLD and CORAL had spent a season that trip. I didn’t pay much attention to their tales, knowing that even if they were true, worrying about the upcoming hardships wouldn’t help, and I tended to doubt most of their claims. The constant chatter became tiresome, and I, for one, was relieved when our visitors finally left at two in the morning to return to their ships, allowing us to catch whatever sleep we could.
A pleasant expedition was planned for the next day. Our visit being principally for wooding and watering, both of which it was necessary for us to do ourselves, Captain Count showed his usual promptitude in commencing at once. Permission having been obtained and, I suppose, paid for, we set out with two boats and a plentiful supply of axes for a well-wooded promontory to prepare a store of wood. Wood chopping is not usually looked upon as a sailor's pastime; but we had had considerable experience during the voyage, as a result of which most of us could swing an axe in fine style. But the Kanakas beat us all hollow. Delighted to get ashore again, pleased with the fine axes as children with new toys, they laid about them in grand style, the young trees falling right and left in scores. Anybody would have judged that we were working piece-work, at so much a cord, the pile grew so fast. There was such a quantity collected that, instead of lightering it off in the boats, which is very rough and dirty usage for them, I constructed a sort of raft with four large spars arranged in the form of an oblong, placing an immense quantity of the smaller stuff in between. Upright sticks were rudely lashed here and there, to keep the pile from bobbing out underneath, and thus loaded we proceeded slowly to the ship with sufficient wood for our wants brought in one journey. It was immediately hoisted on board, sawn into convenient lengths, and stowed away, the whole operation being completed, of getting between eight and ten tons of firewood cut, ferried, and stowed, in less than eight hours.
A nice trip was planned for the next day. Our main goal was to gather wood and get water, both tasks we needed to handle ourselves. Captain Count quickly got things started, as usual. After getting permission, which I assume was paid for, we set out with two boats and a good supply of axes to a well-wooded point to gather wood. Chopping wood isn’t something sailors usually do for fun, but we had gained a lot of experience during our voyage, and most of us could swing an axe pretty well. However, the Kanakas easily outperformed us. Happy to be on land again and excited about the great axes, they went to work impressively, bringing down young trees left and right by the dozens. Anyone watching would think we were working for pay, as the pile grew quickly. We gathered so much wood that instead of carrying it off in the boats, which would have been rough and messy, I built a sort of raft using four large logs arranged in a rectangle and stuffed it with a huge amount of smaller wood. Upright sticks were loosely tied in various places to keep the pile from falling off, and with that, we slowly headed back to the ship with enough wood for our needs in one trip. It was immediately hoisted on board, cut into manageable lengths, and stored away, completing the whole task of cutting, transporting, and stowing away between eight and ten tons of firewood in less than eight hours.
Next day was devoted to watering; but as I have elsewhere described that necessary if prosaic occupation, I will not repeat the story. Sufficient to say that the job was successfully "did" in the course of the day.
The next day was spent watering; but since I've already described that essential yet mundane task elsewhere, I won't go over it again. It's enough to say that the job got done successfully throughout the day.
All the work being accomplished for which we had come, it only remained to give the crew "liberty." So the port watch, in their best (?) rig, were mustered aft; each man received ten shillings, and away they went in glee for the first genuine day's liberty since leaving Honolulu. For although they had been much ashore in Vau Vau, that was not looked upon in the same light as a day's freedom in a town where liquor might be procured, and the questionable privilege of getting drunk taken advantage of. Envious eyes watched their progress from the other ships, but, much to my secret satisfaction, none of their crews were allowed ashore at the same time. There were quite sufficient possibilities of a row among our own crowd, without farther complications such as would almost certainly have occurred had the strangers been let loose at the same time. Unfortunately, to the ordinary sailor-man, the place presented no other forms of amusement besides drinking, and I was grieved to see almost the whole crowd, including the Kanakas, emerge from the grog-shop plentifully supplied with bottles, and, seating themselves on the beach, commence their carouse. The natives evinced the greatest eagerness to get drunk, swallowing down the horrible "square gin" as if it were water. They passed with the utmost rapidity through all the stages of drunkenness. Before they had been ashore an hour, most of them were lying like logs, in the full blaze of the sun, on the beach. Seeing this, the captain suggested the advisability of bringing them on board at once, as they were only exposed to robbery by the few prowling Maories that loafed about the beach—a curious contrast to the stately fellows met with in other parts of New Zealand.
All the work we came to do was done, so it was time to give the crew some "liberty." The port watch, dressed in their best gear, gathered at the back of the ship; each man got ten shillings, and off they went, excited for their first real day off since leaving Honolulu. Even though they had spent a lot of time on land in Vau Vau, it didn’t feel the same as a proper day off in a town where they could buy drinks and take advantage of the chance to get drunk. Jealous eyes from the other ships watched them, but to my secret relief, none of those crews were allowed ashore at the same time. There were already enough chances for trouble among our own crew without complicating things with the outsiders. Unfortunately, for the average sailor, there wasn't much to do in the area except drink, and I was saddened to see nearly the entire group, including the locals, come out of the bar loaded with bottles, sitting on the beach to start their drinking spree. The locals were particularly eager to drink, downing the awful "square gin" like it was water. They quickly went through all the stages of drunkenness. Within an hour of being ashore, most of them were sprawled out, passed out in the scorching sun on the beach. Seeing this, the captain suggested we bring them back on board immediately since they were at risk of being robbed by the few wandering Maoris hanging around the beach—a striking contrast to the dignified locals seen in other parts of New Zealand.
So we set to work, and brought them on board again, handing them over to their compatriots by way of warning against similar excesses, although, it must be confessed, that they were hardly to blame, with the example of their more civilized shipmates before their eyes. Sam was energetic in his condemnation of both the Kanakas for getting drunk, and the captain for giving them any money wherewith to do so. The remainder of the watch fortunately concluded their carouse without any serious disorder. A few bruises bestowed upon one another, more in clumsy horseplay than real fighting summed up the casualties among them. By ten o'clock that evening we had them all safely on board again, ready for sore heads and repentance in the morning.
So we got to work and brought them back on board, handing them over to their shipmates as a warning against similar excesses. Although, to be honest, they were hardly at fault considering the behavior of their more civilized companions. Sam was outspoken in his criticism of both the Kanakas for getting drunk and the captain for giving them any money to do so. Luckily, the rest of the watch ended their partying without any serious trouble. A few bruises were exchanged during some clumsy horseplay rather than actual fighting, which summed up the injuries. By ten o'clock that night, we had them all safely back on board, ready for sore heads and regrets in the morning.
During the day I had evolved a scheme, which I had great hopes of carrying out when our watch should be let loose on the morrow. When morning came, and the liberty men received their money, I called them together and unfolded my plan. Briefly, I proposed a sort of picnic at a beautiful spot discovered during our wooding expedition. I was surprised and very pleased at the eager way in which all, with the sole exceptions of Tui and his fellow-harpooner, a Portuguese, fell in with my suggestions. Without any solicitation on my part, my Kanakas brought me their money, begging me to expend it for them, as they did not know how, and did not want to buy gin.
During the day, I came up with a plan that I was really excited to put into action when our watch was released the next day. When morning arrived and the crew got their pay, I gathered everyone together and shared my idea. Essentially, I suggested having a kind of picnic at a beautiful spot we found during our wood search. I was surprised and really pleased by how eager everyone was to join in, except for Tui and his fellow harpooner, a Portuguese guy. Without me even asking, my Kanakas gave me their money, asking me to spend it for them since they didn’t know how to do it and didn’t want to buy gin.
Under such favourable auspices as these, we landed shortly after eight a.m., making a bee-line for the only provision shop the place boasted. Here we laid in a stock of such savouries as we had long been strangers to, both eatables and drinkables, although I vetoed fire-water altogether. Beer in bottle was substituted, at my suggestion, as being, if we must have drinks of that nature, much the least harmful to men in a hot country, besides, in the quantity that we were able to take, non-intoxicant. We also took tea, sugar, milk, and a kettle, Thus furnished, we struck for the country, merry as a group of schoolboys, making the quiet air ring again with song, shout, and laughter—all of which may seem puerile and trivial in the extreme; but having seen liberty men ashore in nearly every big port in the world, watched the helpless, dazed look with which they wander about, swinging hands, bent shoulders, and purposeless rolling gait, I have often fervently wished that some one would take a party of them for a ramble with a definite purpose, helping them to a little enjoyment, instead of them falling, from sheer lack of knowing what else to do, into some dirty, darksome gin-mill, to be besotted, befooled, and debased.
With such favorable conditions, we arrived shortly after 8 a.m., heading straight for the only grocery store in the area. We stocked up on delicious foods and drinks we hadn’t had in a while, although I completely ruled out any hard liquor. Instead, I suggested bottled beer, which was much less harmful in a hot country and, in the amount we could handle, non-intoxicating. We also got tea, sugar, milk, and a kettle. With those supplies, we set off into the countryside, as cheerful as a group of schoolboys, filling the calm air with our singing, shouting, and laughter—all of which might seem silly and trivial. But having seen countless men ashore in major ports around the world, looking lost and disoriented, swinging their arms, slouching, and aimlessly stumbling around, I have often wished that someone would lead a group of them on a purposeful outing, helping them find a bit of joy, rather than letting them drift into some grimy bar to get drunk, confused, and degraded.
I do earnestly wish that some of the good folk in London and Liverpool, who are wringing their hands for want of something to do among their fellow-men, would pay a visit to sailor-town for the purpose of getting up a personally-conducted party of sailors to see the sights worth seeing. It is a cheap form of pleasure, even if they paid all expenses, though that would not be likely. They would have an uphill job at first, for the sailor has been so long accustomed to being preyed upon by the class he knows, and neglected by everybody else except the few good people who want to preach to him, that he would probably, in a sheepish shame-faced sort of way, refuse to have any "truck" with you, as he calls it. If the "sailors' home" people were worth their salt, they would organize expeditions by carriage to such beautiful places as—in London, for instance—Hampton Court, Zoological Gardens, Crystal Palace, Epping Forest, and the like, with competent guides and good catering arrangements. But no; the sailor is allowed to step outside the door of the "home" into the grimy, dismal streets with nothing open to him but the dance-house and brothel on one side, and the mission hall or reading-room on the other. God forbid that I should even appear to sneer at missions to seamen; nothing is farther from my intention; but I do feel that sailors need a little healthy human interest to be taken in providing some pleasure for them, and that there are unorthodox ways of "missioning" which are well worth a trial.
I sincerely wish that some of the good people in London and Liverpool, who are desperate for something to do with their fellow humans, would take a trip to sailor-town to organize a guided group of sailors to explore the sights worth seeing. It's an inexpensive way to have fun, even if they covered all expenses, though that’s probably unlikely. They would have a tough time at first because sailors have been so used to being taken advantage of by the people they know and ignored by everyone else except for a few good souls who want to preach to them. The sailors would likely, in a shy and embarrassed way, refuse to engage with you, as they say. If the people running the "sailors' home" were doing their job right, they would arrange outings by carriage to beautiful places like— in London, for example—Hampton Court, the Zoological Gardens, Crystal Palace, Epping Forest, and similar spots, with knowledgeable guides and good catering. But no; the sailor is left to step out of the "home" into the grimy, bleak streets with only the dance hall and brothel on one side and the mission hall or reading room on the other. I would never want to dismiss the missions for seamen; that’s far from my intention. However, I believe that sailors need some genuine human interest in providing them some enjoyment, and there are unconventional ways of reaching out to them that are definitely worth trying.
I once took a party (while I was an A.B.) from Wells-street Home to the South Kensington Museum. There were six of them—a Frenchman, a Dane, a Russian Finn, two Englishmen, and an Irishman. Though continually sailing from London for years, this was the first occasion they had ever been west of Aldgate. The only mistake I made was in going too deep at one step. The journey from Shadwell to South Kensington, under the guidance of one familiar, through the hardest personal experiences, with every corner of the vast network, was quite enough for one day. So that by the time we entered the Museum they were surfeited temporarily with sight-seeing, and not able to take in the wonders of the mighty place. Seeing this, I did not persist, but, after some rest and refreshment, led them across the road among the naval models. Ah! it was a rare treat to see them there. For if there is one thing more than another which interests a sailor, it is a well-made model of a ship. Sailors are model-makers almost by nature, turning out with the most meagre outfit of tools some wonderfully-finished replicas of the vessels is which they have sailed. And the collection of naval models at South Kensington is, I suppose, unsurpassed in the world for the number and finish of the miniature vessels there shown.
I once took a group (when I was an A.B.) from Wells Street Home to the South Kensington Museum. There were six of them—a Frenchman, a Dane, a Russian Finn, two Englishmen, and an Irishman. Despite living in London for years, this was the first time they had ever been west of Aldgate. The only mistake I made was going too deep at one point. The journey from Shadwell to South Kensington, guided by someone who had faced every challenge in navigating the vast network, was plenty for one day. By the time we entered the Museum, they were already overwhelmed by all the sightseeing and couldn't fully appreciate the wonders of that incredible place. Noticing this, I didn't push them but, after some rest and snacks, led them across the street to see the naval models. It was a real treat to see their reactions. If there's one thing that fascinates a sailor, it's a well-crafted ship model. Sailors are almost natural model-makers, creating remarkably detailed replicas of the vessels they've sailed, often with just a few simple tools. The collection of naval models at South Kensington is probably unmatched in the world for both the number and quality of the miniature ships displayed there.
Our day was a great success, never to be forgotten by those poor fellows, whose only recreation previously had been to stroll listlessly up and down the gloomy, stone-flagged hall of the great barracks until sheer weariness drove them out into the turbid current of the "Highway," there to seek speedily some of the dirty haunts where the "runner" and the prostitute: awaited them.
Our day was a huge success, something those poor guys will always remember. Their only entertainment before this had been to wander aimlessly up and down the dark, stone-paved corridor of the big barracks until they were so tired they had to head out into the chaotic flow of the "Highway," looking for some of the grim spots where the "runner" and the prostitute were waiting for them.
But I have wandered far from the Bay of Islands while thus chattering of the difficulties that beset the path of rational enjoyment for the sailor ashore. Returning to that happy day, I remember vividly how, just after we got clear of the town, we were turning down a lane between hedgerows wonderfully like one of our own country roads, when something—I could not tell what—gripped my heart and sent a lump into my throat. Tears sprang unbidden to my eyes, and I trembled from head to foot with emotion. Whatever could it be? Bewildered for the moment, I looked around, and saw a hedge laden with white hawthorn blossom, the sweet English "may." Every Londoner knows how strongly that beautiful scent appeals to him, even when wafted from draggled branches borne slumwards by tramping urchins who have been far afield despoiling the trees of their lovely blossoms, careless of the damage they have been doing. But to me, who had not seen a bit for years, the flood of feeling undammed by that odorous breath, was overwhelming. I could hardly tear myself away from the spot, and, when at last I did, found myself continually turning to try and catch another whiff of one of the most beautiful scents in the world.
But I have wandered far from the Bay of Islands while talking about the challenges that hinder the sailor's enjoyment on land. Recalling that happy day, I vividly remember how, just after we cleared the town, we turned down a lane between hedgerows that looked so much like one of our country roads. Suddenly, something—I couldn’t quite place it—gripped my heart and made a lump form in my throat. Tears sprang to my eyes unexpectedly, and I trembled all over with emotion. What could it be? Confused for a moment, I looked around and saw a hedge heavy with white hawthorn blossoms, the sweet English "may." Every Londoner knows how strongly that lovely scent draws him in, even when carried from tattered branches dragged toward the slums by little kids who have been far away ruining the trees' beautiful blooms, not caring about the damage they cause. But for me, having not seen any for years, the overwhelming rush of feelings stirred up by that fragrant breeze was intense. I could hardly pull myself away from the spot, and when I finally did, I kept turning back to try and catch another whiff of one of the most beautiful scents in the world.
Presently we came to a cottage flooded from ground to roof-ridge with blossoms of scarlet geranium. There must have been thousands of them, all borne by one huge stem which was rooted by the door of the house. A little in front of it grew a fuchsia, twelve or fourteen feet high, with wide-spreading branches, likewise loaded with handsome blooms; while the ground beneath was carpeted with the flowers shaken from their places by the rude wind.
Right now, we arrived at a cottage completely covered from the ground to the roof with bright red geranium flowers. There had to be thousands of them, all coming from one massive stem that was rooted by the door. A little in front of it stood a fuchsia, about twelve or fourteen feet tall, with wide-spreading branches also full of beautiful blooms; meanwhile, the ground below was covered with flowers that had been knocked off by the strong wind.
So, through scenes of loveliness that appealed even to the dusky Kanakas, we trudged gaily along, arriving pretty well fagged at our destination—a great glade of tenderest green, surrounded by magnificent trees on three sides; the fourth opening on to a dazzling white beach sloping gently down to the sea. Looking seaward, amidst the dancing, sparkling wavelets, rose numerous tree-clothed islets, making a perfectly beautiful seascape. On either side of the stretch of beach fantastic masses of rock lay about, as if scattered by some tremendous explosion. Where the sea reached them, they were covered with untold myriads of oysters, ready to be eaten and of delicious flavour.
So, we walked cheerfully through beautiful scenes that even the dark-skinned Kanakas appreciated, eventually arriving quite tired at our destination—a large glade of soft green, surrounded on three sides by impressive trees; the fourth side opened up to a stunning white beach that sloped gently down to the sea. Looking out to the sea, amid the shimmering, sparkling waves, were numerous islands covered in trees, creating a perfectly beautiful seascape. On either side of the beach, there were strange rock formations scattered about as if thrown by a massive explosion. Where the sea met them, they were covered with countless oysters, ready to be eaten and incredibly tasty.
What need to say more? With oyster-feeding, fishing, bathing, tree-climbing, tea-making, song-singing the hours fled with pitiless haste, so that, before we had half emptied the brimming cup of joys proffered us, the slanting rays of the setting sun warned us to return lest we should get "hushed" in the dark. We came on board rejoicing, laden with spoils of flowers and fish, with two-thirds of our money still in our pockets, and full of happy memories of one of the most delightful days in our whole lives.
What more is there to say? With feeding oysters, fishing, bathing, climbing trees, making tea, and singing songs, the hours flew by without mercy, so that, before we had even enjoyed half of the overflowing cup of joys offered to us, the slanting rays of the setting sun reminded us to head back before we ended up "hushed" in the dark. We came back on board feeling joyful, loaded with flowers and fish, with two-thirds of our money still in our pockets, and filled with happy memories of one of the most delightful days of our lives.
A long night's sound sleep was rudely broken into in the morning by the cry of "Man the windlass." Having got all we wanted, we were bound away to finish, if luck were with us, the lading of our good ship from the teeming waters of the Solander grounds. I know the skipper's hopes were high, for he never tired of telling how, when in command of a new ship, he once fished the whole of his cargo—six thousand barrels of sperm oil—from the neighbourhood to which we were now bound. He always admitted, though, that the weather he experienced was unprecedented. Still, nothing could shake his belief in the wonderful numbers of sperm whales to be found on the south coasts of New Zealand, which faith was well warranted, since he had there won from the waves, not only the value of his new ship, but a handsome profit in addition, all in one season.
A long night of deep sleep was abruptly interrupted in the morning by the shout of "Man the windlass." Now that we had everything we needed, we were set to finish loading our good ship from the rich waters of the Solander grounds, if luck was on our side. I could tell the captain was feeling optimistic because he never stopped talking about how, when he was in charge of a new ship, he once collected an entire cargo—six thousand barrels of sperm oil—from the area we were heading to now. He always acknowledged, though, that the weather he faced was unlike anything else. Still, nothing could shake his belief in the incredible number of sperm whales found along the southern coasts of New Zealand, a belief that was well founded since he had, in that region, not only made back the value of his new ship but also earned a nice profit, all in a single season.
Hearing this kind of thing every day made me feel quite hungry to reach the battle-field; but, for reasons which doubtless were excellent, although I cannot pretend to explain them, we started north about, which not only added nearly one hundred miles to the distance we had to go, but involved us in a gale which effectually stopped our progress for a week. It was our first taste of the gentle zephyrs which waft their sweetness over New Zealand, after sweeping over the vast, bleak, iceberg-studded expanse of the Antarctic Ocean. Our poor Kanakas were terribly frightened, for the weather of their experience, except on the rare occasions when they are visited by the devastating hurricane, is always fine, steady, and warm. For the first time in their lives they saw hail, and their wonder was too great for words. But the cold was very trying, not only to them, but to us, who had been so long in the tropics that our blood was almost turned to water. The change was nearly as abrupt as that so often experienced by our seamen, who at the rate of sixteen knots an hour plunge from a temperature of eighty degrees to one of thirty degrees in about three days.
Hearing this kind of thing every day made me really eager to get to the battlefield; but for reasons that must have been good, even though I can’t explain them, we headed north instead, which not only added nearly one hundred miles to our journey but also got us caught in a storm that completely halted our progress for a week. It was our first experience with the gentle breezes that bring their sweetness over New Zealand, having traveled across the vast, harsh, iceberg-filled Antarctic Ocean. Our poor Kanakas were extremely scared, as their usual weather, except for the rare visits from destructive hurricanes, is always nice, steady, and warm. For the first time in their lives, they witnessed hail, and their amazement was beyond words. But the cold was very challenging, not only for them but for us too, since we had been in the tropics for so long that our blood felt almost like water. The shift in temperature was almost as sudden as what our sailors sometimes experience, plunging from eighty degrees to thirty degrees in just three days while traveling at sixteen knots an hour.
We, with the ready adaptability of seamen, soon got accustomed to the bleak, bitter weather, but the Kanakas wilted like hothouse plants under its influence. They were well fed and well clothed, yet they seemed to shrivel up, looking thinner every day, several of them getting deep coughs strongly suggestive of a cemetery. It was no easy task to get them to work, or even move, never a one of them lumbering aloft but I expected him to come down by the run. This was by no means cheering, when it was remembered what kind of a campaign lay before us. Captain Count seemed to be quite easy in his mind, however, and as we had implicit confidence in his wisdom and judgment, we were somewhat reassured.
We quickly adapted to the harsh, cold weather, like seasoned sailors, but the Kanakas withered like fragile plants in a greenhouse. Even though they were well-fed and properly dressed, they appeared to shrink, looking more gaunt with each passing day, and several developed deep coughs that hinted at serious illness. It was tough to get them to work or even to move; not a single one could manage to climb up without me expecting them to come back down in a hurry. This was not encouraging, especially considering the tough campaign ahead of us. However, Captain Count seemed relatively calm, and since we trusted his wisdom and judgment, we felt somewhat reassured.
The gale at last blew itself out, the wind veering to the northward again, with beautiful, spring-like weather, just cool enough to be pleasant, and, withal, favourable for getting to our destination. We soon made the land again about New Plymouth, jogging along near enough to the coast to admire the splendid rugged scenery of the Britain of the south. All hands were kept busily employed preparing for stormy weather—reeving new running-gear, bending the strongest suit of sails, and looking well to all the whaling gear.
The strong wind finally died down, shifting back to the north, bringing along lovely, spring-like weather that was just cool enough to feel nice and perfect for reaching our destination. We soon spotted land again near New Plymouth, cruising close enough to the coast to enjoy the stunning, rugged scenery of southern Britain. Everyone was kept busy getting ready for the bad weather—setting up new running gear, securing the sturdiest sails, and checking all the whaling equipment.
In this active exercise of real sailor-work, the time, though long for an ordinary passage, passed quickly and pleasantly away, so that when we hauled round the massive promontory guarding the western entrance to Foveaux Straits, we were almost surprised to find ourselves there so soon.
In this hands-on sailor work, the time, although it felt long for a regular trip, flew by quickly and pleasantly. So, when we rounded the huge cliffs at the western entrance to Foveaux Straits, we were almost surprised to see that we had arrived so soon.
This, then, was the famous and dreaded Solander whaling ground. Almost in the centre of the wide stretch of sea between Preservation Inlet, on the Middle Island, and the western end of the South, or Stewart's Island, rose a majestic mass of wave-beaten rock some two thousand feet high, like a grim sentinel guarding the Straits. The extent of the fishing grounds was not more than a hundred and fifty square miles, and it was rarely that the vessels cruised over the whole of it. The most likely area for finding whales was said to be well within sight of the Solander Rock itself, but keeping on the western side of it.
This was the infamous and feared Solander whaling ground. Almost in the center of the vast stretch of sea between Preservation Inlet on Middle Island and the western end of South, or Stewart’s Island, stood a towering mass of wave-battered rock around two thousand feet high, like a grim guard watching over the Straits. The actual fishing area was no more than one hundred fifty square miles, and ships rarely covered the entire zone. The best spot for spotting whales was reportedly just within view of Solander Rock itself, but staying on its western side.
It was a lovely day when we first entered upon our cruising ground, a gentle north-east wind blowing, the sky a deep, cloudless blue, so that the rugged outline of Stewart's Island was distinctly seen at its extreme distance from us. To the eastward the Straits narrowed rapidly, the passage at the other end being scarcely five miles wide between the well-known harbour of the Bluff, the port of Invercargill, and a long rocky island which almost blocked the strait. This passage, though cutting off a big corner, not only shortening the distance from the westward considerably, but oftentimes saving outward bounders a great deal of heavy weather off the Snares to the south of Stewart's Island, is rarely used by sailing-ships, except coasters; but steamers regularly avail themselves of it, being independent of its conflicting currents and baffling winds.
It was a beautiful day when we first entered our cruising area, with a gentle northeast wind blowing and the sky a clear, deep blue. We could clearly see the rugged outline of Stewart's Island in the distance. To the east, the Straits narrowed quickly, with the opening at the other end barely five miles wide between the well-known harbor of the Bluff, the port of Invercargill, and a long rocky island that almost blocked the strait. This passage, while cutting off a significant corner and considerably shortening the distance from the west, often saves outbound vessels from a lot of rough weather off the Snares to the south of Stewart’s Island. However, sailing ships rarely use it, except for coastal vessels; steamers, on the other hand, regularly take advantage of it since they are not affected by its conflicting currents and tricky winds.
CHAPTER XXV. ON THE SOLANDER GROUNDS
Our opening day was an auspicious one. We had not been within the cruising radius more than four hours before the long-silent; cry of "Blo-o-o-w!" resounded from the mainmast head. It was a lone whale, apparently of large size, though spouting almost as feebly as a calf. But that, I was told by the skipper, was nothing to go by down here. He believed right firmly that there were no small whales to be found in these waters at all. He averred that in all his experience he had never seen a cow-cachalot anywhere around Stewart's Island, although, as usual, he did no theorizing as to the reason why.
Our opening day was a promising one. We hadn’t been within the cruising range for more than four hours when the long-silent cry of “Blo-o-o-w!” echoed from the mainmast. It was a lone whale, seemingly quite large, but spouting almost as weakly as a calf. However, the skipper told me that didn’t mean much in these waters. He firmly believed there were no small whales around here at all. He claimed that in all his experience, he had never seen a cow-cachalot near Stewart’s Island, although, as usual, he didn’t theorize about why that might be.
Eagerly we took to the boats and made for our first fish, setting alongside of him in less than half an hour from our first glimpse of his bushy breath. As the irons sank into his blubber, he raised himself a little, and exposed a back like a big ship bottom up. Verily, the skipper's words were justified, for we had seen nothing bigger of the whale-kind that voyage. His manner puzzled us not a little. He had not a kick in him. Complacently, as though only anxious to oblige, he laid quietly while we cleared for action, nor did he show any signs of resentment or pain while he was being lanced with all the vigour we possessed. He just took all our assaults with perfect quietude and exemplary patience, so that we could hardly help regarding him with great suspicion, suspecting some deep scheme of deviltry hidden by this abnormally sheep-like demeanour. But nothing happened. In the same peaceful way he died, without the slightest struggle sufficient to raise even an eddy on the almost smooth sea.
Eagerly, we jumped into the boats and headed toward our first catch, reaching it in less than half an hour from our first sighting of its bushy breath. As the harpoons sank into its blubber, it lifted itself slightly, revealing a back as broad as the bottom of a large ship. Truly, the captain's words were proven right, as we hadn't seen anything bigger of the whale kind on that voyage. Its behavior puzzled us a bit. It didn’t seem to put up a fight. Calmly, as if just wanting to help, it lay still while we prepared for action, showing no signs of anger or pain as we struck it with all the force we had. It took all our blows with perfect calmness and admirable patience, making us suspect there might be some hidden trick behind its unusually docile behavior. But nothing happened. In the same calm manner, it died, without the slightest struggle, not even enough to create an eddy on the almost smooth sea.
Leaving the mate by the carcass, we returned on board, the skipper hailing us immediately on our arrival to know what was the matter with him. We, of course, did not know, neither did the question trouble us. All we were concerned about was the magnanimous way in which he, so to speak, made us a present of himself, giving us no more trouble to secure his treasure than as if he had been a lifeless thing. We soon had him alongside, finding, upon ranging him by the ship, that he was over seventy feet long, with a breadth of bulk quite in proportion to such a vast length.
Leaving the crew member by the carcass, we went back on board, and the captain called us right away when we arrived to ask what was wrong with him. We didn't know, and we weren't really worried about it. All we cared about was how generously he, in a way, gave himself to us, making it easy for us to grab his treasure as if he were just a lifeless object. We quickly had him next to the ship and saw, when we measured him against the vessel, that he was over seventy feet long, with a width that matched such a huge length.
Cutting-in commenced at once, for fine weather there was by no means to be wasted, being of rare occurrence and liable at the shortest notice to be succeeded by a howling gale. Our latest acquisition, however, was of such gigantic proportions that the decapitation alone bade fair to take us all night. A nasty cross swell began to get up, too—a combination of north-westerly and south-westerly which, meeting at an angle where the Straits began, raised a curious "jobble," making the vessel behave in a drunken, uncertain manner. Sailors do not mind a ship rolling or pitching, any more than a rider minds the motion of his horse; but when she does both at once, with no approach to regularity in her movements, it makes them feel angry with her. What, then, must our feelings have been under such trying conditions, with that mountain of matter alongside to which so much sheer hard labour had to be done, while the sky was getting greasy and the wind beginning to whine in that doleful key which is the certain prelude to a gale?
Cutting in started right away, because good weather definitely shouldn’t be wasted; it’s rare and can quickly turn into a fierce storm. However, our latest find was so massive that just getting it ready was likely going to take us all night. A nasty cross swell was also building up—a mix of north-westerly and south-westerly waves that, meeting at an angle where the Straits began, created a strange "jobble," making the boat feel unsteady and erratic. Sailors don’t mind a ship rolling or pitching, just like a rider doesn’t mind the motion of their horse; but when a ship does both at the same time, with no pattern to her movements, it frustrates them. So, just imagine how we felt in such tough conditions, with that massive load next to us that required so much hard work, while the sky was getting overcast and the wind started to whine in that gloomy tone that always comes right before a storm.
Everybody worked like Chinamen on a contract, as if there was no such feeling as fatigue. Little was said, but we all realized that unless this job was got over before what was brooding burst upon us, we should certainly lose some portion of our hard-won whale. Still, our utmost possible was all we could do; and when at daylight the head was hauled alongside for cutting up, the imminent possibility of losing it, though grievous to think of, worried nobody, for all had done their best. The gale had commenced in business-like fashion, but the sea was horrible. It was almost impossible to keep one's footing on the stage. At times the whole mass of the head would be sucked down by the lee roll of the ship, and go right under her keel, the fluke-chain which held it grinding and straining as if it would tear the bows out of her. Then when she rolled back again the head would rebound to the surface right away from the ship, where we could not reach it to cut. Once or twice it bounced up beneath our feet, striking the stage and lifting it with its living load several inches, letting it fall again with a jerk that made us all cling for dear life to our precarious perch.
Everybody worked like crazy, as if they didn't feel tired at all. Little was said, but we all knew that if we didn't finish this job before whatever was coming hit us, we would definitely lose some of our hard-earned whale. Still, we did our absolute best; and when daylight came, the head was brought alongside for processing. The thought of possibly losing it, even though it was distressing, didn't bother anyone, as we had all given our all. The storm had kicked in seriously, but the sea was terrifying. It was nearly impossible to keep our balance on the stage. Sometimes the head would be pulled down by the ship's roll and completely go under, with the fluke-chain holding it grinding and straining as if it were going to tear apart the ship's bow. Then, when the ship rolled back, the head would spring back to the surface far away from us, where we couldn't reach it to cut it. Once or twice it shot up right beneath us, hitting the stage and lifting us up a few inches before dropping us back down with a jolt that made us all cling on for dear life to our shaky perch.
In spite of these capers, we managed to get the junk off the head. It was a tremendous lift for us; I hardly think we had ever raised such a weight before. The skipper himself estimated it at fifteen tons, which was no small load for the tackles in fine weather, but with the ship tumbling about in her present fashion, it threatened to rip the mainmast out by the roots—not, of course, the dead-weight strain; but when it was nearly aboard, her sudden lee wallow sometimes floated the whole mass, which the next instant, on the return roll, would be torn out of water, with all the force of the ship suddenly rolling the other way. Every splinter, every rope-yarn of her groaned again under this savage treatment; but so splendid was her construction that she never made a drop of water more than just sufficient to sweeten the limbers.
Despite all the chaos, we managed to get the junk off the head. It was a huge achievement for us; I seriously doubt we had ever lifted such a heavy weight before. The captain himself estimated it at fifteen tons, which was no light load for the tackle in good weather, but with the ship rocking around like it was, it threatened to rip the mainmast out completely—not due to the dead-weight strain, but as we were almost bringing it aboard, the sudden lean to one side sometimes lifted the whole mass, which in the next moment, on the returning roll, would be yanked out of the water with all the force of the ship rolling the other way. Every splinter, every rope-yarn groaned under this brutal treatment; but the craftsmanship was so amazing that it never let in a drop more water than what was needed to keep the limbers clean.
It was with great and genuine satisfaction that we saw it at last safely lowered on deck and secured. But when we turned our attention to the case, which, still attached to the skull, battered alongside, any chance of saving it was at once seen to be hopeless. Indeed, as the old man said, it was time for us to "up stick" and run for shelter. We had been too fully occupied to notice the gradual increase of the wind; but when we did, there was no gainsaying the fact that it was blowing a very stiff breeze (ANGLICE, a violent gale). Fortunately for us, it was from the westward, fair for the harbour of Port William, on the Stewart's Island side of the Straits, so that we were free from the apprehension of being blown out to sea or on a jagged lee shore.
We felt a real sense of satisfaction when we finally saw it safely lowered onto the deck and secured. But when we looked at the case, which was still attached to the skull and battered alongside, it quickly became clear that any chance of saving it was hopeless. As the old man said, it was time for us to pack up and find shelter. We had been too busy to notice the wind steadily picking up; but when we did, it was undeniable that there was a very strong breeze (in other words, a violent gale). Luckily for us, it was coming from the west, ideal for getting to the harbor of Port William on the Stewart's Island side of the Straits, so we didn’t have to worry about being pushed out to sea or onto a dangerous rocky shore.
While we were thus thinking during a brief pause to take breath, the old packet herself solved our last difficulty in emphatic fashion. She gave a tremendous lee lurch, which would inevitably have destroyed the cutting stage if we had not hoisted it, driving right over the head, which actually rose to the surface to windward, having passed under her bottom. The weather roll immediately following was swift and sudden. From the nature of things, it was evident that something must give way this time. It did. For the first and only time in my experience, the fluke-chain was actually torn through the piece to which it was fast—two feet of solid gristle ripped asunder. Away went the head with its L150 to L200 worth of pure spermaceti, disappearing from view almost immediately.
While we were thinking during a short break to catch our breath, the old ship herself emphatically solved our last problem. She gave a massive lurch to the side that would have definitely destroyed the cutting stage if we hadn't raised it, driving right over the head that actually surfaced to the windward side after passing under her hull. The wave that followed was quick and sudden. It was clear that something had to give this time. It did. For the first and only time in my experience, the fluke-chain was actually torn through the piece it was attached to—two feet of solid gristle ripped apart. Off went the head with its £150 to £200 worth of pure spermaceti, vanishing from sight almost immediately.
It had no sooner gone than more sail was set, the yards were squared, and the vessel kept away up the Straits for shelter. It was a big improvement, for she certainly had begun to make dirty weather of it, and no wonder. Now, however, running almost dead before the gale, getting into smoother water at every fathom, she was steady as a rock, allowing us to pursue our greasy avocation in comparative comfort. The gale was still increasing, although now blowing with great fury; but, to our satisfaction, it was dry and not too cold. Running before it, too, lessened our appreciation of its force; besides which, we were exceedingly busy clearing away the enormous mass of the junk, which, draining continually, kept the decks running with oil.
As soon as it was gone, more sails were raised, the yards were squared, and the boat headed up the Straits for shelter. This was a big improvement, as the weather had been getting pretty rough, and it was no surprise. Now, though, by running almost directly before the storm and moving into smoother water with every fathom, the ship was as steady as a rock, allowing us to continue our messy work in relative comfort. The storm was still building, now blowing with great force; however, we were pleased that it was dry and not too cold. Going with the wind also made it seem less intense; on top of that, we were extremely busy clearing away the huge amount of junk, which, continually draining, kept the decks slick with oil.
We started to run up the Straits at about ten a.m. At two p.m. we suddenly looked up from our toil, our attention called by a sudden lull in the wind. We had rounded Saddle Point, a prominent headland, which shut off from us temporarily the violence of the gale. Two hours later we found ourselves hauling up into the pretty little harbour of Port William, where, without taking more than a couple of hands off the work, the vessel was rounded-to and anchored with quite as little fuss as bringing a boat alongside a ship. It was the perfection of seamanship.
We began our run up the Straits around ten in the morning. At two in the afternoon, we suddenly paused from our work as the wind died down unexpectedly. We had just rounded Saddle Point, a notable headland, which briefly sheltered us from the fierce gale. Two hours later, we found ourselves entering the charming little harbor of Port William, where, without needing to take more than a couple of crew members off the tasks, the ship was turned around and anchored as smoothly as if we were tying up alongside another boat. It was the height of seamanship.
Once inside the bay, a vessel was sheltered from all winds, the land being high and the entrance intricate. The water was smooth as a mill-pond, though the leaden masses of cloud flying overhead and the muffled roar of the gale told eloquently of the unpleasant state affairs prevailing outside. Two whale-ships lay here—the TAMERLANE, of New Bedford, and the CHANCE, of Bluff Harbour. I am bound to confess that there was a great difference is appearance between the Yankee and the colonial—very much in favour of the former. She was neat, smart, and seaworthy, looking as if just launched; but the CHANCE looked like some poor old relic of a bygone day, whose owners, unable to sell her, and too poor to keep her in repair, were just letting her go while keeping up the insurance, praying fervently each day that she might come to grief, and bring them a little profit at last.
Once inside the bay, a ship was protected from all winds, with high land and a tricky entrance. The water was as calm as a mill pond, even though the heavy clouds above and the muffled roar of the gale clearly indicated the bad weather outside. Two whaling ships were anchored here—the TAMERLANE from New Bedford and the CHANCE from Bluff Harbour. I have to admit that there was a noticeable difference in appearance between the American ship and the colonial one—very much in favor of the former. The TAMERLANE looked neat, sharp, and seaworthy, as if it had just been launched. In contrast, the CHANCE looked like a sad, old relic from a past era, whose owners, unable to sell it and too broke to keep it in good condition, were just letting it decline while maintaining the insurance, hoping every day that it might finally sink and bring them some profit.
But although it is much safer to trust appearances in ships than in men, any one who summed up the CHANCE from her generally outworn and poverty-stricken looks would have been, as I was, "way off." Old she was, with an indefinite antiquity, carelessly rigged, and vilely unkempt as to her gear, while outside she did not seem to have had a coat of paint for a generation. She looked what she really was—the sole survivor of the once great whaling industry of New Zealand. For although struggling bay whaling stations did exist in a few sheltered places far away from the general run of traffic, the trade itself might truthfully be said to be practically extinct. The old CHANCE alone, like some shadow of the past, haunted Foveaux Straits, and made a better income for her fortunate owners than any of the showy, swift coasting steamers that rushed contemptuously past her on their eager way.
But even though it’s way safer to trust how ships look than to trust people, anyone who judged the CHANCE based on her generally worn-out and poor appearance would have been, like I was, completely wrong. She was old, with an uncertain age, poorly maintained, and her gear was in terrible shape, while outside she didn’t seem to have had a coat of paint in ages. She looked exactly like what she was—the last surviving remnant of New Zealand’s once-thriving whaling industry. While there were still some struggling bay whaling stations in a few secluded spots far from the main routes, the trade itself could honestly be said to be nearly dead. The old CHANCE alone, like a ghost from the past, lingered in Foveaux Straits, and earned more for her lucky owners than any of the flashy, fast coastal steamers that sped past her without a second thought on their busy way.
In many of the preceding pages I have, though possessing all an Englishman's pride in the prowess of mine own people, been compelled to bear witness to the wonderful smartness and courage shown by the American whalemen, to whom their perilous calling seems to have become a second nature. And on other occasions I have lamented that our own whalers, either at home or in the colonies, never seemed to take so kindly to the sperm whale fishery as the hardy "down Easters," who first taught them the business; carried it on with increasing success, in spite of their competition and the depredations of the ALABAMA; flourished long after the English fishery was dead; and even now muster a fleet of ships engaged in the same bold and hazardous calling. Therefore, it is the more pleasant to me to be able to chronicle some of the doings of Captain Gilroy, familiarly known as "Paddy," the master of the CHANCE, who was unsurpassed as a whale-fisher or a seaman by any Yankee that ever sailed from Martha's Vineyard.
In many of the previous pages, I have, while holding on to an Englishman's pride in the achievements of my own people, been compelled to acknowledge the remarkable skill and bravery displayed by American whalemen, for whom their dangerous profession seems to be second nature. At other times, I have expressed disappointment that our own whalers, whether at home or in the colonies, never seemed to embrace the sperm whale fishery as eagerly as the tough "down Easters," who taught them the trade, continued it with growing success despite their competition and the disruptions caused by the ALABAMA, thrived long after the English fishery had declined, and even now operate a fleet of ships engaged in the same bold and risky pursuit. So, it is even more gratifying for me to be able to share some of the achievements of Captain Gilroy, affectionately known as "Paddy," the captain of the CHANCE, who was unmatched as a whale-fisher or sailor by any Yankee who ever set sail from Martha's Vineyard.
He was a queer little figure of a man—short, tubby, with scanty red hair, and a brogue thick as pea-soup. Eccentric in most things, he was especially so in his dress, which he seemed to select on the principle of finding the most unfitting things to wear. Rumour credited him with a numerous half-breed progeny—certainly he was greatly mixed up with the Maories, half his crew being made up of his dusky friends and relations by MARRIAGE. Overflowing with kindliness and good temper, his ship was a veritable ark of refuge for any unfortunate who needed help, which accounted for the numerous deserters from Yankee whalers who were to be found among his crew. Such whaling skippers as our late commander hated him with ferocious intensity; and but for his Maori and half-breed bodyguard, I have little doubt he would have long before been killed. Living as he had for many years on that storm-beaten coast, he had become, like his Maories, familiar with every rock and tree in fog or clear, by night or day; he knew them, one might almost say, as the seal knows them, and feared them as little. His men adored him. They believed him capable of anything in the way of whaling, and would as soon have thought of questioning the reality of daylight as the wisdom of his decisions.
He was an odd little guy—short, chubby, with thin red hair and a thick accent. Eccentric in most ways, he was particularly unique in his clothing choices, which seemed based on the principle of finding the most unsuitable things to wear. Rumor had it that he had many mixed-race kids—he was definitely closely tied to the Maoris, with half his crew being his dark-skinned friends and family by marriage. Overflowing with kindness and good humor, his ship was like a safe haven for anyone who needed help, which explained why so many deserters from American whalers ended up among his crew. Other whaling captains, like our last commander, despised him intensely; and if it weren't for his Maori and mixed-race bodyguard, I'm sure he would have been killed a long time ago. Having lived for many years on that stormy coast, he had gotten, like his Maori friends, so familiar with every rock and tree in fog or clear weather, day or night, that you could say he knew them as intimately as a seal does and feared them just as little. His men worshipped him. They believed he could do anything when it came to whaling and would just as soon question the existence of daylight as doubt his decisions.
I went on board the evening of, our arrival, hearing some rumours of the doings of the old CHANCE and her crew, also with the idea that perhaps I might find some countrymen among his very mixed crowd. The first man I spoke to was Whitechapel to the backbone, plainly to be spotted as such as if it had been tattooed on his forehead. Making myself at home with him, I desired to know what brought him so far from the "big smoke," and on board a whaler of all places in the world. He told me he had been a Pickford's van-driver, but had emigrated to New Zealand, finding that he did not at all like himself in the new country. Trying to pick and choose instead of manfully choosing a pick and shovel for a beginning, he got hard up. During one of Captain Gilroy's visits to the Bluff, he came across my ex-drayman, looking hungry and woebegone. Invited on board to have a feed, he begged to be allowed to remain; nor, although his assistance was not needed, was he refused. "An nar," he said, his face glowing with conscious pride, "y'ort ter see me in a bloomin' bowt. I ain't a-goain' ter say as I kin fling wun o' them 'ere bloomin' 'arpoones like ar bowt-steerers kin; but I kin do my bit o' grawft wiv enny on 'em—don'tchu make no bloomin' herror." The glorious incongruity of the thing tickled me immensely; but I laughed more heartily still when on going below I was hailed as "Wot cher, chummy; 'ow yer hoppin' up?" by another barbarian from the wilds of Spitalfields, who, from the secure shelter of his cats'-meat round in 'Oxton, had got adrift, and, after being severely buffeted by tempestuous ill-fortune, had finally found himself in the comfortable old CHANCE, a haven of rest in the midst of storms. There were sixteen white men on board the CHANCE, including the skipper, drawn as usual from various European and American sources, the rest of her large crew of over forty all told being made up of Maories and half-breeds. One common interest united them, making them the jolliest crowd I ever saw—their devotion to their commander. There was here to be found no jealousy of the Maories being officers and harpooners, no black looks or discontented murmuring; all hands seemed particularly well satisfied with their lot in all its bearings; so that, although the old tub was malodorous enough to turn even a pretty strong stomach, it was a pleasure to visit her cheerful crowd for the sake of their enlivening society.
I boarded the ship on the evening of our arrival, hearing some rumors about the old CHANCE and her crew, hoping I might find some fellow countrymen among the diverse group. The first guy I talked to was clearly from Whitechapel; it was as obvious as if it was tattooed on his forehead. Getting comfortable with him, I asked what brought him so far from the "big smoke" and onto a whaler of all places. He told me he used to be a van driver for Pickford's but had moved to New Zealand, realizing he didn’t really like it there. Instead of starting with picking up a shovel like he should have, he tried to pick and choose jobs and ended up broke. During one of Captain Gilroy's trips to the Bluff, he found my ex-van driver looking hungry and miserable. He was invited on board for a meal, and he asked to stay; although his help wasn’t needed, he wasn’t turned away. "And nah," he said, his face full of pride, "you should've seen me in a blooming boat. I’m not saying I could throw one of those blooming harpoons like the boat steers can; but I can hold my own with any of them—don’t you make any blooming mistake." The ridiculousness of it all really amused me; I laughed even harder when, while going below deck, another character from the wilds of Spitalfields called out, "Wot cher, chummy; how you doing?" This guy, who had drifted away from his comfortable job selling cat food in Hoxton, had faced a lot of tough luck and somehow ended up on the cozy old CHANCE, a refuge from the storms. There were sixteen white men on board the CHANCE, including the captain, mostly from various European and American backgrounds, while the rest of the crew, which totaled over forty, consisted of Maoris and half-breeds. A shared devotion to their captain brought them together, making them the friendliest group I ever saw. There was no jealousy towards the Maoris being officers and harpooners, no dirty looks or grumbling; everyone seemed genuinely happy with their situation. So, even though the old tub smelled enough to turn a strong stomach, it was a pleasure to visit that cheerful group just for their lively company.
Of course, under our present circumstances, with the debris of our late enormous catch filling every available space and loudly demanding attention, we had little time to spare for ship visiting. Some boat or other from the two ships was continually alongside of us, though, for until the gale abated they could not get out to the grounds again, and time hung heavy on their hands. The TAMERLANE's captain avoided Paddy as if he were a leper—hated the sight of him, in fact, as did most of his CONFRERES; but our genial skipper, whose crew were every whit as well treated and contented as the CHANCE's, and who therefore needed not to dread losing them, met the little philanthropist on the most friendly terms.
Of course, given our current situation, with the remnants of our huge catch taking up every available space and making a big noise, we had little time for visiting other ships. Some boat or another from the two ships was constantly alongside us because they couldn’t get back to the fishing grounds until the storm died down, and they were getting bored. The captain of the TAMERLANE avoided Paddy like he was contagious—he really couldn’t stand the sight of him, just like most of his crew; however, our friendly captain, whose crew was just as well treated and happy as the CHANCE's, didn’t have to worry about losing them and greeted the little philanthropist warmly.
The first fine weather, which came four days after our arrival, both our harbour mates cleared out. Characteristically, the CHANCE was away first, before daylight had quite asserted itself, and while the bases of the cliffs and tops of the rocks were as yet hidden in dense wreaths of white haze. Paddy lolled on the taff-rail near the wheel, which was held by an immense half-breed, who leant back and carried on a desultory, familiar conversation with his skipper; the rest of the crew were scattered about the decks, apparently doing what they liked in any manner they chose. The anchor was being catted, sails going up, and yards being trimmed; but, to observers like us, no guiding spirit was noticeable. It seemed to work all right, and the old ark herself looked as if she was as intelligent as any of them; but the sight was not an agreeable one to men accustomed to discipline. The contrast when the TAMERLANE came along an hour or so after was emphatic. Every man at his post; every order carried out with the precision of clockwork; the captain pacing the quarter-deck as if she were a line-of-battle ship—here the airs put on were almost ludicrous in the other direction. Although she was only "a good jump" long, as we say, whenever an order was given, it was thundered out as if the men were a mile away each officer appearing to vie with the others as to who could bellow the loudest. That was carrying things to the opposite extreme, and almost equally objectionable to merchant seamen.
The first nice weather, which arrived four days after we got there, saw both of our harbor companions leave. True to form, the CHANCE was the first to go, even before dawn fully broke, with the bases of the cliffs and the tops of the rocks still hidden under thick layers of white mist. Paddy was lounging on the taffrail near the wheel, which was held steady by a large half-breed who leaned back, engaging in a casual, familiar chat with his captain. The rest of the crew were scattered around the decks, seemingly doing whatever they wanted in whatever way they liked. The anchor was being raised, sails were going up, and yards were being adjusted; but to us watching, there was no one taking charge. Everything seemed to be working fine, and the old ship herself appeared to be as smart as any of them; but the whole scene wasn't pleasing to men used to order. The difference when the TAMERLANE showed up about an hour later was striking. Every crew member was at their station; every command executed with clockwork precision; the captain was pacing the quarter-deck as if it were a battleship—here, the posturing was almost ridiculous in the other direction. Even though she was only "a good jump" long, as we say, whenever an order was shouted, it was bellowed as if the crew were a mile away, with each officer seemingly trying to outdo the others in volume. That was taking things to the other extreme, which was almost as undesirable to merchant sailors.
We were thus left alone to finish our trying-out except for such company as was afforded by the only resident's little schooner, in which he went oyster-dredging. It was exceedingly comfortable in the small harbour, and the fishing something to remember all one's life. That part of New Zealand is famous for a fish something like a bream, but with a longer snout, and striped longitudinally with black and yellow. I am ignorant of any polysyllabic prefix for it, only knowing it by its trivial and local appellation of the "trumpeter," from the peculiar sound it makes when out of water. But no other fish out of the innumerable varieties which I have sampled in all parts of the world could compare with the trumpeter for flavour and delicacy. These qualities are well known to the inhabitants of the large towns, who willingly pay high prices for the scanty supply of these delicious fish which they are able to obtain. Of other succulent fish there was a great variety, from the majestic "grouper," running up to over a hundredweight, down to the familiar flounder. Very little fishing could be done at night. Just as day was dawning was the ideal time for this enticing sport. As soon as the first few streaks of delicate light enlivened the dull horizon, a stray nibble or two gladdened the patient fishermen; then as the light strengthened the fun became general, and in about an hour enough fish would be caught to provide all hands with for the day.
We were left to finish our trial on our own, except for the company provided by the little schooner of the only resident, who went oyster-dredging. It was incredibly comfortable in the small harbor, and the fishing was something to remember for a lifetime. That part of New Zealand is known for a fish similar to a bream, but with a longer snout, striped with black and yellow. I'm not familiar with any fancy names for it, only knowing it by its local name, the "trumpeter," due to the unique sound it makes when out of water. No other fish from the countless varieties I've tried all over the world can compare to the trumpeter in flavor and tenderness. These qualities are well recognized by people in large towns, who are willing to pay high prices for the limited supply of these delicious fish. There was a wide variety of other tasty fish, from the impressive "grouper," weighing over a hundred pounds, to the common flounder. Very little fishing could be done at night. The best time for this exciting sport was just as dawn was breaking. As the first few streaks of light brightened the dull horizon, a couple of bites brought joy to the patient fishermen; then, as the light grew stronger, the fun became widespread, and in about an hour, enough fish would be caught to feed everyone for the day.
One morning, when a stark calm left, the surface of the bay as smooth as a mirror, I was watching a few stealthily-gliding barracouta sneaking about over the plainly visible bottom, though at a depth of seven or eight fathoms. Ordinarily, these fish must be taken with a live bait; but, remembering my experience with the dolphin, I determined to try a carefully arranged strip of fish from one recently caught. In precisely the same way as the dolphin, these long, snaky rascals carefully tested the bait, lying still for sometimes as long as two minutes with the bait in their mouths, ready to drop it out on the first intimation that it was not a detached morsel. After these periods of waiting the artful creature would turn to go, and a sudden jerk of the line then reminded him that he was no longer a free agent, but mounting at headlong speed to a strange bourne whence he never returned to tell the tale. My catch that lovely morning scaled over a hundredweight in less than an hour, none of the fish being less than ten pounds in weight.
One morning, when the calm left the bay's surface as smooth as a mirror, I was watching a few stealthy barracuda gliding over the clearly visible bottom, even at a depth of seven or eight fathoms. Usually, these fish need to be caught with live bait; however, recalling my experience with the dolphin, I decided to try a carefully prepared strip of fish from one I had just caught. Just like the dolphin, these long, snaky rascals carefully tested the bait, lying still for as long as two minutes with the bait in their mouths, ready to drop it at the first sign that it wasn't a real piece of food. After these waiting periods, the clever fish would start to turn away, and a sudden jerk of the line would remind them that they were no longer free but were being pulled at high speed to an unknown destination from which they would never return to tell the story. My catch that beautiful morning weighed over a hundred pounds in less than an hour, with none of the fish weighing less than ten pounds.
The Maories have quite an original way of catching barracouta. They prepare a piece of "rimu" (red pine) about three inches long, by an inch broad, and a quarter of an inch thick. Through one end of this they drive an inch nail bent upwards, and filed to a sharp point. The other end is fastened to about a fathom of stout fishing-line, which is in turn secured to the end of a five-foot pole. Seated in a boat with sail set, they slip along until a school of barracouta is happened upon. Then the peak of the sail is dropped, so as to deaden the boat's way, while the fishermen ply their poles with a sidelong sweep that threshes the bit of shining red through the water, making it irresistibly attractive to a struggling horde of ravenous fish. One by one, as swiftly as the rod can be wielded, the lithe forms drop off the barbless hook into the boat, till the vigorous arm can no longer respond to the will of the fisherman, or the vessel will hold no more.
The Maoris have a unique method for catching barracouta. They prepare a piece of "rimu" (red pine) about three inches long, one inch wide, and a quarter inch thick. They drive an inch nail bent upwards through one end, filing it to a sharp point. The other end is attached to about a fathom of strong fishing line, which is then secured to the end of a five-foot pole. Sitting in a boat with the sail up, they glide along until they encounter a school of barracouta. Then they lower the peak of the sail to slow the boat down while the fishermen sweep their poles sideways, thrashing the shiny red bait through the water, making it irresistibly attractive to a swarm of hungry fish. One by one, as quickly as they can work the rod, the agile fish fall off the barbless hook into the boat, until the fisherman's arm can no longer keep up, or the boat is full.
Such were the goodly proportions of this first Solander whale of ours that, in spite of the serious loss of the case, we made thirteen and a half tuns of oil. When the fifteen huge casks containing it were stowed in their final positions, they made an imposing show, inspiring all of us with visions of soon being homeward bound. For the present we were, perforce, idle; for the wind had set in to blow steadily and strongly right up the Straits, preventing any attempts to get out while it lasted. The time did not hang heavy on our hands, for the surrounding country offered many attractions, which we were allowed to take full advantage of. Spearing eels and flounders at night by means of a cresset hung out over the boat's bow, as she was slowly sculled up the long, shallow creeks, was a favourite form of amusement. Mr. Cross, the resident, kindly allowed us to raid his garden, where the ripe fruit was rotting by the bushel for want of consumers. We needed no pressing; for fruit, since we left Vau Vau, of any kind had not come in our way; besides, these were "homey"—currants, gooseberries, strawberries—delightful to see, smell, and taste. So it came to pass that we had a high old time, unmarred by a single regrettable incident, until, after an enforced detention of twenty days, we were able to get to sea again.
The proportions of our first Solander whale were impressive, and despite the significant loss from the case, we managed to collect thirteen and a half tons of oil. Once we stowed the fifteen massive casks in their final spots, they looked impressive and filled us with hopes of soon heading home. For now, we were stuck because the wind was blowing steadily and strongly up the Straits, making it impossible to leave while that lasted. Time didn’t drag for us since the area had many attractions we could enjoy. One favorite pastime was spearing eels and flounders at night using a torch hung over the bow of the boat as we slowly sculled up the long, shallow creeks. Mr. Cross, the resident, generously let us pick from his garden, where ripe fruit was rotting by the bushel due to lack of buyers. We needed no urging; fruit had been scarce since we left Vau Vau, and these were familiar—currants, gooseberries, strawberries—wonderful to see, smell, and taste. So, we ended up having a great time, with no regrettable incidents at all, until, after a forced wait of twenty days, we finally got to sea again.
Halfway down the Straits we sighted the CHANCE, all hands ripping the blubber off a sizeable whale in the same "anyhow" fashion as they handled their ship. They were in high glee, giving us a rousing cheer as we passed them on our westward course. Arriving on the ground, we found a goodly company of fine ships, which I could not help thinking too many for so small an area. During our absence, the TAMERLANE had been joined by the ELIZA ADAMS, the MATILDA SAYER, the CORAL, and the RAINBOW; and it was evident that no whale venturing within the radius of the Solander in the daytime would stand much chance of escaping such a battery of eager eyes. Only three days elapsed after our arrival when whales were seen. For the first time, I realized how numerous those gigantic denizens of the sea really are. As far as the eye could reach, extending all round one-half of the horizon, the sea appeared to be alive with spouts—all sperm whales, all bulls of great size. The value of this incredible school must have been incalculable. Subsequent experience satisfied me that such a sight was by no means uncommon here; in fact, "lone whales" or small "pods" were quite the exception.
Halfway down the Straits, we spotted the CHANCE, with the crew busy tearing the blubber off a large whale in the same chaotic way they handled their ship. They were in great spirits, cheering us loudly as we passed on our westward journey. Once we reached the area, we saw a good number of impressive ships, and I couldn't help but think there were too many for such a small space. While we were away, the TAMERLANE had been joined by the ELIZA ADAMS, the MATILDA SAYER, the CORAL, and the RAINBOW; it was clear that any whale daring to swim within the Solander's range during the day wouldn’t stand much chance of escaping so many eager eyes. Just three days after we arrived, whales were sighted. For the first time, I realized just how numerous these gigantic sea creatures really are. As far as I could see, all around half of the horizon, the sea seemed alive with spouts—all sperm whales, all large males. The worth of this incredible group must have been immeasurable. Later experiences made it clear that such a sight wasn't uncommon here; in fact, "lone whales" or small "pods" were quite rare.
Well, we all "waded in," getting, some two, some one whale apiece, according to the ability of the crews or the fortune of war. Only one fell to our lot in the CACHALOT, but it was just as well. We had hardly, got him fast by the fluke alongside when it began to pipe up from the north-east. In less than one watch the sea was fairly smoking with the fierceness of the wind. We were unable to get in anywhere, being, with a whale alongside, about as handy as a barge loaded with a haystack; while those unfortunate beggars that had two whales fast to them were utterly helpless as far as independent locomotion went, unless they could run dead before the wind. Every ship made all snug aloft, and hoisted the boats to the top notch of the cranes, fully anticipating a long, hard struggle with the elements before they got back to the cruising ground again. Cutting-in was out of the question in such weather; the only thing possible was to hope for a shift of wind before she got too far out, or a break in the weather. Neither of these events was probable, as all frequenters of South New Zealand know, bad weather having there an unhappy knack of being as persistent as fine weather is brief.
Well, we all "waded in," catching some two, some one whale each, depending on the crews' skills or luck in battle. We only managed to get one whale on the CACHALOT, but that was fine. We had hardly secured it by the fluke alongside when the wind started to pick up from the northeast. In less than one watch, the sea was boiling from the intensity of the wind. We couldn’t maneuver anywhere, with a whale alongside; we were about as nimble as a barge loaded with a haystack. Those poor guys who had two whales secured were completely stuck when it came to moving independently, unless they could run straight downwind. Every ship battened down the hatches and hoisted the boats to the highest point on the cranes, fully expecting a tough battle with the elements before getting back to the cruising ground. Cutting-in was impossible in such weather; all we could do was hope for a change in the wind before we got too far out, or for a break in the weather. Neither of those events was likely, as any regulars of South New Zealand know; bad weather has a frustrating way of being just as relentless as good weather is fleeting.
Night drew on as our forlorn and heavily handicapped little fleet bore steadily seaward with their burdens, the angry, ever-increasing sea, battering at us vengefully, while the huge carcasses alongside tore and strained at their fastenings as if they would rend the ships asunder. Slowly our companions faded from sight as the murky sky shut down on us, until in lonely helplessness we drifted on our weary way out into the vast, inhospitable Southern Ocean. Throughout the dark and stormy night our brave old ship held on her unwilling way right gallantly, making no water, in spite of the fearful strain to which she was subjected, nor taking any heavy sea over all. Morning broke cheerlessly enough. No abatement in the gale or change in its direction; indeed, it looked like lasting a month. Only one ship was visible far to leeward of us, and she was hull down. Our whale was beginning to swell rapidly, already floating at least three feet above the surface instead of just awash, as when newly killed. The skipper eyed it gloomily, seeing the near prospect of its entire loss, but he said nothing. In fact, very little was said; but the stories we had heard in the Bay of Islands came back to us with significant force now that their justification was so apparent.
Night fell as our despairing and seriously limited little fleet made its way steadily to sea with their loads. The angry, increasingly rough sea pounded against us aggressively, while the massive carcasses beside us strained at their fastenings as if they would tear the ships apart. Slowly, our companions disappeared from view as the dark sky closed in around us, until we drifted helplessly out into the vast, unwelcoming Southern Ocean. Throughout the dark and stormy night, our brave old ship pressed on gallantly, taking on no water despite the tremendous strain it was under, nor did it take any heavy waves over the sides. Morning broke bleakly. There was no lessening of the storm or change in its direction; in fact, it looked like it could last a month. Only one ship was visible far downwind of us, and it was barely above the horizon. Our whale was beginning to swell rapidly, already floating at least three feet above the surface instead of just barely submerged, as it was when freshly killed. The captain looked at it grimly, aware of the imminent loss of the entire thing, but he said nothing. In truth, very little was said; yet the stories we had heard in the Bay of Islands came back to us with weight now that their truth was so clear.
Hour after hour went by without any change whatever, except in the whale, which, like some gradually filling balloon, rose higher and higher, till at nightfall its bulk was appalling. All through the night those on deck did little else but stare at its increasing size, which when morning dawned again, was so great that the animal's bilge rode level with the ship's rail, while in her lee rolls it towered above the deck like a mountain. The final scene with it was now a question of minutes only, so most of us, fascinated by the strange spectacle, watched and waited. Suddenly, with a roar like the bursting of a dam, the pent-up gases tore their furious way out of the distended carcass, hurling the entrails in one horrible entanglement widespread over the sea. It was well for us that it was to leeward and a strong gale howling; for even then the unutterable foetor wrought its poisonous way back through that fierce, pure blast, permeating every nook of the ship with its filthy vapour till the stoutest stomach there protested in unmistakable terms against such vile treatment. Knowing too well that the blubber was now worthless, the skipper gave orders to cut the corrupt mass adrift. This was speedily effected by a few strokes of a spade through the small. Away went eight hundred pounds' worth of oil—another sacrifice to the exigencies of the Solander, such as had gained for it so evil a reputation.
Hour after hour went by without any change, except for the whale, which, like a gradually filling balloon, rose higher and higher until nightfall, when its size was terrifying. All night, those on deck did little else but watch as it grew bigger, and by morning, it was so large that the animal's belly was level with the ship’s rail, while in the waves on the side, it towered above the deck like a mountain. The final moment with it was now a matter of minutes, so most of us, captivated by the bizarre sight, watched and waited. Suddenly, with a roar like a dam bursting, the trapped gases explosively escaped from the bloated carcass, scattering the entrails in a horrific mass across the sea. It was fortunate that it was downwind and a strong wind was blowing; even then, the unbearable stench forced its way back through that strong, clean gust, filling every corner of the ship with its disgusting fumes until even the strongest stomach there couldn’t handle it. Knowing too well that the blubber was now worthless, the captain ordered the rotten mass to be cut loose. This was quickly done with a few chops of a spade through the blubber. Away went eight hundred pounds’ worth of oil—another loss to the harsh realities of the Solander, which had earned such a bad reputation.
Doubtless a similar experience had befallen all the other ships, so that the aggregate loss must have run into thousands of pounds, every penny of which might have been saved had steam been available.
Surely, a similar experience had happened to all the other ships, so the total loss must have added up to thousands of pounds, every penny of which could have been saved if steam power had been available.
That gale lasted, with a few short lulls, for five days longer. When at last it took off, and was succeeded by fine weather, we were so far to the southward that we might have fetched the Aucklands in another twenty-four hours. But, to our great relief, a strong southerly breeze set in, before which, under every rag of canvas, we sped north again.
That storm continued, with a few brief breaks, for another five days. When it finally stopped and was followed by clear weather, we were so far south that we could have reached the Aucklands in another twenty-four hours. But, much to our relief, a strong southern wind picked up, and with it, we quickly headed north again, using every piece of sail we had.
Steady and reliable as ever, that good south wind carried us back to our old cruising ground ere it blew itself out, and we resumed our usual tactics as if nothing had happened, being none the worse as regards equipment for our adventures. Not so fortunate our companions, who at the same time as ourselves were thrust out into the vast Southern Ocean, helplessly burdened and exposed defenceless to all the ferocity of that devouring gale, Two of them were here prowling about, showing evident signs of their conflict in the battered state of their hulls. The glaring whiteness of new planking in many places along the bulwarks told an eloquent story of seas bursting on board carrying all before them, while empty cranes testified to the loss of a boat in both of them. As soon as we came near enough, "gamming" commenced, for all of us were anxious to know how each other had fared.
Steady and reliable as ever, that good south wind carried us back to our old cruising ground before it died down, and we resumed our usual tactics as if nothing had happened, being no worse off in terms of equipment for our adventures. Our companions were not so lucky, as they were also pushed out into the vast Southern Ocean, helplessly weighed down and exposed to the full force of that fierce storm. Two of them were here moving around, showing clear signs of their struggle in the damaged state of their hulls. The glaring whiteness of new planking in many places along the sides told a vivid story of waves crashing on board and sweeping everything away, while empty cranes indicated that both of them had lost a boat. As soon as we got close enough, "gamming" started, because we were all eager to find out how each of us had fared.
As we anticipated, every whale was lost that had been caught that day. The disappointment was in nowise lessened by the knowledge that, with his usual good fortune Captain Gilroy had not only escaped all the bad weather, but while we were being threshed within an inch of our lives down in the bitter south, he was calmly trying-out his whale (which we had seen him with on our outward journey) in the sheltered haven of Port William. Many and deep were the curses bestowed upon him by the infuriated crews of those two ships, although he had certainly done them no harm. But the sight of other people's good fortune is gall and wormwood to a vast number of people, who seem to take it as a personal injury done to themselves.
As we expected, every whale caught that day was lost. The disappointment was in no way eased by the fact that, thanks to his usual luck, Captain Gilroy not only avoided all the bad weather but was also calmly processing his whale (which we had seen him with on the way out) in the safe harbor of Port William while we were being battered almost to our breaking point in the harsh south. The crews of those two ships hurled many angry curses at him, even though he hadn't harmed them at all. But seeing someone else's good fortune is incredibly frustrating for a lot of people, who seem to take it as a personal insult.
Only two days elapsed, however, before we again saw an immense school of sperm whales, and each ship succeeded in securing one. We made no attempt to get more this time, nor do I think either of the others did; at any rate, one each was the result of the day's work. They were, as usual, of huge size and apparently very fat. At the time we secured our fish alongside, a fresh north-westerly wind was blowing, the weather being clear and beautiful as heart could wish. But instead of commencing at once to cut-in, Captain Count gave orders to pile on all sail and keep her away up the Straits. He was evidently determined to take no more chances, but, whenever opportunity offered, to follow the example set by the wily old skipper of the CHANCE. The other ships both started to cut-in at once, tempted, doubtless, by the settled appearance of the weather, and also perhaps from their hardly concealed dislike of going into port. We bowled along at a fine rate, towing our prize, that plunged and rolled by our side in eccentric style, almost as if still alive. Along about midnight we reached Saddle Point, where there was some shelter from the sea which rolled up the wide open strait, and there we anchored.
Only two days passed, but then we saw a huge school of sperm whales again, and each ship managed to catch one. We didn't try to catch more this time, and I doubt the others did either; anyway, we all ended up with just one each for the day. They were, as usual, massive and seemed very fat. When we secured our catch alongside, a fresh northwesterly wind was blowing, and the weather was clear and beautiful, just as one could hope. But instead of starting to process it right away, Captain Count ordered us to hoist all sails and head up the Straits. He clearly wanted to take no more chances and was looking to follow the example of the clever old skipper of the CHANCE whenever he could. The other ships immediately began processing their catches, likely tempted by the nice weather and perhaps by their obvious reluctance to head into port. We moved along quickly, towing our prize, which was thrashing and rolling beside us in an odd way, almost as if it were still alive. Around midnight, we reached Saddle Point, where the sea was calmer, and we anchored there.
Leaving me and a couple of Kanakas on watch, the captain, and all hands besides, went below for a little sleep. My instructions were to call the captain if the weather got at all ugly-looking, so that we might run in to Port William at once, but he did not wish to do so if our present position proved sufficiently sheltered. He had not been below an hour before there was a change for the worse. That greasy, filmy haze was again drawn over the clear blue of the sky, and the light scud began to fly overhead at an alarmingly rapid rate. So at four bells I called him again. He came on deck at once, and after one look round ordered the hands up to man the windlass. By eight bells (four a.m.) we were rounding the frowning rocks at the entrance of Port William, and threading our way between the closely-set, kelp-hidden dangers as if it were broadest, dearest daylight. At 4.30 we let go the anchor again, and all hands, except the regular "anchor-watch," bolted below to their bunks again like so many rabbits.
Leaving me and a couple of locals on watch, the captain and the rest of the crew went below for a quick nap. My instructions were to call the captain if the weather started to look bad, so we could head into Port William right away, but he preferred to stay put if our current spot seemed safe enough. He had only been down for about an hour when the weather took a turn for the worse. That greasy, film-like haze covered the clear blue sky again, and the light clouds began to race overhead at a worrying speed. So at four bells, I called him up again. He came on deck immediately, took one look around, and ordered the crew to man the windlass. By eight bells (four a.m.), we were navigating around the ominous rocks at the entrance of Port William, making our way between the closely-packed, kelp-hidden hazards as if it were broad daylight. At 4:30, we dropped the anchor again, and everyone except the regular "anchor-watch" dashed below to their bunks like a bunch of rabbits.
It was very comfortable, cutting-in a sperm whale in harbour, after the dire difficulty of performing the same operation in a seaway. And, although it may seem strange, this was the first occasion that voyage that I had had a really good opportunity of closely studying the whale's anatomy. Consequently the work was exceedingly interesting, and, in spite of the labour involved, I was almost sorry when the job was done. Under the present favourable circumstances we were ready to cut the carcass adrift shortly after midday, the head, of course, having been taken off first. Just after we started to cut-in a boat appeared alongside with six Maories and half-breeds on board. Their leader came up and civilly asked the skipper whether he intended doing anything with the carcass. Upon being promptly answered in the negative, he said that he and his companions proposed hooking on to the great mass when we cut it adrift, towing it ashore, and getting out of it what oil we had been unable to extract, which at sea is always lost to the ship. He also suggested that he would be prepared to take reasonable terms for such oil, which we should be able to mingle with ours to our advantage. An arrangement was speedily arrived at to give him L20 per tun for whatever oil he made. They parted on the best of terms with each other, and as soon as we cut the carcass loose the Maories made fast, to it, speedily beaching it in a convenient spot near where they had previously erected a most primitive try-works.
It was really comfortable to process a sperm whale in the harbor, especially after the tough experience of doing the same thing at sea. Surprisingly, this was the first time on this voyage that I had a chance to closely examine the whale's anatomy. As a result, the work was incredibly interesting, and despite the effort required, I almost felt sad when it was finished. Given the favorable conditions, we were ready to cut the carcass loose shortly after noon, having removed the head first, of course. Just as we started to cut in, a boat came alongside with six Māori and half-castes on board. Their leader approached and politely asked the skipper if he planned to do anything with the carcass. When he was quickly told no, he said he and his companions intended to hook onto the huge mass when we cut it loose, tow it ashore, and retrieve any oil we hadn’t been able to extract, which is usually lost at sea. He also mentioned that he would be willing to agree on reasonable terms for that oil, which we could blend with ours for a better yield. They quickly settled on a deal to pay him £20 per ton for whatever oil he collected. They parted on good terms, and as soon as we released the carcass, the Māori secured it and quickly beached it in a suitable spot near where they had previously set up a very basic try-works.
That afternoon, after the head was inboard, the skipper thought he would go ashore and see how they were getting on. I was so fortunate as to be able to accompany him. When we arrived at the spot, we found them working as I have never seen men work, except perhaps the small riggers that at home take a job—three or four of them—to bend or unbend a big ship's sails for a lump sum to be paid when the work is done. They attacked the carcass furiously, as if they had a personal enmity against it, chopping through the massive bones and rending off huge lumps of the flesh with marvellous speed. They had already laid open the enormous cavity of the abdomen, and were stripping the interminable intestines of their rich coating of fat. In the maw there were, besides a large quantity of dismembered squid of great size, a number of fish, such as rock-cod, barracouta, schnapper, and the like, whose presence there was a revelation to me. How in the name of wonder so huge and unwieldy a creature as the cachalot could manage to catch those nimble members of the finny tribe, I could not for the life of me divine! Unless—and after much cogitation it was the only feasible explanation that I could see—as the cachalot swims about with his lower jaw hanging down in its normal position, and his huge gullet gaping like some submarine cavern, the fish unwittingly glide down it, to find egress impossible. This may or may not be the case; but I, at any rate, can find no more reasonable theory, for it is manifestly absurd to suppose the whale capable of CATCHING fish in the ordinary sense, indicating pursuit.
That afternoon, after they brought the head on board, the captain decided to go ashore and see how things were going. I was lucky enough to go with him. When we got there, we found them working harder than I had ever seen anyone work, except maybe the small riggers back home who take on a job—three or four of them—to put up or take down a big ship's sails for a flat fee once the job is done. They were attacking the carcass with a fury, almost as if they had a personal grudge against it, chopping through the massive bones and tearing off huge chunks of flesh at incredible speed. They had already opened up the enormous belly and were stripping the endless intestines of their rich layer of fat. Inside the stomach, there were not only a lot of large dismembered squid but also several fish, like rock-cod, barracouta, snapper, and others, which surprised me. I couldn’t figure out how such a huge and awkward creature as the sperm whale could catch those quick fish! Unless—and after thinking about it, this was the only reasonable explanation I could come up with—while the sperm whale swims with its lower jaw hanging down and its massive throat wide open like some underwater cave, the fish accidentally swim right into it, finding it impossible to escape. This may or may not be true, but I honestly can't think of a better theory because it’s clearly ridiculous to think that the whale is capable of actually CATCHING fish in the usual sense, implying pursuit.
Every part of the animal yielded oil. Even the bones, broken up into pieces capable of entering the pot, were boiled; and by the time we had finished our trying-out, the result of the Maories' labour was ready for us. Less than a week had sufficed to yield them a net sum of six guineas each, even at the very low rate for which they sold us the oil. Except that it was a little darker in colour, a defect that would disappear when mixed with our store, there was no difference between the products that could be readily detected. And at the price we paid for it, there was a clear profit of cent. per cent., even had we kept it separate and sold it for what it was. But I suppose it was worth the Maories' while thus to dispose of it and quickly realize their hard earnings.
Every part of the animal was used for oil. Even the bones, chopped up into small pieces that could fit in the pot, were boiled; and by the time we finished processing, the results of the Maoris' work were ready for us. In less than a week, they made a net profit of six guineas each, even at the low price they sold the oil to us. Aside from being a bit darker in color, a flaw that would vanish when mixed with our stock, there wasn’t any noticeable difference between the products. Given the price we paid, there was a clear profit of one hundred percent, even if we kept it separate and sold it as is. But I guess it made sense for the Maoris to sell it this way and quickly cash in on their hard work.
So far, our last excursion had been entirely satisfactory. We had not suffered any loss or endured any hardship; and if only such comfortable proceedings were more frequent, the Solander ground would not have any terrors for us at least. But one afternoon there crept in around the eastern horn of the harbour three forlorn and half-dismantled vessels, whose weather-worn crews looked wistfully at us engaged in clearing up decks and putting away gear upon the finishing of our trying-out. Poor fellows! they had seen rough times since that unforgettable evening when we parted from them at the other end of the island, and watched them slowly fade into the night. Two of them were so badly damaged that no further fishing was possible for them until they had undergone a thorough refit, such as they could not manage there. One was leaking badly, the tremendous strain put upon her hull in the vain attempt to hold on to the two whales she had during the gale having racked her almost all to pieces. The third one was still capable of taking the ground again, with sundry repairs such as could be effected by her crew. But the general feeling among all three crews was that there was more loss than gain to be expected here, in spite of the multitude of whales visiting the place.
So far, our last trip had been completely satisfying. We hadn’t experienced any losses or hardships; if only such pleasant experiences were more common, the Solander ground wouldn’t scare us at all. But one afternoon, three worn-out and half-dismantled boats crept around the eastern edge of the harbor, and their weather-beaten crews looked longingly at us as we cleaned up the decks and stored our gear after finishing our work. Poor guys! They’d been through tough times since that unforgettable night when we said goodbye to them at the other end of the island and watched them disappear into the darkness. Two of their boats were so badly damaged that they couldn’t fish again until they were thoroughly repaired, which they couldn’t do there. One was leaking badly, having endured a tremendous strain on her hull in a futile attempt to hold onto the two whales she caught during the storm, which nearly tore her apart. The third one could still touch the ground again with some repairs that her crew could manage. But the overall sentiment among all three crews was that there was more loss than gain to be expected here, despite the many whales coming to the area.
As if to fill up their cup, in came the old CHANCE again, this time with a whale on each side. Captain Gilroy was on the house aft, his chubby red face in a ruddy glow of delight, and his crew exuberant. When he passed the American ships, as he was bound to do very closely, the sight of their scowling faces seemed to afford him the most exquisite amusement, and he laughed loud and long. His crew, on the impulse of the moment, sprang to the rail and cheered with might and main. No one could gainsay that they had good reason, but I really feared for a time that we should have "ructions," As Paddy said, it was not wise or dignified for those officers to be so angry with him on account of his success, which he frankly owned was due almost entirely to the local knowledge he possessed, gained in many years' study of the immediate neighbourhood. He declared that, as far as the technical duties of whale-fishing went, all the Americans could beat him hollow; but they ought to realize that something else was needed here which no man could hope to have unless he were content to remain on the coast altogether. With which words of wisdom our skipper cordially agreed, bearing in mind his own exploits in the bygone time around those rugged shores.
As if to top off their celebration, the old CHANCE came in again, this time with a whale on each side. Captain Gilroy was on the house aft, his chubby red face glowing with delight, and his crew was in high spirits. As he passed the American ships, which he had to do closely, the sight of their scowling faces seemed to give him the utmost amusement, and he laughed loudly and for a long time. His crew, caught up in the moment, jumped to the railing and cheered with all their might. No one could deny they had good reason, but I genuinely feared for a while that there would be "trouble." As Paddy said, it wasn’t wise or dignified for those officers to be so angry with him because of his success, which he openly admitted was almost entirely due to the local knowledge he had gained from years of studying the area. He declared that, when it came to the technical aspects of whale-fishing, the Americans could easily outperform him; but they needed to understand that something else was required here that no one could hope to acquire unless they were willing to stay on the coast completely. With those wise words, our skipper wholeheartedly agreed, recalling his own adventures in those rugged waters in the past.
The strong breeze which brought Paddy and his whales home died down that night, enabling us to start for the grounds again—a concession gratefully received, for not the least of the hindrances felt there was the liability to be "wind-bound" for a long time, while fine weather was prevailing at the fishing grounds.
The strong breeze that brought Paddy and his whales home calmed down that night, allowing us to head back to the fishing grounds again—a welcome change, since one of the biggest challenges we faced there was the chance of being "wind-bound" for a long stretch while good weather was happening at the fishing spots.
We made a fine passage down the Straits with a leading wind, finding our two late companions still cruising, having managed to get their whales aboard without mishap, and being somewhat inclined to chaff our old man for running in. He gave a wink full of wisdom, as he replied, "I'm pretty ole whale myself naouw; but I guess I ain't too old to learn; 'n wut I learn I'm goin' ter use. See?" Of course the fine weather did not last long—it never does; and seeing the gloomy masses of violet-edged cumuli piling up on the southern horizon, we hugged the Solander Rock itself pretty close, nor ventured far to seaward. Our two consorts, on the contrary, kept well out and on the northern verge, as if they intended the next gale that blew to get north, IF they could. The old man's object in thus keeping in was solely in order that he might be able to run for shelter; but, much to his delight and certainly surprise, as we passed about a mile to the southward of the lonely, towering crags of the great rock, there came from aloft the welcome cry of "Sperm whale!"
We had a smooth trip down the Straits with a good wind, and we found our two recent companions still out there cruising. They had managed to get their whales on board without any issues, and they were teasing our captain for coming in. He gave a knowing wink as he replied, "I'm pretty old myself now; but I guess I’m not too old to learn; and what I learn I'm going to use. Got it?" Of course, the nice weather didn’t last long—it never does; and seeing the dark clouds with violet edges building up on the southern horizon, we stayed close to Solander Rock and didn’t venture too far out to sea. Our two companions, on the other hand, stayed well out and near the northern edge, as if they planned to head north at the first sign of a storm, IF they could. The captain's reason for sticking close was so he could run for shelter, but much to his delight and surprise, as we passed about a mile south of the lonely, towering cliffs of the big rock, we heard the welcome cry from above, "Sperm whale!"
There was only one, and he was uncomfortably near the rock; but such a splendid chance was not to be missed, if our previous training was of any avail. There was some speculation as to what he could be doing so close inshore, contrary to the habit of this animal, who seems to be only comfortable when in deep waters; but except a suggestion that perhaps he had come in to scrape off an extra accumulation of barnacles, nobody could arrive at any definite conclusion. When we reached him, we found a frightful blind swell rolling, and it needed all our seamanship to handle the boats so that they should not be capsized. Fortunately, the huge rollers did not break, or we should hardly have got back safely, whale or no whale.
There was only one, and he was uncomfortably close to the rock; but we couldn't miss such a fantastic opportunity if our previous training was worth anything. People speculated about why he was so close to shore, which is unusual for this animal that typically prefers deeper waters. One suggestion was that he might have come in to scrape off some extra barnacles, but no one could come up with a solid explanation. When we reached him, we found a terrifying blind swell rolling in, and it took all our sailing skills to keep the boats from capsizing. Luckily, the massive waves didn't break, or we probably wouldn't have made it back safely, whale or no whale.
Two irons were planted in him, of which he took not the slightest notice. We had taken in sail before closing in to him on account of the swell, so that we had only to go in and finish him at once, if he would let us. Accordingly, we went in with a will, but for all sign of life he showed he might as well have been stuffed. There he lay, lazily spouting, the blood pouring, or rather spirting, from his numerous wounds, allowing us to add to their number at our pleasure, and never moving his vast body, which was gently swayed by the rolling sea. Seeing him thus quiescent, the mate sent the other two boats back to the ship with the good news, which the captain received with a grave smile of content, proceeding at once to bring the ship as near as might be consistent with her safety. We were now thoroughly sheltered from sight of the other ships by the enormous mass of the island, so that they had no idea of our proceedings.
Two harpoons were lodged in him, and he didn't seem to notice at all. We had taken in the sails before getting close to him because of the swell, so we just needed to go in and finish him off if he would let us. So, we went in full force, but for all the life he showed, he might as well have been stuffed. There he lay, lazily blowing out water, the blood gushing, or rather spraying, from his many wounds, letting us add to them whenever we wanted, and never moving his massive body, which was gently rocked by the rolling sea. Seeing him so still, the mate sent the other two boats back to the ship with the good news, which the captain received with a serious but satisfied smile, immediately moving to bring the ship as close as safety would allow. We were now completely hidden from the sight of the other ships by the huge mass of the island, so they had no clue about what we were doing.
Finding that it was not wise to take the ship in any closer, while we were yet some distance from our prize, a boat was sent to Mr. Cruce with the instructions that he was to run his line from the whale back to the ship, if the creature was dead. He (the mate) replied that the whale died as quietly as he had taken his wounds, and immediately started for the ship. When he had paid out all his line, another boat bent on, until we got the end on board. Then we merrily walked him up alongside, while sufficient sail was kept drawing to prevent her being set in any nearer. When he was fast, we crowded on all canvas to get away; for although the sea was deep close up to the cliff, that swell was a very ugly feature, and one which has been responsible for the loss of a great number of ships in such places all over the world. Notwithstanding all our efforts, we did get so near that every detail of the rock was clearly visible to the naked eye, and we had some anxious minutes while the old ship, rolling tremendously, crawled inch after inch along the awful side of that sea-encircled pyramid.
Realizing it wasn't a good idea to bring the ship any closer while we were still some distance from our prize, we sent a boat to Mr. Cruce with instructions to run his line from the whale back to the ship if the creature was dead. He (the mate) replied that the whale had died just as quietly as it had taken its wounds, and he immediately set off for the ship. After he had paid out all his line, another boat was attached until we got the end on board. Then we happily pulled him alongside while keeping enough sail up to prevent us from getting any closer. Once he was secured, we hoisted all the sails to get away; although the water was deep right up to the cliff, that swell was a dangerous feature, one that has caused many ships to sink in similar places all over the world. Despite our best efforts, we got so close that every detail of the rock was clearly visible to the naked eye, and we had a few anxious minutes while the old ship, rolling heavily, inched along the terrifying side of that sea-encircled pyramid.
At one point there was quite a cave, the floor of which would be some twenty feet above high-water mark, and its roof about the same distance higher. It appeared to penetrate some distance into the bowels of the mountain, and was wide and roomy. Sea-birds in great numbers hovered around its entrance, finding it, no doubt, an ideal nesting-place. It appeared quite inaccessible, for even with a perfect calm the swell dashed against the perpendicular face of the cliff beneath with a force that would have instantly destroyed any vessel unfortunate enough to get within its influence.
At one point, there was quite a cave, with the floor about twenty feet above high-water mark and the ceiling another twenty feet higher. It seemed to extend deep into the mountain and was spacious and roomy. A large number of sea birds hovered around its entrance, surely finding it an ideal spot for nesting. It looked completely inaccessible; even in perfect calm, the swell crashed against the sheer face of the cliff below with a force that would have instantly wrecked any vessel unfortunate enough to get caught in it.
Slowly, slowly we forged past the danger; but the moment we opened out the extremity of the island, a fresh breeze, like a saving hand, swept across the bows, filling the head-sails and swinging the old vessel away from the island in grand style. Another minute, and the other sails filled also. We were safe, all hands breathing freely once more.
Slowly, we made our way past the danger; but as soon as we reached the edge of the island, a fresh breeze, like a helping hand, rushed across the front of the boat, filling the head sails and swinging the old vessel away from the island with style. A moment later, the other sails filled up too. We were safe, and everyone was breathing easily again.
Now the wind hung far round to the eastward—far enough to frustrate any design we might have had of going up the Straits again. The old man, however, was too deeply impressed with the paramount necessity of shelter to lightly give up the idea of getting in somewhere; so he pointed her for Preservation Inlet, which was only some thirty miles under her lee. We crowded all sail upon her in the endeavour to get in before nightfall, this unusual proceeding bringing our two friends up from to leeward with a run to see what we were after. Burdened as we were, they sailed nearly two knots to our one, and consequently intercepted us some while before we neared our port. Great was their surprise to find we had a whale, and very anxious their queries as to where the rest of the school had gone. Reassured that they had lost nothing by not being nearer, it being a "lone" whale, off they went again.
Now the wind had shifted far to the east, making it impossible for us to even think about going back up the Straits. However, the old man was too aware of the urgent need for shelter to abandon the plan of getting somewhere safe; so he steered us toward Preservation Inlet, which was only about thirty miles away. We hoisted all our sails in an attempt to arrive before nightfall, which got our two friends from downwind curious enough to come see what we were up to. We were overloaded, so they were sailing nearly two knots for every one of ours, and they caught up with us well before we got to our destination. They were very surprised to see we had a whale and eagerly asked where the rest of the school had gone. Once they were reassured that they hadn't missed anything by not being closer since it was a "lone" whale, they headed off again.
With all our efforts, evening was fast closing in when we entered the majestic portals of Preservation Inlet, and gazed with deepest interest upon its heavily wooded shores.
With all our efforts, evening was quickly approaching when we entered the grand entrance of Preservation Inlet and looked with great interest at its densely wooded shores.
CHAPTER XXVI. PADDY'S LATEST EXPLOIT
New Zealand is pre-eminently a country of grand harbours; but I think those that are least used easily bear the palm for grandeur of scenery and facility of access. The wonderful harbour, or rather series of harbours, into which we were now entering for the first time, greatly resembled in appearance a Norwegian fjord, not only in the character of its scenery, but from the interesting, if disconcerting, fact that the cliffs were so steep-to that in some places no anchorage is found alongside the very land itself. There are, however, many places where the best possible anchorage can be obtained, so securely sheltered that a howling south-wester may be tearing the sea up by the roots outside, and you will know nothing of it within, except what may be surmised from the motion of the clouds overhead. It was an ideal place for a whaling station, being right on the Solander.
New Zealand is primarily known for its stunning harbors; however, I believe those that are less frequented truly stand out for their breathtaking scenery and ease of access. The incredible harbor, or more accurately, series of harbors, that we were entering for the first time resembled a Norwegian fjord not just in the landscape, but also due to the intriguing, albeit unsettling, fact that the cliffs were so steep that in some areas there’s no safe anchorage right next to the land. Nevertheless, there are plenty of spots where you can find excellent anchorage, so well-protected that even if a fierce south-westerly wind is churning up the sea outside, you wouldn’t notice it inside, except for what might be guessed from the movement of the clouds above. It was the perfect location for a whaling station, being right on the Solander.
We found it exceedingly convenient, and much nearer than Port William, but, from the prevailing winds, difficult of access in nine cases out of ten, especially when hampered with a whale. Upon cutting-in our latest catch, an easy explanation of his passive attitude was at once forthcoming. He had been attacked by some whale-ship, whose irons had drawn, leaving deep traces of their presence; but during the battle he had received SEVEN bombs, all of which had entered around his small, but had not exploded. Their general effect had been, I should think, to paralyze the great muscles of his flukes, rendering him unable to travel; yet this could not have taken place until some time after he had made good his escape from those aggressors. It was instructive, as demonstrating what amount of injury these colossi really can survive, and I have no doubt that, if he had been left alone, he would have recovered his normal energy, and been as well as ever. From our point of view, of course, what had happened was the best possible thing, for he came almost as a gift—the second capture we had made on these grounds of a like nature.
We found it incredibly convenient and much closer than Port William, but due to the prevailing winds, it was hard to access nine times out of ten, especially when dealing with a whale. When we began processing our latest catch, it quickly became clear why it was so passive. It had been attacked by a whaling ship, whose harpoons had come loose, leaving deep marks behind; during the struggle, it had been hit by SEVEN bombs, all of which had penetrated its body but hadn’t gone off. I think the overall effect was to paralyze the large muscles of its flukes, making it unable to swim; however, this likely didn’t happen until some time after it had successfully escaped from those attackers. It was enlightening, showing just how much damage these giants can endure, and I’m sure that if it had been left alone, it would have regained its usual strength and been just fine. From our perspective, of course, what happened was the best possible outcome, as it came to us almost like a gift—the second capture we had made in this area of a similar kind.
At the close of our operations the welcome news was made public that four more fish like the present one would fill us bung-up, and that we should then, after a brief visit to the Bluff, start direct for home. This announcement, though expected for some time past, gave an amazing fillip to everybody's interest in the work. The strange spectacle was witnessed of all hands being anxious to quit a snug harbour for the sea, where stern, hard wrestling with the elements was the rule. The captain, well pleased with the eagerness manifested, had his boat manned for a trip to the entrance of the harbour, to see what the weather was like outside, since it was not possible to judge from where the ship lay. On his return, he reported the weather rough, but moderating, and announced his intention of weighing at daylight next morning. Satisfied that our days in the southern hemisphere were numbered, and all anxiety to point her head for home, this news was most pleasing, putting all of us in the best of humours, and provoking quite an entertainment of song and dance until nearly four bells.
At the end of our operations, the exciting news was shared that four more fish like the current one would fill us up, and then, after a quick visit to the Bluff, we would head straight for home. This announcement, which we had been expecting for a while, really boosted everyone’s enthusiasm for the work. It was a strange sight to see everyone eager to leave a cozy harbor for the ocean, where battling the elements was the norm. The captain, pleased by the eagerness shown, had his crew prepare for a trip to the entrance of the harbor to check the weather outside, as we couldn't tell from where the ship was anchored. Upon his return, he reported that the weather was rough but improving, and he said he planned to set sail at dawn the next morning. Knowing that our time in the southern hemisphere was limited and everyone eager to head home, this news was very encouraging, putting us all in great spirits and sparking quite a bit of singing and dancing until nearly 4 o'clock.
During the grey of dawn the anchor was weighed. There was no breath of wind from any quarter, so that it was necessary to lower boats and tow the old girl out to her field of duty. Before she was fairly clear of the harbour, though, there came a "snifter" from the hills that caught her unprepared, making her reel again, and giving us a desperate few minutes to scramble on board and hoist our boats up. As we drew out from the land, we found that a moderate gale was blowing, but the sky was clear, fathomless blue, the sun rose kindly, a heavenly dream of soft delicate colour preceding him; so that, in spite of the strong breeze, all looked promising for a good campaign. At first no sign could be seen of any of the other ships, though we looked long and eagerly for them. At last we saw them, four in all, nearly hull down to seaward, but evidently coming in under press of sail. So slow, however, was their approach that we had made one "leg" across the ground and halfway back before they were near enough for us to descry the reason of their want of speed. They had each got a whale alongside, and were carrying every rag of canvas they could spread, in order to get in with their prizes.
At dawn, the anchor was raised. There wasn’t a breath of wind anywhere, so we had to lower the boats and tow the old ship out to her duty. Just as we were leaving the harbor, a gust from the hills caught us off guard, causing the ship to sway and giving us a frantic few minutes to scramble on board and hoist our boats. As we moved away from the shore, we noticed a moderate gale blowing, but the sky was clear, a deep blue, and the sun rose beautifully, casting soft, delicate colors ahead of it. Despite the strong breeze, everything looked promising for a good voyage. At first, there was no sign of the other ships, even though we searched for them eagerly. Eventually, we spotted four ships, almost hidden by the horizon, but clearly coming toward us with their sails up. However, they were approaching so slowly that we had already made one leg across the distance and halfway back before we could see why they were moving so sluggishly. They each had a whale alongside and were using every bit of sail they could to bring in their catches.
Our old acquaintance, the CHANCE, was there, the three others being her former competitors, except those who were disabled, still lying in Port William. Slowly, painfully they laboured along, until well within the mouth of the Straits, when, without any warning, the wind which had been bringing them in suddenly flew round into the northward, putting them at once in a most perilous position. Too far within the Straits to "up helm" and run for it out to sea; not far enough to get anywhere that an anchor might hold; and there to leeward, within less than a dozen miles, loomed grim and gloomy one of the most terrific rock-bound coasts in the world. The shift of wind had placed the CHANCE farther to leeward than all the rest, a good mile and a half nearer the shore; and we could well imagine how anxiously her movements were being watched by the others, who, in spite of their jealousy of his good luck, knew well and appreciated fully Paddy's marvellous seamanship, as well as his unparalleled knowledge of the coast.
Our old friend, the CHANCE, was there, along with the three others who used to compete against her, except for those who were still stuck at Port William. They struggled slowly and painfully until they were well within the mouth of the Straits, when suddenly, without any warning, the wind that had been pushing them in shifted to the north, putting them in a dangerous situation. They were too deep into the Straits to quickly change course and head back out to sea, but not close enough to get to a spot where they could drop anchor; looming less than twelve miles away was one of the most treacherous, rock-laden coasts in the world. The wind shift had pushed the CHANCE further downwind than all the others, putting her a good mile and a half closer to shore; we could easily imagine how anxiously the others were watching her movements, even though they were jealous of her good fortune, as they all recognized and appreciated Paddy's incredible seamanship and unmatched knowledge of the coast.
Having no whale to hamper our movements, besides being well to windward of them all, we were perfectly comfortable as long as we kept to seaward of a certain line and the gale was not too fierce, so for the present all our attention was concentrated upon the labouring ships to leeward. The intervention of the land to windward kept the sea from rising to the awful height it attains under the pressure of a westerly, or a south-westerly gale, when, gathering momentum over an area extending right round the globe, it hurls itself upon those rugged shores. Still, it was bad enough. The fact of the gale striking across the regular set of the swell and current had the effect of making the sea irregular, short, and broken, which state of things is considered worse, as far as handling the ship goes, than a much heavier, longer, but more regular succession of waves.
With no whales to slow us down and positioned well against the wind, we were perfectly comfortable as long as we stayed beyond a certain line offshore and the storm wasn't too strong. So for now, we focused all our attention on the struggling ships downwind. The land to our windward side kept the sea from rising to the terrifying heights it can reach during a westerly or south-westerly gale, where the waves gather strength over distances stretching all around the globe and crash against those rocky shores. Still, it was rough enough. The gale hitting across the usual direction of the swell and current made the sea choppy, short, and uneven, which is considered more challenging for handling the ship than a heavier, longer, but more consistent set of waves.
As the devoted craft drifted helplessly down upon that frowning barrier, our excitement grew intense. Their inability to do anything but drift was only too well known by experience to every one of us, nor would it be possible for them to escape at all if they persisted in holding on much longer. And it was easy to see why they did so. While Paddy held on so far to leeward of them, and consequently in so much more imminent danger than they were, it would be derogatory in the highest degree to their reputation for seamanship and courage were they to slip and run before he did. He, however, showed no sign of doing so, although they all neared, with an accelerated drift, that point from whence no seamanship could deliver them, and where death inevitable, cruel, awaited them without hope of escape. The part of the coast upon which they were apparently driving was about as dangerous and impracticable as any in the world. A gigantic barrier of black, naked rock, extending for several hundred yards, rose sheer from the sea beneath, like the side of an ironclad, up to a height of seven or eight hundred feet. No outlying spurs of submerged fragments broke the immeasurable landward rush of the majestic waves towards the frowning face of this world-fragment. Fresh from their source, with all the impetus accumulated in their thousand-mile journey, they came apparently irresistible. Against this perpendicular barrier they hurled themselves with a shock that vibrated far inland, and a roar that rose in a dominating diapason over the continuous thunder of the tempest-riven sea. High as was the summit of the cliff, the spray, hurled upwards by the tremendous impact, rose higher, so that the whole front of the great rock was veiled in filmy wreaths of foam, hiding its solidity from the seaward view. At either end of this vast, rampart nothing could be seen but a waste of breakers seething, hissing, like the foot of Niagara, and effectually concealing the CHEVAUX DE FRISE of rocks which produced such a vortex of tormented waters.
As the helpless boat drifted down toward the looming barrier, our excitement heightened. We all knew from experience that they couldn’t do anything but drift, and if they held on much longer, escape would be impossible. It was clear why they were hesitant to let go. While Paddy was positioned much further downwind and faced greater danger than they did, it would seriously damage their reputation for seamanship and bravery if they slipped away before he did. However, he showed no signs of leaving, even as they all drifted closer to the point from which no amount of skill could save them, where a cruel death awaited them with no hope of escape. The section of coast they were heading toward was among the most dangerous and unmanageable in the world. A massive wall of black, bare rock rose straight up from the sea, standing 700 to 800 feet high, like the side of an ironclad, extending for several hundred yards. No submerged fragments broke the relentless advance of the powerful waves surging toward this harsh face of land. Fresh from their source, carrying the momentum from their thousand-mile journey, they approached with what seemed like unstoppable force. They crashed against the sheer wall with a jolt that resonated far inland, accompanied by a roar that dominated the continuous thunder of the storm-tossed sea. The spray, propelled upwards by the impact, soared even higher than the cliff's summit, cloaking the massive rock face in a mist of foam, obscuring its solidity from the view of the sea. At both ends of this vast rampart, all that could be seen was a tumult of crashing waves hissing and seething, like the foot of Niagara, effectively hiding the rocky hazards that created such a vortex of tortured waters.
Towards this dreadful spot, then, the four vessels were being resistlessly driven, every moment seeing their chances of escape lessening to vanishing-point. Suddenly, as if panic-stricken, the ship nearest to the CHANCE gave a great sweep round on to the other tack, a few fluttering gleams aloft showing that even in that storm they were daring to set some sail. What the manoeuvre meant we knew very well—they had cut adrift from their whale, terrified at last beyond endurance into the belief that Paddy was going to sacrifice himself and his crew in the attempt to lure them with him to inevitable destruction. The other two did not hesitate longer. The example once set, they immediately followed; but it was for some time doubtful in the extreme whether their resolve was not taken too late to save them from destruction. We watched them with breathless interest, unable for a long time to satisfy ourselves that they were out of danger. But at last we saw them shortening sail again—a sure sign that they considered themselves, while the wind held in the same quarter, safe from going ashore at any rate, although there was still before them the prospect of a long struggle with the unrelenting ferocity of the weather down south.
Towards this terrifying spot, the four ships were being pushed forward relentlessly, with each moment making their chances of escape fade away. Suddenly, as if struck by fear, the ship closest to the CHANCE made a sharp turn to change its course, with a few fluttering sails showing that even in that storm, they were daring to set some sail. We knew exactly what that maneuver meant—they had cut loose from their whale, finally terrified beyond belief that Paddy was going to sacrifice himself and his crew in an attempt to lead them to certain destruction. The other two ships didn’t hesitate any longer. Once one set the example, they immediately followed; but for a while, it was extremely doubtful whether their decision had come too late to save them. We watched them with intense interest, unable for a long time to convince ourselves that they were out of danger. But eventually, we saw them reducing their sails again—a sure sign that they thought they were safe from running aground as long as the wind stayed the same, although they still faced the prospect of a long battle with the fierce weather ahead.
Meanwhile, what of the daring Irishman and his old barrel of a ship? The fugitives once safe off the land, all our interest centred in the CHANCE. We watched her until she drew in so closely to the seething cauldron of breakers that it was only occasionally we could distinguish her outline; and the weather was becoming so thick and dirty, the light so bad, that we were reluctantly compelled to lose sight of her, although the skipper believed that he saw her in the midst of the turmoil of broken water at the western end of the mighty mass of perpendicular cliff before described. Happily for us, the wind veered to the westward, releasing us from the prospect of another enforced visit to the wild regions south of the island. It blew harder than ever; but being now a fair wind up the Straits, we fled before it, anchoring again in Port William before midnight. Here we were compelled to remain for a week; for after the gale blew itself out, the wind still hung in the same quarter, refusing to allow us to get back again to our cruising station.
Meanwhile, what happened to the daring Irishman and his old barrel of a ship? Once the fugitives were safely away from the land, all our attention turned to the CHANCE. We kept an eye on her until she got so close to the churning waves that we could only occasionally make out her shape; and the weather was getting so thick and murky, with such poor visibility, that we reluctantly had to lose sight of her, even though the captain thought he saw her amid the chaos of breaking waves at the western edge of the towering cliff we had mentioned. Luckily for us, the wind shifted to the west, freeing us from the worry of another forced trip to the wild areas south of the island. It blew harder than ever; but now that it was a favorable wind up the Straits, we sped ahead, anchoring again in Port William before midnight. Here we had to stay for a week; because after the storm passed, the wind remained in the same direction, preventing us from returning to our cruising spot.
But on the second day of our enforced detention a ship poked her jibboom round the west end of the little bay. No words could describe our condition of spellbound astonishment when she rounded-to, cumbrously as befitting a ship towing a whale, and revealed to us the well-remembered outlines of the old CHANCE. It was like welcoming the first-fruits of the resurrection; for who among sailor men, having seen a vessel disappear from their sight, as we had, under such terrible conditions, would ever have expected to see her again? She was hardly anchored before our skipper was alongside, thirsting to satisfy his unbounded curiosity as to the unheard-of means whereby she had escaped such apparently inevitable destruction. I was fortunate enough to accompany him, and hear the story at first-hand.
But on the second day of our forced stay, a ship appeared around the west end of the little bay. No words could express our stunned amazement when she came to a stop, awkwardly, like a ship towing a whale, and revealed the familiar outlines of the old CHANCE. It felt like welcoming the first signs of life after a resurrection; for who among sailors, having watched a vessel vanish from their sight, as we did, under such dire circumstances, would ever expect to see her again? She was barely anchored before our captain was at her side, eager to satisfy his endless curiosity about the incredible way she had escaped what seemed like certain destruction. I was lucky enough to go with him and hear the story directly.
It appeared that none of the white men on board, except the redoubtable Paddy himself, had ever been placed in so seemingly hopeless and desperate a position before. Yet when they saw how calm and free from anxiety their commander was, how cool and business-like the attitude of all their dusky shipmates, their confidence in his ability and resourcefulness kept its usual high level. It must be admitted that the test such feelings were then subjected to was of the severest, for to their eyes no possible avenue of escape was open. Along that glaring line of raging, foaming water not a break occurred, not the faintest indication of an opening anywhere wherein even so experienced a pilot as Paddy might thrust a ship. The great black wall of rock loomed up by their side, grim and pitiless as doom—a very door of adamant closed against all hope. Nearer and nearer they drew, until the roar of the baffled Pacific was deafening, maddening, in its overwhelming volume of chaotic sound. All hands stood motionless, with eyes fixed in horrible fascination upon the indescribable vortex to which they were being irresistibly driven.
It seemed that none of the white men on board, except the formidable Paddy himself, had ever been in such a seemingly hopeless and desperate situation before. Yet when they saw how calm and untroubled their commander was, and how cool and focused all their dark-skinned shipmates were, their confidence in his skills and resourcefulness remained high. It must be acknowledged that the test these feelings faced was extremely tough, as to them, there seemed to be no possible way out. Along that bright line of turbulent, foaming water, there was not a single break, not the slightest sign of an opening anywhere where even an experienced pilot like Paddy might navigate a ship. The massive black wall of rock towered beside them, grim and merciless as fate—a solid barrier closed against all hope. They drew closer and closer, until the roar of the frustrated Pacific was deafening, maddening, in its overwhelming chaotic sound. Everyone stood still, eyes fixed in horrified fascination on the indescribable whirlpool to which they were being inexorably pulled.
At last, just as the fringes of the back-beaten billows hissed up to greet them, they felt her motion ease. Instinctively looking aft, they saw the skipper coolly wave his hand, signing to them to trim the yards. As they hauled on the weather braces, she plunged through the maelstrom of breakers, and before they had got the yards right round they were on the other side of that enormous barrier, the anchor was dropped, and all was still. The vessel rested, like a bird on her nest, in a deep, still tarn, shut in, to all appearance, on every side by huge rock barriers. Of the furious storm but a moment before howling and raging all around them, nothing remained but an all-pervading, thunderous hum, causing the deck to vibrate beneath them, and high overhead the jagged, leaden remnants of twisted, tortured cloud whirling past their tiny oblong of sky. Just a minute's suspension of all faculties but wonder, then, in one spontaneous, heartfelt note of genuine admiration, all hands burst into a cheer that even overtopped the mighty rumble of the baffled sea.
At last, just as the edges of the previously choppy waves hissed up to greet them, they felt her movement slow down. Instinctively looking back, they saw the skipper calmly wave his hand, signaling them to adjust the sails. As they pulled on the weather braces, she surged through the chaos of the waves, and before they had properly adjusted the sails, they found themselves on the other side of that massive barrier; the anchor was dropped, and everything fell quiet. The vessel rested, like a bird in its nest, in a deep, calm pool, seemingly surrounded on all sides by huge rocky cliffs. Of the furious storm that had just moments before been howling and raging around them, only a deep, thunderous hum remained, causing the deck to vibrate beneath them, while high above, the jagged, dull remnants of twisted clouds whirled past their small slice of sky. Just a minute's pause of all thoughts except wonder, then, with one spontaneous, heartfelt cheer of genuine admiration, the crew erupted into applause that even surpassed the powerful rumble of the frustrated sea.
Here they lay, perfectly secure, and cut in their whale as if in dock; then at the first opportunity they ran out, with fearful difficulty, a kedge with a whale-line attached, by which means they warped the vessel out of her hiding-place—a far more arduous operation than getting in had been. But even this did not exhaust the wonders of that occasion. They had hardly got way upon her, beginning to draw out from the land, when the eagle-eye of one of the Maories detected the carcass of a whale rolling among the breakers about half a mile to the westward. Immediately a boat was lowered, a double allowance of line put into her, and off they went to the valuable flotsam. Dangerous in the highest degree was the task of getting near enough to drive harpoons into the body; but it was successfully accomplished, the line run on board, and the prize hauled triumphantly alongside. This was the whale they had now brought in. We shrewdly suspected that it must have been one of those abandoned by the unfortunate vessels who had fled, but etiquette forbade us saying anything about it. Even had it been, another day would have seen it valueless to any one, for it was by no means otto of roses to sniff at now, while they had certainly salved it at the peril of their lives.
Here they were, completely secure, and resting like a ship in dry dock; then, at the first chance, they managed to pull out a kedge with a whale-line attached, which helped them get the vessel out of her hiding place—a much tougher job than getting in had been. But even this didn’t fully reveal the excitement of that moment. They had barely begun to move away from the shore when one of the Maories, with keen eyesight, spotted the carcass of a whale rolling among the waves about half a mile to the west. Immediately, a boat was lowered, a double length of line was added, and off they went to claim the valuable debris. The task of getting close enough to drive harpoons into the whale was extremely risky, but they succeeded, pulled the line on board, and proudly brought the prize alongside. This was the whale they had just captured. We strongly suspected it had been one left behind by the unfortunate ships that had fled, but it was considered polite not to mention it. Even if that were true, another day would have rendered it worthless to anyone, as it definitely wasn't pleasant to deal with now, even though they had salvaged it at the risk of their lives.
When we returned on board and repeated the story, great was the amazement. Such a feat of seamanship was almost beyond belief; but we were shut up to believing, since in no other way could the vessel's miraculous escape be accounted for. The little, dumpy, red-faced figure, rigged like any scarecrow, that now stood on his cutting-stage, punching away vigorously at the fetid mass of blubber beneath him, bore no outward visible sign of a hero about him; but in our eyes he was transfigured—a being to be thought of reverently, as one who in all those dualities that go to the making of a man had proved himself of the seed royal, a king of men, all the more kingly because unconscious that his deeds were of so exalted an order.
When we got back on the ship and told the story again, everyone was amazed. Such a display of seamanship was almost unbelievable; but we had to accept it, since there was no other explanation for the vessel's miraculous escape. The small, stout, red-faced figure, dressed like a scarecrow, stood on his cutting-stage, vigorously working at the disgusting mass of blubber below him. He didn’t look like a hero at all; but in our eyes, he was transformed—a figure to be admired, as someone who, in all the complexities that make up a person, had proven himself to be of noble stock, a king among men, even more royal because he wasn’t aware that his actions were so extraordinary.
I am afraid that, to a landsman, my panegyric may smack strongly of gush, for no one but a seaman can rightly appraise such doings as these; but I may be permitted to say that, when I think of men whom I feel glad to have lived to know, foremost among them rises the queer little figure of Paddy Gilroy.
I'm afraid that, to someone who doesn't go to sea, my praise might seem a bit over the top, since only a sailor can truly appreciate these kinds of experiences; but I hope I can say that when I think of the people I'm grateful to have known, at the top of that list is the unique little figure of Paddy Gilroy.
CHAPTER XXVII. PORT PEGASUS
The wind still holding steadily in the old quarter, our skipper got very restless. He recalled his former exploits, and, firing at the thought, decided then and there to have a trip round to Port Pegasus, in the hope that he might meet with some of his former good luck in the vicinity of that magnificent bay. With the greatest alacrity we obeyed his summons, handling the old barky as if she were a small boat, and the same morning, for the first time, ran out of the Straits to the eastward past Ruapuke Island. Beautiful weather prevailed, making our trip a delightful one, the wonderful scenery of that coast appealing to even the most callous or indifferent among us. We hugged the land closely, the skipper being familiar with all of it in a general way, so that none of its beauties were lost to us. The breeze holding good, by nightfall we had reached our destination, anchoring in the north arm near a tumbling cascade of glittering water that looked like a long feather laid on the dark-green slope of the steep hill from which it gushed.
The wind was still blowing steadily in the old quarter, and our captain became quite restless. He remembered his past adventures and, inspired by the thought, decided right then to take a trip around to Port Pegasus, hoping to find some of his previous good luck near that beautiful bay. We quickly responded to his call, handling the old ship as if it were a small boat, and that same morning, for the first time, we sailed out of the Straits to the east past Ruapuke Island. The weather was lovely, making our trip enjoyable, and the stunning scenery of the coast appealed to even the most indifferent among us. We stayed close to the land, as the captain was familiar with it, so none of its beauty went unnoticed. With the breeze holding steady, we reached our destination by nightfall, anchoring in the north arm near a tumbling cascade of sparkling water that resembled a long feather laid on the dark-green slope of the steep hill from which it flowed.
We had not been long at anchor before we had visitors—half-breed Maories, who, like the Finns and Canadians, are farmers, fishermen, sailors, and shipwrights, as necessity arises. They brought us potatoes—most welcome of all fruit to the sailor—cabbages, onions, and "mutton birds." This latter delicacy is a great staple of their flesh food, but is one of the strangest dishes imaginable. When it is being cooked in the usual way, i.e. by grilling, it smells exactly like a piece of roasting mutton; but it tastes, to my mind, like nothing else in the world so much as a kippered herring. There is a gastronomical paradox, if you like. Only the young birds are taken for eating. They are found, when unfledged, in holes of the rocks, and weigh sometimes treble as much as their parents. They are exceedingly fat; but this substance is nearly all removed from their bodies before they are hung up in the smoke-houses. They are split open like a haddock, and carefully smoked, after being steeped in brine. Baskets, something like exaggerated strawberry pottles of the old conical shape, are prepared, to hold each about a dozen birds. They are lined with leaves, then packed with the birds, the melted fat being run into all the interstices until the basket is full. The top is then neatly tied up with more leaves, and, thus preserved, the contents will keep in cool weather an indefinite length of time.
We hadn’t been anchored for long before we had some visitors—half-breed Māori, who, like the Finns and Canadians, are farmers, fishermen, sailors, and shipbuilders when needed. They brought us potatoes—the most welcome food for sailors—cabbages, onions, and “mutton birds.” This latter delicacy is a key part of their diet, but it’s one of the strangest dishes you can imagine. When it’s cooked in the usual way, by grilling, it smells just like a piece of roasting mutton; however, to me, it tastes like nothing else in the world more than a kippered herring. That’s a culinary paradox for you. Only the young birds are eaten. They’re found, when they haven’t fledged yet, in rock holes, and sometimes weigh three times as much as their parents. They are incredibly fatty, but most of that fat is removed from their bodies before they’re hung in the smokehouses. They are split open like a haddock and carefully smoked after being soaked in brine. Baskets, somewhat like oversized strawberry containers with the old conical shape, are prepared to hold about a dozen birds each. They’re lined with leaves, then packed with the birds, with the melted fat poured into all the gaps until the basket is full. The top is then neatly tied up with more leaves, and stored this way, the contents can last a long time in cool weather.
Captain Count was soon recognized by some of his old friends, who were delighted to welcome him again. Their faces fell, however, when he told them that his stay was to be very brief, and that he only required four good-sized fish to fill up. Inquiry as to the prevalence of sperm whales in the vicinity elicited the news that they were as plentiful as they had ever been—if anything, more so, since the visits of the whalers had become fewer. There were a couple of "bay" whaling stations existing; but, of course, their success could not be expected to be great among the cachalots, who usually keep a respectful distance from harbours, while they had driven the right whales away almost entirely.
Captain Count was soon recognized by some of his old friends, who were thrilled to see him again. Their excitement faded, however, when he told them that his visit would be very short and that he only needed four good-sized fish to complete his supplies. When he asked about the sperm whales in the area, they informed him that they were as numerous as ever—if not more so—since the whalers had been coming around less frequently. There were a couple of "bay" whaling stations still operating, but naturally, their success was limited with the cachalots, who typically stay far away from harbors, and they had nearly driven the right whales away completely.
No one could help being struck by the manly bearing, splendid physique, and simple manners of the inhabitants. If ever it falls to the lot of any one, as I hope it will, to establish a sperm whale fishery in these regions, there need be no lack of workers while such grand specimens of manhood abound there as we saw—all, moreover, fishermen and whalers from their earliest days.
No one could help but notice the strong presence, impressive physique, and straightforward manner of the locals. If someone ever gets the chance, as I hope they do, to start a sperm whale fishery in these areas, there will be no shortage of workers with such amazing examples of manhood around us—all of whom have been fishermen and whalers since they were young.
We did not go far afield, but hovered within ten or fifteen miles of the various entrances, so as not to be blown off the land in case of sudden bad weather. Even with that timid offing, we were only there two days, when an enormous school of sperm whales hove in sight. I dare not say how many I believe there were, and my estimate really might be biassed; but this I know, that in no given direction could one look to seaward and not see many spouts.
We didn't go far, just stayed within ten or fifteen miles of the different entrances, so we wouldn't get blown away by unexpected bad weather. Even staying that close, we were only there for two days when an enormous group of sperm whales appeared. I can't say exactly how many there were, and my estimate might be biased; but I know that in any direction you looked out to sea, you could see plenty of spouts.
We got among them and had a good time, being more hampered by the curiosity of the unattached fish than by the pugnacity of those under our immediate attention. So we killed three, and by preconcerted signal warned the watchers on the lofty points ashore of our success. As speedily as possible off came four boats from the shore stations, and hooked on to two of our fish, while we were busy with the third. The wind being off shore, what there was of it, no time was to be lost, in view of the well-known untrustworthiness of the weather; so we started to cut-in at once, while the shore people worked like giants to tow the other two in. Considering the weakness of their forces, they made marvellous progress; but seeing how terribly exhausting the toil was, one could not help wishing them one of the small London tugs, familiarly known as "jackals," which would have snaked those monsters along at three or four knots an hour.
We got in among them and had a great time, being more slowed down by the curiosity of the free fish than by the aggression of those we were focusing on. So we caught three, and by a prearranged signal, we let the watchers on the high points onshore know about our success. As quickly as possible, four boats came from the shore stations and hooked onto two of our fish while we worked on the third. With the wind blowing off the shore, whatever wind there was, we couldn’t waste any time because of the well-known unpredictability of the weather; so we started to cut in right away, while the shore team worked hard to tow the other two in. Considering their limited resources, they made impressive progress; but seeing how exhausting the work was, one couldn’t help wishing they had one of the small London tugs, commonly called "jackals," which would have dragged those massive fish along at three or four knots an hour.
However, all went well; the usual gale did blow but not till we had got the last piece aboard and a good "slant" to run in, arriving at our previous moorings at midnight. In the morning the skipper went down in his boat to visit the stations, and see how they had fared. Old hand as he was, I think he was astonished to see what progress those fellows had made with the fish. They did not reach the stations till after midnight, but already they had the whales half flenched, and, by the way they were working, it looked as if they would be through with their task as soon as we were with ours. Their agreement with the skipper was to yield us half the oil they made, and, if agreeable to them, we would take their moiety at L40 per tun. Consequently they had something to work for, even though there were twenty of them to share the spoil. They were a merry party, eminently good tempered, and working as though one spirit animated them all. If there was a leader of the band, he did his office with great subtilty, for all seemed equal, nor did any appear to need directing what to do. Fired by their example, we all worked our hardest; but they beat us by half a day, mainly, I think, by dint of working nearly all the time with scarce any interval for sleep. True, they were bound to take advantage of low water when their huge prize was high and dry—to get at him easily all round. Their method was of the simplest. With gaff-hooks to haul back the pieces, and short-handled spades for cutting, they worked in pairs, taking off square slabs of blubber about a hundredweight each. As soon as a piece was cut off, the pair tackled on to it, dragging it up to the pots, where the cooks hastily sliced it for boiling, interspersing their labours with attention to the simmering cauldrons.
However, everything went smoothly; the usual strong wind did blow, but not until we had loaded the last piece and had a good angle to come in, reaching our previous location at midnight. In the morning, the captain took his boat to check on the stations and see how they had done. Although he was experienced, I think he was surprised to see the progress those guys had made with the fish. They didn't arrive at the stations until after midnight, but they had already half-processed the whales, and by the way they were working, it looked like they would finish their task as soon as we finished ours. Their agreement with the captain was to give us half the oil they produced, and if it was okay with them, we would buy their share at £40 per ton. So they had plenty of motivation, even though there were twenty of them sharing the rewards. They were a cheerful group, very good-natured, and working as if they were all driven by the same spirit. If there was a leader among them, he did his job subtly, as everyone seemed equal, and no one looked like they needed direction on what to do. Inspired by their example, we all worked our hardest, but they beat us by half a day, mainly because they worked almost nonstop with very little time for sleep. It's true they took advantage of low tide when their enormous catch was high and dry, making it easier to work around it. Their method was quite simple. Using gaff-hooks to pull pieces in and short-handled shovels for cutting, they worked in pairs, removing square slabs of blubber weighing about a hundred pounds each. As soon as a piece was cut off, the pair would grab it, dragging it up to the pots, where the cooks quickly sliced it for boiling, mixing their work with checking on the simmering pots.
Their efforts realized twenty-four tuns of clear oil and spermaceti, of which, according to bargain, we took twelve, the captain buying the other twelve for L480, as previously arranged. This latter portion, however, was his private venture, and not on ship's account, as he proposed selling it at the Bluff, when we should call there on our way home. So that we were still two whales short of our quantity. What a little space it did seem to fill up! Our patience was sorely tested, when, during a whole week following our last haul, we were unable to put to sea. In vain we tried all the old amusements of fishing, rambling, bathing, etc.; they had lost their "bite;" we wanted to get home. At last the longed-for shift of wind came and set us free. We had hardly got well clear of the heads before we saw a school of cachalots away on the horizon, some twelve miles off the land to the southward. We made all possible sail in chase, but found, to our dismay, that they were "making a passage," going at such a rate that unless the wind freshened we could hardly hope to come up with them. Fortunately, we had all day before us, having quitted our moorings soon after daylight; and unless some unforeseen occurrence prevented us from keeping up our rate of speed, the chances were that some time before dark they would ease up and allow us to approach them. They were heading to the westward, perhaps somewhat to the northward withal, to all appearance making for the Solander. Hour after hour crawled by, while we still seemed to preserve our relative distance, until we had skirted the southern shore of the island and entered the area, of our old fishing ground. Two vessels were cruising thereon, well to the northward, and we thought with glee of the excitement that would seize them did they but gain an inkling of our chase.
Their efforts resulted in twenty-four barrels of clear oil and spermaceti, of which we took twelve as agreed, while the captain bought the other twelve for £480, as arranged earlier. However, that latter portion was his private deal, not for the ship, since he planned to sell it at the Bluff when we stopped there on our way home. That left us still two whales short of our target. It seemed to take up so little space! Our patience was really tested during the whole week after our last catch, when we couldn't get out to sea. We tried all the usual distractions—fishing, exploring, swimming, etc.—but they had lost their appeal; we just wanted to get home. Finally, the much-anticipated change in the wind came and set us free. We had barely cleared the heads when we spotted a school of sperm whales on the horizon, about twelve miles off the southern shore. We made all possible sail to chase them, but to our dismay, they were moving fast, going at such a pace that unless the wind picked up, we could hardly hope to catch up. Fortunately, we had all day, having left our moorings shortly after dawn. Unless something unexpected happened to slow us down, we had a good chance of getting close before dark. They were heading west, possibly a bit north, clearly making for the Solander. Hour after hour passed, and we still seemed to keep the same distance until we skirted the southern shore of the island and entered the area of our old fishing ground. Two vessels were cruising up ahead, and we thought with excitement about the thrill they would experience if they caught wind of our chase.
To our great delight, what we had hoped, but hardly dared expect, came to pass. The school, as if with one impulse, hauled up on their course four points, which made them head direct for the western verge of the Solander ground, and—what was more important to us—made our coming up with them a matter of a short time. We made the customary signals with the upper sails to our friends to the northward, who recognized them immediately, and bore down towards us. Not only had the school shifted their course, but they had slackened speed; so that by four o'clock we were able to lower for them at less than a mile distance.
To our great delight, what we had hoped for but hardly dared to expect happened. The school, as if propelled by a common urge, changed their course four points, heading straight for the western edge of the Solander ground, and—more importantly for us—made it easy for us to catch up with them in no time. We signaled to our friends to the north with the upper sails, who immediately recognized them and came closer. Not only had the school changed direction, but they had also slowed down; by four o'clock, we were able to lower our sails for them at less than a mile away.
It was an ideal whaling day—smooth water, a brisk breeze, a brilliant sun, and plenty of whales. I was, as became my position, in the rear when we went into action, and hardly hoped for an opportunity of doing much but dance attendance upon my seniors. But fortune favoured me. Before I had any idea whether the chief was fast or not, all other considerations were driven clean out of my head by the unexpected apparition of a colossal head, not a ship's length away, coming straight for us, throwing up a swell in front of him like an ironclad. There was barely time to sheer to one side, when the giant surged past us in a roar of foaming sea, the flying flakes of which went right over us. Samuela was "all there," though, and as the great beast passed he plunged a harpoon into him with such force and vigour that the very socket entered the blubber it needed all the strength I could muster, even with such an aid as the nineteen-feet steer-oar, to swing the boat right round in his wake, and prevent her being capsized by his headlong rush.
It was the perfect day for whaling—calm waters, a fresh breeze, bright sunshine, and lots of whales. As was typical for my role, I was at the back when we got into action, not really expecting to do much apart from supporting my seniors. But luck was on my side. Before I even knew if the chief had caught anything, all other thoughts vanished from my mind when a massive head suddenly appeared, just a ship's length away, coming straight at us, creating a wave in front of it like a battleship. There was barely time to steer to the side when the giant surged past us with a roar of churning sea, and the splashes flew over us. But Samuela was completely focused, and as the enormous creature passed, he threw his harpoon into it with such strength that the socket went right into the blubber. It took all the strength I had, even with the help of the nineteen-foot steer-oar, to swing the boat around in its wake and keep it from being overturned by its rush.
For, contrary to the usual practice, he paused not an instant, but rather quickened his pace, as if spurred. Heavens, how he went! The mast and sail had to come down—and they did, but I hardly know how. The spray was blinding, coming in sheets over the bows, so that I could hardly see how to steer in the monster's wake. He headed straight for the ship, which lay-to almost motionless, filling me with apprehension lest he should in his blind flight dash that immense mass of solid matter into her broadside, and so put an inglorious end to all our hopes. What their feelings on board must have been, I can only imagine, when they saw the undeviating rush of the gigantic creature straight for them. On he went, until I held my breath for the crash, when at the last moment, and within a few feet of the ship's side, he dived, passing beneath the vessel. We let go line immediately, as may be supposed; but although we had been towing with quite fifty fathoms drift, our speed had been so great that we came up against the old ship with a crash that very nearly finished us. He did not run any further just then, but sounded for about two hundred and fifty fathoms, rising to the surface in quite another mood. No more running away from him. I cannot say I felt any of the fierce joy of battle at the prospect before me. I had a profound respect for the fighting qualities of the sperm whale, and, to tell the truth, would much rather have run twenty miles behind him than have him turn to bay in his present parlous humour. It was, perhaps, fortunate for me that there was a crowd of witnesses, the other ships being now quite near enough to see all that was going on, since the feeling that my doings were full in view of many experts and veterans gave me a determination that I would not disgrace either myself or my ship; besides, I felt that this would probably be our last whale this voyage, if I did not fail, and that was no small thing to look forward to.
Because, unlike usual practice, he didn’t hesitate for even a moment; instead, he sped up as if urged on. Heavens, how he moved! The mast and sail had to come down—and they did, but I can hardly explain how. The spray was blinding, crashing over the bows in sheets, making it hard to see how to steer in the creature's wake. He headed straight for the ship, which was almost completely still, filling me with dread that he might, in his reckless rush, smash that massive solid body into her side, placing an ignoble end to all our hopes. I can only imagine what the crew must have felt when they saw the giant creature hurtling straight toward them. He kept going until I braced myself for the impact, when at the last moment, just a few feet away from the ship’s side, he dove beneath the vessel. We let go of the line immediately, as you can imagine; but even though we had been towing for about fifty fathoms, our speed was so great that we crashed against the old ship in a way that almost finished us off. He didn’t run away further just then, but dove down to about two hundred and fifty fathoms, surfacing with a much different attitude. No more running from him. I can’t say I felt any fierce joy for the battle ahead. I had a deep respect for the fighting ability of the sperm whale, and to be honest, I would have much preferred to trail him for twenty miles than have him turn to face me in his current dangerous mood. Perhaps it was fortunate for me that there was a crowd of witnesses, as the other ships were now close enough to see everything happening. The thought that many experts and veterans were watching gave me the determination not to disgrace myself or my ship; moreover, I sensed that this would likely be our last whale of the voyage if I didn’t succeed, and that was no small thing to anticipate.
All these things, so tedious in the telling, flashed through my mind, while, with my eyes glued to the huge bulk of my antagonist or the hissing vortices above him when he settled, I manoeuvred my pretty craft with all the skill I could summon. For what seemed a period of about twenty minutes we dodged him as he made the ugliest rushes at us. I had not yet changed ends with Samuela, as customary, for I felt it imperative to keep the helm while this game was being played. My trusty Kanaka, however, had a lance ready, and I knew, if he only got the ghost of a chance, no man living would or could make better use of it.
All these tedious things flashed through my mind while I kept my eyes fixed on the huge size of my opponent or the hissing whirlwinds above him when he settled down. I maneuvered my small boat with all the skill I could muster. For what felt like about twenty minutes, we dodged him as he made some pretty wild attacks on us. I hadn't switched places with Samuela, as usual, because I felt it was crucial to stay at the helm while this was happening. My loyal Kanaka, however, had a lance ready, and I knew that if he got even the slightest opportunity, no one would use it better than him.
The whole affair was growing monotonous as well as extremely wearying. Perhaps I was a little off my guard; at any rate, my heart almost leaped into my mouth when just after an ugly rush past us, which I thought had carried him to a safe distance, he stopped dead, lifted his flukes, and brought them down edgeways with a vicious sweep that only just missed the boat's gunwale and shore off the two oars on that side as if they had been carrots. This serious disablement would certainly have led to disaster but for Samuela. Prompt and vigorous, he seized the opportune moment when the whale's side was presented just after the blow, sending his lance quivering home all its length into the most vital part of the leviathan's anatomy. Turning his happy face to me, he shouted exultingly, "How's dat fer high?"—a bit of slang he had picked up, and his use of which never failed to make me smile. "High" it was indeed—a master-stroke. It must have pierced the creature's heart, for he immediately began to spout blood in masses, and without another wound went into his flurry and died.
The whole situation was becoming repetitive and really exhausting. Maybe I was a bit off my guard; in any case, my heart nearly jumped when, right after an awkward rush past us, which I thought had carried him far enough away, he suddenly stopped, lifted his fins, and brought them down at an angle with a vicious swing that just barely missed the edge of the boat and sliced through the two oars on that side like they were nothing. This serious damage would definitely have led to disaster if it weren't for Samuela. Quick and determined, he took the perfect opportunity when the whale's side was exposed right after the attack, driving his harpoon deep into the most crucial part of the giant creature's body. Turning his cheerful face to me, he shouted triumphantly, "How's dat fer high?"—a bit of slang he had picked up, and his way of saying it always made me smile. "High" it was indeed—a masterstroke. It must have pierced the creature's heart because he immediately started to spout blood in huge amounts, and without needing another hit, he went into his flurry and died.
Then came the reaction. I must have exerted myself beyond what I had any idea of, for to Samuela I was obliged to delegate the task of fluke-boring, while I rested a little. The ship was soon alongside, though, and the whale secured. There was more yet to be done before we could rest, in spite of our fatigue. The other boats had been so successful that they had got two big fish, and what we were to do with them was a problem not easily solvable. By dint of great exertion, we managed to get another whale alongside, but were fain to come to some arrangement with the ELIZA ADAMS, one of the ships that had been unsuccessful, to take over our other whale on an agreement to render us one-third of the product either in Port William or at home, if she should not find us is the former place.
Then came the reaction. I must have pushed myself harder than I realized, because I had to let Samuela take over the job of boring the flukes while I rested a bit. The ship was soon alongside, though, and the whale was secured. There was still more to do before we could rest, despite our exhaustion. The other boats had been so successful that they had caught two big fish, and figuring out what to do with them was not an easy problem to solve. With a lot of effort, we managed to get another whale alongside, but we needed to come to an arrangement with the ELIZA ADAMS, one of the ships that hadn’t succeeded, to take on our other whale in exchange for a third of the product either in Port William or at home, if she didn’t find us in the former place.
Behold us, then, in the gathering dusk with a whale on either side, every stitch of canvas we could show set and drawing, straining every nerve to get into the little port again, with the pleasant thought that we were bringing with us all that was needed to complete our well-earned cargo. Nobody wanted to go below; all hands felt that it was rest enough to hang over the rail on either side and watch the black masses as they surged through the gleaming sea. They represented so much to us. Very little was said, but all hearts were filled with a deep content, a sense of a long season of toil fitly crowned with complete success; nor was any depression felt at the long, long stretch of stormy ocean between us and our home port far away in the United States. That would doubtless come by-and-by, when within less than a thousand miles of New Bedford; but at present all sense of distance from home was lost in the overmastering thought that soon it would be our only business to get there as quickly as possible, without any avoidable loitering on the road.
So here we are, in the fading light with a whale on each side, every piece of canvas we could display set and drawing, pushing ourselves to get back into the little port again, happy that we were bringing back everything needed to complete our hard-earned cargo. Nobody wanted to go below deck; everyone felt it was enough to lean over the rail on either side and watch the dark shapes as they moved through the shimmering sea. They meant so much to us. Very little was said, but everyone felt a deep sense of contentment, a feeling that a long season of hard work had been fittingly rewarded with complete success; there was no sense of gloom about the long, stormy stretch of ocean between us and our faraway home port in the United States. That feeling would likely come later, when we were less than a thousand miles from New Bedford; but right now, all sense of distance from home faded in the overwhelming thought that soon we would be focused on getting there as quickly as possible, without any unnecessary delays on the way.
We made an amazing disturbance in the darkness of the sea with our double burthen, so much so that one of the coasting steamers changed her course a bit to range up by our side in curiosity. We were scarcely going two and a half knots, in spite of the row we made, and there was hardly room for wonder at the steamboat captain's hail, "Want any assistance?" "No, thank you," was promptly returned, although there was little doubt that all hands would have subscribed towards a tow into port, in case the treacherous weather should, after all, play us a dirty trick. But it looked as if our troubles were over. No hitch occurred in our steady progress, slow though it necessarily was, and as morning lifted the heavy veil from the face of the land, we arrived at our pretty little haven, and quietly came to an anchor. The CHANCE was in port wind-bound, looking, like ourselves, pretty low in the water. No sooner did Paddy hear the news of our arrival in such fine trim than he lowered his boat and hurried on board of us, his face beaming with delight. Long and loud were his congratulations, especially when he heard that we should now be full. Moreover, he offered—nor would he take any denial—to come with the whole of his crew and help us finish.
We caused quite a stir in the dark sea with our heavy load, so much so that one of the nearby steamers changed its course to check us out. We were barely moving at two and a half knots despite the commotion, so it was no surprise when the steamboat captain called out, "Need any help?" "No, thanks," was our quick reply, although it was clear that everyone would have pitched in for a tow into port if the tricky weather decided to mess with us. But it seemed like our troubles were behind us. Our slow but steady progress went uninterrupted, and as morning lifted the thick fog from the shore, we reached our charming little harbor and dropped anchor. The CHANCE was already in port, stuck by the wind, looking pretty low in the water like us. As soon as Paddy heard we had arrived in such good shape, he lowered his boat and rushed aboard, his face lit up with happiness. His congratulations were loud and long, especially when he learned we would be fully loaded. Plus, he insisted—refusing to take no for an answer—that he and his entire crew come help us finish up.
For the next four days and nights, during which the wind prevented the CHANCE from leaving us, our old ship was a scene of wild revelry, that ceased not through the twenty-four hours—revelry entirely unassisted by strong waters, too, the natural ebullient gaiety of men who were free from anxiety on any account whatever, rejoicing over the glad consummation of more than two years toil, on the one hand; on the other, a splendid sympathy in joy manifested by the satisfied crew under the genial command of Captain Gilroy. With their cheerful help we made wonderful progress; and when at last the wind hauled into a favourable quarter, and they were compelled to leave us, the back of our work was broken, only the tedious task of boiling being left to finish.
For the next four days and nights, while the wind kept the CHANCE from sailing away, our old ship was filled with wild celebrations that lasted around the clock—celebrations without the help of strong drinks, just the natural high spirits of men who were free from any worries, celebrating the joyful end of more than two years of hard work. On the other hand, there was a wonderful sense of happiness shared among the satisfied crew under the friendly leadership of Captain Gilroy. With their cheerful support, we made amazing progress; and when the wind finally shifted in our favor and they had to leave us, we had already made significant headway, leaving only the tedious task of boiling to finish up.
Never, I am sure, did two ships' companies part with more hearty good-will than ours. As the ungainly old tub surged slowly out of the little harbour, her worn-out and generally used-up appearance would have given a Board of Trade Inspector the nightmare; the piratical looks of her crowd were enough to frighten a shipload of passengers into fits; but to us who had seen their performances in all weathers, and under all circumstances, accidental externals had no weight in biassing our high opinion of them all. Good-bye, old ship; farewell, jolly captain and sturdy crew; you will never be forgotten any more by us while life lasts, and in far other and more conventional scenes we shall regretfully remember the free-and-easy time we shared with you. So she slipped away round the point and out of our lives for ever.
Never, I’m sure, did two ship crews part with more genuine goodwill than ours. As the clumsy old vessel slowly pushed out of the small harbor, her worn-out and generally shabby look would have given any Board of Trade Inspector a nightmare; the rough appearance of her crew could have scared a shipload of passengers into a panic. But for us, who had witnessed their efforts in all kinds of weather and circumstances, those superficial details didn’t affect our high opinion of them at all. Goodbye, old ship; farewell, cheerful captain and tough crew; you will always be remembered by us for the rest of our lives, and in far different and more ordinary situations, we will fondly recall the carefree times we had with you. Then she slipped away around the point and out of our lives forever.
By dint of steady hard work we managed to get the last of our greasy work done in four days more, then faced with a will the job of stowing afresh the upper tiers of casks, in view of our long journey home. The oil bought by the skipper on private venture was left on deck, secured to the lash-rail, for discharging at the Bluff, while our stock of water-casks were carefully overhauled and recoopered prior to being stowed in their places below. Of course, we had plenty of room in the hold, since no ship would carry herself full of casks of oil; but I doubt whether, if we had borne a "Plimsoll's mark," it would not have been totally submerged, so deep did we lie. Wooding and watering came next—a different affair to our casual exercises in those directions before. Provision had to be made now for a possible four or five months' passage, during which we hoped to avoid any further calls, so that the accumulation of firewood alone was no small matter. We cleared the surrounding neighbourhood of potatoes at a good price, those useful tubers being all they could supply us with for sea-stock, much to their sorrow.
Through consistent hard work, we managed to finish the last of our messy tasks in four more days, then tackled the job of packing the upper tiers of barrels again for our long journey home. The oil bought by the captain for personal reasons was left on deck, tied to the lash-rail, to be offloaded at the Bluff, while we carefully inspected and repaired our water barrels before stowing them below. Naturally, we had plenty of space in the hold, since no ship would fill up entirely with oil barrels; however, I suspect that if we had followed a "Plimsoll's mark," we would have been completely submerged, given how low we sat in the water. Next came the wood and water gathering—a different situation compared to our earlier casual efforts. We needed to prepare for a potential four or five-month journey, during which we hoped to avoid any additional stops, so collecting firewood alone was no small task. We cleared the local area of potatoes at a good price, as those helpful tubers were the only thing they could provide us for supplies at sea, much to their regret.
Then came the most unpleasant part of the whole business—for me. It had been a part of the agreement made with the Kanakas that they were not to be taken home with us, but returned to their island upon the termination of the whaling. Now, the time had arrived when we were to part, and I must confess that I felt very sorry to leave them. They had proved docile, useful, and cheerful; while as for my harpooner and his mate Polly, no man could have wished for smarter, better, or more faithful helpers than they were. Strong as their desire was to return to their homes, they too felt keenly the parting with us; for although they had unavoidably suffered much from the inclemency of the weather—so different from anything they had ever previously experienced—they had been kindly treated, and had moved on precisely the same footing as the rest of the crew. They wept like little children when the time arrived for them to leave us, declaring that if ever we came to their island again they would use all their endeavours to compel us to remain, assuring us that we should want for nothing during the rest of our lives, if we would but take up our abode with them. The one exception to all this cordiality was Sam. His ideas were running in quite other channels. To regain his lost status as ruler of the island, with all the opportunities for indulging his animal propensities which such a position gave him, was the problem he had set himself, and to the realization of these wishes he had determinedly bent all his efforts.
Then came the hardest part of the whole situation—for me. It had been agreed with the Kanakas that they would not be taken home with us but returned to their island once the whaling was over. Now, the time had come for us to part ways, and I have to admit I felt really sad to leave them. They had been calm, helpful, and cheerful; as for my harpooner and his mate Polly, no one could have asked for smarter, better, or more loyal helpers than they were. Even though they were eager to return to their homes, they too felt the sadness of parting from us. They had endured a lot because of the harsh weather—so different from anything they had ever faced before—but they had been treated well and were on equal terms with the rest of the crew. They cried like little kids when it was time for them to leave, saying that if we ever came to their island again, they would do everything they could to make us stay, promising that we would want for nothing if we lived with them. The only one not sharing this warmth was Sam. His thoughts were focused elsewhere. Regaining his lost status as ruler of the island, along with all the chances to satisfy his base instincts that came with that position, was his main goal, and he was determined to put all his efforts into achieving that.
Thus he firmly declined the offer of a passage back in the ELIZA ADAMS, which our captain secured for all the Kanakas; preferring to be landed at the Bluff, with the goodly sum of money to which he was entitled, saying that he had important business to transact in Sydney before he returned. This business, he privately informed me, was the procuring of arms and ammunition wherewith to make war upon his rival. Of course we could not prevent him, although it did seem an abominable thing to let loose the spirit of slaughter among those light-hearted natives just to satisfy the ambition of an unscrupulous negro. But, as I have before noticed, from information received many years after I learned that he had been successful in his efforts, though at what cost to life I do not know.
So he strongly turned down the offer of a ride back on the ELIZA ADAMS, which our captain secured for all the Kanakas; he preferred to be dropped off at the Bluff with the good amount of money he was owed, saying he had important business to take care of in Sydney before returning. This business, he privately told me, was getting weapons and ammunition to go to war against his rival. Of course, we couldn't stop him, although it seemed terrible to unleash violence among those carefree natives just to satisfy the ambition of a ruthless man. But, as I mentioned before, from information I received many years later, I learned that he was successful in his efforts, though I don’t know at what cost to life.
So our dusky friends left us, with a good word from every one, and went on board the ELIZA ADAMS, whose captain promised to land them at Futuna, within six months. How he carried out his promise, I do not know; but, for the poor fellows' sakes, I trust he kept his word.
So our dark-skinned friends left us, with a kind word from everyone, and boarded the ELIZA ADAMS, whose captain promised to drop them off at Futuna within six months. I don’t know how he fulfilled his promise, but for the sake of the poor guys, I hope he kept his word.
CHAPTER XXVIII. TO THE BLUFF, AND HOME
And now the cruise of the good old whaling barque CACHALOT, as far as whaling is concerned, comes to an end. For all practical purposes she becomes a humdrum merchantman in haste to reach her final port of discharge, and get rid of her cargo. No more will she loiter and pry around anything and everything, from an island to a balk of drift-wood, that comes in her way, knowing not the meaning of "waste of time." The "crow's-nests" are dismantled, taut topgallant-masts sent up, and royal yards crossed. As soon as we get to sea we shall turn-to and heave that ancient fabric of bricks and mortar—always a queer-looking erection to be cumbering a ship's deck—piecemeal over the side. It has long been shaky and weather-beaten; it will soon obstruct our movements no more. Our rigging has all been set up and tarred down; we have painted hull and spars, and scraped wherever the wood-work is kept bright. All gear belonging to whaling has been taken out of the boats, carefully cleaned, oiled, and stowed away for a "full due." Two of the boats have been taken inboard, and stowed bottom-up upon the gallows aft, as any other merchantman carries them. At last, our multifarious preparations completed, we ride ready for sea.
And now the journey of the old whaling ship CACHALOT comes to an end as far as whaling goes. For all intents and purposes, she turns into a regular merchant ship, eager to reach her final port and unload her cargo. No longer will she linger and investigate anything that crosses her path, whether it’s an island or a piece of driftwood, unaware of what "waste of time" means. The "crow's-nests" are taken apart, sturdy topgallant-masts are raised, and royal yards are crossed. As soon as we’re at sea, we’ll get to work and toss that old structure of bricks and mortar—always a strange-looking thing taking up space on the ship’s deck—overboard piece by piece. It has long been shaky and weathered; soon it won’t hinder our movements anymore. Our rigging is all set up and tarred down; we’ve painted the hull and spars and cleaned up wherever the woodwork needs to shine. All the whaling gear has been removed from the boats, carefully cleaned, oiled, and stored away for later use. Two of the boats have been brought onboard and stowed upside down on the gallows at the back, just like any other merchant ship would carry them. Finally, with our various preparations complete, we’re ready to set sail.
It was quite in accordance with the fitness of things that, when all things were now ready for our departure, there should come a change of wind that threatened to hold us prisoners for some days longer. But our "old man" was hard to beat, and he reckoned that, if we could only get out of the "pond," he would work her across to the Bluff somehow or other. So we ran out a kedge with a couple of lines to it, and warped her out of the weather side of the harbour, finding, when at last we got her clear, that she would lay her course across the Straits to clear Ruapuke—nearly; but the current had to be reckoned with. Before we reached that obstructing island we were down at the eastern end of it, and obliged to anchor promptly to save ourselves from being swept down the coast many miles to leeward of our port.
It was pretty much expected that, right when everything was ready for us to leave, a change in the wind would come along and possibly keep us stuck for a few more days. But our "old man" was tough to outsmart, and he figured that if we could just get out of the "pond," he would somehow manage to get us across to the Bluff. So, we let out a kedge with a couple of lines attached and pulled her out of the windward side of the harbor. When we finally got her clear, we found she could head across the Straits almost to clear Ruapuke; however, we had to account for the current. By the time we reached that island in the way, we found ourselves at the eastern end of it and had to drop anchor quickly to avoid being swept down the coast many miles away from our port.
But the skipper was quite equal to the occasion. Ordering his boat, he sped away into Bluff harbour, only a matter of six or seven miles, returning soon with a tug, who for a pound or two placed us, without further trouble, alongside the wharf, amongst some magnificent clipper ships of Messrs. Henderson's and the New Zealand Shipping Co.'s, who seemed to turn up their splendid noses at the squat, dumpy, antiquated old serving-mallet that dared to mingle with so august a crowd. There had been a time, not so very far back, when I should have shared their apparent contempt for our homely old tub; but my voyage had taught me, among other things, that, as far as true comfort went at sea, not a "three-skysail-yarder" among them could compare with the CACHALOT. And I was extremely glad that my passage round the Horn was to be in my own ship, and not in a long, snaky tank that, in the language of the sailor, takes a header when she gets outside the harbour, and only comes up two or three times to blow before she gets home.
But the captain was more than up for the challenge. He called for his boat and quickly headed into Bluff harbor, just six or seven miles away, returning soon with a tug that got us alongside the wharf for a pound or two, without any hassle. We were surrounded by incredible clipper ships from Messrs. Henderson and the New Zealand Shipping Co., who seemed to look down their noses at our squat, old, dingy vessel that dared to mingle with such a prestigious fleet. Not too long ago, I would have shared their apparent disdain for our humble old boat; however, my journey had taught me that, when it comes to real comfort at sea, none of those grand "three-skysail-yards" could compare to the CACHALOT. I was really glad that my trip around the Horn was going to be on my own ship and not on some long, snaky tank that, in sailor's terms, takes a nosedive as soon as it leaves the harbor and only pops up a couple of times to breathe before heading home.
Our only reason for visiting this place being to discharge Captain Count's oil, and procure a sea-stock of salt provisions and hard bread, these duties were taken in hand at once. The skipper sold his venture of oil to good advantage, being so pleased with his success that he gave us all a good feed on the strength of it.
Our only reason for visiting this place was to unload Captain Count's oil and get a supply of salt provisions and hard bread, so we jumped right into those tasks. The captain sold his load of oil for a nice profit, and he was so happy with his success that he treated us all to a big meal to celebrate.
As soon as the stores were embarked and everything ready for sea, leave was given to all hands for twenty-four hours, upon the distinct understanding that the privilege was not to be abused, to the detriment of everybody, who, as might be supposed, were anxious to start for home. In order that there might be less temptation to go on the spree generally, a grand picnic was organized to a beautiful valley some distance from the town. Carriages were chartered, an enormous quantity of eatables and drinkables provided, and away we went, a regular wayzgoose or bean-feast party. It was such a huge success, that I have ever since wondered why such outings cannot become usual among sailors on liberty abroad, instead of the senseless, vicious waste of health, time, and hard-earned wages which is general. But I must not let myself loose upon this theme again, or we shall never get to sea.
As soon as the supplies were loaded and everything was ready for departure, everyone was given a break for twenty-four hours, with the clear understanding not to overindulge, as everyone was eager to head home. To reduce the temptation of partying excessively, a big picnic was planned in a beautiful valley not far from town. We hired carriages, packed a ton of food and drinks, and off we went for a proper celebration. It was such a huge success that I’ve often wondered why outings like this aren’t more common for sailors on leave instead of the mindless, harmful waste of health, time, and hard-earned money that usually happens. But I shouldn't get carried away on this topic again, or we’ll never get to sea.
Liberty over without any trouble arising, and all hands comfortably on board again, the news ran round that we were to sail in the morning. So, after a good night's rest, we cast loose from the wharf, and, with a little assistance from the same useful tug that brought us in, got fairly out to sea. All sail was set to a strong, steady north-wester, and with yards canted the least bit in the world on the port tack, so that every stitch was drawing, we began our long easterly stretch to the Horn, homeward bound at last.
With everything clear and everyone comfortably back on board, word spread that we would be setting sail in the morning. So, after a good night's sleep, we untied from the wharf and, with a little help from the same helpful tug that brought us in, made our way out to sea. We set all the sails to a strong, steady northwesterly wind, and with the sails angled just slightly on the port tack, we started our long journey east to the Horn, finally heading home.
Favoured by wind and weather, we made an average run of one hundred and eighty miles per day for many days, paying no attention to "great circle sailing," since in such a slow ship the net gain to be secured by going to a high latitude was very small, but dodging comfortably along on about the parallel of 48deg. S., until it became necessary to draw down towards "Cape Stiff," as that dreaded extremity of South America, Cape Horn, is familiarly called by seamen. As we did so, icebergs became numerous, at one time over seventy being in sight at once. Some of them were of immense size—one, indeed, that could hardly be fitly described as an iceberg, but more properly an ice-field, with many bergs rising out of it, being over sixty miles long, while some of its towering peaks were estimated at from five hundred to one thousand feet high. Happily, the weather kept clear; for icebergs and fog make a combination truly appalling to the sailor, especially if there be much wind blowing.
Thanks to favorable winds and weather, we managed to cover an average of one hundred and eighty miles each day for several days, ignoring "great circle sailing," since the advantage of traveling to a higher latitude was minimal in such a slow ship. Instead, we cruised comfortably along around the 48° S latitude until it was time to head down toward "Cape Stiff," the nickname sailors use for the dreaded Cape Horn at the southern tip of South America. As we traveled, icebergs became increasingly common, with over seventy visible at one point. Some were massive—one was so large it was better described as an ice-field with multiple icebergs rising from it, stretching over sixty miles long, while its towering peaks were estimated to be between five hundred and one thousand feet high. Fortunately, the weather remained clear, as icebergs combined with fog can be truly terrifying for sailors, especially in strong winds.
Needless, perhaps, to say, our look-out was of the best, for all hands had a double interest in the safety of the ship. Perhaps it may be thought that any man would have so much regard for the safety of his life that he would not think of sleeping on his look-out; but I can assure my readers that, strange as it may seem, such is not the case, I have known men who could never be trusted not to go to sleep, no matter how great the danger. This is so well recognized in merchant ships that nearly every officer acts as if there was no look-out at all forward, in case his supposed watchman should be having a surreptitious doze.
Needless to say, our lookout was top-notch, as everyone had a vested interest in the ship's safety. It might be assumed that anyone would care enough about their own life not to sleep while on watch, but I assure you, strange as it may sound, that's not always the case. I've seen men who simply can't be trusted to stay awake, no matter how serious the danger. This is so well known in merchant ships that almost every officer behaves as if there's no lookout at all up front, just in case their so-called watchman is sneaking in a quick nap.
Stronger and stronger blew the brave west wind; dirtier, gloomier, and colder grew the weather, until, reduced to two topsails and a reefed foresail, we were scudding dead before the gale for all we were worth. This was a novel experience for us in the CACHALOT, and I was curious to see how she would behave. To my mind, the supreme test of a ship's sea-kindliness is the length of time she will scud before a gale without "pooping" a sea, or taking such heavy water on board over her sides as to do serious damage. Some ships are very dangerous to run at all. Endeavouring to make the best use of the gale which is blowing in the right direction, the captain "hangs on" to all the sail he can carry, until she ships a mighty mass of water over all, so that the decks are filled with wreckage, or, worse still, "poops" a sea. The latter experience is a terrible one, even to a trained seaman. You are running before the wind and waves, sometimes deep in the valley between two liquid mountains, sometimes high on the rolling ridge of one. You watch anxiously the speed of the sea, trying to decide whether it or you are going the faster, when suddenly there seems to be a hush, almost a lull, in the uproar. You look astern, and see a wall of water rising majestically higher and higher, at the same time drawing nearer and nearer. Instinctively you clutch at something firm, and hold your breath. Then that mighty green barrier leans forward, the ship's stern seems to settle at the same time, and, with a thundering noise as of an avalanche descending, it overwhelms you. Of course the ship's way is deadened; she seems like a living thing overburdened, yet struggling to be free; and well it is for all hands if the helmsman be able to keep his post and his wits about him. For if he be hurt, or have fled from the terrible wave, it is an even chance that she "broaches to;" that is to say, swings round broadside on to the next great wave that follows relentlessly its predecessor. Then, helpless and vulnerable, she will most probably be smashed up and founder. Many a good ship has gone with all hands to the bottom just as simply as that.
Stronger and stronger blew the brave west wind; dirtier, gloomier, and colder grew the weather, until, reduced to two topsails and a reefed foresail, we were racing dead before the gale for all we were worth. This was a new experience for us on the CACHALOT, and I was curious to see how she would handle it. To me, the ultimate test of a ship’s ability to handle the sea is how long she can scud before a gale without getting swamped or taking on so much water that it causes serious damage. Some ships are really risky to run at all. Trying to make the most of the gale that’s blowing in our favor, the captain holds on to all the sail he can manage, until the ship takes on a huge amount of water, filling the decks with wreckage, or worse, gets swamped. The latter experience is terrifying, even for an experienced sailor. You’re running before the wind and waves, sometimes deep in the valley between two liquid mountains, sometimes high on the rolling crest of one. You anxiously watch the speed of the sea, trying to decide whether it or you are moving faster, when suddenly there seems to be a hush, almost a lull, in the chaos. You look back and see a wall of water rising majestically, getting closer and closer. Instinctively, you grab onto something solid and hold your breath. Then that massive green wall leans forward, the ship's stern seems to drop at the same time, and with a thunderous sound like an avalanche, it overwhelms you. Of course, the ship slows down; she feels like a living thing weighed down yet fighting to break free; and it's crucial for everyone on board if the helmsman can stay at his post and keep his head. If he gets hurt or runs away from the terrifying wave, there's a good chance she would “broach to;” that is, swing broadside to the next giant wave that follows relentlessly after the first. Then, helpless and exposed, she will most likely be smashed and sink. Many a good ship has gone down with all hands just that simply.
In order to avoid such a catastrophe, the proper procedure is to "heave-to" before the sea has attained so dangerous a height; but even a landsman can understand how reluctant a shipmaster may be to lie like a log just drifting, while a more seaworthy ship is flying along at the rate of, perhaps, three hundred miles a day in the desired direction. Ships of the CACHALOT's bluff build are peculiarly liable to delays of this kind from their slowness, which, if allied to want of buoyancy, makes it necessary to heave-to in good time, if safety is at all cared for.
To prevent such a disaster, the right approach is to "heave-to" before the sea gets dangerously rough; however, even someone unfamiliar with sailing can see why a captain might hesitate to simply float aimlessly while a sturdier ship speeds away at about three hundred miles a day in the right direction. Ships like the CACHALOT, with their broad designs, are especially prone to these kinds of delays due to their slowness, which, combined with insufficient buoyancy, makes it essential to heave-to early if safety is a concern.
To my great astonishment and delight, however, our grand old vessel nobly sustained her character, running on without shipping any heavy water, although sometimes hedged in on either side by gigantic waves that seemed to tower as high as her lowermast heads. Again and again we were caught up and passed by the splendid homeward-bound colonial packets, some of them carrying an appalling press of canvas, under which the long, snaky hulls, often overwhelmed by the foaming seas, were hardly visible, so insignificant did they appear by comparison with the snowy mountain of swelling sail above.
To my great surprise and joy, however, our old ship held her own, sailing on without taking on any heavy water, even though we were sometimes surrounded on both sides by massive waves that seemed to reach as high as her lower masts. Time and time again, we were overtaken by the impressive homeward-bound colonial packets, some of them carrying an overwhelming amount of canvas, under which the long, slender hulls, often swallowed by the crashing seas, were barely visible, looking so small compared to the towering mountain of billowing sail above.
So we fared eastward and ever southward, until in due time up rose the gloomy, storm-scarred crags of the Diego Ramirez rocks, grim outposts of the New World. To us, though, they bore no terrific aspect; for were they not the turning-point from which we could steer north, our head pointed for home? Immediately upon rounding them we hauled up four points, and, with daily improving weather climbed the southern slopes towards the line.
So we headed east and then further south, until eventually the dark, storm-torn cliffs of the Diego Ramirez rocks appeared, a bleak edge of the New World. However, they didn't seem terrifying to us; after all, weren't they the point from which we could turn north, our way back home? As soon as we passed them, we adjusted our course four points north, and with the weather getting better each day, we climbed the southern slopes towards the line.
Very humdrum and quiet the life appeared to all of us, and had it not been for the saving routine of work by day, and watch by night, kept up with all our old discipline, the tedium would have been insupportable after the incessant excitement of expectation to which we had so long been accustomed. Still, our passage was by no means a bad one for a slow ship, being favoured by more than ordinarily steadfast winds until we reached the zone of the south-east trades again, where the usual mild, settled wind and lovely weather awaited us. On and on, unhasting but unresting, we stolidly jogged, by great good fortune slipping across the "doldrums"—that hateful belt of calms about the line so much detested by all sailor-men—without losing the south-east wind.
Life felt very dull and quiet to all of us, and if it hadn’t been for the essential routine of working during the day and keeping watch at night, which we stuck to from our old discipline, the boredom would have been unbearable after the constant excitement of anticipation we had grown so used to. Still, our journey wasn’t bad for a slow ship; we were favored by unusually steady winds until we reached the area of the south-east trades again, where the usual mild winds and beautiful weather welcomed us. We moved on, steadily but tirelessly, as luck would have it, smoothly crossing the "doldrums"—that frustrating zone of calm around the equator that’s so disliked by sailors—without losing the south-east wind.
Not one day of calm delayed us, the north-east trades meeting us like a friend sent to extend a welcoming hand and lend us his assistance on our homeward way. They hung so far to the eastward, too—sometimes actually at east-by-north-that we were able to steer north on the starboard tack—a slice of luck not usually met with. This "slant" put all hands in the best of humours, and already the date of our arrival was settled by the more sanguine ones, as well as excellent plans made for spending the long voyage's earnings.
Not a single day of calm held us back; the northeast trade winds welcomed us like a friend extending a helping hand on our journey home. They blew so far to the east—sometimes even from east-by-north—that we could sail north on the starboard tack, which is a stroke of luck we don’t normally experience. This favorable angle boosted everyone's spirits, and the more optimistic crew members even started predicting our arrival date, along with making great plans for how to spend the profits from the long voyage.
For my part, having been, in spite of my youth, accustomed to so many cruel disappointments and slips between the cup and lip, I was afraid to dwell too hopefully upon the pleasures (?) of getting ashore. And after the incident which I have now to record occurred, I felt more nervous distrust than I had ever felt before at sea since first I began to experience the many vicissitudes of a sailor's life.
For my part, even though I was young, I had already experienced so many harsh disappointments and near misses that I was hesitant to get my hopes up about the joys of reaching land. After the event I’m about to describe happened, I felt a level of nervous uncertainty that I had never felt before at sea since I started facing the various ups and downs of a sailor's life.
We had reached the northern verge of the tropics in a very short time, owing to the favourable cant in the usual direction of the north-east trades before noted, and had been met with north-westerly winds and thick, dirty weather, which was somewhat unusual in so low a latitude. Our look-outs redoubled their vigilance, one being posted on each bow always at night, and relieved every hour, as we were so well manned. We were now on the port tack, of course, heading about north-east-by-north, and right in the track of outward-hound vessels from both the United Kingdom and the States. One morning, about three a.m.—that fateful time in the middle watch when more collisions occur than at any other—suddenly out of the darkness a huge ship seemed to leap right at us. She must have come up in a squall, of which there were many about, at the rate of some twelve knots an hour, having a fair wind, and every rag of sail set. Not a gleam of light was visible anywhere on board of her, and, to judge from all appearances, the only man awake on board was the helmsman.
We quickly reached the northern edge of the tropics, thanks to the favorable angle of the usual north-east trade winds. We encountered north-westerly winds and thick, murky weather, which was somewhat unusual for such a low latitude. Our lookouts increased their vigilance, with one stationed at each bow at night and relieved every hour since we had a well-manned crew. We were now on a port tack, heading about north-east-by-north, directly in the path of outbound vessels from both the UK and the US. One morning, around three a.m.—that notorious time during the middle watch when most collisions happen—a massive ship suddenly appeared out of the darkness, seemingly charging right at us. She must have rushed up in a squall, which were common in that area, going about twelve knots an hour with a favorable wind and every sail raised. Not a single light was visible anywhere on her, and judging by all appearances, the only person awake on board was the helmsman.
We, being "on the wind, close-hauled," were bound by the "rule of the road at sea" to keep our course when meeting a ship running free. The penalty for doing ANYTHING under such circumstances is a severe one. First of all, you do not KNOW that the other ship's crew are asleep or negligent, even though they carry no lights; for, by a truly infernal parsimony, many vessels actually do not carry oil enough to keep their lamps burning all the voyage, and must therefore economize in this unspeakably dangerous fashion. And it may be that just as you alter your course, daring no longer to hold on, and, as you have every reason to believe, be run down, the other man alters his. Then a few breathless moments ensue, an awful crash, and the two vessels tear each other to pieces, spilling the life that they contain over the hungry sea. Even if you escape, YOU are to blame for not keeping your course, unless it can be proved that you were not seen by the running ship.
We, being "on the wind, close-hauled," were required by the "rule of the road at sea" to maintain our course when encountering a ship sailing freely. The consequences of doing ANYTHING else under such circumstances are severe. First of all, you don't KNOW whether the other ship's crew is asleep or careless, even if they aren't displaying any lights; due to a truly reckless stinginess, many vessels actually don't carry enough oil to keep their lamps lit for the entire journey, and must therefore conserve in this incredibly dangerous way. It may happen that just as you change your course, no longer able to hold your position, and with every reason to believe you’ll be run down, the other captain alters his course too. Then a few breathless moments pass, followed by a horrendous crash, and the two vessels collide, tearing each other apart and spilling their contents into the hungry sea. Even if you escape, YOU are still at fault for not maintaining your course, unless it can be proven that you were not visible to the other ship.
Well, we kept our course until, I verily believe, another plunge would have cut us sheer in two halves. At the last moment our helm was put hard down, bringing our vessel right up into the wind at the same moment as the helmsman on board the other vessel caught sight of us, and instinctively put his helm down too. The two vessels swung side by side amidst a thunderous roar of flapping canvas, crackling of fallen spars, and rending of wood as the shrouds tore away the bulwarks. All our davits were ripped from the starboard side, and most of our bulwarks too; but, strangely enough, we lost no spars nor any important gear. There seemed to be a good deal of damage done on board the stranger, where, in addition, all hands were at their wits' end. Well they might be, aroused from so criminal a sleep as theirs. Fortunately, the third mate had powerful bull's-eye lantern, which in his watch on deck he always kept lighted. Turning it on the stern of the delinquent vessel as she slowly forged clear of us, we easily read her name, which, for shame's sake as well as for prudential reasons, I withhold. She was a London ship, and a pretty fine time of it I had for the next day or two, listening to the jeers and sarcasms on the quality of British seamanship.
We kept going until I genuinely believe another crash would have split us in half. At the last moment, we turned the helm hard down, bringing our ship directly into the wind just as the helmsman on the other vessel spotted us and instinctively turned his helm down too. The two boats swung side by side amid a thunderous roar of flapping sails, the crackling of fallen masts, and the tearing of wood as the shrouds ripped through the bulwarks. All our davits were torn from the starboard side, along with most of our bulwarks; strangely, we didn’t lose any masts or important gear. It looked like a lot of damage was done on the other ship, where everyone seemed completely panicked. They had every reason to be, waking up from such a reckless sleep. Thankfully, the third mate had a powerful bull’s-eye lantern, which he always kept lit during his watch on deck. Shining it on the stern of the other ship as it slowly moved away, we easily read her name, which I will withhold for shame's sake and for practical reasons. She was a London ship, and I certainly had a great time over the next day or two, listening to the jabs and sarcastic comments about British seamanship.
Repairing damages kept us busy for a few days; but whatever of thankfulness we were capable of feeling was aroused by this hairbreadth escape from death through the wicked neglect of the most elementary duty of any man calling himself a seaman.
Repairing the damages kept us busy for a few days, but any gratitude we could feel was sparked by this narrow escape from death due to the careless neglect of the most basic responsibility of anyone who calls themselves a sailor.
Then a period of regular Western-ocean weather set in. It was early spring in the third year since our departure from this part of the world, and the north-easter blew with bitter severity, making even the seasoned old captain wince again; but, as he jovially said, "it smelt homey, n' HE warn't a-goin' ter growl at thet." Neither were any of us, although we could have done with less of a sharp edge to it all the same.
Then a stretch of typical Western Ocean weather took over. It was early spring in the third year since we left this part of the world, and the northeast wind blew with harsh intensity, making even the experienced old captain flinch again. But, as he cheerfully said, "it smelled like home, and he wasn't going to complain about that." Neither were any of us, although we could have done without the biting chill.
Steadily we battled northward, until at last, with full hearts, we made Cape Navesink ("Ole Neversunk"), and on the next day took a tug and towed into New Bedford with every flag we could scare up flying, the centre of admiration—a full whale-ship safe back from her long, long fishing round the world.
Steadily, we moved north, and finally, with full hearts, we reached Cape Navesink ("Ole Neversunk"). The next day, we took a tugboat and towed into New Bedford, flying every flag we could find, the center of admiration—a whale ship safely back from its long fishing voyage around the world.
My pleasant talk is done. I wish from my heart it were better performed; but, having done my best, I must perforce be content. If in some small measure I have been able to make you, my friendly reader, acquainted with a little-known or appreciated side of life, and in any wise made that life a real matter to you, giving you a fresh interest in the toilers of the sea, my work has not been wholly in vain. And with that fond hope I give you the sailor's valedictory—
My talk is over. I genuinely wish it had gone better; however, having done my best, I must accept it as it is. If I’ve managed in any small way to introduce you, my dear reader, to an overlooked or underappreciated aspect of life, and have made that life feel real to you, sparking your interest in the hardworking people of the sea, then my efforts haven't been completely wasted. And with that hopeful thought, I present to you the sailor's farewell—
SO LONG!
GOODBYE!
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!